love


love



1 Pages 1-10

▲back to top


1.1 Page 1

▲back to top


1.2 Page 2

▲back to top


Treatise on the Love of God
Author(s): Francis de Sales, St. (1567-1622)
Publisher: Grand Rapids, MI: Christian Classics Ethereal Library
Description:
Treatise on the Love of God is a manual intended to help
believers strengthen their devotion to God. St. de Sales de-
scribes his project by saying, "it is truly my intention to rep-
resent simply and naively, without art, still more without false
colours, the history of the birth, progress, decay, operations,
properties, advantages and excellences of divine love." The
Treatise is divided into twelve books. The first four books
explain the nature of the human soul and provide the history
of divine love. Book Five explores the two principle exercises
of love, namely, sacred complacency and benevolence.
Books Six and Seven discuss the importance of practicing
love through prayer, while Books Eight and Nine express the
importance of submitting to God's will. The final three books
are devoted to exploring the practical importance of God's
holy love in our lives. St. de Sales' Treatise is a captivating
depiction of love.
Emmalon Davis
CCEL Staff Writer
Subjects: Christian Denominations
Roman Catholic Church
Meditations. Devotional readings. Spiritual exercises, etc.
i

1.3 Page 3

▲back to top


Contents
Introductory Material
1
Cover Page
1
Frontispiece
2
Title Page
4
Dedication
6
Translator's Introduction
7
Table of Contents
27
Dedicatory Prayer
37
Preface
39
Book I. Containing a Preparation for the Whole Treatise.
49
Chapter I. That for the Beauty of Human Nature God has Given the Government 50
of All the Faculties of the Soul to the Will
Chapter II. How the Will Variously Governs the Powers of the Soul.
52
Chapter III. How the Will Governs the Sensual Appetite.
54
Chapter IV. That Love Rules over All the Affections, and Passions, and Even
57
Governs the Will, Although the Will Has Also a Dominion over It.
Chapter V. Of the Affections of the Will.
59
Chapter VI. How the Love of God Has Dominion over Other Loves.
61
Chapter VII. Description of Love in General.
63
Chapter VIII. What Kind of Affinity (Convenance) It Is Which Excites Love.
66
Chapter IX. That Love Tends to Union.
68
Chapter X. That the Union to Which Love Aspires Is Spiritual.
70
Chapter XI. That There Are Two Portions in the Soul, and How.
74
Chapter XII. That in These Two Portions of the Soul There Are Four Different 77
Degrees of Reason.
Chapter XIII. On the Difference of Loves.
79
Chapter XIV. That Charity May Be Named Love.
80
ii

1.4 Page 4

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of The Affinity There Is between God and Man.
81
Chapter XVI. That We Have a Natural Inclination to Love God above All Things 83
Chapter XVII. That We Have not Naturally the Power to Love God above All
85
Things.
Chapter XVIII. That the Natural Inclination Which We Have to Love God Is not 87
Useless.
The Second Book. The History Of The Generation And Heavenly Birth Of Divine 89
Love.
Chapter I. That the Divine Perfections Are Only a Single But Infinite Perfection. 90
Chapter II. That in God There Is But One Only Act, Which Is His Own Divinity. 92
Chapter III. Of the Divine Providence in General.
95
Chapter IV. Of the Supernatural Providence Which God Uses towards Reasonable 98
Creatures.
Chapter V. That Heavenly Providence Has Provided Men with a Most Abundant 100
Redemption.
Chapter VI. Of Certain Special Favours Exercised by the Divine Providence in 102
the Redemption of Man.
Chapter VII. How Admirable the Divine Providence Is in the Diversity of Graces 104
Given to Men.
Chapter VIII. How Much God Desires We Should Love Him.
106
Chapter IX. How the Eternal Love of God Prevents Our Hearts with His
109
Inspirations in Order That We May Love Him.
Chapter X. How We Oftentimes Repulse the Inspiration and Refuse to Love God. 112
Chapter XI. That It Is no Fault of the Divine Goodness if We Have not a Most 114
Excellent Love.
Chapter XII. That Divine Inspirations Leave Us in Full Liberty to Follow or Repulse 116
Them
Chapter XIII. Of the First Sentiments of Love Which Divine Inspirations Cause 119
in the Soul before She Has Faith.
Chapter XIV. Of the Sentiment of Divine Love Which Is Had by Faith.
122
Chapter XV. Of the Great Sentiment of Love Which We Receive by Holy Hope. 124
Chapter XVI. How Love Is Practised in Hope.
126
Chapter XVII. That the Love Which Is in Hope Is Very Good, Though Imperfect. 128
iii

1.5 Page 5

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That Love Is Exercised in Penitence, and First, That There Are 130
Divers Sorts of Penitence.
Chapter XIX. That Penitence Without Love Is Imperfect.
133
Chapter XX. How the Mingling of Love and Sorrow Takes Place in Contrition. 135
Chapter XXI. How Our Saviour's Loving Attractions Assist and Accompany Us 138
to Faith and Charity.
Chapter XXII. A Short Description of Charity.
140
Book III. Of The Progress And Perfection Of Love.
142
Chapter I. That Holy Love May Be Augmented Still More and More in Every One 143
of Us.
Chapter II. How Easy Our Saviour Has Made the Increase of Love.
145
Chapter III. How a Soul in Charity Makes Progress in It.
148
Chapter IV. Of Holy Perseverance in Sacred Love.
152
Chapter V. That the Happiness of Dying in Heavenly Charity Is a Special Gift of 155
God.
Chapter VI. That We Cannot Attain to Perfect Union with God in This Mortal 157
Life.
Chapter VII. That the Charity of Saints in This Mortal Life Equals, Yea Sometimes 159
Surpasses, That of the Blessed.
Chapter VIII. Of the Incomparable Love Which the Mother of God, Our Blessed 161
Lady, Had.
Chapter IX. A Preparation for the Discourse on the Union of the Blessed with 164
God.
Chapter X. That the Preceding Desire Will Much Increase the Union of the Blessed 166
with God.
Chapter XI. Of the Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the Vision of the 167
Divinity.
Chapter XII. Of the Eternal Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the Vision 169
of the Eternal Birth of the Son of God.
Chapter XIII. Of the Union of the Blessed with God in the Vision of the Production 171
of the Holy Ghost.
Chapter XIV. That the Holy Light of Glory Will Serve for the Union of the Blessed 173
Spirits with God.
Chapter XV. That There Shall Be Different Degrees of the Union of the Blessed 175
with God.
iv

1.6 Page 6

▲back to top


Book IV. Of The Decay And Ruin Of Charity.
177
Chapter I. That as Long as We Are in This Mortal Life We May Lose the Love of 178
God.
Chapter II. How the Soul Grows Cold in Holy Love.
181
Chapter III. How We Forsake Divine Love for That of Creatures.
184
Chapter IV. That Heavenly Love Is Lost in a Moment.
187
Chapter V. That the Sole Cause of the Decay and Cooling of Charity Is in the 189
Creature's Will.
Chapter VI. That We Ought to Acknowledge All the Love We Bear to God to Be 192
from God.
Chapter VII. That We Must Avoid All Curiosity, and Humbly Acquiesce in God's 195
Most Wise Providence.
Chapter VIII. An Exhortation to the Amorous Submission Which We Owe to the 198
Decrees of Divine Providence.
Chapter IX. Of a Certain Remainder of Love That Oftentimes Rests in the Soul 201
That Has Lost Holy Charity.
Chapter X. How Dangerous This Imperfect Love Is.
203
Chapter XI. A Means to Discern This Imperfect Love.
205
Book V. Of The Two Principal Exercises Of Holy Love Which Consist In
207
Complacency And Benevolence.
Chapter I. Of the Sacred Complacency of Love; and First of What It Consists. 208
Chapter II. How by Holy Complacency We Are Made as Little Infants at Our 211
Saviour's Breasts.
Chapter III. That Holy Complacency Gives Our Heart to God, and Makes Us Feel 214
a Perpetual Desire in Fruition.
Chapter IV. Of the Loving Condolence by Which the Complacency of Love Is 217
Still Better Declared.
Chapter V. Of the Condolence and Complacency of Love in the Passion of Our 220
Lord.
Chapter VI. Of the Love of Benevolence Which We Exercise towards Our Saviour 222
by Way of Desire.
Chapter VII. How the Desire to Exalt and Magnify God Separates Us from Inferior 224
Pleasures, and Makes Us Attentive to the Divine Perfections.
Chapter VIII. How Holy Benevolence Produces the Praise of the Divine
226
Well-Beloved.
v

1.7 Page 7

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How Benevolence Makes Us Call All Creatures to the Praise of God. 229
Chapter X. How the Desire to Praise God Makes Us Aspire to Heaven.
231
Chapter XI. How We Practise the Love of Benevolence in the Praises Which Our 233
Saviour and His Mother Give to God.
Chapter XII. Of the Sovereign Praise Which God Gives unto Himself, and How 236
We Exercise Benevolence in It.
Book VI. Of the Exercises of Holy Love in Prayer.
238
Chapter I. A Description of Mystical Theology, Which Is No Other Thing Than 239
Prayer.
Chapter II. Of Meditation the First Degree of Prayer or Mystical Theology.
243
Chapter III. A Description of Contemplation, and of the First Difference That 247
There Is between It and Meditation.
Chapter IV. That Love in This Life Takes Its Origin but Not Its Excellence from 249
the Knowledge of God.
Chapter V. The Second Difference between Meditation and Contemplation.
252
Chapter VI. That Contemplation Is Made Without Labour, Which Is the Third 255
Difference between It and Meditation.
Chapter VII. Of the Loving Recollection of the Soul in Contemplation.
258
Chapter VIII. Of the Repose of a Soul Recollected in Her Well-Beloved.
261
Chapter IX. How This Sacred Repose Is Practised.
263
Chapter X. Of Various Degrees of This Repose, and How It Is to Be Preserved. 265
Chapter XI. A Continuation of the Discourse Touching the Various Degrees of 267
Holy Quiet, and of an Excellent Abnegation of Self Which Is Sometimes Practised
Therein.
Chapter XII. Of the Outflowing (escoulement) or Liquefaction of the Soul in God 270
Chapter XIII. Of the Wound of Love.
273
Chapter XIV. Of Some Other Means by Which Holy Love Wounds the Heart. 276
Chapter XV. Of the Affectionate Languishing of the Heart Wounded with Love. 279
Book VII. Of the Union of the Soul with Her God, Which Is Perfected in Prayer. 283
Chapter I. How Love Effects the Union of the Soul with God in Prayer.
284
Chapter II. Of the Various Degrees of the Holy Union Which Is Made in Prayer. 288
Chapter III. Of the Sovereign Degree of Union by Suspension and Ravishment. 291
Chapter IV. Of Rapture, and of the First Species of It.
294
vi

1.8 Page 8

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Second Species of Rapture.
296
Of the Signs of Good Rapture, and of the Third Species of the Same.
298
Chapter VII. How Love Is the Life of the Soul, and Continuation of the Discourse 300
on the Ecstatic Life.
Chapter VIII. An Admirable Exhortation of S. Paul to the Ecstatic and Superhuman 302
Life.
Chapter IX. Of the Supreme Effect of Affective Love, Which Is the Death of the 304
Lovers; and First, of Such As Died in Love.
Chapter X. Of Those Who Died by and for Divine Love.
307
Chapter XI. How Some of the Heavenly Lovers Died Also of Love.
308
Chapter XII. Marvellous History of the Death of a Gentleman Who Died of Love 310
on Mount Olivet.
Chapter XIII. That the Most Sacred Virgin Mother of God Died of Love for Her 313
Son.
Chapter XIV. That the Glorious Virgin Died by and Extremely Sweet and Tranquil 316
Death.
Book VIII. Love of Conformity, by Which We Unite Our Will to the Will of God, 319
Signified unto Us by His Commandments, Counsels and Inspirations.
Chapter I. Of the Love of Conformity Proceeding from Sacred Complacency. 320
Of the Conformity of Submission Which Proceeds from the Love of Benevolence. 322
Chapter III. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to That Divine Will Which Is 324
Called the Signified Will.
Chapter IV. Of the Conformity of Our Will to the Will Which God Has to Save 326
Us.
Chapter V. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God's Which Is Signified 328
to Us by His Commandments.
Chapter VI. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God Which Is Signified 330
unto Us by His Counsels.
VII. That the Love of God's Will Signified in the Commandments Moves Us to 333
the Love of the Counsels.
Chapter VIII. That the Contempt of the Evangelical Counsels Is a Great Sin.
336
Chapter IX. A Continuation of the Preceding Discourse. How Every One, While 338
Bound to Love, Is Not Bound to Practise, All the Evangelical Counsels, and Yet
How Every One Should Practise What He Is Able.
vii

1.9 Page 9

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to God's Will Signfied unto Us 341
by Inspirations, and First, of the Variety of the Means by Which God Inspires Us.
Chapter XI. Of the Union of Our Will with God's in the Inspirations Which Are 344
Given for the Extraordinary Practice of Virtues; and of Perseverance in One's
Vocation, the First Mark of Inspiration.
Chapter XII. Of the Union of Man's Will with God's in Those Inspirations Which 347
Are Contrary to Ordinary Laws; and of Peace and Tranquility of Heart, Second
Mark of Inspiration.
Chapter XIII. Third Mark of Inspiration, Which Is Holy Obedience to the Church 349
and Superiors.
Chapter XIV. A Short Method to Know God's Will.
352
Book IX. Love of Submission, Whereby our Will is United to God's Good-Pleasure. 354
Chapter I. Of the Union of Our Will to That Divine Will Which Is Called the Will 355
of Good-Pleasure.
Chapter II. That the Union of Our Will with the Good-Pleasure of God Takes 357
Place Principally in Tribulations.
Chapter III. Of the Union of Our Will to the Divine Good-Pleasure in Spiritual 360
Afflictions, by Resignation.
Chapter IV. Of the Union of Our Will to the Good-Pleasure of God by Indifference. 362
Chapter V. That Holy Indifference Extends to All Things.
364
Chapter VI. Of the Practice of Loving Indifference, in Things Belonging to the 366
Service of God.
Chapter VII. Of the Indifference Which We Are to Have As to Our Advancement 369
in Virtues.
Chapter VIII. How We Are to Unite Our Will with God's in the Permission of 372
Sins.
Chapter IX. How the Purity of Indifference is to Be Practised in the Actions of 374
Sacred Love.
Chapter X. Means to Discover When We Change in the Matter of This Holy Love. 376
Chapter XI. Of the Perplexity of a Heart Which Loves Without Knowing Whether 378
It Pleases the Beloved.
Chapter XII. How the Soul amidst These Interior Anguishes Knows Not the Love 380
She Bears to God: and of the Most Lovefull Death of the Will.
Chapter XIII. How the Will Being Dead to Itself Lives Entirely in God's Will.
382
viii

1.10 Page 10

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. An Explanation of What Has Been Said Touching the Decease of 384
Our Will.
Chapter XV. Of the Most Excellent Exercise We Can Make in the Interior and 386
Exterior Troubles of This Life, After Attaining the Indifference and Death of the
Will.
Chapter XVI. Of the Perfect Stripping of the Soul Which Is United to God's Will. 389
Book X. Commandment of Loving God Above All Things.
392
Chapter I. Of the Sweetness of the Commandment Which God Has Given Us of 393
Loving Him Above All Things.
Chapter II. That This Divine Commandment of Love Tends to Heaven, Yet Is 395
Given to the Faithful in This World.
Chapter III. How, While the Whole Heart Is Employed in Sacred Love, Yet One 397
May Love God in Various Ways, and Also Many Other Things Together with
Him.
Chapter IV. Of Two Degrees of Perfection with Which This Commandment May 400
Be Kept in This Mortal Life.
Chapter V. Of Two Other Degrees of Greater Perfection, by Which We May Love 403
God Above All Things.
Chapter VI. That the Love of God Above All Things Is Common to All Lovers. 406
Chapter VII. Explanation of the Preceding Chapter.
408
Chapter VIII. A Memorable History to Make Clearly Understood in What the 410
Force and Excellence of Holy Love Consist.
A Confirmation of What Has Been Said by a Noteworthy Comparison.
414
That We Are to Love the Divine Goodness Sovereignly Above Ourselves.
417
Chapter XI. How Holy Charity Produces the Love of Our Neighbour.
419
How Love Produces Zeal.
421
Chapter XIII. How God Is Jealous of Us.
423
Of the Zeal or Jealousy Which We Have for Our Lord.
426
Chapter XV. Advice for the Direction of Holy Zeal.
429
Chapter XVI. That the Example of Certain Saints Who Seem to Have Exercised 432
Their Zeal with Anger, Makes Nothing against the Doctrine of the Preceding
Chapter.
Chapter XVII. How Our Lord Practised All the Most Excellent Acts of Love.
436
Book XI. Sovereign Authority Which Sacred Love Holds over All the Virtues, Actions 439
and Perfections of the Soul.
ix

2 Pages 11-20

▲back to top


2.1 Page 11

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Agreeable All Virtues Are to God.
440
Chapter II. That Divine Love Makes the Virtues Immeasurably More Agreeable 443
to God than They Are of Their Own Nature.
Chapter III. That There Are Some Virtues Which Divine Love Raises to a Higher 446
Degree of Excellence than Others.
IV. That Divine Love More Excellently Sanctifies the Virtues When They Are 448
Practised by Its Order and Commandment.
Chapter V. How Love Spreads Its Excellence Over the Other Virtues, Perfecting 450
Their Particular Excellence.
Chapter VI. Of the Excellent Value Which Sacred Love Gives to the Actions Which 453
Issue from Itself and to Those Which Proceed from the Other Virtues.
Chapter VII. That Perfect Virtues Are Never One without the Other.
456
Chapter VIII. How Charity Comprehends All the Virtues.
459
Chapter IX. That the Virtues Have Their Perfection from Divine Love.
462
Chapter X. A Digression upon the Imperfection of the Virtues of the Pagans.
464
Chapter XI. How Human Actions Are Without Worth When They Are Done 468
without Divine Love.
Chapter XII. How Holy Love Returning into the Soul, Brings Back to Life All the 471
Works Which Sin Had Destroyed.
Chapter XIII. How We Are to Reduce All the Exercise of Virtues, and All Our 475
Actions to Holy Love.
Chapter XIV. The Practice of What Has Been Said in the Preceding Chapter.
477
Chapter XV. How Charity Contains in It the Gifts of the Holy Ghost.
479
Chapter XVI. Of the Loving Fear of Spouses; a Continuation of the Same Subject. 481
Chapter XVII. How Servile Fear Remains Together with Holy Love.
483
Chapter XVIII. How Love Makes Use of Natural, Servile and Mercenary Fear. 485
Chapter XIX. How Sacred Love Contains the Twelve Fruits of the Holy Ghost, 489
together with the Eight Beatitudes of the Gospel.
Chapter XX. How Divine Love Makes Use of All the Passions and Affections of 491
the Soul, and Reduces Them to Its Obedience.
XXI. That Sadness Is Almost Always Useless, Yea Contrary to the Service of Holy 494
Love.
Book XII. Containing Certain Counsels for the Progress of the Soul in Holy Love. 497
x

2.2 Page 12

▲back to top


Chapter I. That Our Progress in Holy Love Does Not Depend on Our Natural 498
Temperament.
Chapter II. That We Are to Have a Continual Desire to Love.
499
Chapter III. That to Have the Desire of Sacred Love We Are to Cut Off All Other 501
Desires.
Chapter IV. That Our Lawful Occupations Do Not Hinder Us from Practicising 503
Divine Love.
Chapter V. A Very Sweet Example on This Subject.
505
Chapter VI. That We Are to Employ in the Practice of Divine Love All the
506
Occasions That Present Themselves.
Chapter VII. That We Must Take Pains to Do Our Actions Very Perfectly.
507
Chapter VIII. A General Means for Applying Our Works to God's Service.
508
Chapter IX. Of Certain Other Means by Which We May Apply Our Works More 510
Particularly to the Love of God.
Chapter X. An Exhortation to the Sacrifice Which We Are to Make to God of Our 512
Free-Will.
Chapter XI. The Motives We Have of Holy Love.
515
Chapter XII. A Most Useful Method of Employing These Motives.
516
Chapter XIII. That Mount Calvary Is the Academy of Love.
518
Other Books
520
Indexes
528
Index of Scripture References
529
Latin Words and Phrases
533
French Words and Phrases
534
Index of Pages of the Print Edition
536
xi

2.3 Page 13

▲back to top


This PDF file is from the Christian Classics Ethereal Library, www.ccel.org. The mission of
the CCEL is to make classic Christian books available to the world.
• This book is available in PDF, HTML, ePub, Kindle, and other formats. See
http://www.ccel.org/ccel/desales/love.html.
• Discuss this book online at http://www.ccel.org/node/2981.
The CCEL makes CDs of classic Christian literature available around the world through the
Web and through CDs. We have distributed thousands of such CDs free in developing
countries. If you are in a developing country and would like to receive a free CD, please
send a request by email to cd-request@ccel.org.
The Christian Classics Ethereal Library is a self supporting non-profit organization at
Calvin College. If you wish to give of your time or money to support the CCEL, please visit
http://www.ccel.org/give.
This PDF file is copyrighted by the Christian Classics Ethereal Library. It may be freely
copied for non-commercial purposes as long as it is not modified. All other rights are re-
served. Written permission is required for commercial use.
xii

2.4 Page 14

▲back to top


Introductory Material
TREATISE
i
ON THE
LOVE OF GOD
1

2.5 Page 15

▲back to top


Frontispiece
ii
St. Francis de Sales
1567-1622
2

2.6 Page 16

▲back to top


Bishop, Founder of the Visitation
and Doctor of the Church
Frontispiece
3

2.7 Page 17

▲back to top


TREATISE
ON THE
LOVE OF GOD
By
St. Francis de Sales
DOCTOR OF THE CHURCH
Translated by
Rev. Henry Benedict Mackey, O.S.B.
Under the Direction and Patronage of His Lordship the
Right Rev. John Cuthbert Hedley, O.S.B.
BISHOP OF NEWPORT
Title Page
iii
"A truly admirable book, which has as many admirers
of the sweetness of its author as it has readers. I have care-
fully arranged that it shall be read throughout our Society,
as the universal remedy for all feeble ones, the good of
slothful ones, the stimulus of love, and the ladder of those
who are tending to perfection. Oh! that all would study it
as it deserves! There should be no one to escape its heat."
—St. Vincent de Paul
TAN BOOKS AND PUBLISHERS, INC.
Rockford, Illinois 61105
4

2.8 Page 18

▲back to top


Title Page
iv
Originally published in approximately 1884 by Burns & Oates, Limited, London and Benziger
Brothers, New York as Volume II of the series "Library of St. Francis de Sales." This edition
photographically reproduced from the Third Edition by arrangement with Burns & Oates.
Library of Congress Catalog Card No.: 95-60646
ISBN 0-89555-526-3
Cover illustration: Portrait of St. Francis de Sales by J. J. Owens (early 20th century), based
on the Turin portrait. Courtesy of De Sales Resource Center, Niagara Falls, New York.
Printed and bound in the United States of America.
TAN BOOKS AND PUBLISHERS, INC.
P.O. Box 424
Rockford, Illinois 61105
1997
5

2.9 Page 19

▲back to top


Dedication
DEDICATION
I have dedicated this work to the Mother of dilection and to the Father of cordial love,
as I dedicated the Introduction to the Divine child who is the Saviour of lovers and the love
v
of the saved. And as women, while they are strong and able to bring forth their children
with ease, choose commonly their worldly friends to be godfathers, but when their feebleness
and indisposition make their delivery hard and dangerous invoke the Saints of heaven, and
vow to have their children stood to by some poor body or by some devout soul in the name
of S. Joseph, S. Francis of Assisi, S. Francis of Paula, S. Nicholas, or some other of the blessed,
who may obtain of God their safe delivery and that the child may be born alive: so I, while
I was not yet bishop, having more leisure and less fears for my writings, dedicated my little
works to princes of the earth, but now being weighed down with my charge, and having a
thousand difficulties in writing, I consecrate all to the princes of heaven, that they may obtain
for me the light requisite, and that if such be the Divine will, these my writings may be
fruitful and profitable to many.
Annecy, the day of the most loving Apostles
S. Peter and S. Paul, 1616.
BLESSED BE GOD.
—St. Francis de Sales
From The Preface (Pages 15-16)
vi
6

2.10 Page 20

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
TRANSLATOR'S INTRODUCTION.
THE following Treatise presents, at first sight, considerable difficulties. They do not
vii
arise from any defect in the Saint's mode of expression, but are inherent in his subject and
manner of treatment, "going deep down into the roots" of the Love of God. Thus he speaks
in his Preface, and continues: "The first four books, and some chapters of the others might
doubtless have been omitted without disadvantage to such souls as seek only the practice
of holy love. . . . I have been forced to say many things which will appear more obscure than
they are. The depths of science are always somewhat hard to sound." But he tells us that the
state of the minds of his age required this deeper treatment; and whatever may be thought
as to the best way of presenting modern religious teaching to an age so ignorant, so shallow
and so unthinking as is our own with regard to spiritual truths, there can be no question
that this masterpiece of the chief doctor of ascetic theology must not be brought down to
our level, but that we must raise ourselves towards it. The necessity of giving some explana-
tion of the sequence of its doctrine, and of the difficulties which occur, must be our chief
excuse for daring to place words of ours by the side of this finished work of S. Francis de
Sales.
A second reason lies in the fact that the "Treatise on the Love of God" was, with others
of his writings, the chief subject of the celebrated controversy between Fénélon and Bossuet.
There can be little doubt that this lowered the authority of the work. Not because the mere
fact of a discussion seemed to throw over it an air of unsafeness or suspicion. Descriptions
of the sublime and mysterious operations of the soul under the influence of grace are always
capable of being misunderstood, and "wrested" from their proper sense, and no Christian
mystic, from S. Paul downwards, has escaped this danger. The shameless abuse of the Saint's
viii
authority by the Jansenists left it eventually quite unimpaired. Hence the mistakes of Molinos,
Père Lacombe, Madame Guyon, and even of Fénélon himself would have thrown no per-
manent discredit on this treatise, if Bossuet had defended it in a proper spirit and with full
knowledge and discretion. Incredible as the fact may seem, it is nevertheless true that neither
Fénélon nor Bossuet had properly studied the works in dispute. The former went to them
prepossessed. His opinions were already formed, and he merely sought a confirmation of
them. He read in a most superficial manner. He precipitately chose out what seemed to suit
his purpose, and neglected important statements and obvious interpretations which were
inconsistent with it. He even went so far in what must be called a sincere dishonesty of
misapprehension, as to insist on clinging to mistakes he had fallen into through using Bailly's
Lyons edition of the "Conferences" (1628), which Bossuet had proved to be spurious. Bossuet,
on his side, admits that he had not previously read it properly, he only studied what seemed
necessary to answer his opponent, and lacked that high complete knowledge of S. Francis's
7

3 Pages 21-30

▲back to top


3.1 Page 21

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
teaching as a whole which was necessary for taking a proper view of details and parts. Indeed
he only then (1695) began those profounder studies of mystic theology which enabled him
later to write his treatises on matters which to S. Francis, by the experience of sanctity more
even than by the studies of a lifetime, were as familiar as the sights and sounds of home.
Hence it came about that while he easily justified the teaching of the Saint, he not only failed
to give the full influence of his genius and authority to unassailably establish its triumphant
reputation, but on the contrary he incidentally disparaged it. He says, for instance: "S.
Francis is a great saint, and I have always maintained that his doctrine which is objected
against us is entirely for us as to the matters in question: but we must not therefore make
him infallible, and it cannot be forgotten that he has shown more good intention than
knowledge on some points." Fortunately Bossuet mentions these points, and the reader shall
ix
see directly Bossuet's entire misapprehension of the Saint's meaning, and meanwhile "it
cannot be forgotten" that while Bossuet refused the title "infallible" to S. Francis, for whom
no one claims it, he refused it to the successor of S. Peter to whose office it really belongs.
Bossuet says further: "According to the spirit of his time he had perhaps less read the Fathers
than the modern Scholastics." Did Bossuet remember that he was speaking of the age of
Sirmond, of Bellarmine, of Venerable Canisius, and, we may say, of Petavius? Francis was
a master and a leader of his age, and, as is clear from this Treatise alone, was excellently
versed both in the Fathers and the Scholastics, if any distinction is to be made between them.
In conclusion, Bossuet presumes to say: "In these places and in some others his theology
might be more exact and his principles more sure . . . . one would not follow him in certain
condescensions which I will not particularize." In this also it will be shown that Bossuet is
most unjust, but for the present we may consider that he neutralizes his own objection,
when in the same sentence he says: "As director of souls he is truly sublime." In answer to
these attacks, Fénélon gladly changed places with Bossuet, but his hasty defence was not so
complete as the charges were unwarranted and presumptuous.1
We shall briefly touch upon these controverted points as they occur among the difficulties
of the Treatise. Of these difficulties Book I. contains by far the largest proportion, and we
will give an abstract of this Book sufficiently complete to prevent the necessity, not indeed
of studying it, but, of a too laborious study.2
x
1 For our authorities and full information on this important controversy we refer our readers to the admirable
"Dissertation," by Baudry, in the supplementary volume (ix.) of Migne's edition of the "Works of S. Francis and
S. Jane Frances." There is an anonymous dissertation in vol. vi. which bears on the same subject.
2 The following part of our Introduction—viz., the analysis of Books i., ii., will probably be found more intel-
ligible and useful after reading the Saint's text.
8

3.2 Page 22

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
In this first Book the Saint treats in general of the will and its affections, in particular
of its chief affection, love, and of the will's natural inclination towards a sovereign love of
God.
The first chapter is to show that the unity required for the beauty of that assemblage of
perfections called man, lies in this, that all his powers are grouped round the will and sub-
ordinated to it. Then (c. 2) it is shown that the will exercises its authority in different ways,
according to the different nature of human powers. It governs: (a) exterior movements, at
its pleasure, like slaves; (b) the senses and corporal functions, by a certain management, like
horses or hawks; (c) the fancy, memory, understanding, by direction and command, like
wife and children, who are able to disobey if they choose; (d) the sensual appetite (c. 3), in
the same manner as the last-named; it is still less under the will's control, but there is no
moral guilt so long as the will refuses to consent to or adopt its wrong desires. Then are
described the twelve movements of this sensual appetite,—viz., desire, hatred, hope, &c.,
which are called perturbations or passions. They are all forms of the chief, and, in a sense,
the only passion, love. These passions are left in man on purpose to exercise his will. A
universal experience, testified to in effect even by those who pretend to deny it, such as the
Stoics, proves that these movements are necessary qualities of human nature. Love being
(c. 4) the root of the others their action is good or bad according as the love is rightly or
wrongly placed. Nay the very will is bad or good according to its love; and its supremacy
does not lie in this that it can reject all love, but in this that it can choose amongst the loves
presented to it, by directing the understanding to consider one more favourably or more
attentively than another. In the will, now defined (c. 5) as "the reasonable appetite," there
are affections, that is, movements or forms of love, similar to the passions of the sensual
appetite. Having different and higher objects they often run counter to the passions, and
the reasonable will often forces a soul to remain in circumstances most repugnant to its
xi
sensual inclinations. These affections or tendencies of the will are divided into four classes
according to their dignity, that is, the dignity of their objects: 1°. Natural affections, where
the word natural is not used in opposition to supernatural (as in this sense the next class
would also be natural), but to signify those first and spontaneous affections which by the
very natural constitution of our reason arise from the perception of sensible goods. Indeed
the word sensible exactly explains his use of the word natural, provided that we carefully
remember that he is speaking not of the movements of the merely sensual appetite or con-
cupiscence which are anterior to reason, but of our reasonable and lawful affections for
sensible goods. Such are the affections we have for health, food, agreeable society. 2°.
Reasonable affections, where it will now easily be understood that the word, which could
be applied also to the preceding class, is restricted to those which are par excellence reasonable,
that is, the affections which arise in the spiritual part of reason, from the light of nature in-
deed, but from the higher light of nature—such as the affections for the moral virtues. 3°.
9

3.3 Page 23

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Christian affections, which spring from the consideration of truths of the Christian revelation,
such as affections for poverty, chastity, heavenly glory. 4°. Divine, or (entirely) supernatural
affections which God effects in us, and which tend to him as known by a light entirely above
that of nature. These supernatural affections are primarily three: love for the beautiful in
the mysteries of faith, love for the useful in the promises of hope, and love for the sovereign
good which is the Divinity.
The essential supremacy of divine love is proved (c. 6), and there follows a wondrous
description in four chapters of the nature and qualities of love in general. Divine love or
charity is not defined till chapter 13, and is not specifically described till the last chapter of
Book II.
There are (c. 7) five points in the process of love: 1. Natural affinity of the will with
xii
good. 2. Delectation or complacency in it. 3. A movement, following this complacency,
towards union. 4. Taking the means required for union. 5. Union itself.3 It is in 2 and 3,
complacency and movement, that love more properly consists, and most precisely in 3, the
movement or outflowing of heart. Complacency has appeared to some to be the really essen-
tial point of love, but it is not so, because love is a true passion or affection, that is, a move-
ment. Complacency spreads the wings, love actually flies. When the object loved is present
and the lover has but to grasp it, the love is called a love of complacency, because complacency
has no sooner produced the movement of love than it ends in a second complacency. When
the object is absent, or, like God, not as present as it may become, the tending, advancing,
aspiring movement is called a love of desire, that is, the cupidity of what we have not but
hope to have. After certain exquisite distinctions between various kinds of desires, he returns
(c. 8) to the correspondence or affinity with good which is the root of love, and which consists
not exclusively in resemblance, but in a certain relation between things which makes them
apt to union for their mutual perfection. Finally, coming to union and the means thereto,
it is exquisitely proved (c. 9) that love tends to union but (c. 10) to a spiritual union, and
that carnal union, instead of being an expression of true love or a help to it, is positively a
hindrance, a deviation, a degradation.
The next two chapters (11, 12) treat the important distinction between the two parts of
the soul, the inferior and the superior. It will clear matters to notice that the Saint means
the two parts of the reasonable soul, and that in the first two paragraphs of chapter 11 he
simply says that his distinction does not refer to the soul as a mere animating principle, or,
again, as the principle of that life which man shares with plants and animals. He speaks of
xiii
the human soul as such, that is, as having the gift of reason.
3 This division is the connecting chain of the whole Treatise, and it will be found that each Book treats of one
or more of its parts. Thus the three following Books are on point 3, Book v. on point 2, Books vi.–ix. on points
4 and 5 (viz., union by affective and by effective love), x.–xii. on point 3.
10

3.4 Page 24

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Even the inferior part of the soul truly reasons and wills (so that his distinction of inferior
and superior is not the distinction between concupiscence and reason), but it is inferior
because it only reasons and wills according to data furnished by the senses: the superior
part reasons and wills on intellectual and spiritual considerations. But it must be noticed
that these considerations are not necessarily supernatural. The distinction between the in-
ferior and the superior part of the reasonable soul is quite independent of revelation: it rests
on the distinction between what we have called the lower light of nature and that higher
light which, for instance, heathen philosophers used, when, for love of country or moral
virtue, they chose to submit to sensible pain or even to death which their lower reason would
direct them to avoid. The existence of this lower reason is clearly shown in Our Blessed Sa-
viour's prayer in the garden. Willing and praying are acts of reason, yet in this case they
were acts of a lower reason which Christ permitted to manifest itself, but which had to give
way to higher considerations.
Now the inferior part of reason forms by itself one degree of the reason, but the superior
part has three degrees; in the lowest of which we reason according to higher natural light,
or as the Saint calls it, "human sciences," in the next according to faith, and in the highest
we do not properly reason, but, "by a simple view of the understanding, and simple acquies-
cence," or assent, "of the will" we correspond with God's action, when he spreads faith, hope
and charity in this supreme point of our reasonable soul. The distinction corresponds exactly
with that made in chapter 5, into natural, reasonable, Christian and divine. The Saint there
spoke of affections or tendencies, he here speaks of reasonings and willings which are the
fulfilment of those tendencies. We may remark here, as an instance of the superficial way
in which Fénélon and Bossuet studied this Treatise, that they take a totally different ground
of distinction in separating the soul into superior and inferior (viz., sensible perception and
xiv
intellectual cognition), and yet do not perceive that they are differing from the Saint.4 To
sum up (cc. 11, 12): in man there are some powers altogether below reason; and reason,
which is of course one and simple in itself, has four degrees, according to the rank of the
objects presented for its consideration and love,—sensible things, spiritual things known
by the light of nature, spiritual things known by the revelation of Christ, and spiritual
knowledge communicated by the immediate communication of God's light. Between the
last and the last but one there is not exactly a difference of rank in the objects, but a difference
in clearness of perception and strength of acceptance.
4 Certain expressions on p. 50 require explanation. It is there said that in the superior part of the soul there
are two degrees of reason—the answer is that the Saint for the moment puts out of consideration the lowest
degree of the higher reason, and concerns himself with the two supernatural degrees. And a little lower down
he speaks of the action of faith "in the inferior part of the soul," but he really means in the lower one of the two
highest degrees.
11

3.5 Page 25

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Having finished this subject, which is to some extent a digression, the Saint returns to
the consideration of love, and gives (c. 13) its two main divisions,—viz., love of cupidity
when we love good for our own sake, and love of benevolence when we love good for its
sake—i.e. love of self-interest and disinterested love. He has already, in chapter 7, sub-divided
the love of cupidity into love of benevolence and love of desire, according as the loved good
is present or absent, and now he applies the same division and the same ground of division
to the love of benevolence. This also is either a love of complacency or a love of desire ac-
cording as the good is present to or absent from the person we love: we rejoice in the good
he already has, we desire him the good he has not. This double form of the love of benevol-
ence, besides occurring frequently throughout, enters particularly into the structure of Book
V., and is importantly needed for the full understanding of Book VIII. It is necessary here
to point out that whereas he has just placed the names complacency and desire under the
xv
generic head, benevolence, he afterwards uses the word benevolence, specifically, instead
of desire, as if dividing benevolence into complacency, and benevolence proper. This use
of the word in the sense of desire agrees with its etymology,—bene-volentia, bien-veuillance,
well-wishing.
Cupidity alone is exercised in the inferior reason, but in the superior reason both find
place. The love of God for his own sake which is necessary for eternal life belongs exclusively
to the supreme degree of the superior reason, but the Saint teaches (as Bossuet has clearly
shown against Fénélon) that there is a reasonable, high love of cupidity, that is, a love of
God as good to us, even in the highest degree and supreme point of the spirit. This indeed
is the precise motive of Christian hope, which must be kept subordinate to disinterested
love, but can only be separated from it by abstraction and by a non-permanent act.
The love of benevolence is called friendship when it is mutual. This friendship has de-
grees. When it is beyond all comparison with other friendships, supereminent, sovereign,
it is called charity—the friendship or mutual love of God and man.
The Saint shows (c. 14.) that to employ the word love instead of charity is not against
the use of Scripture, and he mentions one reason for his preferring the word love which
gives us an important help to the understanding of the Treatise. It is, he says, because he is
speaking for the most part not of the habitual charity, or state of friendship between God
and the soul in grace, but of actual charity, that is, of the acts of love which at once express
and increase the state of charity. Even in the three following books, in which he is speaking
of the formation, or progress, or loss, of habitual charity, he is still chiefly concerned with
the acts by which this is done.
In the remaining four chapters preparation is made for the account of the communication
of grace and charity to the soul. He shows (c. 15) that there is a natural affinity of the soul
xvi
with its God which is the root of love; that thus, by a glorious paradox, God and man need
one another for their mutual perfection; that we have (c. 16) a natural inclination to love
12

3.6 Page 26

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
God above all things; that (c. 17) we cannot fulfil this inclination by natural powers; but (c.
18) that still the inclination is not left in our hearts for nothing, as it makes possible the
communication of grace, and is the handle by which grace takes hold of us.
It is chiefly against these three chapters that Bossuet's animadversions are directed. He
accuses the Saint of two errors: 1°. in saying (p. 61) that God would give grace to one who
did his best by the forces of nature as certainly as he would give a further grace to one who
corresponded with a first grace; 2°. of saying (p. 57) that in the state of original justice our
love of God would not be supernatural.
Fénélon misapprehends the Saint's meaning, and gives a very confused, imperfect answer
to the two objections. The real answer to the first is that Bossuet is quite outside the question.
S. Francis is not speaking of the step by which a man passes from the natural to the super-
natural order, but of the process by which his natural inclination to love God above all things
ripens into that actual love of him above all things which belongs still to the natural order.5
Bossuet falls into a somewhat similar error in his second objection. S. Francis is consid-
ering, separately, the natural love of God which those would have who might be in the state
of original justice, who would, of course, by the very terms, have supernatural love. Not
only is Bossuet's criticism ridiculously irrelevant, but his language, to ears which have heard
the Saint declared "Doctor of the Church," sounds almost like impertinence. "What," he
xvii
says, "would this humble servant of God have done if it had been represented to him that
in the state of original justice we should have loved God supernaturally? Would he not have
confessed that he was forgetting the most essential condition of that state?" And it is after
these mistakes that Bossuet complacently observes: "These opinions rectify themselves in
practice when the intention is good;" and "In some points his theology might be more exact
and his principles more sure."
Book II. describes the generation of charity, which, being supernatural, must be created
in the soul as a new quality. And after two introductory chapters, the remaining twenty are
evenly divided between the history of the action of God in bestowing, and the action of man
in appropriating this gift. The two introductory chapters, which seem at first sight somewhat
foreign to the subject of the book, are directed to put steadily and unmistakeably before us
the truth that when theologians speak of many perfections, many acts, a most various order
of decrees and execution, this is only according to the human method of viewing, and that
our God is really but one perfection and one act, which is himself. This truth is developed
partly also to introduce a description of the perfections of the God of whose love the Saint
5 It is true that elsewhere (Book iv. c. v.) S. Francis says, after S. Thomas and S. Francis Xavier, that God is
sure to give grace to those who fulfil the natural law, but, since in the state of fallen nature the natural law itself
cannot be fully observed without grace, there is already supposed in the hearts of such persons the existence of
grace which draws the further grace. This the Saint expressly states (xi. 1).
13

3.7 Page 27

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
is speaking. At the end of the Treatise he refers to these chapters as his chief treatment of
the chief motive of love—the infinite goodness of God in himself.
After this caution and preface, he begins (c. 3) his account of the action of God in the
production of charity. He speaks, first, of God's providence in general, including under this
title his actual providing or foreseeing, his creating, and his governance. Then (c. 4) he
comes to the divine decree to create Christ's Humanity, angels and men for him, inferior
creatures for men—following here the Scotist teaching that Christ would have become man
(though of course he would not have died) even if Adam had not sinned. God decreed to
create angels and man in the supernatural state of charity, and, foreseeing that some angels
xviii
and the whole nature or race of man would fall from this state, God decreed to condemn
the former, but to redeem the latter by his Son's death, making the state of redemption a
hundred times better than the state of innocence. God decreed (c. 6) special favours, such
as the Immaculate Conception of Mary, for certain rare creatures who were to come nearest
to his Son, and then for men in general an immense abundance and universal showers of
grace, an all-illuminating light. He gives a whole exquisite chapter (c. 8) to show the sincerity
and strength of the desire God thus manifests that we should love him, and then comes (c.
9) to the effecting this desire by preventing our hearts with his grace, taking hold of our
natural inclination to love him. We can (c. 10) repulse his grace, not because (c. 11) there
is anything wanting in God's offer, but (c. 12) as an inevitable consequence of our having
free-will; in case we accept it, we begin to mingle our action with God's. Here we must remark
that the Saint is not concerned with the sacramental action of God which creates or re-creates
charity in the soul by baptism or penance, still less does he treat the semi-miraculous pro-
duction of charity by Baptism in souls which have not yet the use of reason, but he speaks
of the intellectual and moral process or set of acts by which a soul gifted with the use of
reason is conducted from infidelity to faith and charity, he treats of the justification which
is made by love even before the actual reception of a Sacrament.
Our first act under divine inspiration is (c. 13) the consenting to those first stirrings of
love which God causes in the soul even before it has faith. Then (c. 14) comes the production
of faith. This may follow after argument and the acceptance of the fact of miracles, but it is
not precisely an effect of these. Such things make truths of faith extremely credible, but God
alone makes them actually believed. And the effect is from God not only in this sense that
the extremest effort of natural intelligence could not attain to faith, but also because a
moving of the will is required and is contained in the intellectual act of faith itself, what the
xix
Saint calls an affectionate sentiment of complacency in the beauty and sweetness of the truth
accepted, so that faith is an acquiescence, an assent, an assurance. The Jews saw the force
of the argument from Christ's miracles, but they did not assent to the conclusion because
they loved it not. Hence faith includes a certain commencement of love in the will, but a
love not as yet enough for eternal life.
14

3.8 Page 28

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Then (cc. 15, 16, 17) comes the production of hope, which brings yet closer to charity.
As soon as faith shows the divine object of man's affections, there arises a movement of
complacency and desiring love. This desire would be a torment to us unless we had an as-
surance that we might obtain its object. God gives this assurance by his promise, and this
promise, while it makes desire stronger, causes at the same time a sense of calm which the
Saint calls the "root" of hope. From it spring two movements or acts of the soul, the one by
which she expects from God the promised happiness, and this is really the chief element of
hope—esperer, the other by which she excites herself to do all that is required on her
part—aspirer. This aspiration is the condition but not the positive ground of our esperation
(to coin a word). That is to say, we may not expect the fruition of God except in so far as
we have a courageous design to do all we can; then, we may infalliby expect it, yet still ever
from the pure mercy of God. Hope, then, is defined "an expecting and aspiring love," or "the
loving complacency we take in the expecting and seeking our soverign good." It is then a
distinct advance in love. Faith includes a beginning of love in the movement of the will
though its real seat is the intelligence; hope is all love, and its seat is the will. However hope
as such is still insufficient, because, however noble, it is a love of cupidity, and not that love
of God for his own sake which is necessary for eternal life. By it we love God sovereignly,
because we desire him above all other goods, yet our love is not sovereign, because it is not
the highest kind of love. The Saint is of course speaking of the action of hope before charity.
xx
Hope remains also after charity, existing, as we have said, in the very heights of perfect love,
and after charity its acts merit before those of every other virtue.
Then comes the production of penitence or repentance. He distinguishes (c. 18) first,
a merely human repentance; secondly, a religious repentance belonging to the merely nat-
ural order; thirdly, a supernatural inferior repentance, which (c. 19) is good but insufficient;
and fourthly (c. 20), perfect repentance, that is, sorrow for sin arising from the loving con-
sideration of the sovereignly amiable goodness which has been offended thereby. This is
not precisely charity, because charity is, precisely, a movement towards union, whereas re-
pentance is, precisely, a movement of separation (from sin); but though it is not precisely
charity and therefore has not the sweetness of charity, it has the virtue and uniting property
of charity, because the object of its movement of separation from sin is union with God. In
practice there is no means, or need, to distinguish, because perfect repentance is always
immediately followed or preceded by charity, or else the one is born within the other.
The Saint then reminds us (c. 21) that all this has been done by the loving action of
God's grace, which, after awakening our souls and inspiring them to pray has brought them
through faith and hope to penitence and perfect love. In conclusion (c. 22) he describes
charity.
Book III. treats of the progress and perseverance of the soul in charity on earth, and of
the perfection of triumphant charity in heaven. We have only one remark to make on this
15

3.9 Page 29

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
book. The Abbé Baudry expresses surprise that the Saint when speaking (c. 2) of the increase
of charity by good works does not mention its increase by the Sacraments. But he includes
them under the name good-works, and in Book IV., c. 4, where he sums up this part of Book
III. mentions them explicitly. He does not dwell on them because his object in chapter 2 is
to show how easy God has made the increase of charity. He takes therefore as his examples
xxi
the smallest works, such as the giving a cup of cold water, and he leaves us to draw the
conclusion that the faithful and loving reception of God's Sacraments would â fortiori increase
love. Still it is true that neither here nor elsewhere does he treat the Sacraments except quite
incidentally, and the explanation of this fact gives us a further insight into the true character
and object of the Treatise. He is concerned with the action of grace in general, not with its
action by particular means; he is more concerned with the interior movements of man under
grace than with the effects worked on him, as it were from outside; and, as he is treating of
actual charity, he is more concerned with the good acts for which God gives (whether by
Sacraments or in any other way) an increase of grace, than he is concerned with the actual
reception of the grace. We mention this to show that one must not be surprised at not
finding a fuller treatment of, for instance, the Blessed Eucharist. We must also remember
that this Treatise supposes the "Introduction to a Devout Life" as a foundation. And though
he only introduces the Sacraments incidentally, he does not fail to speak of them frequently,
and with such magnificent praises as we should expect from the Saint of love. As when he
says (ii. 22) that the communication of Christ's body and blood is the very consummation
of the charity he is writing of, and the crown of God's love-dealings with us; or as when he
says, speaking of the return of the penitent soul to reunite herself, immediately, with her
God: "Go and cry God's mercy in the very ear of your confessor" (ix. 7).
Book IV. describes the relations of love and sin. The following five Books treat of the
exercise of benevolence in its generic sense—the sovereign love of God for his own sake.
Book V. treats in general of the double action or manifestation of this love,—in compla-
cency, and in benevolence in its specific sense, that is, desire.
xxii
Books VI. and VII. treat of union with God by affection, that is, by prayer; the former
treating of meditation, and of contemplation as far as union, the latter of union itself. The
various degrees of the prayer of quiet are treated in these books, and Quietists bring forward
passages from them, as from other parts of the Saint's works, in support of their extravagant
system of annihilation of the powers and of purely passive prayer. We have said elsewhere6
as much as we think it necessary to say to overthrow these allegations. But it is important
to show that Fénélon was utterly wrong in appealing to the Saint's authority in support of
his erroneous doctrine on this point in his "Maximes des Saints." Bossuet has exposed these
errors and given a full explanation of the passages cited from S. Francis; particularly in the
6 "Four Essays on the Life and Writings of S. Francis de Sales," Essay III. p. 88.
16

3.10 Page 30

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
8th and 9th Books of his "Instruction pastorale sur les états d’oraison." The Saint expresses
in this as in all things the very teaching of the Church. He rightly teaches that there is, even
short of suspension and ecstasy, a kind of prayer in which God takes into his own hands
the powers of the soul, and produces in it acts far above the ordinary operations of faith,
hope and charity. When God lifts a soul to this prayer, and also to some extent in preparation
and expectancy of this elevation, the will acts, by a placing of itself (remise) in the hands of
God, and even continues to act, though insensibly: hence the soul is not purely passive, but
the action of God is so mighty, and so far beyond all proportion to that of the will, that S.
Francis says this is "as it were passive." And as the soul must offer itself to be lifted, and must
co-operate with God, therefore also must it help to acquire and preserve that "quiet" which
is the condition of God's operation: it must abstain from intrusive acts of reasoning and
from other acts of the will, especially from violent ones. But this prayer, however frequent,
long, uninterrupted, absorbing, it may become, is of itself a non-permanent state, and not
of the nature of a habit, but is always an act of charity. And far from saying that for perfection
it is necessary to be raised to and to keep oneself in this state, the Saint teaches in a hundred
xxiii
places that the soul, however perfect, must exercise itself in all ordinary acts of prayer, faith,
hope, petition, which are only put on one side for the time in which God has raised it. The
practice of S. Jane Frances, whose authority was invoked even more speciously than that of
her saintly director by the advocates of passive prayer, bears on this. We are told that: "She
wrote out and signed with her blood a long prayer which she had composed of petitions,
praises, thanksgivings, for general and particular favours, for relations and friends, for the
living and the dead, in fine for all intentions to which she considered herself obliged, with
the Credo of the Missal, also signed with her blood. She carried this in a little bag night and
day round her neck, and she had made a loving covenant with Our Lord that whenever she
pressed this to her heart she should be taken to have made all the acts of faith, the thanks
and the petitions she had written."7 And, at last, prayer is not a character of perfection, but
a means to it, and the two following statements of S. Francis in his second Conference abso-
lutely settle the whole question as to his teaching. "It happens often enough that Our Lord
gives these quietudes and tranquillities to souls that are far from perfection." . . . . and on
the other hand: "There are persons who are very perfect to whom Our Lord has never given
such sweetnesses nor such quietudes; who do all with the superior part of the soul, and make
their will die in the will of God by main force, and with the supreme point of the reason;
and this death is the death of the cross, much more excellent than that other, which should
rather be called a slumber than a death."
As in treating affective love Book VII. completes Book VI., so in treating effective love
Book VIII., which treats of obedience to the already signified will of God, is completed by
xxiv
7 From her life by Maupas, quoted by Bossuet in the "Instr. Past. sur les états d’oraison," viii.
17

4 Pages 31-40

▲back to top


4.1 Page 31

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Book IX., which treats of indifference, or the state of perfect readiness to accept all that
God's good-pleasure may choose to send us.
On the doctrine of indifference we venture again to refer the reader to our Essay8 just
quoted. We add a few words to show how completely Fénélon erred in appealing to this
Treatise to support his extravagant and condemned propositions that indifference extends
to eternal salvation as our salvation, and to virtuousness as such. The Saint expressly teaches
that while God's glory must be our principal end, we may, indeed we must—our nature so
requires—desire salvation and virtue as good also in themselves. Much less can we acquiesce
in a supposed decree of damnation, with that species of absolute act which Fénélon requires
as the last test of the disinterestedness of love.9 With regard to eternal salvation, we have
only to study the sentiments the Saint places in the hearts and mouths of those whose love
is refined to its highest point at the moment of death (v. 10, vii. 11, 12). He has a chapter to
prove that the preceding desire of heaven increases the enjoyment of it (iii. 10); and he
teaches that not only mercenary hope but also servile fear remain in the soul as part of its
habit of charity so long as it is in this life (xi. 17). With regard to virtues he says (xi. 13): "Let
us love the particular virtues, but principally because they are agreeable to God;" and: "We
must make this heavenly good-pleasure the soul of our actions, loving the goodness and
beauty of virtue principally because it is agreeable to God." Here the word "principally" is
the key of the whole question.
Bossuet triumphantly vindicates10 the Saint's doctrine on indifference, but has a very
ill-judged criticism on his use of the word. He is quite right in saying that indifference is
only a degree of resignation, but he forgets how far ordinary resignation is below indifference.
Bossuet gives a full explanation of all the passages alleged by Fénélon from S. Francis, but
xxv
he was hampered, as Fénélon was totally misled, by Maupas's erroneous account of S.
Francis's famous temptation to despair.
Of the remaining three books, Book X. is dedicated entirely to the commandment of
loving God above all things; Books XI. arid XII. are on the theory and practice of the partic-
ular virtues. Indeed it must be remembered that the object of the Treatise, even in its spec-
ulative parts, is exclusively practical. And as we have shown that in its theory it is free from
error, so we may now be allowed to indicate some of its glorious truths, particularly with
regard to the practice of holy living.
It is not a book, like other spiritual books, treating only a section or a single element of
the devout life, but it is one by which and on which the whole spiritual life can be formed;
8 Pp. 82-4.
9 The Saint is careful to qualify any ambiguous statement (as in ix. 4) by declaring that he speaks "par
imagination de chose impossible."
10 In the same "Instruction, &c."
18

4.2 Page 32

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
it is, with the "Introduction to a Devout Life," a perfect book, a "complete food," containing
all the ingredients necessary for spiritual sustenance.
It contains in the first place an immense mass of instruction, dogmatic and moral, on
the science of the love of God. It treats not only in broad outline but also in subtle detail of
God and the soul, this world and the world to come, grace and free-will, holiness and sin,
commandments and counsels, ordinary virtue and perfection, all questions of prayer; it
treats the virtues in detail, not only the virtue of charity in all its parts, but also faith, hope
and fear, zeal, obedience, resignation. The direct course of the Treatise takes us through all
these, and they are not only treated fully in themselves, but so treated as to bring out in il-
lustrating them a hundred related truths. A whole theology of Mary might be gathered as
we pass along; her Immaculate Conception (ii. 3), her graces and privileges (iii. 8.; ix. 14.;
vii. 13, 14), her praise of God (v. 11), her heavenly death (vii. 13, 14). A new light is thrown
on the sense of Holy Scripture, and on the principles and actions of the Saints.
But, in the second place, we more particularly wish to point out some of his practical
principles and rules, the manner of loving and serving God. The most important of these
is what may be called the Saint's general idea or philosophy of life. It begins thus: "We know
xxvi
by faith that the divinity is an incomprehensible abyss of all perfection. . . . . And this truth
which faith teaches we consider attentively by meditation, regarding this immensity of goods
which are in God. . . . . Now when we have made our understanding very attentive to the
greatness of the goods which are in this divine object, it is impossible that our will should
not be touched with complacency in this good . . . . and especially when we see amidst his
perfections that of his infinite love excellently shining" (v. 1, 2.). The loving soul does not
stay in complacency but goes on to benevolence, wishing her God all possible goods; but as
she is at the very same time exulting in the thought that nothing is wanting to him, she can
at first but spend herself in desiring him what he already has, in desiring to be able to give
him something, and in praises, ever rising higher and higher until at last she finds a sort of
rest in the sense that her utter inability to desire him anything which he has not, or to praise
him fully, is the best proof of the infinity of the goods he has. This delight in God and these
loving desires are an important part of her service, but they would be barren if she did not
go further. She turns, then, to her own powers, and finds that exercising them in herself by
internal acts of prayer (affective love), and outside herself, amid creatures, by external acts
of the virtues (effective love), she can increase the glory of her beloved, not in itself, but in
and by herself. Thus the various interior and exterior acts are brought into one, and the
soul's life consists, on the one hand, in "a continual progress in the sweet searching out of
motives which may continually urge her" (v. 7), and, on the other hand, in acts of prayer,
19

4.3 Page 33

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
in obedience, and in submission. She "employs every occasion," "does everything most per-
fectly," and, by the practice of Intention, Offering, and Ejaculatory Prayer (according to
methods minutely described in Book XI. 13, 14, 20, and throughout Book XII.), subordinates
and ranges every interior movement and every exterior action to the service of divine love.
xxvii
This "view" of life, this continual gazing at the beloved Master for whom we work, this
regarding the acts of life as a mere series of acts or offerings of love, is the very central point
of the ascetic teaching of S. Francis. It not only gives the nobleness, the intensity, the merit-
oriousness of charity to every act, but it gives also at the same time a great simplicity and
largeness, preserving the soul from formality and from getting lost or wearied in the multi-
tudinous details and minute practices of the spiritual life; it creates a loving detachment and
liberty of spirit, with a readiness to follow every slightest indication of God's will. Finally,
it gives order to our various duties. For instance, it puts in their proper place, in serene
majesty above the cavils of worldlings, the works of religion and "piety." These are the im-
mediate services of the beloved, the first effects of charity, and therefore charity itself teaches
that: "Amongst all virtuous actions we should carefully practise those of religion and reverence
to divine things, those of faith, hope and the most holy fear of God;—often talking of heavenly
things, thinking of and aspiring after eternity, frequenting churches and holy services,
reading spiritual books, observing the ceremonies of the Christian religion; for holy love
feeds at will amid these exercises, and spreads its graces and properties more abundantly
over them than over the simply human virtues" (xi. 3). Yet there is no fanaticism. The human
virtues find their proper place at the proper time, and, inferior in themselves, are raised by
love, that is, by the fact that for the time they are the will of God, to the highest rank in the
eyes of the loving soul,—"For in little and low exercises, charity is practised not only more
frequently, but also as a rule more humbly, and therefore more profitably and more holily"
(xii. 6). He has two glorious chapters on the truth that legitimate occupations, be they even
in court or camp, hinder not the practice of divine love. "Curiosity, ambition, disquiet, to-
gether with inadvertence to, or not considering, the end for which we are in this world, are
the causes why we have a hundred times more hindrances than affairs; and it is these embar-
xxviii
rassments, that is, the silly, vain, superfluous undertakings with which we charge ourselves
that turn us from the love of God, and not the true and lawful exercise of our vocations"
(xii. 4.). In the one great principle of doing all for love we have signalized two conditions
or negative aspects of the same. 1°. The intellect must be kept "very attentive." As the Saint
says in the "Introduction to a Devout Life" (v. 17), so here, consideration "is supposed
throughout the entire work," the whole edifice is built on it, and therefore the want of it,
"inconsidération," is the ruin of the whole spiritual life (xi. 7.) This "consideration" need not
be called by the alarming name of mental prayer, but whatever it is called it consists in a
most serious attention to spiritual truths according to the capacity of the individual: there
must be one great esteem, and therefore the energy of the intellect cannot be given primarily
20

4.4 Page 34

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
to anything else. So (2°) in the will, there must be but one great affection, one aim, one de-
sire—"One to one." "The desire of exalting God separates from inferior pleasures" (v. 7);
and: "to have the desire of sacred love we must cut off other desires" (xii. 3). "Those souls
who ever abound in desires, designs and projects never desire holy celestial love as they
ought:" "He who aspires to heavenly love must carefully reserve for it his leisure, his spirit,
and his affections:"—words which should be written in letters of flame for the guidance of
such as seek the right way to perfection.
We will not stay to give examples of his more particular principles with regard to prayer,
but we select a few with regard to the virtues. The truly loving heart not only observes the
commandments, but loves the observance, of them (viii. 5). "Inclination is neither vice nor
virtue. . . . . How many by natural disposition are sober, simple, silent, even chaste? All this
seems to be virtue, but it is not, until on such natural humours we have grafted free and
voluntary consent:" The whole chapter "On the imperfection of the virtues of the pagans"
(xi. 7.) is of the most practical importance at the present day. The general, but surely most
constraining, principle of mortification,—that other pleasures and other desires must be
xxix
put down for the sake of divine love,—is applied to the interior in such more particular
methods as this:—irregular affections can be put down either on the principle of curing
contraries by contraries, or on the principle of curing likes by likes: the inclination to trust
in earthly things may be overcome either by thinking of the vanity of earthly hopes or of
the solidity of heavenly hopes; desire of riches or of sensual pleasure may be kept down
either by the contempt of them or by the esteem of heavenly goods, "as fire is extinguished
either by water or by lightning" (xi. 20). It is applied to the exterior thus: "It is useless to give
orders of abstinence to the palate, but the hands must be ordered to furnish the mouth with
meat and drink only in such and such a measure. . . . . If we desire our eyes not to see we
must turn them away, or (he has just compared our sensual appetite to a hawk) cover them
with their natural hood . . . . it would be folly to command a horse not to wax fat, not to
grow, not to kick,—to effect all this, stop his corn" (i. 2). In this connection, and to show
how beautiful, how consistent, and how feasible his teaching is, it should be studied with
his life, as his life should be explained by his teaching. That his extraordinary and almost
unreasonable meekness sprang from no weakness or ignorance, but was founded on the
deepest wisdom and sincere humility, we realize when we study his teaching (x.) on zeal
and anger. His extremely affectionate expressions towards his friends find their justification
in the truth that "the union to which love aspires is spiritual" (i. 10). The ground of his
missionary spirit and life is found in v. 9, and the whole work is the explanation of his abso-
lute devotion of himself to the loving service of God and his neighbour.
21

4.5 Page 35

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
In the third place, the Treatise contains a full exposition of the motives for serving God,
the why of a spiritual life. This is all reduced to the one great motive of the infinite perfec-
tions—especially the amiableness, the love, the goodness of God—brought before us in a
hundred ways. His mere descriptions are enough to bring home this motive to the heart
xxx
that reads them with attention, but the Saint himself puts them together (xii., 11, 12) with
the exact method of applying them. But besides the direct treatment of the motives, the
Treatise is pervaded by a heavenly persuasive unction, which ever urges them. This is why
S. Vincent calls it "the goad of the slothful and the stimulus of love." While S. Francis seems
only to be making us clearly understand what virtue is, he at the same time makes us esteem
and love it; his reasons for loving God and practising virtue are not cold, dry logic, but reach
the heart, and command assent; and while he is apparently only fixing our attention on the
way to practise virtue he is at the same time gently but effectively touching the springs of
the will to make us love and prepare to effect it. But besides this continual stimulation he
has direct exhortations; he stops, as it were, in his course to preach. One chapter is headed:
"An exhortation to the amorous submission which we owe to the decrees of divine Provid-
ence" (iv. 8). Another is his exposition of S. Paul's,—"The charity of Christ presseth us."
Another—"An exhortation to the sacrifice we ought to make to God of our free-will" (xii.
10). And other chapters, though not precisely in the form of exhortations, contain the virtue
of them. Such are the chapters "On condolence and complacency in the Passion of Our
Lord" (v. 5); on the "Marvellous history of a gentleman who died of love on Mount Olivet"
(vii. 12); and the last chapter of all: "That Mount Calvary is the true academy of love."
But, in the fourth place, this Treatise is not only a manual and a guide to perfection, but
it is also a meditation-book, and a prayer-book. In such chapters as those just mentioned
the devout soul will find all the materials of most excellent meditations;—not only deep
pregnant thoughts, but also a very fountain of affections and ejaculations, most pressing
movements of the will, and most effective resolutions. The summing up of motives, and
method of using them is already in the very form of meditation. But almost every chapter
could be used as such. For instance, if one wished to strengthen the groundwork of love—the
xxxi
realization of the perfections of God—after thinking out Book v. cc. 1. 2., he could add Book
i. cc. 15, 18, Book ii. cc. 1, 2, 8, 15, 22, and Book iii. cc. 11, 12, 13. This Book III. furnishes
grand meditations on heaven, and every Book is full of the excellences of charity, than which
no consideration could be more touching or more practical.
Then, the Treatise is a prayer-book. Very frequently the Saint ends his chapter with an
exquisite prayer, himself giving the expression of the ardours with which he has filled our
hearts. All Book V. is a prayer;—for instance, c. 5 on the Passion, c. 6 on Desires. Profound
dogma, having permeated the intellect, exhales itself, as it were, to God on the apex of the
spirit in such burning words as his—"Ah! then I am not made for this world, &c." (i. 15),
or—"Ah! Jesus, who will give me grace to be one single spirit with thee, &c!" (vii. 3.)
22

4.6 Page 36

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
We have now to speak of our text and rendering. We have followed the text of Vivès's
edition of the "Œuvres Complètes," which, with a little improvement from subsequent edi-
tions, is a reproduction of the original work, published at Lyons by Rigaud in 1616. We
therefore follow in our quotations the spelling and accentuation of the old French. We have
of course used the ordinary Catholic translation of the Bible, except where the Saint leaves
the Vulgate for the Septuagint or the Hebrew, which he occasionally does, not, as he says,
to get the true sense, but "to explain and confirm the true sense." We have consulted the
originals for the citations from the Fathers, but the Saint himself quotes them with a certain
freedom, and we have not thought it necessary to give the exact references, as the student
can easily find them in Vivès or Migne. It has been decided to omit or modify in this popular
edition a few sentences in which the Saint refers to certain delicate matters—in particular
to certain Bible narratives which to his original readers were matters of familiar know-
ledge—with the happy simplicity of his day. As he says in his Preface, "it is of extreme im-
xxxii
portance to remember the age in which one writes," and there can be no doubt that if he
had been writing for this age he would have consulted its requirements, and would have
conformed to the universal practice of modern spiritual writers by forbearing reference to
these subjects. He only introduces them incidentally and merely for the purpose of illustrating
his main argument. The omissions or alterations taken altogether would not amount to
more than two pages.11
We are acquainted with only two English versions of the Treatise. The first was made
by Father Car, from the eighteenth French edition,12 and we had at first intended to take
this as the basis of ours; but when we came to actually test it by the original, we determined
to make our translation completely independent of it, and in many parts we did not refer
to it at all. As to the substance of the work it is satisfactory; though there are many slight
omissions, and a few somewhat serious mistakes. As to style, taken by itself, it is a good and
a very interesting specimen of the racy, vigorous English of that day; but taken as a translation,
the rendering is unwarrantably free, and Father Car's manner is far too rugged to represent
that of the Saint, which is always graceful and flowing, even when the thought is closest and
the passion strongest. Father Car gives the structure correctly, but his manipulation of
conjunctions and adverbs, particularly in the more argumentative parts, is painfully cum-
11 They occur in i. 5, 10; iv. 10; v. 1; vi. 15; vii. 1; viii. 1; ix. 10; x. 7, 9; xi. 4, 10, 11, 14.
12 "A Treatise of the Love of God." Written in French by B. Francis de Sales, Bishope and Prince of Geneva.
Translated into English by Miles Car, priest of the English Colledge of Doway. The eighteenth edition. Printed
at Doway by Gerard Pinchon, at the sign of Coleyn, 1630.
23

4.7 Page 37

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
brous. We should expect his diction to be archaic, but some of his words are quite obsolete13.
He is occasionally mistaken in his use of words, as when he translates bonté, "bounty," instead
of "goodness;" he makes curious mistakes in words which are spelt nearly alike.14 We have
laboured to preserve his delightful air of antiqueness, which is singularly appropriate to the
xxxiii
Saint's work.
The modern English translation, which was made, we believe, early in the present century
by an Irish lady, and which has been reprinted by various publishers, is not worth criticizing.
It is not so much a translation as a very bad adaptation. A good deal of the substance of the
book is left out, and the translator, who was not properly acquainted either with the Saint's
language or her own, substitutes her style for his. We have no hesitation in saying that there
is not a page without important errors on commission or omission.
We may add a few words on our own work. It is sometimes said that a translation should
read as if it were composed in the language in which it appears, and, again, that a translator
must not attend immediately to the words of his text, but must, in the first place, aim at
producing the same impression on the minds of his readers as the author would produce
on the minds of those for whom he originally wrote. We cannot but consider both these
rules or principles to be fallacious. A Frenchman, for instance, is different from an English-
man, and there are many words which necessarily make a very different impression, according
as they fall on a French or on an English mind. So, again, the French tongue has national
peculiarities and differences which an English translator may not ignore, but which he
cannot represent in strict accordance with the genius of his own tongue. S. Francis's work
would have been totally different, both in itself and in its effect, if he had been an Englishman
writing for his countrymen in their native language. The most that a translator can do is to
put the foreign reader in as good a position as he would be in if he had a familiar knowledge
of the original. When an Englishman having a familiar knowledge of French reads a book
written in that language, he does not indeed usually advert to the expression therein of the
xxxiv
national characteristics—vivacity, use of gesture, frequent expression of emotion, strong
sense of personality—because he has for the time put on his French form of mind, but there
is certainly a latent sense of foreignness, of which he becomes conscious when these peculi-
arities are exaggerated, as in such a writer as Victor Hugo.
We say this in explanation of the general structure of the work, which could not be
altered without being revolutionized, but as regards particular words and phrases, we have
tried our best to spare our readers the disagreeable jar which is caused by the introduction
of a foreign idiom. In this matter the Treatise presents less difficulty than is found in the
13 We would gladly have reintroduced such a fine old word as "yert," which represents the now untranslateable
eslan or eslancement.
14 For instance nuisance as if it were naissance; jeusnes et veilles, as if they were jeunes et vieilles.
24

4.8 Page 38

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
more colloquial writings, because its argument is very substantial, and its text largely consists
of quotations from the Holy Scriptures, the Fathers, and philosophers. The difficulty lies
deeper, and one must be extremely careful, in obliterating Gallicisms, not to injure or destroy
what belongs to the very texture of the style. S. Francis's work cannot be made to read as
easily as do the empty, superficial writings of the day, or to appear in a spick-and-span
modern English dress. He is a classic, he is a master of thought, having his individual char-
acteristics, who wrote scientifically on profoundest religious truths three ages back.
His style is old-world, antique. Words with him have more of their fresh native simplicity
than they now retain after having done service for three hundred years. Some of them he
was the first to bring out of their classic use into modern circulation. Hence, we make no
difficulty in using such words as "contemplation," "sensible," "civil," in their original and
more proper sense, as English religious writers of his age—Hooker, Taylor or Milton—used
them.
Again, he is scientific—theological and philosophical. He writes a Treatise. The world,
which is only interested in its own matters, will not admit the rights of the scientific writer
xxxv
on religion. Catholics of the English-speaking race are placed at a double disadvantage, on
account of the small proportion their numbers bear to the mass of their countrymen. But
surely we are not to acquiesce in allowing terms to be prohibited which are necessary or
useful for properly and safely expressing the distinctive truths of our religion: there is an
interest at stake not merely literary, but religious, and also patriotic. We claim, therefore,
the right to use, for instance, the words "religion," "religious," "professed," in our technical
Catholic sense, for the state and the persons of those who have bound themselves to the
service of God by vow.
S. Francis also had his special characteristics, which, therefore, are not French but
Salesian. He was slightly old-fashioned, even in his own time. He was a patriarch of French
literature, and devoted, in language as in other things, to the old times, though so glorious
a pioneer of the new. He is simple in expression amongst the simple. But each word is
charged with thought and reflection, and sometimes an exclamation which one might at
first be tempted to suppress as a French superfluity, turns out to be a "word," and welded
into the substance of the phrase. He was a Saint, also, and what would be an exclamation
in others is an ejaculation in him.
But, after all, our object is devotional and not literary; we are far from wishing to indulge
any literary fancies or crotchets and have no intention of straining our principles of transla-
tion. Our one aim is to make the true teachings of S. Francis de Sales accessible, profitable,
and attractive to English readers, and so to contribute our poor efforts to advance the divine
Art of Holy Loving.
25

4.9 Page 39

▲back to top


Translator's Introduction
Weobley,
Feast of our most holy Father S. Benedict, 1884.
xxxvi
26

4.10 Page 40

▲back to top


TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Table of Contents
PAGE
xxxvii
Translator's Introduction. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
vii
.T.h.e. A. .u.t.h.o.r.'s. .D.e.d. i.c.a.to. .ry. .P.r.a.y.e.r.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
1
..T..h..e.. P.. ..r..ef..a..c.e.........................................................
3
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . B. .OOK I.
CONTAINING A PREPARATION FOR THE WHOLE TREATISE.
CHAP.
PAGE
I. That for the beauty of human
nature God has given the
II. Hogwovtehrenmweilnl tvoarfiaolul stlhyegfoavc--
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
XIV.
XV.
XVI.
XVII.
XVIII.
HTOHDWTTTTOTOTTThhhhhhhhhefnfoohu...e...s...fetd......d....al.....a...i...tf......l..b...at...ta..wi.saaaaaaaaaoonstwweehhhhervstb..............................................anceolotthtttttttthcrivvtnnpoeiehnert...............t...............................otocmtmwlieniteltieewctihtnoswieshu...............kneoe...............................hoivcsntnphthr..ghuoesae)...............hviiitoe...............................ghvpheeteeetdtenn..esnthfanagt...............eohihe...............................eeuseohu.fsr..oadiouwdiriileo...............nsfe...............................afhroelontwo.eisl..itnenfa...............atvcustlvlp................................teoleeutaas.nenwa..hgGohfoyep...............tieahet................................inelolofnsvr.fthl..oirseveerhe...............vroripi,puoo................................eeoafweda.ed..ltmnnassnee.............eiavlrnes................................fvwnirldwe.ss..nvwnfeooir............seotnetaG................................npe.ctsa.tist..eoigriot............aivavronguolywhrde................................t.tyaao.lo..stoosot...........neuetelooiflh................................irsp..iui..t.woofootdh...........frc.ntadtsbevulith................................y.e.o...ro.norff.........hhi.oGltahtnelcen.................................aa.a..o.pf.rem.(hoht.......vlle.rwlwoitga................................bl.tsc.hi...aol.on.io......vceenhernioe.oientu.................................o.ast.....e.oivdh..srnerauxeslhann.nlow.................................n.a..r..v..,teoen..llsccrmGG.iee,vwl.n................................st.......e.s.aov..idolaosihiotre.l...................................i.........tanoaooe..uilhealinanvnaoel.l.............................................ffilsnddddllllyaeessss-----fl.................................................
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.......
17
19
21
24
26
29
30
35
37
39
45
48
51
52
54
56
58
61
xxxviii
27

5 Pages 41-50

▲back to top


5.1 Page 41

▲back to top


Table of Contents
BOOK II.
THE HISTORY OF THE GENERATION AND HEAVENLY BIRTH OF DIVINE LOVE.
CHAP.
PAGE
I. That the divine perfections
II. ThaarteinonGlyoda stihnegrlee ibsubtuitnofinne-
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
XIV.
XV.
XVI.
XVII.
XVIII.
OOTOHHHHTTOOOHTThhhhhffffffoooooi...od...g...ew...pa...ept...pvm..s...pht...tt...vn...uo...wch...l...wh....ifiaaaaatttcoswttwwwweihhohtatnrb................eie.............................hnrhhrrrrisiaoottoeettteahhhchnvvvcseaeurnoooeo...........................................ucsnehtepedlltnrrlrlteiiiipeitneiseetoyvhoo.............smewvvv..............................ue.dtensccntinhceaeifasrifgieeane.wv.............vveveriiiao..............................tphhw.ilensaey.dddaseiergdddirdryunia.wm.............deieiseit..............................ff.n,vsuul.enercsmfanisotghnyueeelp.o...........ctew..............................vee.eadhpiatm.h.ttGiloplnosooodnne.nmi.shl..........tvsi,siosacn..............................int.ti..icsi.lifremeeot.nefs.dprhcc..........evooprsitwcav..............................te.eslbhd.ma..roratnai.ldo.ayeee.........Gereniehendrnext..............................w.iogntnre..y.ynhbu.ete.snfhbnc,........anifieeiepe...............................n..rtsn..i.aoaapohspxid.thlne.iric........ietieolanscGorat...............................rer..hca.u.t.tlsom.di.inc.tirieis........rcmbhesocnuumr..............................h...tlmim..c.ool.itoel.ovht.mwit........,ishelatanvohr...............................s..fhely..s.tv,lueiif..d.e.vede.......asaetialdnf.eiheeinbv.................................s.e..oetp.t.sdei.g.diacet......insvlthndp.hhoiede.................................es...trh.ng.f.wh.trorsb......nueohdsi.ibtefinie...............................a..p..ee.t.iti..i.rnitnom.....ryootsurienahisvd.ootnya...............................n.....es.fddr...dhamrse..lefcrnooreht.eoef...............................f..p..o.ft.e.c...mtlhiisi..eeesuhpswanhhGoe.vvlmriv.ol..............................l...pf..v.e...u.v...loooorieadhusaeiiw.ioeo.ot.................................p..ddi.....e.wietlo..ennnhpnnvvdvvpotxtiaressh.lr.....................................w......seiis.nnhdoyeeeeeeeeeeeeerss--------t..............................................
XIX.
XX.
XXI.
XXII.
THHAhoos..ae..i...st...tpi...ahwstwrronr............aytaioeir............tnc.ctmoprri...e.........h.yottodue....i.........ep.ndowniru..............vem.eni...s.........S.rets.ts...f.........eaicr.at.en..a.nso.........rvk..c..sig..........ic.ep.tsofs..l.e.........s..ai.ito..usn..........i..i.prwo..ttr...........g..thl..'an.ss.........ai...o..nt.c...........ao.hlf..odoe............n.fol..fv.o............cadi..uni............vhc.p..ntc...........ce..a..ecghol.............ran..ooi.m.........a...an..tinvr.............ytt.de-----..............
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. . . .
63
66
69
73
76
78
81
83
86
89
91
94
98
101
104
106
109
112
115
117
xxxix
121
124
28

5.2 Page 42

▲back to top


CHAP.
CHAP.
Table of Contents
BOOK III.
OF THE PROGRESS AND PERFECTION OF LOVE.
I. That holy love may be aug-
II. Homwenetaesdy osutirll Smavoioruer ahnads
OFVXXTVXXIIVIIIIXHVVVVIIIIIXXIIIIIII.............EHOTTTOATOOOTTDhhhhhhfffffoEm...m...p...r...is...fm...tso...wo...cb...mt...si...btb...wtG...wtG.db.aaaaaapnowehhhhhhppoeottt........................................Cllilfuretttttthiihochhtheeerrnduoaoieeeeomieo............u............................tlgtrhtwsettrAssslidtattodheetecrrhch...........lhg............................rphrcbihhshsspleohuyBeetismh.svteee...........oseYr............................eeheeesrbaaleuueesafeetetGne.eoiele..........odvodd............................apici.lilpltrsberrtoBnnwts.nsimstin..........Afevehu............................ahceodoeia.vehhlsngorhlsssr.wwoiis........iOochenret............................isrtelda.eneupooietNfeoencese.thiis........nnrenfssfa............................ecapnii.dhivonecinnosOlth.eiesftt........dentDr.lDaewtM............................ilry.npdtoeohhnemah.yvnhai........oGidlwis.i............................loK.rStioodcttsriiLo.cteile.......ueflsno..ivtyR............................yGGf.fle.pooruiiff.ahrt.nna.....hfectrst..giotGu............................weIe.uh.anadotn.tUbh.dnhooa.....phphgotVtt.h.as............................thno.nG.nnere..,rhierohhie....yddaiaseiafs..I............................odatt.o.qefGetiii.c.r.i...d,ieseeeorhrN..notvy..ob............................u.fd.iesntnoue..uts..yiohot.od..hi.an..............................oshln.t.onGe.iG.fsabbts.neefyit.faOifd..i..e.............................h.m.fse..oiiflnironflltoodiodoon.s..,.o...uee..............................egeee..oHGfFlt,wffyda.d.nss..p..i.lr.............................no..rlsst..sdntwvosoysskiheotttno.a..,...................................h.e.C..viniihhheeventriioooecidar.s..s..l..................................a...einnhddlgHyyaaeeeess----ttfffll......................................,..... ARITY.
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .......................... .
I. Th.a.t.a.s. l.o.n.g. .a.s we are in this
II. Homwotrhtael lsiofeuwl germoways lcoosledthine
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
HTTThhhol...h...f...m...ci.ltaaaoeswooa.............otttdvroyi.............lGhtngeywm...w.........htaeeho...........oteleaneehoa..d.........favnsdt.evf.........lGeooottl.eo.........nocc.lur..oet.........for.lsgh..bdye.........cao.ch.e.ae..........rka.ll.tot.ei..........u.eflnu.a.vo..........r.strgto.ed..........oev.ue.m..........ie.io'orvss...........a.effiw.wl..........c.nsGoct..k...........eheihso..l..........n.etlabd..l............oirode..n.............wivaet...............yaer--...............
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ............ . . . . . . . .
................
PAGE
127
129
132
138
141
143
145
147
150
153
154
157
159
161
163
xl
PAGE
165
168
171
174
176
178
29

5.3 Page 43

▲back to top


Table of Contents
VII. That we must avoid all curios-
ity, and humbly acquiesce
182
VIII. AninexGhoodr'tsamtioonsttwoitsheepraomvoidr--
eonucses.u. b. m. .i.ss.i.o.n. .w.h. i.c.h. .w.e.
186
IX. Of..ovtah.i.wnca..eeet..ro..ptt.afo.rti..oen.t.nvh.r.itee.di.mm.e.d.n.eae.c.sic.ne.rr..d.ee..ees..t.rs.s..o..oi..fn.f..l.ot..d.hv..i.ee-..
189
X. Ho.swo. u. dl. .an.th.ga.et.ro. hu. .ass.t.h.lios. s.it.m. hp. o.erl.y-.
192
OF
THE
TWO
PRINCIXPIA. LAEm..c...f...f..Xeeh..........ecc.........Eaatt..r.......nRlli.........oostC.y.......vvt.Bo........Iee.S.........Odi..E........si.Os..........Sc..........eKO..........r.........n.FV..........t.........H.h..........iOs.......... i..........Lm..........Y..........p..........eLr..........O-.......... VE
WHICH
CONSIST
193
IN
COMPLA.C. E. NCY AND BENEVOLENCE.
CHAP.
PAGE
I. Of the sacred complacency of
II. Holowvbey; haonldy cfoirmstpolafcewnhcaytwiet
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
TOOOHHHHHOhffffoooooc...ao...omd...wl...ps...wos..mfat...dv...cp...m..bwMGatowwwwwrthtiioarn..........i..................theuuulreuthorhohhhonvaehaaaeloa.........nn..................sdeerrrclhentmeciiidekgkewtiiheb.........t...................mhseecccdrshseoSShnee.........cmiieo...................lvshhhoweeeoaenihsseoalassleoai.........ngv..................o.lylftovftvicvodeyewavroldts.........punisii...................yehnludeovhynliavintkcfiee.........uervg...................s.dloeorieneseburoeen-csef.Gea........Gfolroei....................ouauastelbrigseervsrm.c........pciffr...................il.cssuropSoloerrbxngeeete.re......eelrLopi...................c.u'aiadillfpedteoeneuesn.eoa.....nbsiotot...................oom.ititsvrrtltvlv..ienio.....crrnouybcpbvta...................nt.fctorssieo..ee.....eaeoaltoepedrrecei....................ertdnGpetow..lrs....cGteeitpahuedln.....................hepatnome.r..paoote...iasniodaeaern......................oeianenls...clx...festohetnydrceeh....................v..aeicde.a..todfarh...lpasattnycnitas..ko.....................eoennp...,wloohwme.teislr.tns..c...................c..aelv..v.eagcedu.faee.pGh.Paeosv.......................ts...seerytiaa.inrdsrt.vr.uieee.m.h.....................asd...nnoe.bhcuudoctooeeelnda..s.......................a...iishdddfoyeessssss-----tffl.........................,,....
..avno.. ..lde..nh..co..Bew.. Oi..nw..O..iet..K.e...x..V.e...rI..c....i.s...e...b...e...n... e...-...
OF THE EXER..C..I..S..E.. S.. ..O.. .F. ..H....O.. L. .Y. L. .O. V. .E. I. N PRAYER.
.......................
......
196
199
203
207
210
212
215
217
220
xli
222
224
228
30

5.4 Page 44

▲back to top


Table of Contents
CHAP.
PAGE
I. A description of mystical
231
II. Ofthmeeodloitgayt,iownh—icthhies nfiorsotthdeer-
235
III.
IV.
V.
ATThht...gt...tei.ofdaetrhhin..r.....reotoaieei.......scnnglmneoc.eo.....i,grld.n.....vooatis......tephnfebgmht......tacyhudip.ai.....note.ote.nr.....odn.tnna.t.....fhi.hpdy.ot.....kte.oeairth.....nsr.arftiee.....io.ytlocosi......fewifonird.....sere.rnl.x......i.sembtftc.......t.dafeeee.......d.ykgmtlr.......w.slieeeeft........psfenin.......e.cleiccoar.......a.tnees--fl........
239
241
244
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
XIV.
XV.
TOOHOAOOOOhfffffffo..G..bc...wtb...t...l...p...pp...coatt...ms......wtiwacenvtwthhiihttooon...............................eeutroromhhthohcihiosaegheeeuae...........tntu....................ttdssonteenenrecidwwhhsce...........eeel....................rtchstimoooettd.trewoos.........,dshaoo....................ihlee)ielirfennfoe.mone.........fouusee....................Biufeaaopvopfias.vgte........unntvu....................tsnnertlseGhuerrOtpnho.dir........hte.....................etcoadainmddioonlel..ssfe.......lhon.lti.....................tieOtacua.leagefeml..rtqidi.......o.dxe.....................taptyohbho.csdhgcc..wuiK.......ior.cwn......................rlhesno.rooenroo..e......aeoee.f.....................e.ehddlew.rinfauia..wnt.....Vfolc.f.nddn......................aei.liairt..l.r.....moetoevcto..se......................ogtgIc.he,...amsl.....nthfiel..nId......................tlv.moolt..hreot.lw.....-i.tew.t......................a.iiee(.eod..fiu.blet....hofwciiae.s.pnoy......................p.ha...fn.hssrite....ltnebse..t.......................unlh.goe.ose.il.ciraaqmnoroo.t.o.......................ci.u.n.issoue.vttoenusfhe.n.ve........................m..iiciduad.nanaoo.sgti.e.........................r..on.rilbedehbdhcoaeennd.es............................iiiltddyeeeesss--------f.........................,.......
247
251
254
257
259
261
265
268
272
275
OF THE UNION OF THE SO..U.. ..L.. W.. .. I..T.. ..H.. ..H.. E.. ..R.. G.. ..O.. ..D.. ,.. W.. .. HICH IS PERFECTED IN
xlii
.. .. .. . . . P. .R.A. Y. .E.R. .. . . . . . . . .
CHAP.
....
PAGE
I. How love effects the union of
281
II. OftthheesvoaurliowuitshdGegordeeisnopfrtahye-
286
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
OOOOffffe..hi...ur...s...t..atnttuhparn.............rnothh.vrehae.............dlpieee.ipyco.....e........ssr..isost....na........haeu.ue.i....smf........ygsm.cn.ro..b........etno.eo.ievh..er........yo,s.n..fe...ne........n...droai...s........tt.te..n...uf..........hws.i.....d.sgg.........pi...hp...r.on.........e...d..ie.o..o........cc.....n..fi.........ddh.s..e..s...........p.e..st..ir.i..........hego...s..ao...........c.r..nep..fm.ei...............eter...........f...ua.saai..............nrr.dpoo..............sede-tff............,..
289
294
295
298
.......................
31
.......................
...

5.5 Page 45

▲back to top


Table of Contents
VII. How love is the life of the
soul, and continuation of
301
VIII. Anthaeddmisircaobulreseexohnotrhteateicosntaot-f
304
OF TWHIELLLOOVFEGOODF,CSIOGXXNXNIIIXVIIXXFIIIIO......FIOOHMTTREhhMffoaDi..Ss...ios...d...l...ddO...Mf...bt..aattocvworruuh......................yfieihIttavelvUveropc......l...............TaeiPtonteiatdeivhl......htth...............esfhhNnsaYlsonrqhheeo......lru...............eeeeuseeovat.uBhe,T....m...............rope.oglsewdu.ril....ulmB...............OxfrO.slo,lof.teisdo....eomh...............to.eowYdvv.oOar....mfi...............rUlodn.ee.eeeoo....shaiGt...............h.gK..doraWm.etShfdn...avi...............i.se..to.cul...eseeisB;h...............ine.sVt..hle.dHtfasn...iho...............lf.o.a.d.tYe.fc..yeIVidlo...............ee.n.I.rc..lrseoI..cboCH................iyns..s..e.idImt.eftrwythv..................d....hoHd.agIle.................e.af...oeafeS.toMii.Voa................n....i.nenvra.fcWdC.v................f....ts.fei.dodwfe.etr................l......Oaa.eou,gatnEi.f......................nnhc.hevontioM.l......................t.nhdddoyeerU-tf....................... MNAITNEDOMUERNTWSI,LCLOTUONSTE333333HL011112ES701481
AND INSPIRATIONS. . . . . . . . .
CHAP.
PAGE
I. Of the love of conformity
II. Ofptrhoecceoendfionrgmiftryoomf susbamcriesd-
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
HOOOTTAHhhfffoocc...st...ows...tt...tic...tsc...smo...eg...ioitoaatttsnsowwhoooohiiiiooov........r................ufnuhhhttoggginngeeeea........mmu................ltrrsteteeennntnslnahtntohh......................ssah,n,ltiihiiidwwtcccpmoeetgh.....avtg................neaefffewswsoooeilliiiwsnvt.....lvetbe................eeeeuvvseeeaacimhnnnw.....ehwlali................cowndddeehacuonilsf...infffoic................ossuiiteco..iiocsuoooliaadli...ewilac................guevnlo.nl..hnftolvurrrrrndlm..lho................eern...cteeiommmdwebnn.obslltso................py...stlfeiGeech.etfohtto.o................ceiiiri....noGnlouoo..tttesttuGaom.s................fiof....yyytootu.ces.lH.op................nccthd.s...ohv.Gncphuooout.eo..................dr....da'ood.oasctese.fffsas..................mcco..t..Glwleow'dcw.tooo..oo................stlp....edlheoutombobs...................uuuhnsnn....rdwi'idsenfyldy.ees......................rrricfffillacehvcvroo.l..s................io....ewwwwsnoshh,oeetteii.rr..h........h.............vinhhcavddlrgmmmaiiii........................eiiishlllllyaeeeessss---lllll.......................,.,
annifdiedyeutnthoouws beyveirnyspoirnae-
stihoonusl,danpdrafcirtisste, owf hthaet vhaeriis-
aetbyleo. f. t.h. e. .m. .ea. n. .s.b.y. .w.h. i.c.h.
.G.o.d. .in. s. p. i.r.e.s.u.s.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .......................... .
.......................
.........
325
327
329
332
xliii
334
337
340
343
346
349
32

5.6 Page 46

▲back to top


Table of Contents
XI. Of the union of our will with
God's in the inspirations
which are given for the ex-
352
XII. Oftrtahoerduinniaorny porfacmticaen'osf wviirl-l
twuieths;Gaondd'soinf tpheorsseevinesrpainrcae-
356
XIII. Thitinirodnonsmwe'ashrivkcohcoaafrtieoicnnos,nptithrreaatrfiyiortnsot,
359
OF
THE
LOVE
OF
SUXBIVM. IASSm...oas...wt...G...Ihsen............rGOhhocaed............doidoOrN....i........cCknn'r............hstO,thad...r........owWBriau...D........mfsymn...Oir........ilhE-lc...qanl........aPeO.oh...Rru.........swtkL...lhp.i........KEyals...Eo.io........ln;Br...ioAf.........Idatad..bYXyi.........ntSn..ei.........sd.oU..stOduo.........op..noifp.........RUei...fr.........enEhkapR.r.........ct.ein.e.........ioeaWao.o.........rrctn..........wstoeI..........,..LL
IS
UNITED
TO
362
GOD'S
CHAP.
PAGE
I. Of the union of our will to
II. Thtahtatthdeivuinneionwiollf wohuirchwiilsl
cwailtlhedthtehgeoowdil-lploeaf sugroeodo-f
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
OOTOOHHMOHHhfffffooooep...Gi...tsr...gi...t...fi...hm...ws...et...ch...wib.inattnnnnnwwwwhetehapiethnt..........o.....................hhelaoothohihornhnesdggteeei..........l.....................atcvoeeltteeenrioaiwdenhedysitr.........nted.....................gtecdhntirapfwushhvihtttsi........o.....................henftgiiobclu-tUocphnruGnevoeieaeoe.......hoi.....................paettfaaseurlatldeneridakrio.....invys.....................ooechtnle,oisweorrllp.eeis.....idtnetta.....................iv.dievpeneflaoninoaos.haionu.....itotif.....................ne.ci'illtlncnsogs.eisutspsn...er.rlnseolvs.....................he.oocauebre.oti.gr...lxl.ttefd.....................iow..etoufne.obarre.hh.onuo..oiy.fuo......................i.fniv.ecvafetesm.l.i..idfisftiu......................yinu.t.eip.n.msenlifcs.st.hc..hoc-o.nre.......................o.hpoharr.i.aer.gp.gpt..eetofovr.i.....................g.t.a.ci..fuleew.s.esr..dlewtwoeaif.u.....................c.ro..e...si.er.inb..nasdGinepndo.tnba......................t.....fehr..lat.egiscdvlws.ueksec......................k.e.d...s..Goeoaeaeut,iaraie.ln........................nr.h..t..nisrindofpolrmnhrfoddl........................o....s..oeoewtfldaentetdec.........................he.....vawwwibbhlhixgttittiseirs.l.............................r.efinnoooolyyyeeeess-------tl................................
XIV.
XV.
AOnf..Gf...iw..bc.wattuen........heseeiola..e.....eldexlldcsn..l......pdfmea:........llenesa..aoi......oaaxvnn.......mf.istted..dha.....te.os..atr.....e.outioek..ix.....o.oofrnf..ec......untr..twtei......hcihn..lr......ohielte.eel.....t.rflim.lnh.now......y.wet......u.goi.ie......l.inhbs.tlnx........thla.Gete........tlee.rso........orc.hdv........idi.ooasee........'erss--f........
.th. i.s.l.if.e., .a.ft.e.r.a.t.ta. i.n.i.n.g. t.h.e.
.in. d. i.f.fe. r.e.n. c.e and death of
the will. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.......................
.......................
..
365
367
371
373
375
377
381
xliv
385
388
390
392
395
398
400
403
33

5.7 Page 47

▲back to top


Table of Contents
XVI. Of the perfect stripping of the
406
soul wBhOicOh KisXu. nited to
God's will. . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
OF THE COMMANDME. N. .T. .O. F. .L. O. .V. I. N. .G. .G. O. .D. .A. BOVE ALL THINGS.
CHAP.
.......................
PAGE
I. Of.t.h.e. sweetness of the com-
mandment which God has
410
II. Thgaitvethnisudsivoinf elocovimngmahnidm-
ambeonvteoaflllotvheintegns.d.s.t.o.h. e. a.v. -.
413
III. Ho.ewn. .,, wy. e.ht.ii.lse.gt.hi.ve.ew.n.ht.oo.lt.eh.he.ef.aa.rit.th.is-.
.feum. l.pi.nl.o.tyh.ei.ds. w.in.o.r.slda. .c.r..e..d.. ..l..o..v..e..,
IV. Of..yt.e.wt.. o..o..nd..ee..g..mr..e.ae.ys.ol.of.vp.ee. r.Gf.eo.cd.ti.oi.nn.
.vwa.ir.thi.o.wu.sh. i.cw.h.at.hy.sis., .co.a.mn.dm. .a.an.lds.o-.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
XIV.
XV.
XVI.
XVII.
OTEAATHHHOATHxhhhdffoooom.mw...mm...gwa...tl...c...cth...bc...go...t.......w...h...seaatlpcaaavootwwwwhhhhahloxbngo.............r........................oeuoolthtteeiihevvitaaeoeieeeea............em........................ooctagnrlltnmwanewGlieennnhtayyrrhihn...........eop........................shdoevfclfrhntmr.gcttpezoeoytoa.........ie.........................ruaoohletsnovzlaesher.isssyeleot,f........avrv.........................as.roedrerolmvllmeatio.aiBarcoyr.......ewveaeuro..........................am.setwelsiil..lproeitide.......biLhOevdsllsa..........................axt.nnsshohsff...otrec.......m.ely.oetaotos..........................eta.cdhtee..foo.Oebjiprhhoo......o.rcn..hm..........................nrtr.oeoo..xee.damoyhb....heoiavfd.dj..t..........................ad.Kef.lnnrr..noc.ekshru....ureoeipme.t..ol...........................saG.ese..aa.sfuigoher....eiicrvp.lt............................dce.tXt.ioleny..lr.ekessoxmrnu....oeeoyldseo.t..cr...........................m.ini..ef..getIc..rsorsdaorgteL.u............................p.ot.n...l.z.eop.iseie.ypcwdnhgotz.n..o..........................o.so.re.f..ai..tlnctet.tnerrgyttlvel.e.............................af.erbo.hn...i.itywe.ooeocaanhsceiod.i..l.................................duogaw,nneeooeladtceomb.t....................................etviowssrdchbtnhfdwhGuvr...o.............................t.....tseteoahahtiihtaiic.............................h........uionnhnbhcaaakvvtioaoooeea.....................................irnhhdlllggyyeeeeerssstfffflll......................................
414
418
421
425
427
430
xlv
434
437
440
442
444
448
451
455
460
OF THE SOVEREIGN AUTHOp. .Rre.Ic.Te.Yd. i.nW.g.Hc. h.Ia.Cp.H.te.rS..A....C.. R.. ..E..D.. LOVE HOLDS OVER ALL
THE VIRTUES, ACTIONS.. ..A..N.. ..D.. ..P..E.. .R...F..E...C...T..I..O...N....S..O. .F THE SOUL.
.......................
...........
34

5.8 Page 48

▲back to top


CHAP.
I. How agreeable all virtues are
II. Thtaot Gdoivdi.n.e. .lo.v.e. .m. .a.k.e.s. t.h.e.
.vi.r.tu. e. s. i.m. .m. e. a.s.u.r.a.b.ly. .m. o. r.e.
III. Th..aawagr..ther.ite.cohe.hfea.rtbd.heli.eeva.itirrn.oe.oeG.wslo.oon.dvm.ente.hra.aatv.uinis.rret.ethsu..ete..oys..
IV. Th.aa.th.di.gi.vh.ien.re. .dlo.ev.ge.r.em.e.oo.rf.e.ee.xx.cc.ee.ll--.
.llee.nn.ct.ley. t.sha. an.n.ct.oi.fti.he.es.rts.h..e..v..i..r..tu.. e.. s..
V.
VI.
VII.
HOThfo....wim..ltu.staetwuita.......losthnhaece.......pnesercrn...l....o,eeosnete.......erprd.vx...wdx....tfeo.eehc...lc....erh.ovce...feer....s.eeivtll...y....cpllc.reve...aeh....tar.in...nnige....rrt.n..cihidtate.....svgue..de....svp.e...etus....ca.srh...soo....ela..e..tiuat....mct.oi..hfresrt.....r.e.ietmp....o.s.wh.erne....a.m.x.aehder.......vcntvia......ei.ibcideccr......tl.hyr------......
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
XIV.
HTAHHHThhooood..spv...o...t...pl.fp...wal..tad.eaaeoowwwwehheixrll.......i...........nreaetgillcrpvvleeeoe.................rtsgfettcrothweehrftr,.....tcu............haisevherau..hocowod.....oehn............eseeiocaca..irlenres....uou............sussiyttrynw..atidta.....ei.i............tnilomuoehr..ocdlv,tc.....o.............oeodenyef..ewbonit....ra.............rvfsif...tcrutok...utor.no.t.............hewo...tioouo...fts.pn.n............r.he...rm...mwietf.wr.t............o.sgee...trhvt...hse.a.h.............nstho.th..phiv...deuc.o..............ro...abmworhii...ttutt.r..............creu...hothiaush..anhtc.oh..............h..hetcte..ouveeei.e.h.............n..ekas..neslien...............n.ey.ddmsiaws..sgotno...............r..ldii,o..btllhf.tvvp...............tio..hah..shenhttliiai.................e.vne..inneahhcaeter.rf.................einhddolyeeeeeerr-l...................
XV.
XVI.
XVII.
XVIII.
XIX.
XX.
HOHHHHfooooo.....sc...g...as...g...af..tGeatwwwwwewauhill.......ie............hc,lghafitb.................aetodelcdsrhhsotsso.....pj............la.hhneievteels....v............vtco.oracetterre....e............irvi,.frvvtinrn....ewb.p............niim.iif.tlttde....nlu.............reahe.yio.e....utaa.............lasg.le.gohcf....osktit..............ate.efiotiiv....Hveh.............te.soonah.tne....use.............hea.rnn.doo....tdmour..............ec.aslrl....oy.............efsroy.o.eim...aeansf.............p.n.mfl...ktGnw.............toso.er.hts..ehedaa.............r.vf.ihpioe..snecciit..............en.oo.nnfhueea................siHa.sunssdfsta................ttf.esiattttu.moet................en.hhhhoroc.rl................sgyyeeeee---f.................;
XXI. ThG...tde.us.aien.....usotore....ccsnvsle....aeepis.d....csse.e....sonl,t......feohy......sfete.s.....hhma......ieos.c..... lao......styloo.n.....ml......utor..io....lvat,......ssert..a.....yano.......tl......bd.ow.......eat......rd.hye.......ies--.......
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ............................
............
Table of Contents
PAGE
464
467
470
472
475
478
481
485
489
491
496
499
xlvi
503
506
509
511
514
516
521
524
528
35

5.9 Page 49

▲back to top


Table of Contents
BOOK XII.
CONTAINING CERTAIN COUNSELS FOR THE PROGRESS OF THE SOUL IN HOLY
LOVE.
CHAP.
PAGE
I. That our progress in holy love
533
II. Thdaot wese anroettodhepaveenadcoonntionuur-
534
III.
IV.
V.
VI.
VII.
VIII.
IX.
X.
XI.
XII.
XIII.
TTATTAOATAThhhhhhnfgmvn...a...sa...dp...s...ptt...o...o...wwt...ft...l..p.aaaaaeaoihhhoeaeullc.................................uurrloacctettttholonvocrmeeeaaab..........d......................etexGwrrwyorrsoiemyudecc..........Mrtj......................ehcloekwt.oetwnaoeurioottte..........ress......................hhdoniisucasca.ctawoirmdoov.........msc......................heiacrtrielgt.smllieh.........vterun.......................wileteioarrlmneo.ytuvokc.........aaea.......................enetsofevo.gftdoeehhstws.........snuhvit.......................eooomtefi.rtotsofe......eetsdoal.......................iweofeft..mwGwotsnnu......sluCnhmpx.......................nidao.lv.ipeev......edsretoreoGla.......................eeskaia..evhmai......eevemtvrrh.......................dmyfeotnalfr..aeorot......seravirhoe.......................yar.h..rc.nptep.ed....pmaom.earai.......................ve.c....toelae...cpdr'llp.ttuo.......................hesua.t...o-e.ieduy...iteeeo.np.......................pwyvs.e..sl.pop.nv...aolrsoo.eo.......................el.sap...c.raenfi.itiifynsvmr.sr.......................sefr.lue...n...ttfl.aslv.hyeelori.cs..........................e.....tt.yocoaioiett.to.m......................h.........ocdn.rbhhalknunmto.l.........................y.......eiifoolgyyeeerss--tffl...................................
536
538
539
540
542
543
545
548
551
552
554
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ............ . . . . . . . .
..........
36

5.10 Page 50

▲back to top


TREATISE
ON THE
LOVE OF GOD
Dedicatory Prayer
xlvii
Dedicatory Prayer
xlviii
MOST holy Mother of God, vessel of incomparable election, Queen of sovereign dilection,
1
thou art the most lovely, the most loving and most beloved of all creatures! The love of the
heavenly Father found its good pleasure in thee from all eternity, destining thy chaste heart
to the perfection of holy love, to the end that one day thou mightest love his only Son with
unique motherly love as he had done from all eternity with unique fatherly love. O Saviour
Jesus, to whom could I better dedicate words on thy love, than to the most amiable heart of
the well-beloved of thy soul?
But O all triumphant Mother! Who can cast his eyes upon thy majesty without seeing
at thy right hand him whom for the love of thee thy Son deigned so often to honour with
the title of father, having united him unto thee by the celestial bond of a most virginal
marriage, that he might be thy coadjutor and helper in the charge of the direction and edu-
cation of his divine infancy? O great S. Joseph! Most beloved spouse of the well-beloved
Mother, ah! how often hast thou borne in thy arms the love of heaven and earth, while, in-
flamed with the sweet embraces and kisses of this Divine child, thy soul melted away with
joy while he tenderly whispered in thy ears (O God what sweetness!) that thou wast his great
friend and his well-beloved father.
Of old the lamps of the ancient temple were placed upon golden lilies. O Mary and
Joseph, Pair without peer! Sacred lilies of incomparable beauty, amongst which the well-
beloved feeds himself and feeds all his lovers—ah! if I may give myself any hope that this
love-writing may enlighten and inflame the children of light, where can I better lay it than
amongst your lilies, wherein the Sun of Justice, the splendour and brightness of the eternal
light, did so sovereignly recreate himself that he there fulfilled the delights of the ineffable
2
love of his heart towards us? O well-beloved mother of the well-beloved Son, O well-beloved
spouse of the well-beloved mother! Prostrate before the feet of you who bore my Saviour,
I dedicate and consecrate this little work of love to the immense greatness of your love. Ah!
37

6 Pages 51-60

▲back to top


6.1 Page 51

▲back to top


Dedicatory Prayer
I conjure you by the heart of your sweet Jesus, King of hearts, whom your hearts adore—an-
imate my heart, and all hearts that shall read this writing, by your all powerful favour with
the Holy Ghost, that henceforth we may offer up in holocaust all our affections to his divine
goodness, to live, die, and live again for ever, amid the flames of this heavenly fire, which
Our Lord your son has so much desired to kindle in our hearts, that he never ceased to labour
and sigh for this until death, even the death of the cross.
38

6.2 Page 52

▲back to top


Preface
VIVE JÉSUS.
PREFACE.
3
THE Holy Ghost teaches that the lips of the heavenly Spouse, that is The Church, re-
semble scarlet and the dropping honeycomb,1 to let every one know that all the doctrine
which she announces consists in sacred love; of a more resplendent red than scarlet on ac-
count of the blood of the spouse whose love inflames her, sweeter than honey on account
of the sweetness of the beloved who crowns her with delights. So this heavenly spouse when
he thought good to begin the promulgation of his law, cast down upon the assembly of those
disciples whom he had deputed for this work a shower of fiery tongues, sufficiently intimating
thereby that the preaching of the gospel was wholly designed for the inflaming of hearts.
Represent to yourself beautiful doves amidst the rays of the sun; you will see their
plumage break into as many different colours as you change your point of viewing them;
because their feathers are so fitted to display the light, that when the sun comes to spread
his splendour on them, a multitude of reflections are made, producing a great variety of
tints and glancing colours, colours so agreeable to the eye that they surpass all other colours,
even the enamel of richest jewels; colours so resplendent and so delicately gilded that the
gilding makes their own colours more bright than ever; for it was this sight which made the
royal prophet say If you sleep among the midst of lots; you shall be as the wings of a dove
covered with silver, and the hinder parts of her back with the paleness of gold.2 The Church
is indeed adorned with an excellent variety of teachings, sermons, treatises and spiritual
books, all very beautiful and pleasant to the sight by reason of the admirable mingling which
the Sun of Justice makes of his divine wisdom with the tongues of his pastors, which are
their feathers, and with their pens, which sometimes hold the place of tongues, and form
4
the rich plumage of this mystic dove. But amongst all the divers colours of the doctrine
which she displays, the fine gold of holy Charity is everywhere spread, and makes itself ex-
cellently visible, gilding all the science of the saints with its incomparable lustre, and raising
it above every other science. All is love's, and in love, for love, and of love, in the holy Church.
But as we are not ignorant that all the light of the day proceeds from the sun and yet we
ordinarily say that the sun does not shine, except only when it openly sends out its beams
here or there; in like manner, though all Christian doctrine be about sacred love, yet we do
not honour all theology indifferently with the title of this divine love, but only those parts
of it which regard the birth, nature, properties and operations thereof in particular.
1 Cant. iv.
2 Ps. lxvii. 14.
39

6.3 Page 53

▲back to top


Preface
Now it is true that divers writers have already handled this subject; above all those ancient
Fathers, who as they did lovingly serve God so did they speak divinely of his love. O how
good it is to hear S. Paul speak of heavenly things, who learned them even in heaven itself,
and how good to see those souls who were nursed in the bosom of love write of its holy
sweetness! For this reason those amongst the schoolmen that discoursed the most and the
best of it, did also most excel in piety. S. Thomas has made a treatise on it worthy of S.
Thomas; S. Bonaventure and B. Denis the Carthusian have made divers most excellent ones
on it under various titles, and as for John Gerson, Chancellor of the University of Paris,
Sixtus Senensis speaks of him thus: "He has so worthily discoursed of the fifty properties of
divine love which are described in the course of the Canticle of Canticles, that he alone
would seem to have taken proper account of the affections of the love of God." Truly this
man was extremely learned, judicious and devout.
And that we may know this kind of writings to be made more successfully by the devotion
of lovers than by the learning of the wise, it has pleased the Holy Ghost that many women
should work wonders in it. Who has ever better expressed the heavenly passions of sacred
love, than S. Catharine of Genoa, S. Angela of Foligno, S. Catharine of Siena, S. Mechtilde?
In our age also many have written upon this subject, whose works I have not had leisure
5
to read distinctly but only here and there so far forth as was requisite to discover whether
this book might yet find place. Father Louis of Granada, that great doctor of piety, has placed
a treatise of the love of God in his Memorial, which is sufficiently commended in saying it
is his. Diego Stella, of the Order of S. Francis, made another, which is very effective and
profitable for prayer. Christopher Fonseca, an Augustinian, brought out one still larger,
wherein he has many excellent things. Father Louis Richeome of the Society has also pub-
lished a book under the title of The Art of Loving God by his Creatures, and this author is so
amiable in his person and in his beautiful writings that doubtless he is even more so when
writing of love itself. Father John of Jesus Maria, a discalced Carmelite, has composed a little
book which is also called The Art of Loving God, and which is much esteemed. That great
and celebrated Cardinal Bellarmine has also lately issued a little book entitled: The Ladder
for Ascending unto God by his Creatures, which cannot be but admirable coming from that
most learned hand and most devout soul, who has written so much and so wisely in the
Church's behalf. I will say nothing of the Parenetic of that river of eloquence3 who flows at
present through all France in the multitude and variety of his sermons and noble writings.
The close spiritual consanguinity which my soul has contracted with his, when by the im-
position of my hands he received the sacred character of the episcopal order, to the great
happiness of the diocese of Belley and to the honour of the Church, besides a thousand ties
of a sincere friendship which fasten us together, permits me not to speak with praise of his
3 M. Camus.
40

6.4 Page 54

▲back to top


Preface
works, amongst which this Parenetic of divine love was one of the first sallies of the matchless
wealth of intellect which every one admires in him.
We see further a goodly and magnificent palace which the R. Father Laurence of Paris,
a Capuchin preacher, erected in honour of heavenly love, which being finished will be a
6
complete course of the Art of loving well. And lastly the B. Mother (S.) Teresa of Jesus, has
written so accurately of the sacred movements of love in all the books she has left us, that
one is amazed to see so much eloquence masked under such profound humility, such great
solidity of wit in such great simplicity: and her most learned ignorance makes the knowledge
of many learned men appear ignorant, who after long and laborious study have to blush at
not understanding what she so happily puts down touching the practice of holy love. Thus
does God raise the throne of his power upon the ground of our infirmity, making use of
weak things to confound the strong.4
And although, my dear reader, this Treatise which I now present you, comes far short
of those excellent works, without hope of ever running even with them, yet have I such
confidence in the favour of the two heavenly lovers to whom I dedicate it, that still it may
be in some way serviceable to you, and that in it you will meet with many wholesome con-
siderations which you would not elsewhere so easily find, as again you may elsewhere find
many beautiful things which are not here. Indeed, it even seems to me that my design is not
the same as that of others except in general, inasmuch as we all look towards the glory of
holy love. But this you will see by reading it.
Truly my intention is only to represent simply and naïvely, without art, still more without
false colours, the history of the birth, progress, decay, operations, properties, advantages
and excellences of divine love. And if besides this you find other things, these are but excres-
cences which it is almost impossible for such as me who write amidst many distractions to
avoid. But still I think that there will be nothing without some utility. Nature herself, who
is so skilful a workwoman, intending to produce grapes, produces at the same time, as by a
prudent inadvertence, such an abundance of leaves and branches, that there are very few
vines which have not in their season to be pruned of leaves and shoots.
Writers are often treated too harshly: the censures that are passed on them are given
hastily, and very often with more incorrectness than they committed imprudence in
7
hastening to publish their writings. Precipitation of judgment greatly puts in danger the
conscience of the judge, and the innocence of the accused. Many write amiss and many
censure foolishly. The kindness of the reader makes his reading sweet and profitable. And,
my dear reader, to have you more favourable, I will here give you an explanation of some
points which might peradventure otherwise put you out of humour.
4 1 Cor. i. 27.
41

6.5 Page 55

▲back to top


Preface
Some perhaps will think that I have said too much, and that it was not requisite to go
so deep down into the roots of the subject, but I am of opinion that heavenly love is a plant
like to that which we call Angelica, whose root is no less odoriferous and wholesome than
the stalk and the branches. The four first books and some chapters of the rest might without
doubt have been omitted, without disadvantage to such souls as only seek the practice of
holy love, yet all of it will be profitable unto them if they behold it with a devout eye: while
others also might have been disappointed not to have had the whole of what belongs to the
treatise of divine love. I have taken into consideration as I should do, the state of the minds
of this age: it much imports to remember in what age we are writing.
I cite Scripture sometimes in other terms than those of the ordinary edition (the Vulgate).
For God's sake, my dear reader do me not therefore the wrong to think that I wish to depart
from that edition. Ah no! For I know the Holy Ghost has authorized it by the sacred
Council of Trent, and that therefore all of us ought to keep to it: on the contrary I only use
the other versions for the service of this, when they explain and confirm its true sense. For
example what the heavenly spouse says to his spouse: Thou hast wounded my heart:5 is
greatly illustrated by the other version: Thou hast taken away my heart, or, Thou hast snatched
away and ravished my heart. That which our Saviour said: Blessed are the poor in spirit: is
much amplified and cleared by the Greek: Blessed are the beggars in spirit: and so with others.
I have often cited the sacred Psalmist in verse, and this to recreate your mind and on
account of the ease with which I could do it, by the beautiful translation of Phillip des Portes,
8
Abbot of Tiron. This however I have sometimes departed from; not of course thinking I
could improve the verses of this famous poet (for I should be too impertinent if never having
so much as thought of this kind o£ writing, I should pretend to be happy in it in an age and
condition of life which would oblige me to retire from it in case I had ever been engaged
therein), but in some places where the sense might be variously taken, I have not followed
his verse, because I would not follow his sense, as in Psalm cxxxii., where he has taken a
certain Latin word for the fringe of the garment which I thought ought to be taken for the
collar, wherefore I have translated it to my own mind.
I have said nothing which I have not learned of others, yet it is impossible for me to re-
member whence I had everything in particular, but believe me, if I had taken any lengthy
and remarkable passages out of any author, I would make it a matter of conscience not to
let him have the deserved honour of it, and to remove a suspicion which you may conceive
against my sincerity in this matter, I warn you that the 13th chapter of Book VII. is extracted
from a sermon which I delivered at Paris at S. John's en Grève upon the feast of the Assump-
tion of our Blessed Lady, 1602.
5 Cant. iv. 9.
42

6.6 Page 56

▲back to top


Preface
I have not always expressed the sequence of the chapters, but if you notice you will
easily find the links of their connection. In that and several other things I had a care to spare
my own leisure and your patience. After I had caused the Introduction to a Devout Life to
be printed, my Lord Archbishop of Vienne, Peter de Villars, did me the favour of writing
his opinion of it in terms so advantageous to that little book and to me, that I should never
dare to rehearse them: and exhorting me to apply the most of my leisure to the like works,
amongst many rare counsels he favoured me with, one was that as far as the matter would
permit I should always be short in the chapters. For as, said he, travellers knowing that there
is a fair garden some twenty or twenty-five paces out of their way, readily turn aside so short
a distance to go see it, which they would not do if it were further distant; even so those who
know that there is but little distance between the beginning and end of a chapter do willingly
undertake to read it, which they would not do though the subject were never so delightful,
9
if a long time were required for the reading of it. And therefore I had good reason to follow
my own inclination in this respect since it was agreeable to this great personage who was
one of the most saintly prelates and learned doctors that the Church has had in our age, and
who at the time that he honoured me with his letter was the most ancient of all the doctors
of the faculty of Paris.
A great servant of God informed me not long ago that by addressing my speech to
Philothea in the Introduction to a Devout Life, I hindered many men from profiting by it:
because they did not esteem advice given to a woman, to be worthy of a man. I marvelled
that there were men who, to be thought men, showed themselves in effect so little men, for
I leave it to your consideration, my dear reader, whether devotion be not as well for men as
for women, and whether we are not to read with as great attention and reverence the second
Epistle of S. John which was addressed to the holy lady Electa, as the third which he directs
to Caius, and whether a thousand thousand Epistles and excellent Treatises of the ancient
fathers of the Church ought to be held unprofitable to men, because they are addressed to
holy women of those times. But, besides, it is the soul which aspires to devotion that I call
Philothea, and men have souls as well as women.
Nevertheless, to imitate the great Apostle in this occasion, who esteemed himself a
debtor to every one, I have changed my address in this treatise and speak to Theotimus, but
if perchance there should be any woman (and such an unreasonableness would be more
tolerable in them) who would not read the instructions which are given to men, I beg them
to know that Theotimus to whom I speak is the human spirit desirous of making progress
in holy love, which spirit is equally in women as in men.
43

6.7 Page 57

▲back to top


Preface
This Treatise then is made for a soul already devout that she may be able to advance in
her design, and hence I have been forced to say many things somewhat unknown to the
generality, and which will therefore appear more obscure than they are. The depths of science
are always somewhat hard to sound, and there are few divers who care and are able to descend
and gather the pearls and other precious stones which are in the womb of the ocean. But if
10
you have the courage fairly to penetrate these words which I have written, it will truly be
with you as with the divers, who, says Pliny, see clearly in the deepest caves of the sea the
light of the sun: for you will find in the hardest parts of this discourse a good and fair light.
Moreover, as I do not follow them that despise books treating of a certain supereminently
perfect life, so for my part, I do not speak of such a supereminence; for I can neither censure
the authors, nor authorize the censors of a doctrine which I do not understand.
I have touched on a number of theological questions, proposing simply, not so much
what I anciently learnt in disputations, as what attention to the service of souls, and my
twenty-four years spent in holy preaching have made me think most conducive to the glory
of the Gospel and of the Church.
For the rest some men of note in various places have signified to me that certain little
books have been published simply under the first letters of their author's name which are
the same as mine. This made some believe that they were my works, not without some little
scandal to such as supposed thereby that I had bidden adieu to my simplicity, to puff up my
style with pompous words, my argument with worldly conceit, and my conceptions with a
lofty and plumed eloquence. For this cause my dear reader, I will tell you, that as those who
engrave or cut precious stones, having their sight tired by keeping it continually fixed upon
the small lines of their work, are glad to keep before them some fair emerald that by beholding
it from time to time they may be recreated with its greenness and restore their weakened
sight to its natural condition,—so in this press of business which my office daily draws upon
me I have ever little projects of some treatise of piety, which I look at when I can, to revive
and unweary my mind.
However, I do not profess myself a writer; for the dulness of my spirit and the condition
of my life, subject to the service and requirements of many, would not permit me so to be.
Wherefore I have written very little and have published much less, and following the counsel
and will of my friends I will tell you what I have written that you may not attribute the
praises of another's labours to him who deserves none for his own.
11
It is now nineteen years since that, being at Thonon, a small town situated upon the
Lake of Geneva, which was then being little by little converted to the Catholic faith, the
minister, an adversary of the Church, was proclaiming everywhere that the Catholic article
of the real presence of our Saviour's body in the Eucharist destroyed the symbol and the
analogy of faith (for he was glad to mouth this word analogy not understood by his auditors,
in order to appear very learned; and upon this the rest of the Catholic preachers with whom
44

6.8 Page 58

▲back to top


Preface
I was pressed me to write something in refutation of this vanity. I did what seemed suitable,
framing a brief meditation upon the Creed to confirm the truth: all the copies were distributed
in this diocese where now I find not one of them.
Soon afterwards his Highness came over the mountains, and finding the bailiwicks of
Chablais, Gaillard and Ternier, which are in the environs of Geneva, well disposed to receive
the Catholic faith which had been banished thence by force of wars and revolts about seventy
years before, he resolved to re-establish the exercise thereof in all the parishes, and to abolish
that of heresy, and whereas on the one side there were many obstacles to this great blessing
from those considerations which are called reasons of State, and on the other side some
persons as yet not well instructed in the truth made resistance against this so much-desired
establishment, his Highness surmounted the first difficulty by the invincible constancy of
his zeal for the Catholic religion, and the second by an extraordinary gentleness and prudence.
For he had the chief and most obstinate called together, and made a speech unto them with
so lovingly persuasive an eloquence that almost all, vanquished by the sweet violence of his
fatherly love towards them, cast the weapons of their obstinacy at his feet, and their souls
into the hands of Holy Church.
And allow me, my dear readers I pray you, to say this word in passing. One may praise
many rich actions of this great Prince, in which I see the proof of his valour and military
knowledge, which with just cause is admired through all Europe. But for my part I cannot
sufficiently extol the re-establishment of the Catholic religion in these three bailiwicks which
12
I have just mentioned, having seen in it so many marks of piety, united with so many and
various acts of prudence, constancy, magnanimity, justice and mildness, that I seemed to
see in this one little trait, as in a miniature, all that is praised in princes who have in times
past with most fervour striven to advance the glory of God and the Church. The stage was
small, but the action great. And as that ancient craftsman was never so much esteemed for
his great pieces as he was admired for making a ship of ivory fitted with all its gear, in so
tiny a volume that the wings of a bee covered all, so I esteem more that which this great
Prince did at that time in this small corner of his dominions, than many more brilliant actions
which others extol to the heavens.
Now on this occasion the victorious ensigns of the cross were replanted in all the ways
and public places of those quarters, and whereas a little before there had been one erected
very solemnly at Annemasse close to Geneva, a certain minister made a little treatise against
the honour thereof, which was a burning and venomous invective, and to which therefore
it was deemed fit to make answer. My Lord Claude de Granier, my predecessor, whose
memory is in benediction, imposed the burden upon me according to the power which he
had over me, who beheld him not only as my Bishop but also as a holy servant of God. I
made therefore this answer, under the title: Defence of the Standard of the Cross, and dedicated
45

6.9 Page 59

▲back to top


Preface
it to his Highness, partly to testify unto him my most humble submission, and partly to
render him some small thanksgiving for the care which he took of the Church in those parts.
Now lately this Defence has been reprinted under the prodigious title of Panthalogy, or
Treasure of the Cross: a title whereof I never dreamed, as in truth I am not a man of that
study and leisure, nor of that memory, to be able to put together so many pieces of worth
in one book as to let it deserve the name of Treasure or Panthalogy, besides I have a horror
of such insolent frontispieces:
A sot, or senseless creature we him call,
13
Who makes his portal greater than his hall.
In the year 1602, were celebrated at Paris, where I was, the obsequies of that magnanim-
ous prince Philip Emanuel of Lorraine, Duke of Mercœur, who had performed so many
brave exploits against the Turks in Hungary that all Christianity was bound to conspire to
honour his memory. But especially Madam Mary of Luxembourg, his widow, did for her
part all that her heart and the love of the deceased could suggest to her to make his funeral
solemn. And because my father, grandfather, and great grandfather had been brought up
pages to the most illustrious princes of Martigues her father and his predecessors, she re-
garded me as an hereditary servant of her house; and made choice of me to preach the fu-
neral sermon in that great celebration, where there were not only several Cardinals and
Prelates but a number of princes also, princesses, marshals of France, knights of the Order,6
and even the Court of Parliament in a body. I made then this funeral oration and pronounced
it in this great assembly in the great Church of Paris, and as it contained a true abridgment
of the heroic feats of the deceased prince, I willingly had it printed, at the request of the
widow-princess, whose request was to me a law. I dedicated this piece to Madam the
Duchess of Vendôme, as yet a girl, and a very young princess, yet one in whom were very
clearly to be recognized the signs of that excellent virtue and piety which now adorn her,
and which show her to be worthy of the bringing forth and educating by so devout and pious
a mother.
While this sermon was in the press, I heard that I had been made Bishop, so that I came
here to be consecrated and to begin residence. And at first there was pointed out to me the
necessity of instructing Confessors on some important points. For this reason I wrote twenty-
five instructions, which I had printed to get them more easily spread amongst those to whom
I directed them; since then they have been reprinted in various places.
Three or four years afterwards I published the Introduction to a Devout Life, upon the
occasion and in the manner which I have put down in the preface thereof: regarding which
14
I have nothing to say to you, my dear reader, save only that though this little book has gen-
erally had a gracious and kind acceptance, yes even amongst the most grave prelates and
6 Of the Holy Spirit. (Tr.)
46

6.10 Page 60

▲back to top


Preface
doctors of the Church, yet it did not escape the rude censure of some who did not merely
blame me but bitterly attacked me in public because I tell Philothea that dancing is an action
indifferent in itself, and that for recreation's sake one may make quodlibets; and I, knowing
the quality of these censors, praise their intention which I think was good. I should have
desired them however to please to consider that the first proposition is drawn from the
common and true doctrine of the most holy and learned divines, that I was writing for such
as live in the world and in courts; that withal I carefully inculcate the extreme dangers which
are found in dancing;—and that as to the second proposition it is not mine, but S. Louis's,
that admirable king, a doctor worthy to be followed in the art of rightly conducting courtiers
to a devout life. For, I believe if they had weighed this, their charity and discretion would
never have permitted their zeal, how vigorous and austere soever, to arm their indignation
against me.
And therefore, my dear reader, I conjure you to be gracious and good to me in reading
this Treatise. And if you find the style a little (though I am sure it will be but a very little)
different from that which I used in the Defence of the Cross, know that in nineteen years one
learns and unlearns many things, that the language of war differs from that of peace, and
that a man uses one manner of speech to young apprentices and another to old fellow-
craftsmen.
My purpose here is to speak to souls that are advanced in devotion. For you must know
that we have in this town a congregation of maidens and widows who, having retired from
the world, live with one mind in God's service, under the protection of his most holy
Mother, and as their purity and piety of spirit have oftentimes given me great consolation,
so have I striven to return them the like by a frequent distribution of the holy word which
I have announced to them as well in public sermons as in spiritual conferences, and this al-
most always in presence of some religious men and people of great piety. Hence I have often
had to treat of the most delicate sentiments of piety, passing beyond that which I had said
to Philothea: and I owe a good part of that which now I communicate to you to this blessed
15
Society because she who is the mother of them and rules them, knowing that I was writing
upon this subject, and yet that scarcely was I able to accomplish it without God's very special
assistance, and their continual urging, took a constant care to pray and get prayers for this
end, and holily conjured me to pick out all the little morsels of leisure which she judged
might be spared here and there from the press of my hindrances and to employ them in
this. And because this soul is in that consideration with me which God knows, she has had
no little power to animate me in this occasion. I began indeed long ago to think of writing
on holy love, but that thought came far short of what this occasion has made me produce,
an occasion which I declare to you thus simply and in good faith, in imitation of the ancients,
that you may know that I write only as I get the chance and opportunity, and that I may
find you more favourable. It is said amongst the Pagans that Phidias never represented
47

7 Pages 61-70

▲back to top


7.1 Page 61

▲back to top


Preface
anything so perfectly as the gods, nor Apelles as Alexander. One is not always equally suc-
cessful: if I fall short in this treatise, let your goodness make progress and God will bless
your reading.
To this end I have dedicated this work to the Mother of dilection and to the Father of
cordial love, as I dedicated the Introduction to the Divine child who is the Saviour of lovers
and the love of the saved. And as women, while they are strong and able to bring forth their
children with ease, choose commonly their worldly friends to be godfathers, but when their
feebleness and indisposition make their delivery hard and dangerous invoke the saints of
heaven, and vow to have their children stood to by some poor body or by some devout soul
in the name of S. Joseph, S. Francis of Assisi, S. Francis of Paula, S. Nicholas, or some other
of the blessed, who may obtain of God their safe delivery and that the child may be born
alive:—so I, while I was not yet bishop, having more leisure and less fears for my writings,
dedicated my little works to princes of the earth, but now being weighed down with my
charge, and having a thousand difficulties in writing, I consecrate all to the princes of
heaven, that they may obtain for me the light requisite, and that if such be the Divine will,
these my writings may be fruitful and profitable to many.
16
Thus my dear reader I beseech God to bless you and to enrich you with his love.
Meanwhile from my very heart I submit all my writings, my words and actions to the cor-
rection of the most holy Catholic, Apostolic, and Roman Church, knowing that she is the
pillar and ground of truth,7 wherein she can neither be deceived nor deceive us, and that
none can have God for his father who will not have this Church for his mother.
Annecy, the day of the most loving Apostles
S. Peter and S. Paul.
1616.
Blessed be God.
7 1 Tim. iii. 15.
48

7.2 Page 62

▲back to top


Book I. Containing a Preparation for the Whole Treatise.
THE LOVE OF GOD.
BOOK I.
17
CONTAINING A
PREPARATION FOR THE WHOLE TREATISE.
49

7.3 Page 63

▲back to top


Chapter I. That for the Beauty of Human Nature God has Given the Government…
CHAPTER I.
THAT FOR THE BEAUTY OF HUMAN NATURE GOD HAS GIVEN THE GOVERN-
MENT OF ALL THE FACULTIES OF THE SOUL TO THE WILL.
Union in distinction makes order; order produces agreement; and proportion and agreement,
in complete and finished things, make beauty. An army has beauty when it is composed of
parts so ranged in order that their distinction is reduced to that proportion which they ought
to have together for the making of one single army. For music to be beautiful, the voices
must not only be true, clear, and distinct from one another, but also united together in such
a way that there may arise a just consonance and harmony which is not unfitly termed a
discordant harmony or rather harmonious discord.
Now as the angelic S. Thomas, following the great S. Denis, says excellently well, beauty
and goodness though in some things they agree, yet still are not one and the same thing: for
good is that which pleases the appetite and will, beauty that which pleases the understanding
or knowledge; or, in other words, good is that which gives pleasure when we enjoy it, beauty
that which gives pleasure when we know it. For which cause in proper speech we only attrib-
ute corporal beauty to the objects of those two senses which are the most intellectual and
most in the service of the understanding—namely, sight and hearing, so that we do not say,
18
these are beautiful odours or beautiful tastes: but we rightly say, these are beautiful voices
and beautiful colours.
The beautiful then being called beautiful, because the knowledge thereof gives pleasure,
it is requisite that besides the union and the distinction, the integrity, the order, and the
agreement of its parts, there should be also splendour and brightness that it may be knowable
and visible. Voices to be beautiful must be clear and true; discourses intelligible; colours
brilliant and shining. Obscurity, shade and darkness are ugly and disfigure all things, because
in them nothing is knowable, neither order, distinction, union nor agreement; which caused
S. Denis to say, that "God as the sovereign beauty is author of the beautiful harmony, beau-
tiful lustre and good grace which is found in all things, making the distribution and decom-
position of his one ray of beauty spread out, as light, to make all things beautiful," willing
that to compose beauty there should be agreement, clearness and good grace.
Certainly, Theotimus, beauty is without effect, unprofitable and dead, if light and
splendour do not make it lively and effective, whence we term colours lively when they have
light and lustre.
But as to animated and living things their beauty is not complete without good grace,
which, besides the agreement of perfect parts which makes beauty, adds the harmony of
movements, gestures and actions, which is as it were the life and soul of the beauty of living
things. Thus, in the sovereign beauty of our God, we acknowledge union, yea, unity of essence
in the distinction of persons, with an infinite glory, together with an incomprehensible
harmony of all perfections of actions and motions, sovereignly comprised, and as one would
50

7.4 Page 64

▲back to top


Chapter I. That for the Beauty of Human Nature God has Given the Government…
say excellently joined and adjusted, in the most unique and simple perfection of the pure
divine act, which is God Himself, immutable and invariable, as elsewhere we shall show.
God, therefore, having a will to make all things good and beautiful, reduced the multitude
and distinction of the same to a perfect unity, and, as man would say, brought them all under
19
a monarchy, making a subordination of one thing to another and of all things to himself
the sovereign Monarch. He reduces all our members into one body under one head, of many
persons he forms a family, of many families a town, of many towns a province, of many
provinces a kingdom, putting the whole kingdom under the government of one sole king.
So, Theotimus, over the innumerable multitude and variety of actions, motions, feelings,
inclinations, habits, passions, faculties and powers which are in man, God has established
a natural monarchy in the will, which rules and commands all that is found in this little
world: and God seems to have said to the will as Pharao said to Joseph: Thou shalt be over
my house, and at the commandment of thy mouth all the people shall obey.15 This dominion
of the will is exercised indeed in very various ways.
15 Gen. xli. 40.
51

7.5 Page 65

▲back to top


Chapter II. How the Will Variously Governs the Powers of the Soul.
CHAPTER II.
HOW THE WILL VARIOUSLY GOVERNS THE POWERS OF THE SOUL.
A Father directs his wife, his children and his servants by his ordinances and commandments,
which they are obliged to obey though they are able not to obey; but if he have servants and
slaves, he rules them by force which they have no power to contradict; his horses, oxen and
mules he manages by industry, binding, bridling, goading, shutting in, or letting out.
Now the will governs the faculty of our exterior motion as a serf or slave: for unless
some external thing hinder, it never fails to obey. We open and shut our mouth, move our
tongue, our hands, feet, eyes, and all the members to which the power of this movement
refers without resistance, according to our wish and will.
But as for our senses and the faculties of nourishing, growing, and producing, we cannot
with the same ease govern them, but we must employ industry and art. If a slave be called
he comes, if he be told to stop, he stops; but we must not expect this obedience from a
sparrowhawk or falcon: he that desires it should return to the hand must show it the lure;
20
if he would keep it quiet he must hood it. We bid our servant turn to the right or left hand
and he does it, but to make a horse so turn we must make use of the bridle. We must not,
Theotimus, command our eyes not to see, our ears not to hear, our hands not to touch, our
stomach not to digest, or our body not to grow, for these faculties not having intelligence
are not capable of obedience. No one can add a cubit to his stature. We often eat without
nourishing ourselves or growing; he that will prevail with these powers must use industry.
A physician who has to do with a child in the cradle commands him nothing, but only gives
orders to the nurse to do such and such things, or else perchance he prescribes for the nurse
to eat this or that meat, to take such and such medicine. This infuses its qualities into the
milk which enters the child's body, and the physician accomplishes his will in this little
weakling who has not even the power to think of it. We must not give the orders of abstin-
ence, sobriety or continency unto the palate or stomach, but the hands must be commanded
only to furnish to the mouth meat and drink in such and such a measure, we take away from
or give our faculties their object and subject, and the food which strengthens them, as reason
requires. If we desire our eyes not to see we must turn them away, or cover them with their
natural hood, and shut them, and by these means we may bring them to the point which
the will desires. It would be folly to command a horse not to wax fat, not to grow, not to
kick,—to effect all this, stop his corn; you must not command him, you must simply make
him do as you wish.
The will also exercises a certain power over the understanding and memory, for of many
things which the understanding has power to understand and the memory has power to
remember, the will determines those to which she would have her faculties apply themselves,
or from which divert themselves. It is true she cannot manage or range them so absolutely
52

7.6 Page 66

▲back to top


Chapter II. How the Will Variously Governs the Powers of the Soul.
as she does the hands, feet or tongue, on account of the sensitive faculties, especially the
fancy, which do not obey the will with a prompt and infallible obedience, and which are
necessarily required for the operations of the understanding and memory: but yet the will
moves, employs and applies these faculties at her pleasure though not so firmly and constantly
21
that the light and variable fancy does not often divert and distract them, so that as the Apostle
cries out: I do not the good which I desire, but the evil which I hate.16 So we are often forced
to complain that we think not of the good which we love, but the evil which we hate.
16 Rom. vii. 15.
53

7.7 Page 67

▲back to top


Chapter III. How the Will Governs the Sensual Appetite.
CHAPTER III.
HOW THE WILL GOVERNS THE SENSUAL APPETITE.
The will then, Theotimus, bears rule over the memory, understanding and fancy, not by
force but by authority, so that she is not infallibly obeyed any more than the father of a
family is always obeyed by his children and servants. It is the same as regards the sensitive
appetite, which, as S. Augustine says, is called in us sinners concupiscence, and is subject
to the will and understanding as the wife to her husband, because as it was said to the woman:
Be under thy husband, and he shall have dominion over thee,17 so was it said to Cain, that
the lust of sin should be under him and he should have dominion over it.18 And this being
under means nothing else than being submitted and subjected to him. "O man," says S.
Bernard, "it is in thy power if thou wilt to bring thy enemy to be thy servant so that all things
may go well with thee; thy appetite is under thee and thou shalt domineer over it. Thy enemy
can move in thee the feeling of temptation, but it is in thy power if thou wilt to give or refuse
consent. In case thou permit thy appetite to carry thee away to sin, then thou shalt be under
it, and it shall domineer over thee, for whosoever sinneth is made the servant of sin, but before
thou sinnest, so long as sin gets not entry into thy consent, but only into thy sense, that is
to say, so long as it stays in the appetite, not going so far as thy will, thy appetite is subject
unto thee and thou lord over it." Before the Emperor is created he is subject to the electors'
dominion, in whose hands it is to reject him or to elect him to the imperial dignity; but being 22
once elected and elevated by their means, henceforth they are under him and he rules over
them. Before the will consents to the appetite, she rules over it, but having once given consent
she becomes its slave.
To conclude, this sensual appetite in plain truth is a rebellious subject, seditious, restive,
and we must confess we cannot so defeat it that it does not rise again, encounter and assault
the reason; yet the will has such a strong hand over it that she is able, if she please, to bridle
it, break its designs and repulse it, since not to consent to its suggestions is a sufficient repulse.
We cannot hinder concupiscence from conceiving, but we can from bringing forth and ac-
complishing, sin.
Now this concupiscence or sensual appetite has twelve movements, by which as by so
many mutinous captains it raises sedition in man. And because ordinarily they trouble the
soul and disquiet the body; insomuch as they trouble the soul, they are called perturbations,
insomuch as they disquiet the body they are named passions, as S. Augustine declares. They
all place before themselves good or evil, the former to obtain, the latter to avoid. If good be
considered in itself according to its natural goodness it excites love, the first and principal
passion; if good be regarded as absent it provokes us to desire; if being desired we think we
17 Gen. iii. 16.
18 Ib.iv. 7.
54

7.8 Page 68

▲back to top


Chapter III. How the Will Governs the Sensual Appetite.
are able to obtain it we enter into hope; if we think we cannot obtain it we feel despair; but
when we possess it as present, it moves us to joy.
On the contrary, as soon as we discover evil we hate it, if it be absent we fly it, if we
cannot avoid it we fear it; if we think we can avoid it we grow bold and courageous, but if
we feel it as present we grieve; and then anger and wrath suddenly rush forth to reject and
repel the evil or at least to take vengeance for it. If we cannot succeed we remain in grief.
But if we repulse or avenge it we feel satisfaction and satiation, which is a pleasure of triumph,
for as the possession of good gladdens the heart, so the victory over evil exalts the spirits.
And over all this multitude of sensual passions the will bears empire, rejecting their sugges-
tions, repulsing their attacks, hindering their effects, or at the very least sternly refusing
them consent, without which they can never harm us, and by refusing which they remain
23
vanquished, yea in the long run broken down, weakened, worn out, beaten down, and if
not altogether dead, at least deadened or mortified.
And Theotimus, this multitude of passions is permitted to reside in our soul for the
exercise of our will in virtue and spiritual valour; insomuch that the Stoics who denied that
passions were found in wise men greatly erred, and so much the more because they practised
in deeds what in words they denied, as S. Augustine shows, recounting this agreeable history.
Aulus Gellius having gone on sea with a famous Stoic, a great tempest arose, at which the
Stoic being frightened began to grow pale, to blench and to tremble so sensibly that all in
the boat perceived it, and watched him curiously, although they were in the same hazard
with him. In the meantime the sea grew calm, the danger passed, and safety restoring to
each the liberty to talk and even to rally one another, a certain voluptuous Asiatic reproached
him with his fear, which had made him aghast and pale at the danger, whereas the other on
the contrary had remained firm and without fear. To this the Stoic replied by relating what
Aristippus, a Socratic philosopher, had answered a man, who for the same reason had at-
tacked him with the like reproach; saying to him: As for thee, thou hadst no reason to be
troubled for the soul of a wicked rascal: but I should have done myself wrong not to have
feared to lose the life of an Aristippus. And the value of the story is, that Aulus Gellius, an
eye-witness, relates it. But as to the Stoic's reply contained therein, it did more commend
his wit than his cause, since bringing forward this comrade in his fear, he left it proved by
two irreproachable witnesses, that Stoics were touched with fear, and with the fear which
shows its effects in the eyes, face and behaviour, and is consequently a passion.
A great folly, to wish to be wise with an impossible wisdom Truly the Church has con-
demned the folly of that wisdom which certain presumptuous Anchorites would formally
have introduced, against which the whole Scripture but especially the great Apostle, cries
out: We have a law in our body which resisteth the law of our mind.19 "Amongst us Christians,"
24
19 Rom. vii. 23.
55

7.9 Page 69

▲back to top


Chapter III. How the Will Governs the Sensual Appetite.
says the great S. Augustine, "according to holy Scripture and sound doctrine, the citizens of
the sacred city of Gods living according to God, in the pilgrimage of this world fear, desire,
grieve, rejoice." Yea even the sovereign King of this city has feared, desired, has grieved and
rejoiced, even to tears, wanness, trembling, sweating of blood; though in him as these were
not the motions of passions like ours, the great S. Jerome, and after him the School durst
not use the name, passions, for reverence of the person in whom they were, but the respectful
name, pro-passions. This was to testify that sensible movements in Our Saviour held the
place of passions, though they were not such indeed, seeing that he suffered or endured
nothing from them except what seemed good to him and as he pleased, which we sinners
cannot do, who suffer and endure these motions with disorder, against our wills, to the great
prejudice of the good estate and polity of our soul.
56

7.10 Page 70

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Love Rules over All the Affections, and Passions, and Even…
CHAPTER IV.
THAT LOVE RULES OVER ALL THE AFFECTIONS, AND PASSIONS, AND EVEN
GOVERNS THE WILL, ALTHOUGH THE WILL HAS ALSO A DOMINION OVER IT.
Love being the first complacency which we take in good, as we shall presently show, it of
course precedes desire; and indeed what other thing do we desire, but that which we love?
It precedes delectation, for how could we rejoice in the enjoyment of a thing if we loved it
not? It precedes hope, for we hope only for the good which we love: it precedes hatred, for
we hate not evil, except for the love we have for good: nor is evil evil but because it is contrary
to good. And, Theotimus, it is the same with all the other passions and affections; for they
all proceed from love, as from their source and root.
For which cause the other passions and affections, are good or bad, vicious or virtuous,
according as the love whence they proceed is good or bad; for love so spreads over them 25
her own qualities, that they seem to be no other than this same love. S. Augustine reducing
all these passions and affections to four, as did also Boetius, Cicero, Virgil, with the greatest
part of the ancients:—"Love," says he, "tending to the possession of what it loves, is termed
concupiscence or desire; having and possessing it it is called joy; flying that which is contrary
to it, it is named fear; but if this really seizes it and it feels it, love is named grief, and con-
sequently these passions are evil if the love be evil, good if it be good. The citizens of the
heavenly city fear, desire, grieve, love, and because their love is just, all their affections are
also just. Christian doctrine subjects the reason to God that he may guide and help it, and
subjects all these passions to the spirit, that it may bridle and moderate them and so convert
them to the service of justice and virtue. The right will is good love, the bad will is evil love;"20
that is to say, in a word, Theotimus, love has such dominion over the will as to make it exactly
such as it is itself.
The wife ordinarily changes her condition into that of her husband, becoming noble if
he be noble, queen if he be king, duchess if he be duke. The will also changes her condition
according to the love she espouses; if this be carnal she becomes carnal, if this be spiritual
she is spiritual, and all the affections of desire, joy, hope, fear, grief, as children born of the
marriage between love and the will, consequently receive their qualities from love. In short,
Theotimus, the will is only moved by her affections, amongst which love, as the primum
mobile and first affection, gives motion to all the rest, and causes all the other motions of
the soul.
But it does not follow hence that the will does not also rule over love, seeing that the
will only loves while willing to love, and that of many loves which present themselves she
20 De Civ. Dei, xiv. ix.
57

8 Pages 71-80

▲back to top


8.1 Page 71

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Love Rules over All the Affections, and Passions, and Even…
can apply herself to which she pleases, otherwise there would be no love either forbidden
or commanded. She is then mistress over her loves as a maiden over her suitors, amongst
whom she may make election of which she pleases. But as after marriage she loses her liberty
and of mistress becomes subject to her husband's power, remaining taken by him whom
26
she took, so the will which at her own pleasure made election of love, after she has chosen
one remains subject to it. And as the wife is always subject to the husband whom she has
chosen as long as he lives, and if he die regains her former liberty to marry another, so while
a love lives in the will it reigns there, and the will is subject to its movements, but if this love
die she can afterwards take another. And again there is a liberty in the will which the wife
has not, and it is that the will can reject her love at her pleasure, by applying her understand-
ing to motives which make it displeasing, and by taking a resolution to change the object.
For thus, to make divine love live and reign in us, we kill self-love, and if we cannot entirely
annihilate it at least we weaken it in such a way that though it lives yet it does not reign in
us. As, on the contrary, in forsaking divine love we may adhere to that of creatures, which
is the infamous adultery with which the Divine lover so often reproaches sinners.
58

8.2 Page 72

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Affections of the Will.
CHAPTER V.
OF THE AFFECTIONS OF THE WILL.
There are no fewer movements in the intellectual or reasonable appetite which is called the
will, than there are in the sensitive or sensual, but the first are customarily named affections,
the latter passions. The philosophers and pagans did in some manner love God, the state,
virtue, sciences; they hated vice, aspired after honours, despaired of escaping death or
calumny, were desirous of knowledge, yea even of beatitude after death. They encouraged
themselves to surmount the difficulties which cross the way of virtue, dreaded blame, avoided
some faults, avenged public injuries, opposed tyrants, without any self-interest. Now all
these movements were seated in the reasonable part, since the senses, and consequently,
the sensual appetite, are not capable of being applied to these objects, and therefore these
movements were affections of the intellectual or reasonable appetite, not passions of the
sensual.
27
How often do we feel passions in the sensual appetite or concupiscence, contrary to the
affections which at the same time we perceive in the reasonable appetite or will? How clearly
was shown at one and the same time the action of the pleasure of the senses and the displeas-
ure of the will, in that young martyr mentioned by S. Jerom, who, forced to bear the attacks
of sensuality, bit off a piece of his tongue and spat it in his tempter's face? How often do we
tremble amidst the dangers to which our will carries us and in which it makes us remain?
How often do we hate the pleasure in which the sensual appetite takes delight, and love the
spiritual good with which that is disgusted? In this consists the war which we daily experience
between the spirit and the flesh: between our exterior man, which is under the senses, and
the interior which is under the reason; between the old Adam who follows the appetites of
his Eve, or concupiscence, and the new Adam who follows heavenly wisdom and holy
reason.
The Stoics, as S. Augustine remarks,21 denying that the wise man can have passions,
appear to have confessed that he has affections, which they term eupathies, or good passions,
or, as Cicero called them, constancies: for they said the wise man did not covet but desired,
had not glee but joy; that he had no fear, but only foresight and precaution, so that he was
not moved except by reason and according to reason: for this cause they peremptorily denied
that a wise man could ever be sorrowful, that being caused by present evil, whereas no evil
can befal a wise man, since no man is hurt but by himself, according to their maxim. And
truly, Theotimus, they were not wrong in holding that there are eupathies and good affections
in the reasonable part of man, but they erred much in saying that there were no passions in
the sensitive part, and that sorrow did not touch a wise man's heart: for omitting the fact
21 De Civ. Dei, xiv.
59

8.3 Page 73

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Affections of the Will.
that they themselves were troubled in this kind (as was just said), how could it be that wisdom
should deprive us of pity, which is a virtuous sorrow and which comes into our hearts in
order to make them desire to deliver our neighbour from the evil which he endures? And
the wisest man of all paganism, Epictetus, did not hold this error that passions do not rise
28
in the wise man, as S. Augustine witnesses, showing further that the Stoics' difference with
other philosophers on this subject was but a mere dispute of words and strife of language.
Now these affections which we feel in our reasonable part are more or less noble and
spiritual, according as their objects are more or less sublime, and as they are in a more em-
inent department of the spirit: for there are affections in us which proceed from conclusions
gained by the experience of our senses; others by reasonings from human sciences; others
from principles of faith; and finally there are some which have their origin from the simple
sentiment of the truth of God, and acquiescence in his will. The first are called natural affec-
tions, for who is he that does not naturally desire health, his provision of food and clothing,
sweet and agreeable conversation? The second class of affections are named reasonable, as
being altogether founded upon the spiritual knowledge of the reason, by which our will is
excited to seek tranquillity of heart, moral virtues, true honour, the contemplation of
eternal things. The third sort of affections are termed Christian, because they issue from
reasonings founded on the doctrine of Our Lord, who makes us love voluntary Poverty,
perfect Chastity, the glory of heaven. But the affections of the supreme degree are named
divine and supernatural because God himself spreads them abroad in our spirits, and because
they regard God and aim at him, without the medium of any reasoning, or any light of
nature, as it will be easy to understand from what we shall say afterwards about the acquies-
cences and affections which are made in the sanctuary of the soul. And these supernatural
affections are principally three: the love of the mind for the beautiful in the mysteries of
faith, love for the useful in the goods which are promised us in the other life, and love for
the sovereign good of the most holy and eternal divinity.
60

8.4 Page 74

▲back to top


Chapter VI. How the Love of God Has Dominion over Other Loves.
CHAPTER VI.
HOW THE LOVE OF GOD HAS DOMINION OVER OTHER LOVES.
The will governs all the other faculties of man's soul, yet it is governed by its love which
makes it such as its love is. Now of all loves that of God holds the sceptre, and has the au-
29
thority of commanding so inseparably united to it and proper to its nature, that if it be not
master it ceases to be and perishes.
Ismael was not co-heir with Isaac his younger brother, Esau was appointed to be his
younger brother's servant, Joseph was adored, not only by his brothers, but also by his
father, yea, and by his mother also, in the person of Benjamin, as he had foreseen in the
dreams of his youth. Truly it is not without mystery that the younger of these brethren thus
bear away the advantage from the elder. Divine love is indeed the last begotten of all the
affections of man's heart, for as the Apostle says: That which is animal is first; afterwards
that which is spiritual:22—but this last born inherits all the authority, and self-love, as another
Esau is deputed to his service; and not only all the other motions of the soul as his brethren
adore him and are subject to him, but also the understanding and will which are to him as
father and mother. All is subject to this heavenly love, who will either be king or nothing,
who cannot live unless he reign, nor reign if not sovereignly.
Isaac, Jacob and Joseph were supernatural children; for their mothers, Sarah, Rebecca
and Rachel, being sterile by nature, conceived them by the grace of the divine goodness,
and for this cause they were established masters of their brethren. Similarly, divine love is
a child of miracle, since man's will cannot conceive it if it be not poured into our hearts by
the Holy Ghost. And as supernatural it must rule and reign over all the affections, yea, even
over the understanding and will.
And although there are other supernatural movements in the soul,—fear, piety, force,
hope,—as Esau and Benjamin were supernatural children of Rachel and Rebecca, yet is divine
love still master, heir and superior, as being the son of promise, since in virtue of it heaven
is promised to man. Salvation is shown to faith, it is prepared for hope, but it is given only
to charity. Faith points out the way to the land of promise as a pillar of cloud and of fire,
that is, light and dark; hope feeds us with its manna of sweetness, but charity actually intro-
30
duces us into it, as the Ark of alliance, which makes for us the passage of the Jordan, that
is, of the judgment, and which shall remain amidst the people in the heavenly land promised
to the true Israelites, where neither the pillar of faith serves as guide nor the manna of hope
is used as food.
Divine love makes its abode in the most high and sublime region of the soul, where it
offers sacrifice and holocausts to the divinity as Abraham did, and as our Saviour sacrificed
himself upon the top of Calvary, to the end that from so exalted a place it may be heard and
22 1 Cor. xv. 46.
61

8.5 Page 75

▲back to top


Chapter VI. How the Love of God Has Dominion over Other Loves.
obeyed by its people, that is, by all the faculties and affections of the soul. These he governs
with an incomparable sweetness, for love has no convicts nor slaves, but brings all things
under its obedience with a force so delightful, that as nothing is so strong as love nothing
also is so sweet as its strength.
The virtues are in the soul to moderate its movements, and charity, as first of all the
virtues, governs and tempers them all, not only because the first in every species of things
serves as a rule and measure to the rest, but also because God, having created man to his
image and likeness, wills that as in himself so in man all things should be ordered by love
and for love.
62

8.6 Page 76

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Description of Love in General.
CHAPTER VII.
DESCRIPTION OF LOVE IN GENERAL.
The will has so great a sympathy with good that as soon as she perceives it she turns towards
it to delight therein as in her most agreeable object, to which she is so closely allied that her
nature cannot be explained except by the relation she has thereto, just as one cannot show
the nature of what is good except by the affinity it has with the will. For, tell me, Theotimus,
what is good but that which every one wills. And what is the will, if not the faculty which
bears us towards and makes us tend to good or what the will believes to be such?
The will then perceiving and feeling the good, by the help of the understanding which
proposes it, feels at the same time a sudden delight and complacency at this meeting, which
sweetly yet powerfully moves her towards this pleasing object in order to unite herself with
it, and makes her search out the means most proper to attain this union.
The will then has a most close affinity with good; this affinity produces the complacency
which the will takes in feeling and perceiving good; this complacency moves and spurs the
will forward to good; this movement tends to union; and in fine the will moved and tending
to union searches out all the means necessary to get it.
And in truth, speaking generally, love comprises all this together, as a beautiful tree,
whose root is the correspondence which the will has to good, its foot is the complacency,
its trunk is the movement, its seekings, its pursuits, and other efforts are the branches, but
union and enjoyment are its fruits. Thus love seems to be composed of these five principal
parts under which a number of other little pieces are contained as we shall see in the course
of this work.
Let us consider, I pray you, the exercise of an insensible love between the loadstone and
iron; for it is the true image of the sensible and voluntary love of which we speak. Iron, then,
has such a sympathy with the loadstone that as soon as it feels the power thereof, it turns
towards it; then it suddenly begins to stir and quiver with little throbbings, testifying by this
the complacency it feels, and then it advances and moves towards the loadstone striving by
all means possible to be united to it. Do you not see all the parts of love well represented in
these lifeless things?
But to conclude, Theotimus, the complacency and the movement towards, or effusion
of the will upon, the thing beloved is properly speaking love; yet in such sort that the com-
placency is but the beginning of love, and the movement or effusion of the heart which ensues
is the true essential love, so that the one and the other may truly be named love, but in a
different sense: for as the dawning of day may be termed day, so this first complacency of
the heart in the thing beloved may be called love because it is the first feeling of love. But as
the true heart of the day is measured from the end of dawn till sunset, so the true essence
of love consists in the movement and effusion of the heart which immediately follows
complacency and ends in union. In short, complacency is the first stirring or emotion which
31
32
63

8.7 Page 77

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Description of Love in General.
good causes in the will, and this emotion is followed by the movement and effusion by which
the soul runs towards and reaches the thing beloved, which is the true and proper love. We
may express it thus: the good takes, grasps and ties the heart by complacency, but by love
it draws, conducts and conveys it to itself, by complacency it makes it start on its way, but
by love it makes it achieve the journey. Complacency is the awakener of the heart, but love
is its action; complacency makes it get up, but love makes it walk. The heart spreads its wings
by complacency but love is its flight. Love then, to speak distinctly and precisely, is no other
thing than the movement, effusion and advancement of the heart towards good.
Many great persons have been of opinion that love is no other thing than complacency
itself, in which they have had much appearance of reason. For not only does the movement
of love take its origin from the complacency which the heart feels at the first approach of
good, and find its end in a second complacency which returns to the heart by union with
the thing beloved,—but further, it depends for its preservation on this complacency, and
can only subsist through it as through its mother and nurse; so that as soon as the compla-
cency ceases love ceases. And as the bee being born in honey, feeds on honey, and only flies
for honey, so love is born of complacency, maintained by complacency, and tends to com-
placency. It is the weight of things which stirs them, moves them, and stays them; it is the
weight of the stone that stirs it and moves it to its descent as soon as the obstacles are re-
moved; it is the same weight that makes it continue its movement downwards; and finally
it is the same weight that makes it stop and rest as soon as it has reached its place. So it is
with the complacency which excites the will: this moves it, and this makes it repose in the
thing beloved when it has united itself therewith. This motion of love then having its birth,
preservation, and perfection dependent on complacency, and being always inseparably
33
joined thereto, it is no marvel that these great minds considered love and complacency to
be the same, though in truth love being a true passion of the soul cannot be a simple com-
placency, but must needs be the motion proceeding from it.
Now this motion caused by complacency lasts till the union or fruition. Therefore when
it tends to a present good, it does no more than push the heart, clasp it, join, and apply it to
the thing beloved, which by this means it enjoys, and then it is called love of complacency,
because as soon as ever it is begotten of the first complacency it ends in the second, which
it receives in being united to its present object. But when the good towards which the heart
is turned, inclined, and moved is distant, absent or future, or when so perfect a union cannot
yet be made as is desired, then the motion of love by which the heart tends, makes and aspires
towards this absent object, is properly named desire, for desire is no other thing than the
appetite, concupiscence, or cupidity for things we have not, but which however we aim at
getting.
There are yet certain other motions of love by which we desire things that we neither
expect nor aim at in any way, as when we say:—Why am I not now in heaven! I wish I were
64

8.8 Page 78

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Description of Love in General.
a king; I would to God I were younger; how I wish I had never sinned, and the like. These
indeed are desires, but imperfect ones, which, to speak properly, I think, might be called
wishings (souhaits). And indeed these affections are not expressed like desires, for when we
express our true desires we say: I desire (Je desire): but when we signify our imperfect desires
we say: I should or I would desire (je desirerois), or I should like. We may well say: I would
desire to be young; but we do not say: I desire to be young; seeing that this is not possible;
and this motion is called a wishing, or as the Scholastics term it a velleity, which is nothing
else but a commencement of willing, not followed out, because the will, by reason of im-
possibility or extreme difficulty, stops her motion, and ends it in this simple affection of a
wish. It is as though she said: this good which I behold and cannot expect to get is truly very
agreeable to me, and though I cannot will it nor hope for it, yet so my affection stands, that
34
if I could will or desire it, I would desire and will it gladly.
In brief, these wishings or velleities are nothing else but a little love, which may be called
love of simple approbation, because the soul approves the good she knows, and being unable
to effectually desire she protests she would willingly desire it, and that it is truly to be desired.
Nor is this all, Theotimus, for there are desires and velleities which are yet more imperfect
than those we have spoken of, forasmuch as their motions are not stayed by reason of im-
possibility or extreme difficulty, but by their incompatibility with other more powerful desires
or willings; as when a sick man desires to eat mushrooms or melons;—though he may have
them at his order, yet he will not eat them, fearing thereby to make himself worse; for who
sees not that there are two desires in this man, the one to eat mushrooms, the other to be
cured? But because the desire of being cured is the stronger, it blocks up and suffocates the
other and hinders it from producing any effect. Jephte wished to preserve his daughter, but
this not being compatible with his desire to keep his vow, he willed what he did not wish,
namely, to sacrifice his daughter, and wished what he did not will, namely, to preserve his
daughter. Pilate and Herod wished, the one to deliver our Saviour, the other his precursor:
but because these wishes were incompatible with the desires, the one to please the Jews and
Cæsar, the other, Herodias and her daughter, these wishes were vain and fruitless. Now in
proportion as those things which are incompatible with our wishes are less desirable, the
wishes are more imperfect, since they are stopped and, as it were, stifled by contraries so
weak. Thus the wish which Herod had not to behead S. John was more imperfect than that
of Pilate to free our Saviour. For the latter feared the calumny and indignation of the people
and of Cæsar; the other feared to disappoint one woman alone.
And these wishes which are hindered, not by impossibility, but by incompatibility with
stronger desires, are called indeed wishes and desires, but vain, stifled and unprofitable ones.
35
As to wishes of things impossible, we say: I wish, but cannot; and of the wishes of possible
things we say: I wish, but will not.
65

8.9 Page 79

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. What Kind of Affinity (Convenance) It Is Which Excites L…
CHAPTER VIII.
WHAT KIND OF AFFINITY (CONVENANCE) IT IS WHICH EXCITES LOVE.
We say the eye sees, the ear hears, the tongue speaks, the understanding reasons, the memory
remembers, the will loves: but still we know well that it is the man, to speak properly, who
by divers faculties and different organs works all this variety of operations. Man also then
it is who by the affective faculty named the will tends to and pleases himself in good, and
who has for it that great affinity which is the source and origin of love. Now they have made
a mistake who have believed that resemblance is the only affinity which produces love. For
who knows not that the most sensible old men tenderly and dearly love little children, and
are reciprocally loved by them; that the wise love the ignorant, provided they are docile, and
the sick their physicians. And if we may draw any argument from the image of love which
is found in things without sense, what resemblance can draw the iron towards the loadstone?
Has not one loadstone more resemblance with another or with another stone, than with
iron which is of a totally different species? And though some, to reduce all affinities to re-
semblance, assure us that iron draws iron and the loadstone the loadstone, yet they are unable
to explain why the loadstone draws iron more powerfully than iron does iron itself. But I
pray you what similitude is there between lime and water? or between water and a sponge?
and yet both of them drink water with a quenchless desire, testifying an excessive insensible
love towards it. Now it is the same in human love; for sometimes it takes more strongly
amongst persons of contrary qualities, than among those who are very like. The affinity
then which causes love does not always consist in resemblance, but in the proportion, relation
or correspondence between the lover and the thing loved. For thus it is not resemblance
which makes the doctor dear to the sick man, but a correspondence of the one's necessity 36
with the other's sufficiency, in that the one can afford the assistance which the other stands
in need of: as again the doctor loves the sick man, and the master his apprentice because
they can exercise their powers on them. The old man loves children, not by sympathy, but
because the great simplicity, feebleness and tenderness of the one exalts and makes more
apparent the prudence and stability of the other, and this dissimilitude is agreeable. On the
other hand, children love old men because they see them busy and careful about them, and
by secret instinct they perceive they have need of their direction. Musical concord consists
in a kind of discord, in which unlike voices correspond, making up altogether one single
multiplex proportion, as the unlikeness of precious stones and flowers makes the agreeable
composition of enamel and diapry. Thus love is not caused always by resemblance and
sympathy, but by correspondence and proportion, which consists in this that by the union
of one thing to another they mutually receive one another's perfection, and so become better.
The head certainly does not resemble the body, nor the hand the arm, yet they have such a
correspondence and join so naturally together that by their conjunction they excellently
perfect one the other. Wherefore, if these parts had each one a distinct soul they would have
66

8.10 Page 80

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. What Kind of Affinity (Convenance) It Is Which Excites L…
a perfect mutual love, not by resemblance, for they have none, but by their correspondence
towards a mutual perfection. For this cause the melancholy and the joyous, the sour and
the sweet, have often a correspondence of affection, by reason of the mutual impressions
which they receive one of another by which their humours are reciprocally moderated.
But when this mutual correspondence is joined with resemblance, love without doubt
is engendered much more efficaciously; for resemblance being the true image of unity, when
two like things are united by a proportion to the same end it seems rather to be unity than
union.
The affinity then of the lover and the thing loved is the first source of love, and this af-
finity consists in correspondence, which is nothing else than a mutual relation, which makes
37
things apt to unite in order to communicate to one another some perfection. But this will
be understood better in the progress of our discourse.
67

9 Pages 81-90

▲back to top


9.1 Page 81

▲back to top


Chapter IX. That Love Tends to Union.
CHAPTER IX.
THAT LOVE TENDS TO UNION.
The great Solomon describes, in an admirably delicious manner, the loves of the Saviour
and the devout soul, in that divine work which for its excellent sweetness is named the
Canticle of Canticles. And to raise ourselves by a more easy flight to the consideration of
this spiritual love which is exercised between God and us by the correspondence of the
movements of our hearts with the inspirations of his divine majesty, he makes use of a per-
petual representation of the loves of a chaste shepherd and a modest shepherdess. Now
making the spouse or bride begin first by manner of a certain surprise of love, he first puts
into her mouth this ejaculation: Let him kiss me with the kiss of his mouth.23 Notice, Theo-
timus, how the soul, in the person of this shepherdess, has but the one aim, in the first ex-
pression of her desire, of a chaste union with her spouse, protesting that it is the only end
of her ambition and the only thing she aspires after; for, I pray you, what other thing would
this first sigh intimate? Let him kiss me with the kiss of his mouth.
A kiss from all ages as by natural instinct has been employed to represent perfect love,
that is, the union of hearts, and not without cause: we express and make known our passions
and the movements which our souls have in common with the animals, by our eyes, eyebrows,
forehead and the rest of our countenance. Man is known by his look,24 says the Scripture,
and Aristotle giving a reason why ordinarily it is only the faces of great men that are por-
trayed,—it is, says he, because the face shows what we are.
Yet we do not utter our discourse nor the thoughts which proceed from the spiritual
38
portion of our soul, which we call reason, and by which we are distinguished from beasts,
except by words, and consequently by help of the mouth; insomuch that to pour out our
soul and open out our heart is nothing else but to speak. Pour out your hearts before God,25
says the Psalmist, that is, express and turn the affections of your hearts into words. And
Samuel's pious mother pronouncing her prayers so softly that one could hardly discern the
motion of her lips: I have poured out my soul before the Lord,26 said she. And thus one mouth
is applied to another in kissing to testify that we would desire to pour out one soul into the
other, to unite them reciprocally in a perfect union. For this reason, at all times and amongst
the most saintly men the world has had, the kiss has been a sign of love and affection, and
such use was universally made of it amongst the ancient Christians as the great S. Paul
testifies, when, writing to the Romans and Corinthians, he says, Salute one another in a holy
kiss.27 And as many declare, Judas in betraying Our Saviour made use of a kiss to manifest
23 Cant. i. 1.
24 Eccli. xix. 26.
25 lxi. 9.
26 1 Kings i. 15.
27 Rom. xvi. 16; 1 Cor. xvi. 20.
68

9.2 Page 82

▲back to top


Chapter IX. That Love Tends to Union.
him, because this divine Saviour was accustomed to kiss his disciples when he met them;
and not only his disciples but even little children, whom he took lovingly in his arms; as he
did him by whose example he so solemnly invited his disciples to the love of their neighbour,
whom many think to have been S. Martial, as the Bishop Jansenius28 says.
Thus then the kiss being a lively mark of the union of hearts, the spouse who has no
other aim in all her endeavours than to be united to her beloved, Let him kiss me, says she,
with the kiss of his mouth; as if she cried out:—so many sighs and inflamed darts which my
love throws out will they never impetrate that which my soul desires? I run—Ah! shall I
never gain the prize towards which I urge myself, which is to be united heart to heart, spirit
to spirit, to my God, my spouse my life? When will the hour come in which I shall pour my
soul into his heart, and he will pour his heart into my soul, and thus happily united we shall
live inseparable.
39
When the Holy Ghost would express a perfect love, he almost always employs words
expressing union or conjunction. And the multitude of believers, says S. Luke, had but one
heart and one soul.29 Our Saviour prayed for all the faithful that they all may be one.30 S.
Paul warns us to be careful to preserve the unity of the spirit in the bond of peace."31 These
unities of heart, of soul, and of spirit signify the perfection of love which joins many souls
in one. So it is said that Jonathan's soul was knit to David's, that is to say, as the Scripture
adds, He loved him as his own soul.132 The great Apostle of France (S. Denis) as well accord-
ing to his own sentiment as when giving that of his Hierotheus, writes a hundred times, I
think, in a single chapter of the De Nominibus Divinis, that love is unifying, uniting, drawing
together, embracing, collecting and bringing all things to unity! S. Gregory Nazianzen and
S. Augustine say that their friends and they had but one soul, and Aristotle approving already
in his time this manner of speech: "When," says he, "we would express how much we love
our friends, we say his and my soul is but one." Hatred separates us, and love brings us into
one. The end then of love is no other thing than the union of the lover and the thing loved.
28 Of Ghent, uncle of the heretic, but himself an orthodox and esteemed writer. (Tr.)
29 Acts iv. 32.
30 John xvii. 21.
31 Eph. iv. 3.
32 Kings xviii. 1.
69

9.3 Page 83

▲back to top


Chapter X. That the Union to Which Love Aspires Is Spiritual.
CHAPTER X.
THAT THE UNION TO WHICH LOVE ASPIRES IS SPIRITUAL.
We must, however, take notice that there are natural unions, as those of similitude, consan-
guinity, and of cause and effect; and others which not being natural may be termed voluntary;
for though they be according to Nature yet they are only made at our will: like that union
which takes its origin from benefits—which undoubtedly unite him that receives them to
the giver,—that of conversation, society and the like. Now natural union produces love, and
the love which it produces inclines us to another and voluntary union, perfecting the natural.
Thus the father and son, the mother and daughter, or two brothers, being joined in a natural
union by the participation of the same blood, are excited by this union to love, and by love
are borne towards a union of will and spirit which may be called voluntary, because although
its foundation is natural, yet is its action deliberate. In these loves produced by natural
union we need look for no other affinity than the union itself, by which Nature preventing
the will, obliges it to approve, to love, and to perfect the union it has already made. But as
to voluntary unions, which follow love, love is indeed their effective cause, but they are its
final cause, as being the only end and aim of love. So that as love tends to union, even so
union very often extends and augments love: for love makes us seek the society of the beloved,
and this often nourishes and increases love; love causes a desire of nuptial union, and this
union reciprocally preserves and increases love, so that in every sense it is true that love
tends to union.
But to what kind of union does it tend? Did you not note, Theotimus, that the sacred
spouse expressed her desire of being united to her spouse by the kiss, and that the kiss rep-
resents the spiritual union which is caused by the reciprocal communication of souls? It is
indeed the man who loves, but he loves by his will, and therefore the end of his love is of
the nature of his will: but his will is spiritual, and consequently the union which love aims
at is spiritual also, and so much the more because the heart, which is the seat and source of
love, would not only not be perfected by union with corporal things, but would be degraded.
It will not hence be inferred that there are not certain passions in man which, as mistleto
comes on trees by manner of excrescence and over-growth, sprout up indeed amongst and
about love. Nevertheless they are neither love, nor any part of love, but excrescences and
superfluities thereof, which are so far from being suited to maintain or perfect love, that on
the contrary they greatly harm it, weaken it, and at last, if they be not cut away, utterly ruin
it: and here is the reason.
In proportion to the number of operations to which the soul applies herself (whether
of the same or of a different kind) she does them less perfectly and vigorously: because being
finite, her active virtue is also finite, so that furnishing her activity to divers operations it is
necessary that each one of them have less thereof. Thus a man attentive to several things is
less attentive to each of them: we cannot quietly consider a person's features with our sight,
40
41
70

9.4 Page 84

▲back to top


Chapter X. That the Union to Which Love Aspires Is Spiritual.
and at the same time give an exact hearing to the harmony of a grand piece of music, nor
at the same instant be attentive to figure and to colour: if we are talking earnestly, we cannot
attend to anything else.
I am not ignorant of what is said concerning Caesar nor incredulous about what so
many great persons testify of Origen,—that they could apply their attention at the same
time to several objects; yet every one confesses that according to the measure they applied
it to more objects it became less for each one of them. There is then a difference between
seeing, hearing and understanding more, and seeing, hearing, and understanding better,
for he that sees better, sees less, and he that sees more, sees not so well: it is rare for those
who know much to know well what they know, because the virtue and force of the under-
standing being scattered upon the knowledge of divers things is less strong and vigorous
than when it is restrained to the consideration of one only object. Hence it is that when the
soul employs her forces in divers operations of love, the action so divided is less vigorous
and perfect. We have three sorts of actions of love, the spiritual, the reasonable, and the
sensitive; when love exerts its forces through all these three operations, doubtless it is more
extended but less intense, but when through one operation only, it is more intense though
less extended. Do we not see that fire, the symbol of love, forced to make its way out by the
mouth of the cannon alone, makes a prodigious flash, which would have been much less if
it had found vent by two or three passages? Since then love is an act of our will, he that desires
to have it, not only noble and generous, but also very vigorous and active, must contain the
virtue and force of it within the limits of spiritual operations, for he that would apply it to
the operations of the sensible or sensitive part of our soul, would so far forth weaken the
intellectual operations, in which essential love consists.
42
The ancient philosophers have recognized that there are two sorts of ecstasies of which
the one raises us above ourselves, the other degrades us below ourselves: as though they
would say that man was of a nature between angels and beasts: in his intellectual part sharing
the angelical nature, and in his sensitive the nature of beasts; and yet that he could by the
acts of his life and by a continual attention to himself, deliver and emancipate himself from
this mean condition, and habituating himself much to intellectual actions might bring
himself nearer to the nature of angels than of beasts. If however he did much apply himself
to sensible actions, he descended from his middle state and approached that of beasts: and
because an ecstasy is no other thing than a going out of oneself, whether one go upwards
or downwards he is truly in an ecstasy. Those then who, touched with intellectual and divine
pleasures, let their hearts be carried away by those feelings, are truly out of themselves, that
is, above the condition of their nature, but by a blessed and desirable out-going, by which
entering into a more noble and eminent estate, they are as much angels by the operation of
their soul as men by the substance of their nature, and are either to be called human angels
or angelic men. On the contrary, those who, allured by sensual pleasures give themselves
71

9.5 Page 85

▲back to top


Chapter X. That the Union to Which Love Aspires Is Spiritual.
over to the enjoying of them, descend from their middle condition to the lowest of brute
beasts, and deserve as much to be called brutal by their operations as men by nature:
miserable in thus going out of themselves only to enter into a condition infinitely unworthy
of their natural state.
Now according as the ecstasy is greater, either above us or below us, by so much more
it hinders the soul from returning to itself, and from doing operations contrary to the ecstasy
in which it is. So those angelic men who are ravished in God and heavenly things, lose alto-
gether, as long as their ecstasy lasts, the use and attention of the senses, movement, and all
exterior actions, because their soul, in order to apply its power and activity more entirely
and attentively to that divine object, retires and withdraws them from all its other faculties,
to turn them in that direction. And in like manner brutish men give up all the use of their
43
reason and understanding to bury themselves in sensual pleasure. The first mystically imitate
Elias taken up in the fiery chariot amid the angels: the others Nabuchodonosor brutalized
and debased to the rank of savage beasts.
Now I say that when the soul practises love by actions which are sensual, and which
carry her below herself, it is impossible that thereby the exercise of her superior love, should
not be so much the more weakened. So that true and essential love is so far from being aided
and preserved by the union to which sensual love tends, that it is impaired, dissipated and
ruined by it. Job's oxen ploughed the ground, while the useless asses fed by them, eating the
pasture due to the labouring oxen. While the intellectual part of our soul is employed in
honest and virtuous love of some worthy object, it comes to pass oftentimes that the senses
and faculties of the inferior part tend to the union which they are adapted to, and which is
their pasture, though union only belongs to the heart and to the spirit, which also is alone
able to produce true and substantial love.
Eliseus having cured Naaman the Syrian was satisfied with having done him a service,
and refused his gold, his silver and the goods he offered him, but his faithless servant Giezi,
running after him, demanded and took, against his master's pleasure, that which he had
refused. Intellectual and cordial love, which certainly either is or should be master in our
heart, refuses all sorts of corporal and sensible unions, and is contented with goodwill only,
but the powers of the sensitive part, which are or should be the handmaids of the spirit,
demand, seek after and take that which reason refused, and without leave make after their
abject and servile love, dishonouring, like Giezi, the purity of the intention of their master,
the spirit. And in proportion as the soul turns herself to such gross and sensible unions, so
far does she divert herself from the delicate, intellectual and cordial union.
You see then plainly, Theotimus, that these unions which tend to animal complacency
and passions are so far from producing or preserving love that they greatly hurt it and render
44
it extremely weak.
72

9.6 Page 86

▲back to top


Chapter X. That the Union to Which Love Aspires Is Spiritual.
Basil, rosemary, marigold, hyssop, cloves, chamomile, nutmeg, lemon, and musk, put
together and incorporated, yield a truly delightful odour by the mixture of their good per-
fume; yet not nearly so much as does the water which is distilled from them, in which the
sweets of all these ingredients separated from their bodies are mingled in a much more ex-
cellent manner, uniting in a most perfect scent, which penetrates the sense of smelling far
more strongly than it would do if with it and its water the bodies of the ingredients were
found mingled and united. So love may be found in the unions proper to the sensual powers,
mixed with the unions of intellectual powers, but never so excellently as when the spirits
and souls alone, separated from all corporeal affections but united together, make love pure
and spiritual. For the scent of affections thus mingled is not only sweeter and better, but
more lively, more active and more essential.
True it is that many having gross, earthly and vile hearts rate the value of love like that
of gold pieces, the most massive of which are the best, and most current; for so their idea is
that brutish love is more strong, because it is more violent and turbulent, more solid, because
more gross and terrene, greater, because more sensible and fierce:—but on the contrary,
love is like fire, which is of clearer and fairer flame as its matter is more delicate, which
cannot be more quickly extinguished than by beating it down and covering it with earth;
for, in like manner, by how much more exalted and spiritual the subject of love is, by so
much its actions are more lively, subsistent and permanent: nor is there a more easy way to
ruin love than to debase it to vile and earthly unions. "There is this difference," says S.
Gregory, "between spiritual and corporal pleasures, that corporal ones beget a desire before
we obtain them, and a disgust when we have obtained them; but spiritual ones, on the con-
trary, are not cared for when we have them not, but are desired when we have them."
73

9.7 Page 87

▲back to top


Chapter XI. That There Are Two Portions in the Soul, and How.
CHAPTER XI.
THAT THERE ARE TWO PORTIONS IN THE SOUL, AND HOW.
We have but one soul, Theotimus, and an indivisible one; but in that one soul there are
various degrees of perfection, for it is living, sensible and reasonable; and according to these
45
different degrees it has also different properties and inclinations by which it is moved to the
avoidance or to the acceptance of things. For first, as we see that the vine hates, so to speak
and avoids the cabbage, so that the one is pernicious to the other; and, on the contrary, is
delighted in the olive:—so we perceive a natural opposition between man and the serpent,
so great that a man's fasting spittle is mortal to the serpent: on the contrary, man and the
sheep have a wondrous affinity, and are agreeable one to the other. Now this inclination
does not proceed from any knowledge that the one has of the hurtfulness of its contrary, or
of the advantage of the one with which it has affinity, but only from a certain occult and
secret quality which produces this insensible opposition and antipathy, or this complacency
and sympathy.
Secondly, we have in us the sensitive appetite, whereby we are moved to the seeking
and avoiding many things by the sensitive knowledge we have of them; not unlike to the
animals, some of which have an appetite to one thing, some to another, according to the
knowledge which they have that it suits them or not. In this appetite resides, or from it
proceeds, the love which we call sensual or brutish, which yet properly speaking ought not
to be termed love but simply appetite.
Thirdly, inasmuch as we are reasonable, we have a will, by which we are led to seek after
good, according as by reasoning we know or judge it to be such. Now in our soul, taken as
reasonable, we manifestly observe two degrees of perfection, which the great S. Augustine,
and after him all the doctors, have named two portions of the soul, inferior and superior.
That is called inferior which reasons and draws conclusions according to what it learns and
experiences by the senses; and that is called superior, which reasons and draws conclusions
according to an intellectual knowledge not grounded upon the experience of sense, but on
the discernment and judgment of the spirit. This superior part is called the spirit and mental
part of the soul, as the inferior is termed commonly, sense, feeling, and human reason.
46
Now this superior part can reason according to two sorts of lights; either according to
natural light, as the philosophers and all those who have reasoned by science did; or according
to supernatural light, as do theologians and Christians, since they establish their reasoning
upon faith and the revealed word of God, and still more especially those whose spirit is
conducted by particular illustrations, inspirations, and heavenly motions. This is what S.
Augustine said, namely, that it is by the superior portion of the soul that we adhere and
apply ourselves to the observance of the eternal law.
Jacob, pressed by the extreme necessity of his family, let Benjamin be taken by his
brethren into Egypt, which yet he did against his will, as the sacred History witnesses. In
74

9.8 Page 88

▲back to top


Chapter XI. That There Are Two Portions in the Soul, and How.
this he shows two wills, the one inferior, by which he grieved at sending him, the other su-
perior, by which he took the resolution to part with him. For the reason which moved him
to disapprove his departure was grounded on the pleasure which he felt in his presence and
the pain he would feel in his absence, which are grounds that touch the senses and the feel-
ings, but the resolution which he took to send him, was grounded upon the reason of the
state of his family, from his foreseeing future and imminent necessities. Abraham, according
to the inferior portion of his soul spoke words testifying in him a kind of diffidence when
the angel announced unto him the happy tidings of a son. Shall a son, thinkest thou, be born
to him that is a hundred years old?33 but according, to his superior part he believed in God
and it was reputed to him unto justice.34 According to his inferior part, doubtless he was in
great anguish when he was commanded to sacrifice his son: but according to his superior
part he resolved courageously to sacrifice him.
We also daily experience in ourselves various contrary wills. A father sending his son
either to court or to his studies, does not deny tears to his departure, testifying, that though
47
according to his superior part, for the child's advancement in virtue, he wills his departure,
yet according to his inferior part he has a repugnance to the separation. Again, though a
girl be married to the contentment of her father and mother, yet when she takes their
blessing she excites their tears, in such sort that though the superior will acquiesces in the
departure, yet the inferior shows resistance. We must not hence infer that a man has two
souls or two natures, as the Manicheans dreamed. No, says S. Augustine, in the 8th book,
10th chapter, of his Confessions, "but the will inticed by different baits, moved by different
reasons, seems to be divided in itself while it is pulled two ways, until, making use of its
liberty, it chooses the one or the other: for then the more efficacious will conquers, and
gaining the day, leaves in the soul the feeling of the evil that the struggle caused her, which
we call reluctance (contrecœur)."
But the example of our Saviour is admirable in this point, and being considered it leaves
no further doubt touching the distinction of the superior and inferior part of the soul. For
who amongst theologians knows not that he was perfectly glorious from the instant of his
conception in his virgin-mother's womb, and yet at the same time he was subject to sadness,
grief, and afflictions of heart. Nor must we say he suffered only in the body, or only in the
soul as sensitive, or, which is the same thing, according to sense: for he attests himself that
before he suffered any exterior torment, or saw the tormentors near him, his soul was sor-
rowful even unto death. For which cause he prayed that the cup of his passion might pass
away from him, that is, that he might be excused from drinking it; in which he manifestly
shows the desire of the inferior portion of his soul; which, dwelling upon the sad and agon-
33 Gen. xvii. 17.
34 Ib. xv. 6.
75

9.9 Page 89

▲back to top


Chapter XI. That There Are Two Portions in the Soul, and How.
izing objects of the passion which was prepared for him (the lively image whereof was rep-
resented to his imagination), he desired, by a most reasonable consequence, the deliverance
and escape from them, which he begs from his Father. By this we clearly see that the inferior
part of the soul is not the same thing as the sensitive degree of it, nor the inferior will the
same with the sensitive appetite; for neither the sensitive appetite, nor the soul insomuch
as it is sensitive, is capable of making any demand or prayer, these being acts of the reasonable
48
power; and they are, specially, incapable of speaking to God, an object which the senses
cannot reach, so as to make it known to the appetite. But the same Saviour, having thus ex-
ercised the inferior part, and testified that according to it and its considerations his will in-
clined to the avoidance of the griefs and pains, showed afterwards that he had the superior
part, by which inviolably adhering to the eternal will, and to the decree made by his heavenly
Father, he willingly accepted death, and in spite of the repugnance of the inferior part of
reason, he said: Ah! no, my Father, not my will, but thine be done. When he says my will, he
speaks of his will according to the inferior portion, and inasmuch an he says it voluntarily,
he shows that he has a superior will.
76

9.10 Page 90

▲back to top


Chapter XII. That in These Two Portions of the Soul There Are Four Different…
CHAPTER XII.
THAT IN THESE TWO PORTIONS OF THE SOUL THERE ARE FOUR DIFFERENT
DEGREES OF REASON.
There were three courts in Solomon's temple. One was for the Gentiles and strangers who,
wishing to have recourse to God, went to adore in Jerusalem; the second for the Israelites,
men and women (the separation of men from women not being made by Solomon); the
third for the priests and Levites; and in fine, besides all this, there was the sanctuary or sacred
house, which was open to the high priest only, and that but once a year. Our reason, or, to
speak better, our soul in so far as it is reasonable, is the true temple of the great God, who
there takes up his chief residence. "I sought thee," says S. Augustine, "outside myself, but I
found thee not, because thou art within me." In this mystical temple there are also three
courts, which are three different degrees of reason; in the first we reason according to the
experience of sense, in the second according to human sciences, in the third according to
faith: and in fine, beyond this, there is a certain eminence or supreme point of the reason 49
and spiritual faculty, which is not guided by the light of argument or reasoning, but by a
simple view of the understanding and a simple movement of the will, by which the spirit
bends and submits to the truth and the will of God.
Now this extremity and summit of our soul, this highest point of our spirit, is very nat-
urally represented by the sanctuary or holy place. For, first, in the sanctuary there were no
windows to give light: in this degree of the soul there is no reasoning which illuminates.
Secondly, all the light entered by the door; in this degree of the soul nothing enters but by
faith, which produces, like rays, the sight and the sentiment of the beauty and goodness of
the good pleasure of God. Thirdly, none entered the sanctuary save the high priest; in this
apex of the soul reasoning enters not, but only the high, universal and sovereign feeling that
the divine will ought sovereignly to be loved, approved and embraced, not only in some
particular things but in general for all things, nor generally in all things only, but also par-
ticularly in each thing. Fourthly, the high priest entering into the sanctuary obscured even
that light which came by the door, putting many perfumes into his thurible, the smoke
whereof drove back the rays of light to which the open door gave entrance: and all the light
which is in the supreme part of the soul is in some sort obscured and veiled by the renunci-
ations and resignations which the soul makes, not desiring so much to behold and see the
goodness of the truth and the truth of the goodness presented to her, as to embrace and
adore the same, so that the soul would almost wish to shut her eyes as soon as she begins to
see the dignity of God's will, to the end that not occupying herself further in considering it,
she may more powerfully and perfectly accept it, and by an absolute complacency perfectly
unite and submit herself thereto. Fifthly, to conclude, in the sanctuary was kept the ark of
77

10 Pages 91-100

▲back to top


10.1 Page 91

▲back to top


Chapter XII. That in These Two Portions of the Soul There Are Four Different…
alliance, and in that, or at least adjoining to it, the tables of the law, manna in a golden vessel,
and Aaron's rod which in one night bore flowers and fruit: and in this highest point of the
soul are found: 1. The light of faith, figured by the manna hidden in its vessel, by which we
acquiesce in the truths of the mysteries which we do not understand. 2. The utility of hope,
50
represented by Aaron's flowering and fruitful rod, by which we acquiesce in the promises
of the goods which we see not. 3. The sweetness of holy charity, represented by God's
commandments which charity contains, by which we acquiesce in the union of our spirit
with God's, which we scarcely perceive.
For although faith, hope and charity spread out their divine movements into almost all
the faculties of the soul, as well reasonable as sensitive, reducing and holily subjecting them
to their just authority, yet their special residence, their true and natural dwelling, is in this
supreme region of the soul, from whence as from a happy source of living water, they run
out by divers conduits and brooks upon the inferior parts and faculties.
So that, Theotimus, in the superior part of reason there are two degrees of reason. In
the one those discourses are made which depend on faith and supernatural light, in the
other the simple acquiescings of faith, hope and charity. Saint Paul's soul found itself pressed
by two different desires, the one to be delivered from his body, so as to go to heaven with
Jesus Christ, the other to remain in this world to labour in the conversion of souls; both
these desires were without doubt in the superior part, for they both proceeded from charity,
but his resolution to follow the latter proceeded not from reasoning but from a simple sight,
seeing and loving his master's will, in which the superior point alone of the spirit acquiesced,
putting on one side all that reasoning might conclude.
But if faith, hope and charity be formed by this holy acquiescence in the point of the
spirit, how can reasonings which depend on the light of faith be made in the inferior part
of the soul? As, Theotimus, we see that barristers dispute with many arguments on the acts
and rights of parties to a suit, and that the high parliament or senate settles all the strife by
a positive sentence, though even after this is pronounced the advocates and auditors do not
give up discoursing among themselves the motives parliament may have had:—even so,
after reasoning, and above all the grace of God have persuaded the point and highest part
of the spirit to acquiesce, and make the act of faith after the manner of a sentence or judg-
ment, the understanding does not at once cease discoursing upon that same act of faith
51
already conceived, to consider the motives and reasons thereof. But always the arguments
of theology are stated at the pleading place and bar of the superior portion of the soul, but
the acquiescence is given above, on the bench and tribunal of the point of the spirit. Now,
because the knowledge of these four degrees of the reason is much required for understanding
all treatises on spiritual things, I have thought well to explain it rather fully.
78

10.2 Page 92

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. On the Difference of Loves.
CHAPTER XIII.
ON THE DIFFERENCE OF LOVES.
Love is divided into two species, whereof one is called love of benevolence (or goodwill) the
other of cupidity (convoitise). The love of cupidity is that by which we love something for
the profit we expect from it. Love of benevolence is that by which we love a thing for its own
good. For what other thing is it to have the love of benevolence for any one than to wish
him good.
If he to whom we wish good have it already and possesses it, then we wish it him by the
pleasure and contentment which we have to see him possessed of it, and hence springs the
love of complacency, which is simply an act of the will by which it is joined and united to
the pleasure, content and good of another. But in case he to whom we wish good have not
yet obtained it we desire it him, and hence that love is termed love of desire.
When the love of benevolence is exercised without correspondence on the part of the
beloved, it is called the love of simple benevolence; but when it is practised with mutual
correspondence, it is called the love of friendship. Now mutual correspondence consists in
three things; friends must love one another, know that they love one another, and have
communication, intimacy and familiarity with one another.
If we love a friend without preferring him before others, the friendship is simple; if we
prefer him, then this friendship will be called dilection, as if we said love of election, because
52
we choose this from amongst many things we love, and prefer it.
Again, when by this dilection we do not much prefer one friend before others it is called
simple dilection, but when, on the contrary, we much more esteem and greatly prefer one
friend before others of his kind, then this friendship is called dilection by excellence.
If the esteem and preference of our friend, though great and without equal, do yet enter
into comparison and proportion with others, the friendship will be called eminent dilection,
but if the eminence of it be, beyond proportion and comparison, above every other, then it
is graced with the title of incomparable, sovereign and supereminent dilection, and in a
word it will be charity, which is due to the one God only. And indeed in our language the
words cher, cherement, encherir,35 represent a certain particular esteem, prize or value, so
that as amongst the people the word man is almost appropriated to the male-kind as to the
more excellent sex, and the word adoration is almost exclusively kept for God as for its
proper object, so the name of Charity has been kept for the love of God as for supreme and
sovereign dilection.
35 Meaning dear, dearly, to endear. The Saint's argument cannot be given in English. It rests on the connection
between cher and charité, like the Latin carus and caritas. (Tr.)
79

10.3 Page 93

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That Charity May Be Named Love.
CHAPTER XIV.
THAT CHARITY MAY BE NAMED LOVE.
Origin says somewhere36 that in his opinion the Divine Scripture wishing to hinder the
word love from giving occasion of evil thoughts to the weak, as being more proper to signify
a carnal passion than a spiritual affection, instead of this name of love has used the words
charity and dilection, which are more honest. But S. Augustine having deeply weighed the
use of God's word clearly shows that the name love is no less sacred than the word dilection,
and that the one and the other signify sometimes a holy affection and sometimes also a de- 53
praved passion, alleging to this purpose different passages of Holy Scripture. But the great
S. Denis, as excelling doctor of the proper use of the divine names, goes much further in
favour of the word love, teaching that theologians, that is, the Apostles and their first disciples
(for this saint knew no other theologians) to disabuse the common people, and break down
their error in taking the word love in a profane and carnal sense, more willingly employed
it in divine things than that of dilection; and, though they considered that both might be
used for the same thing, yet some of them were of opinion that the word love was more
proper and suitable to God than the word dilection. Hence the divine Ignatius wrote these
words: "My love is crucified." And as these ancient theologians made use of the word love
in divine things to free it from the taint of impurity of which it was suspected according to
the imagination of the world, so to express human affections they liked to use the word
dilection as exempt from all suspicion of impropriety. Wherefore one of them, as S. Denis
reports, said: "Thy dilection has entered into my soul like the dilection of women."37 In fine
the word love signifies more fervour, efficacy, and activity than that of dilection, so that
amongst the Latins dilection is much less significative than love: "Clodius," says their great
orator, "bears me dilection, and to say it more excellently, he loves me." Therefore the word
love, as the most excellent, has justly been given to charity, as to the chief and most eminent
of all loves; so that for all these reasons, and because I intend to speak of the acts of charity
rather than of its habit, I have entitled this little work, A Treatise of the Love of God.
36 Hom. I. in Can.
37 De Div. Nom. iv. § 12. The reference, of course, is to 2 Kings i. 26. S. Francis is careful to quote S. Denis,
who used the Septuagint text, ἀγάπησις. The Vulgate does not mark the difference. (Tr.)
80

10.4 Page 94

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of The Affinity There Is between God and Man.
CHAPTER XV.
OF THE AFFINITY THERE IS BETWEEN GOD AND MAN.
As soon as man thinks with even a little attention of the divinity, he feels a certain delightful
emotion of the heart, which testifies that God is God of the human heart; and our under-
54
standing is never so filled with pleasure as in this thought of the divinity, the smallest
knowledge of which, as says the prince of philosophers, is worth more than the greatest
knowledge of other things; as the least beam of the sun is more luminous than the greatest
of the moon or stars, yea is more luminous than the moon and stars together. And if some
accident terrifies our heart, it immediately has recourse to the Divinity, protesting thereby
that when all other things fail him, It alone stands his friend, and that when he is in peril,
It only, as his sovereign good, can save and secure him.
This pleasure, this confidence which man's heart naturally has in God, can spring from
no other root than the affinity there is between this divine goodness and man's soul, a great
but secret affinity, an affinity which each one knows but few understand, an affinity which
cannot be denied nor yet be easily sounded. We are created to the image and likeness of
God:—what does this mean but that we have an extreme affinity with his divine majesty?
Our soul is spiritual, indivisible, immortal; understands and wills freely, is capable of
judging, reasoning, knowing, and of having virtues, in which it resembles God. It resides
whole in the whole body, and whole in every part thereof, as the divinity is all in all the
world, and all in every part thereof. Man knows and loves himself by produced and expressed
acts of his understanding and will, which proceeding from the understanding and the will,
and distinct from one another, yet are and remain inseparably united in the soul, and in the
faculties from whence they proceed. So the Son proceeds from the Father as his knowledge
expressed, and the Holy Ghost as love breathed forth and produced from the Father and
the Son, both the Persons being distinct from one another and from the Father, and yet in-
separable and united, or rather one same, sole, simple, and entirely one indivisible divinity.
But besides this affinity of likenesses, there is an incomparable correspondence between
God and man, for their reciprocal perfection: not that God can receive any perfection from
55
man, but because as man cannot be perfected but by the divine goodness, so the divine
goodness can scarcely so well exercise its perfection outside itself, as upon our humanity:
the one has great want and capacity to receive good, the other great abundance and inclina-
tion to bestow it. Nothing is so agreeable to poverty as a liberal abundance, nor to a liberal
abundance as a needy poverty, and by how much the good is more abundant, by so much
more strong is the inclination to pour forth and communicate itself. By how much more
the poor man is in want, so much the more eager is he to receive, as a void is to fill itself.
The meeting then of abundance and indigence is most sweet and agreeable, and one could
scarcely have said whether the abounding good have a greater contentment in spreading
and communicating itself, or the failing and needy good in receiving and in drawing to itself,
81

10.5 Page 95

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of The Affinity There Is between God and Man.
until Our Saviour had told us that it is more blessed to give than to receive.38 Now where
there is more blessedness there is more satisfaction, and therefore the divine goodness receives
greater pleasure in giving than we in receiving.
Mothers' breasts are sometimes so full that they must offer them to some child, and
though the child takes the breast with great avidity, the nurse offers it still more eagerly, the
child pressed by its necessity, and the mother by her abundance.
The sacred spouse wished for the holy kiss of union: O, said she, let him kiss me with
the kiss of his mouth.39 But is there affinity enough, O well-beloved spouse of the well-beloved,
between thee and thy loving one to bring to the union which thou desirest? Yes, says she:
give me it; this kiss of union, O thou dear love of my heart: for thy breasts are better than
wine, smelling sweet of the best ointment. New wine works and boils in itself by virtue of its
goodness, and cannot be contained within the casks; but thy breasts are yet better, they press
thee more strongly, and to draw the children of thy heart to them, they spread a perfume
attractive beyond all the scent of ointments. Thus, Theotimus, our emptiness has need of
56
the divine abundance by reason of its want and necessity, but God's abundance has no need
of our poverty but by reason of the excellency of his perfection and goodness; a goodness
which is not at all bettered by communication, for it acquires nothing in pouring itself out
of itself, on the contrary it gives: but our poverty would remain wanting and miserable, if
it were not enriched by the divine abundance.
Our soul then seeing that nothing can perfectly content her, and that nothing the world
can afford is able to fill her capacity, considering that her understanding has an infinite in-
clination ever to know more, and her will an insatiable appetite to love and find the
good;—has she not reason to cry out: Ah! I am not then made for this world, there is a sov-
ereign good on which I depend, some infinite workman who has placed in me this endless
desire of knowing, and this appetite which cannot be appeased! And therefore I must tend
and extend towards Him, to unite and join myself to the goodness of Him to whom I belong
and whose I am! Such is the affinity between God and man's soul.
38 Acts xx. 35.
39 Cant. i. 1.
82

10.6 Page 96

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That We Have a Natural Inclination to Love God above All …
CHAPTER XVI.
THAT WE HAVE A NATURAL INCLINATION TO LOVE GOD ABOVE ALL
THINGS.
If there could be found any men who were in the integrity of original justice in which Adam
was created, though otherwise not helped by another assistance from God than that which
he affords to each creature, in order that it may be able to do the actions befitting its nature,
such men would not only have an inclination to love God above all things but even naturally
would be able to put into execution so just an inclination. For as this heavenly author and
master of nature co-operates with and lends his strong hand to fire to spring on high, to
water to flow towards the sea, to earth to sink down to its centre and stay there—so having
himself planted in man's heart a special natural inclination not only to love good in general
but to love in particular and above all things his divine goodness which is better and sweeter
than all things—the sweetness of his sovereign providence required that he should contribute
to these blessed men of whom we speak as much help as should be necessary to practise and
effectuate that inclination. This help would be on the one hand natural, as being suitable to
nature, and tending to the love of God as author and sovereign master of nature, and on
the other hand it would be supernatural, because it would correspond not with the simple
nature of man, but with nature adorned, enriched and honoured by original justice, which
is a supernatural quality proceeding from a most special favour of God. But as to the love
above all things which such help would enable these men to practise, it would be called
natural, because virtuous actions take their names from their objects and motives, and this
love of which we speak would only tend to God as acknowledged to be author, lord and
sovereign of every creature by natural light only, and consequently to be amiable and estim-
able above all things by natural inclination and tendency.
And although now our human nature be not endowed with that original soundness and
righteousness which the first man had in his creation, but on the contrary be greatly depraved
by sin, yet still the holy inclination to love God above all things stays with us, as also the
natural light by which we see his sovereign goodness to be more worthy of love than all
things; and it is impossible that one thinking attentively upon God, yea even by natural
reasoning only, should not feel a certain movement of love which the secret inclination of
our nature excites in the bottom of our hearts, by which at the first apprehension of this
chief and sovereign object, the will is taken, and perceives itself stirred up to a complacency
in it.
It happens often amongst partridges that one steals away another's eggs with intention
to sit on them, whether moved by greediness to become a mother, or by a stupidity which
makes them mistake their own, and behold a strange thing, yet well supported by testi-
mony!—the young one which was hatched and nourished under the wings of a stranger
partridge, at the first call of the true mother, who had laid the egg whence she was hatched,
57
58
83

10.7 Page 97

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That We Have a Natural Inclination to Love God above All …
quits the thief-partridge, goes back to the first mother, and puts herself in her brood, from
the correspondence which she has with her first origin. Yet this correspondence appeared
not, but remained secret, shut up and as it were sleeping in the bottom of nature, till it met
with its object; when suddenly excited, and in a sort awakened, it produces its effect, and
turns the young partridge's inclination to its first duty. It is the same, Theotimus, with our
heart, which though it be formed, nourished and bred amongst corporal, base and transitory
things, and in a manner under the wings of nature, notwithstanding, at the first look it
throws on God, at its first knowledge of him, the natural and first inclination to love God
which was dull and imperceptible, awakes in an instant, and suddenly appears as a spark
from amongst the ashes, which touching our will gives it a movement of the supreme love
due to the sovereign and first principle of all things.
84

10.8 Page 98

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. That We Have not Naturally the Power to Love God above All…
CHAPTER XVII.
THAT WE HAVE NOT NATURALLY THE POWER TO LOVE GOD ABOVE ALL
THINGS.
Eagles have a great heart, and much strength of flight, yet they have incomparably more
sight than flight, and extend their vision much quicker and further than their wings. So our
souls animated with a holy natural inclination towards the divinity, have far more light in
the understanding to see how lovable it is than force in the will to love it. Sin has much more
weakened man's will than darkened his intellect, and the rebellion of the sensual appetite,
which we call concupiscence, does indeed disturb the understanding, but still it is against
the will that it principally stirs up sedition and revolt: so that the poor will, already quite
infirm, being shaken with the continual assaults which concupiscence directs against it,
cannot make so great progress in divine love as reason and natural inclination suggest to it
that it should do.
Alas! Theotimus, what fine testimonies not only of a great knowledge of God, but also
of a strong inclination towards him, have been left by those great philosophers, Socrates,
Plato, Trismegistus, Aristotle, Hippocrates, Seneca, Epictetus? Socrates, the most highly
praised amongst them, came to the clear knowledge of the unity of God, and felt in himself
such an inclination to love him, that as S. Augustine testifies, many were of opinion that he
never had any other aim in teaching moral philosophy than to purify minds that they might
better contemplate the sovereign good, which is the simple unity of the Divinity. And as for
Plato, he sufficiently declares himself in his definition of philosophy and of a philosopher;
saying that to do the part of a philosopher is nothing else but to love God, and that a philo-
sopher is no other thing than a lover of God. What shall I say of the great Aristotle, who so
efficaciously proves the unity of God and has spoken so honourably of it in so many places?
But, O eternal God! those great spirits which had so great an inclination to love it, were
all wanting in force and courage to love it well. By visible creatures they have known the
invisible things of God, yea even his eternal power also and divinity, says the Apostle, so that
they are inexcusable. Because that, when they knew God, they have not glorified him as God,
or given thanks.40 They glorified him indeed in some sort, attributing to him sovereign titles
of honour, yet they did not glorify him as they ought, that is, they did not glorify him above
all things; not having the courage to destroy idolatry, but communicating with idolators,
detaining the truth which they knew in injustice, prisoner in their hearts, and preferring the
honour and vain repose of their lives before the honour due unto God, they grew vain in
their knowledge.
Is it not a great pity, Theotimus, to see Socrates, as Plato reports, speak upon his deathbed
concerning the gods as though there had been many, he knowing so well that there was but
56
60
40 Rom. i. 20.
85

10.9 Page 99

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. That We Have not Naturally the Power to Love God above All…
one only? Is it not a thing to be deplored that Plato who understood so clearly the truth of
the divine unity should ordain that sacrifice should be offered to many gods? And is it not
a lamentable thing that Mercury Trismegistus should so basely lament and grieve over the
abolition of idolatry, who on so many occasions had spoken so worthily of the divinity? But
above all I wonder at the poor good man Epictetus, whose words and sentences are so sweet
in our tongue, in the translation which the learned and agreeable pen of the R. F. D. John
of S. Francis, Provincial of the Congregation of the Feuillants in the Gauls, has recently put
before us. For what a pity it is, I pray you, to see this excellent philosopher speak of God
sometimes with such relish, feeling, and zeal that one would have taken him for a Christian
coming from some holy and profound meditation, and yet again from time to time talking
of gods after the Pagan manner! Alas! this good man, who knew so well the unity of God,
and had so much delight in his goodness, why had he not the holy jealousy of the divine
honour, so as not to stumble or dissemble in a matter of so great consequence?
In a word, Theotimus, our wretched nature spoilt by sin, is like palm-trees in this land
of ours, which indeed make some imperfect productions and as it were experiments of fruits,
but to bear entire, ripe and seasoned dates—that is, reserved for hotter climates. For so our
human heart naturally produces certain beginnings of God's love, but to proceed so far as
to love him above all things, which is the true ripeness of the love due unto this supreme
goodness,—this belongs only to hearts animated and assisted with heavenly grace, and which
are in the state of holy charity. This little imperfect love of which nature by itself feels the
stirrings, is but a will without will, a will that would but wills not, a sterile will, which does
not produce true effects, a will sick of the palsy, which sees the healthful pond of holy love,
but has not the strength to throw itself into it. To conclude, this will is an abortion of good
will, which has not the life of generous strength necessary to effectually prefer God before
all things. Whereupon the Apostle speaking in the person of the sinner, cries out: To will
good is present with me, but to accomplish that which is good I find not.41
61
41 Rom. vii. 18.
86

10.10 Page 100

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That the Natural Inclination Which We Have to Love God Is…
CHAPTER XVIII.
THAT THE NATURAL INCLINATION WHICH WE HAVE TO LOVE GOD IS NOT
USELESS.
But seeing we have not power naturally to love God above all things, why have we naturally
an inclination to it? Is not nature vain to incite us to a love which she cannot bestow upon
us? Why does she give us a thirst for a precious water of which she cannot give us to drink?
Ah! Theotimus, how good God has been to us! The perfidy which we committed in offending
him deserved truly that he should have deprived us of all the marks of his benevolence, and
of the favour which he deigned to our nature when he imprinted upon it the light of his divine
countenance, and gave to our hearts the joyfulness of feeling themselves inclined to the love
of the divine goodness: so that the angels seeing this miserable man would have had occasion
to say in pity: Is this the creature of perfect beauty, the joy of all the earth?42
But this infinite clemency could never be so rigorous to the work of his hands; he saw
that we were clothed with flesh a wind which goeth and returneth not,43 and therefore ac-
cording to the bowels of his mercy he would not utterly ruin us, nor deprive us of the sign
of his lost grace, in order that seeing this, and feeling in ourselves this alliance, and this in-
clination to love him, we should strive to do so, that no one might justly say: Who showeth
us good things?44 For though by this sole natural inclination we cannot be so happy as to
love God as we ought, yet if we employed it faithfully, the sweetness of the divine piety would
afford us some assistance, by means of which we might make progress, and if we second
this first assistance the paternal goodness of God would bestow upon us another greater,
and conduct us from good to better in all sweetness, till he brought us to the sovereign love,
to which our natural inclination impels us: since it is certain that to him who is faithful in
a little, and who does what is in his power, the divine benignity never denies its assistance
to advance him more and more.
62
This natural inclination then which we have to love God above all things is not left for
nothing in our hearts: for on God's part it is a handle by which he can hold us and draw us
to himself;—and the divine goodness seems in some sort by this impression to keep our
hearts tied as little birds in a string, by which he can draw us when it pleases his mercy to
take pity upon us—and on our part it is a mark and memorial of our first principle and
Creator, to whose love it moves us, giving us a secret intimation that we belong to his divine
goodness; even as harts upon whom princes have had collars put with their arms, though
afterwards they cause them to be let loose and run at liberty in the forest, do not fail to be
recognized by any one who meets them not only as having been once taken by the prince
42 Lam. ii. 15.
43 Ps. lxxvii. 39.
44 Ps. iv. 6.
87

11 Pages 101-110

▲back to top


11.1 Page 101

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That the Natural Inclination Which We Have to Love God Is…
whose arms they bear, but also as being still reserved for him. And in this way was known
the extreme old age of a hart which according to some historians was taken three hundred
years after the death of Cæsar; because there was found on him a collar with Cæsar's device
upon it, and these words: Cæsar let me go.
In truth the honourable inclination which God has left in our hearts testifies as well to
our friends as to our enemies that we did not only sometime belong to our Creator, but
furthermore, though he has left us and let us go at the mercy of our free will, that we still
appertain to him, and that he has reserved the right of taking us again to himself, to save
us, according as his holy and sweet providence shall require. Hence the royal prophet terms
this inclination not only a light, in that it makes us see whither we are to tend, but also a joy
and gladness,45 for it comforts us when we stray, giving us a hope that he who engraved and
left in us this clear mark of our origin intends also and desires to reduce and bring us back
thither, if we be so happy as to let ourselves be retaken by his divine goodness.
45 Ibid. 7.
88

11.2 Page 102

▲back to top


The Second Book. The History Of The Generation And Heavenly Birth Of Divine…
THE SECOND BOOK.
THE HISTORY OF THE GENERATION AND HEAVENLY BIRTH OF DIVINE
LOVE.
63
89

11.3 Page 103

▲back to top


Chapter I. That the Divine Perfections Are Only a Single But Infinite …
CHAPTER I.
THAT THE DIVINE PERFECTIONS ARE ONLY A SINGLE BUT INFINITE PERFEC-
TION.
When the sun rises red and soon after looks black, or hollow and sunk; or again when it
sets wan, pale, and dull, we say it is a sign of rain. Theotimus, the sun is not red, nor black,
nor grey, nor green: that great luminary is not subject to these vicissitudes and changes of
colour, having for its sole colour its most clear and perpetual light which, unless by miracle,
is invariable. But we use this manner of speaking, because it seems such to us, according to
the variety of vapours interposed between him and our eyes, which make him appear in
different ways.
In like manner we discourse of God, not so much according to what he is in himself, as
according to his works, by means of which we contemplate him; for according to our various
considerations we name him variously, even as though he had a great multitude of different
excellences and perfections. If we regard him inasmuch as he punishes the wicked, we term
him just; if as he delivers sinners from their misery, we proclaim him merciful; since he has
created all things and done many wonders, we name him omnipotent; as exactly fulfilling
his promises we call him true; as ranging all things in so goodly an order we call him most
wise; and thus, continuing and following the variety of his works, we attribute unto him a
great diversity of perfections. But, all the time, in God there is neither variety, nor any dif-
ference whatever of perfections. He is himself one most sole, most simple and most indivis-
ible, unique perfection: for all that is in him is but himself, and all the excellences which we
64
say are in him in so great diversity are really there in a most simple and pure unity. And as
the sun has none of the colours which we ascribe unto it, but one sole most clear light sur-
passing all colour, and giving colour to all colours,—so in God there is not one of those
perfections which we imagine, but an only most pure excellence, which is above all perfection
and gives perfection to all that is perfect. Now to assign a perfect name to this supreme ex-
cellence, which in its most singular unity comprehends, yea surmounts, all excellence, is
not within the reach of the creature, whether human or angelic; for as is said in the Apoca-
lypse: Our Lord has a name which no man knoweth but himself:46 because as he only perfectly
knows his own infinite perfection he also alone can express it by a suitable name. Whence
the ancients have said that no one but God is a true theologian, as none but he can reach
the full knowledge of the infinite greatness of the divine perfection, nor, consequently, rep-
resent it in words. And for this cause, God, answering by the angel Samson's father who
demanded his name, said: Why asketh thou my name which is wonderful?47 As though he
had said: My name may be admired, but never pronounced by creatures; it must be adored,
46 Apoc. xix. 12.
47 Judges xiii. 18.
90

11.4 Page 104

▲back to top


Chapter I. That the Divine Perfections Are Only a Single But Infinite …
but cannot be comprehended save by me, who alone can pronounce the proper name by
which truly and to the life I express my excellence. Our thoughts are too feeble to form a
conception which should represent an excellence so immense, which comprehends in its
most simple and most sole perfection, distinctly and perfectly, all other perfections in a
manner infinitely excellent and eminent, to which our thoughts cannot raise themselves.
We are forced, then, in order to speak in some way of God, to use a great number of names,
saying that he is good, wise, omnipotent, true, just, holy, infinite, immortal, invisible;—and
certainly we speak truly; God is all this together, because he is more than all this, that is to
say, he is all this in so pure, so excellent and so exalted a way, that in one most simple per-
fection he contains the virtue, vigour and excellence of all perfection.
65
In the same way, the manna was one meat, which, containing in itself the taste and virtue
of all other meats, might have been said to have the taste of the lemon, the melon, the grape,
the plum and the pear. Yet one might have said with still greater truth that it had not all
these tastes, but one only, which was its own proper one, but which contained in its unity
all that was agreeable and desirable in all the diversity of other tastes: like the herb dodeca-
theos, which, says Pliny, while curing all diseases, is nor rhubarb, nor senna, nor rose, nor
clove, nor bugloss, but one simple, which in its own proper simplicity contains as much
virtue as all other medicaments together. O abyss of the divine perfections! How admirable
art thou, to possess in one only perfection the excellence of all perfection in so excellent a
manner that none can comprehend it but thyself!
We shall say much, says the Scripture, and yet shall want words: but the sum of our words
is: He is all. What shall we be able to do to glorify him, for the Almighty himself is above all
his works? The Lord is terrible, and exceeding great, and his power is admirable. Glorify the
Lord as much as ever you can, for he will yet far exceed, and his magnificence is wonderful.
Blessing the Lord, exalt him as much as you can: for he is above all praise. When you exalt
him put forth all your strength, and be not weary: for you can never go far enough.48 No,
Theotimus, we can never comprehend him, since, as St. John says, he is greater than our
heart.49 Nevertheless, let every spirit praise the Lord, calling him by all the most eminent
names which may be found, and for the greatest praise we can render unto him let us confess
that never can he be sufficiently praised; and for the most excellent name we can attribute
unto him let us protest that his name surpasses all names, nor can we worthily name him.
48 Ecclus. xliii. 29
49 1 John iii. 20.
91

11.5 Page 105

▲back to top


Chapter II. That in God There Is But One Only Act, Which Is His Own Di…
CHAPTER II.
THAT IN GOD THERE IS BUT ONE ONLY ACT, WHICH IS HIS OWN DIVINITY.
There is in us great diversity of faculties and habits, which produce also a great variety of
actions, and those actions an incomparable multitude of works. Thus differ the faculties of
66
hearing, seeing, tasting, touching, moving, feeding, understanding, willing; and the habits
of speaking, walking, playing, singing, sewing, leaping, swimming: as also the actions and
works which issue from these faculties and habits are greatly different.
But it is not the same in God; for in him there is one only most simple infinite perfection,
and in that perfection one only most sole and most pure act: yea to speak more holily and
sagely, God is one unique and most uniquely sovereign perfection, and this perfection is
one sole most purely simple and most simply pure act, which being no other thing than the
proper divine essence, is consequently ever permanent and eternal. Nevertheless poor
creatures that we are, we talk of God's actions as though daily done in great number and
variety, though we know the contrary. But our weakness, Theotimus, forces us to this; for
our speech can but follow our understanding, and our understanding the customary order
of things with us. Now, as in natural things there is hardly any diversity of works without
diversity of actions, when we behold so many different works, such great variety of produc-
tions, and the innumerable multitude of the effects of the divine might, it seems to us at first
that this diversity is caused by as many acts as we see different effects, and we speak of them
in the same way, in order to speak more at our ease, according to our ordinary practice and
our customary way of understanding things. And indeed we do not in this violate truth, for
though in God there is no multitude of actions, but one sole act which is the divinity itself,
yet this act is so perfect that it comprehends by excellence the force and virtue of all the acts
which would seem requisite to the production of all the different effects we see.
God spoke but one word, and in virtue of that in a moment were made the sun, moon
and that innumerable multitude of stars, with their differences in brightness, motion and
influence. He spoke and they were made.50 A single word of God's filled the air with birds,
67
and the sea with fishes, made spring from the earth all the plants and all the beasts we see.
For although the sacred historian, accommodating himself to our fashion of understanding,
recounts that God often repeated that omnipotent word: Let there be: according to the days
of the world's creation, nevertheless, properly speaking, this word was singularly one; so
that David terms it a breathing or spirit of the divine mouth;51 that is, one single act of his
infinite will, which so powerfully spreads its virtue over the variety of created things, that
it makes us conceive this act as if it were multiplied and diversified into as many differences
as there are in these effects, though in reality it is most simply and singularly one. Thus S.
50 Ps. cxlviii. 5.
51 Ps. xxxii. 6.
92

11.6 Page 106

▲back to top


Chapter II. That in God There Is But One Only Act, Which Is His Own Di…
Chrysostom remarks that what Moses said in many words describing the creation of the
world, the glorious S. John expressed in a single word, saying that by the word, that is by
that eternal word who is the Son of God, all things were made.52
This word then, Theotimus, whilst most simple and most single, produces all the dis-
tinction of things; being invariable produces all fit changes, and, in fine, being permanent
in his eternity gives succession, vicissitude, order, rank and season to all things.
Let us imagine, I pray you, on the one hand, a painter making a picture of Our Saviour's
birth (and I write this in the days dedicated to this holy mystery). Doubtless he will give a
thousand and a thousand touches with his brush, and will take, not only days, but weeks
and months, to perfect this picture, according to the variety of persons and other things he
wants to represent in it. But on the other hand, let us look at a printer of pictures, who
having spread his sheet upon the plate which has the same mystery of the Nativity cut in it,
gives but a single stroke of the press: in this one stroke, Theotimus, he will do all his work,
and instantly he will draw off a picture representing in a fine engraving all that has been
imagined, as sacred history records it. Now though with one movement he performed the
work, yet it contains a great number of personages, and other different things, each one well
68
distinguished in its order, rank, place, distance and proportion: so that one not acquainted
with the secret would be astonished to see proceed from one act so great a variety of effects.
In the same way, Theotimus, nature as a painter multiplies and diversifies her acts according
as the works she has in hand are various, and it takes her a great time to finish great effects,
but God, like the printer, has given being to all the diversity of creatures which have been,
are, or shall be, by one only stroke of his omnipotent will. He draws from his idea as from
a well cut plate, this admirable difference of persons and of things, which succeed one an-
other in seasons, in ages, and in times, each one in its order, as they were to be. For this
sovereign unity of the divine act is opposed to confusion and disorder, and not to distinction
and variety; these on the contrary it purposely uses, to make beauty from them, by reducing
all differences and diversities to proportion, proportion to order, and order to the unity of
the world, which comprises all things created, visible and invisible. All these together are
called the universe, perhaps because all their diversity is reduced to unity as though one said
"unidiverse," that is, one and diverse, one with diversity and diverse with unity.
To sum up, the sovereign divine unity diversifies all, and his permanent eternity gives
change to all things, because the perfection of this unity being above all difference and
variety, it has wherewith to furnish all the diversities of created perfections with their beings,
and contains a virtue to produce them; in sign of which the Scripture having told us that
God in the beginning said: Let there be lights made in the firmament of heaven, to divide the
day and the night, and let them be for signs, and for seasons and for days and years,53—we
52 1 John i. 3.
53 Gen. i. 14.
93

11.7 Page 107

▲back to top


Chapter II. That in God There Is But One Only Act, Which Is His Own Di…
see even to this day a perpetual revolution and succession of times and seasons which shall
continue till the end of the world. So we learn that as he spoke and they were made, so the
single eternal will of his divine Majesty extends its force from age to age, yea to ages of ages,
to all that has been, is, or shall be eternally; and nothing at all has existence save by this sole
69
most singular, most simple, and most eternal divine act, to which be honour and glory.
Amen.
94

11.8 Page 108

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Divine Providence in General.
CHAPTER III.
OF THE DIVINE PROVIDENCE IN GENERAL.
God, then, Theotimus, needs not many acts, because one only divine act of his all-powerful
will, by reason of its infinite perfection, is sufficient to produce all the variety of his works.
But we mortals must treat them after the method and manner of understanding which our
small minds can attain to; according to which, to speak of divine providence, let us consider,
I pray you, the reign of the great Solomon, as a perfect model of the art of good government.
This great king then, knowing by divine inspiration that the commonwealth is to religion
as the body to the soul, and religion to the commonwealth as the soul to the body, disposed
with himself all the parts requisite as well for the establishment of religion as of the common-
wealth. As to religion, he determined that a temple must be erected of such and such length,
breadth, and height, so many porches and courts, so many windows and thus of all the rest
which belonged to the temple; then so many sacrificers, so many singers and other officers
of the temple. And as for the commonwealth he determined to make a royal palace and
court for his majesty, and in this so many stewards, so many gentlemen and other courtiers;
and, for the people, judges, and other magistrates who were to execute justice further, for
the assurance of the kingdom, and securing of the public peace which it enjoyed, he arranged
to have in time of peace a powerful preparation for war, and to this effect two hundred and
fifty commanders in various charges, forty thousand horses, and all that great equipage
which the Scripture and historians record.
Now having disposed and arranged in his mind all the principal things requisite for his
70
kingdom, he came to the act of providing them, and thought out all that was necessary to
construct the temple, to maintain the sacred officers, the royal ministers and magistrates,
and the soldiers whom he intended to appoint, and resolved to send to Hiram for fit timber,
to begin commerce with Peru54 and Ophir, and to take all convenient means to procure all
things requisite for the fulfilment and success of his undertaking. Neither stayed he there,
Theotimus, for having made his project and deliberated with himself about the proper means
to accomplish it, coming to the practice, he actually created officers as he had disposed, and
by a good government caused provision to be made of all things requisite to carry out and
to accomplish their charges. So that having the knowledge of the art of reigning well, he put
it into practice, executed that disposition which he had made in his mind for the creation
of officers of every sort, and provided in effect what he had seen it necessary to provide; and
so his art of government which consisted in disposition, and in providence or foresight, was
put into practice by the creation of officers and by actual government and good management.
But inasmuch as the disposing is useless without the creation of officers, and creation also
vain without that provident foresight which looks after what is needed to maintain the officers
54 According to the opinion not uncommon in. S. Francis's day. (Tr.)
95

11.9 Page 109

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Divine Providence in General.
created or appointed; and since this maintaining by good government is nothing more than
a providence put into effect, therefore not only the disposition but also the creation and
good government of Solomon were called by the name of providence, nor do we indeed say
that a man is provident unless he govern well.
Now, Theotimus, speaking of heavenly things according to the impression we have
gained by the consideration of human things, we affirm that God, having had an eternal
and most perfect knowledge of the art of making the world for his glory, disposed before
all things in his divine understanding all the principal parts of the universe which might
render him honour; to wit, angelic and human nature,—and in the angelic nature the variety
of hierarchies and orders, as the sacred Scripture and holy doctors teach us; as also among
71
men he ordained that there should be that great diversity which we see. Further, in this same
eternity he provided and determined in his mind all the means requisite for men and angels
to come to the end for which he had ordained them, and so made the act of his providence;
and not stopping there, he, in order to effect what he had disposed, really created angels
and men, and to effect his providence he did and does by his government furnish reasonable
creatures with all things necessary to attain glory, so that, to say it in a word, sovereign
providence is no other thing than the act whereby God furnishes men or angels with the
means necessary or useful for the obtaining of their end. But because these means are of
different kinds we also diversify the name of providence, and say that there is one providence
natural, another supernatural, and that the latter again is general, or special, or particular.
And because hereafter, Theotimus, I shall exhort you to unite your will to God's
providence, I would, while on this part of my subject, say a word about natural providence.
God then, willing to provide men with the natural means necessary for them to render glory
to the divine goodness, produced in their behalf all the other animals and the plants, and
to provide for the other animals and the plants, he has produced a variety of lands, seasons,
waters, winds, rains; and, as well for man as for the other things appertaining to him, he
created the elements, the sky, the stars, ordaining in an admirable manner that almost all
creatures should mutually serve one another. Horses carry us, and we care for them; sheep
feed and clothe us, and we feed them; the earth sends vapours to the air; and the air rain to
the earth; the hand serves the foot, and the foot the hand. O! he who should consider this
general commerce and traffic which creatures have together, in so perfect a correspond-
ence—with how strong an amorous passion for this sovereign wisdom would he be moved,
crying out: Thy providence O great and eternal Father governs all things!55 S. Basil and S.
Ambrose in their Hexaemerons, the good Louis of Granada in his introduction to the Creed,
and Louis Richeome in many of his beautiful works, will furnish ample motives to loving
souls profitably to employ this consideration.
72
55 Wisdom xiv. 3.
96

11.10 Page 110

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Divine Providence in General.
Thus, dear Theotimus, this providence reaches all, reigns over all, and reduces all to its
glory. There are indeed fortuitous cases and unexpected accidents, but they are only fortu-
itous or unexpected to us, and are of course most certain to the divine providence, which
foresees them, and directs them to the general good of the universe. These accidents happen
by the concurrence of various causes, which having no natural alliance one with the other,
produce each of them its particular effect, but in such a way that from their concourse there
issues another effect of a different nature, to which though one could not foresee it, all these
different causes contributed. For example, it was reasonable to chastise the curiosity of the
poet Æschylus, who being told by a diviner that he would perish by the fall of some house,
kept himself all that day in the open country, to escape his fate, and as he was standing up
bareheaded, a falcon which held in its claws a tortoise, seeing this bald head, and thinking
it to be the point of a rock, let the tortoise fall upon it, and behold Æschylus dies immediately,
crushed by the house and shell of a tortoise. This was doubtless a fortuitous accident, for
this man did not go into the country to die, but to escape death, nor did the falcon dream
of crushing a poet's head, but the head and shell of a tortoise to make itself master of the
meat within: yet it chanced to the contrary, for the tortoise remained safe and poor Æschylus
was killed. According to us this chance was unexpected, but in respect of the Divine
providence which looked from above and saw the concurrence of causes, it was an act of
justice punishing the superstition of the man. The adventures of Joseph of old were admirable
in their variety and the way they passed from one extreme to the other. His brethren who
to ruin him had sold him, were amazed to see that he had become viceroy, and were mightily
apprehensive that he remained sensible of the wrong they had done him: but no said he:
Not by your counsel was I sent hither, but by the will of God. You thought evil against me,
but God turned it into good.56 You see, Theotimus, the world would have termed this a
chance, or fortuitous event, which Joseph called a design of the sovereign providence, which
73
turns and reduces all to its service. It is the same with all things that happen in the world
yea, even with monstrosities, whose birth makes complete and perfect works more esteemed,
begets admiration, provokes discussion, and many good thoughts; in a word they are in the
world as the shades in pictures, which give grace and seem to bring out the colours.
56 Gen. xlv. 8; l. 20.
97

12 Pages 111-120

▲back to top


12.1 Page 111

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Supernatural Providence Which God Uses towards Reasonable…
CHAPTER IV.
OF THE SUPERNATURAL PROVIDENCE WHICH GOD USES TOWARDS REAS-
ONABLE CREATURES
All God's works are ordained to the salvation of men and angels; and the order of his
providence is this, as far as, by attention to the Holy Scriptures and the doctrine of the
Fathers, we are able to discover and our weakness permits us to describe it.
God knew from all eternity that he could make an innumerable multitude of creatures
with divers perfections and qualities, to whom he might communicate himself, and consid-
ering that amongst all the different communications there was none so excellent as that of
uniting himself to some created nature, in such sort that the creature might be engrafted
and implanted in the divinity, and become one single person with it, his infinite goodness,
which of itself and by itself tends towards communication, resolved and determined to
communicate himself in this manner. So that, as eternally there is an essential communication
in God by which the Father communicates all his infinite and indivisible divinity to the Son
in producing him, and the Father and the Son together producing the Holy Ghost commu-
nicate to him also their own singular divinity;—so this sovereign sweetness was so perfectly
communicated externally to a creature, that the created nature and the divinity, retaining
each of them its own properties, were notwithstanding so united together that they were
74
but one same person.
Now of all the creatures which that sovereign omnipotence could produce, he thought
good to make choice of the same humanity which afterwards in effect was united to the
person of God the Son; to which he destined that incomparable honour of personal union
with his divine Majesty, to the end that for all eternity it might enjoy by excellence the
treasures of his infinite glory. Then having selected for this happiness the sacred humanity
of our Saviour, the supreme providence decreed not to restrain his goodness to the only
person of his well-beloved Son, but for his sake to pour it out upon divers other creatures,
and out of the mass of that innumerable quantity of things which he could produce, he
chose to create men and angels to accompany his Son, participate in his graces and glory,
adore and praise him for ever. And inasmuch as he saw that he could in various manners
form the humanity of this Son, while making him true man, as for example by creating him
out of nothing, not only in regard of the soul but also in regard of the body; or again by
forming the body of some previously existing matter as he did that of Adam and Eve, or by
way of ordinary human birth, or finally by extraordinary birth from a woman without man,
he determined that the work should be effected by the last way, and of all the women he
might have chosen to this end he made choice of the most holy virgin Our Lady, through
whom the Saviour of our souls should not only be man, but a child of the human race.
Furthermore the sacred providence determined to produce all other things as well nat-
ural as supernatural in behalf of Our Saviour, in order that angels and men might, by serving
98

12.2 Page 112

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Supernatural Providence Which God Uses towards Reasonable…
him, share in his glory; on which account, although God willed to create both angels and
men with free-will, free with a true freedom to choose evil or good, still, to show that on the
part of the divine goodness they were dedicated to good and to glory, he created them all
in original justice, which is no other thing than a most sweet love, which disposed, turned
and set them forward towards eternal felicity.
But because this supreme wisdom had determined so to temper this original love with
the will of his creatures that love should not force the will but should leave it in its freedom,
75
he foresaw that a part, yet the less part, of the angelic nature, voluntarily quitting holy love,
would consequently lose glory. And because the angelic nature could only commit this sin
by an express malice, without temptation or any motive which could excuse them, and on
the other hand the far greater part of that same nature would remain constant in the service
of their Saviour,—therefore God, who had so amply glorified his mercy in the work of the
creation of angels, would also magnify his justice, and in the fury of his indignation resolved
for ever to abandon that woful and accursed troop of traitors, who in the fury of their rebel-
lion had so villanously abandoned him.
He also clearly foresaw that the first man would abuse his liberty and forsaking grace
would lose glory, yet would he not treat human nature so rigorously as he determined to
treat the angelic. It was human nature of which he had determined to take a blessed portion
to unite it to his divinity. He saw that it was a feeble nature, a wind which goeth and returneth
not,57 that is, which is dissipated as it goes. He had regard to the surprise by which the malign
and perverse Satan had taken the first man, and to the greatness of the temptation which
ruined him. He saw that all the race of men was perishing by the fault of one only, so that
for these reasons he beheld our nature with the eye of pity and resolved to admit it to his
mercy.
But in order that the sweetness of his mercy might be adorned with the beauty of his
justice, he determined to save man by way of a rigorous redemption. And as this could not
properly be done but by his Son, he settled that he should redeem man not only by one of
his amorous actions, which would have been perfectly sufficient to ransom a million million
of worlds: but also by all the innumerable amorous actions and dolorous passions which he
would perform or suffer till death, and the death of the cross, to which he destined him. He
willed that thus he should make himself the companion of our miseries to make us afterwards
companions of his glory, showing thereby the riches of his goodness, by this copious,
abundant, superabundant, magnificent and excessive redemption, which has gained for us,
76
and as it were reconquered for us, all the means necessary to attain glory, so that no man
can ever complain as though the divine mercy were wanting to any one.
57 Ps. lxxvii. 39.
99

12.3 Page 113

▲back to top


Chapter V. That Heavenly Providence Has Provided Men with a Most Abundant…
CHAPTER V.
THAT HEAVENLY PROVIDENCE HAS PROVIDED MEN WITH A MOST
ABUNDANT REDEMPTION.
Now when saying, Theotimus, that God had seen and willed first one thing and then secondly
another, observing an order in his wills: I meant this in the sense I declared before, namely,
that though all this passed in a most singular and simple act, yet in that act the order, dis-
tinction and dependence of things were no less observed than if there had been indeed sev-
eral acts in the understanding and will of God. And since every well-ordered will which
determines itself to love several objects equally present, loves better and above all the rest
that which is most lovable; it follows that the sovereign Providence, making his eternal
purpose and design of all that he would produce, first willed and preferred by excellence
the most amiable object of his love which is Our Saviour; and then other creatures in order,
according as they more or less belong to the service, honours and glory of him.
Thus were all things made for that divine man, who for this cause is called the first-born
of every creature:58 possessed by the divine majesty in the beginning of his ways, before he
made anything from the beginning.59 For in him were all things created in heaven, and on
earth, visible, and invisible, whether thrones, or dominations, or principalities, or powers: all
things were created by him and in him: And he is the head of the body, the church, who is the
beginning, the first-born from among the dead: that in all things he may hold the primacy.60
The principal reason of planting the vine is the fruit, and therefore the fruit is the first thing
desired and aimed at, though the leaves and the buds are first produced. So our great Saviour
77
was the first in the divine intention, and in that eternal project which the divine providence
made of the production of creatures, and in view of this desired fruit the vine of the universe
was planted, and the succession of many generations established, which as leaves or blossoms
proceed from it as forerunners and fit preparatives for the production of that grape which
the sacred spouse so much praises in the Canticles, and the juice of which rejoices God and
men.
But now, my Theotimus, who can doubt of the abundance of the means of salvation,
since we have so great a Saviour, in consideration of whom we have been made, and by
whose merits we have been ransomed. For he died for all because all were dead, and his
mercy was more salutary to buy back the race of men than Adam's misery was to ruin it.
Indeed Adam's sin was so far from overwhelming the divine benignity that on the contrary
it excited and provoked it. So that by a most sweet and most loving reaction and struggle,
it received vigour from its adversary's presence, and as if re-collecting its forces for victory,
58 Col. i. 15.
59 Prov. viii. 22.
60 Col. i. 16.
100

12.4 Page 114

▲back to top


Chapter V. That Heavenly Providence Has Provided Men with a Most Abundant…
it made grace to superabound where sin had abounded.61 Whence the holy Church by a pious
excess of admiration cries out upon Easter-eve: "O truly necessary sin of Adam which was
blotted out by the death of Jesus Christ! O blessed fault, which merited to have such and so
great a Redeemer!" Truly, Theotimus, we may say as did he of old, "we were ruined had we
not been undone:" that is, ruin brought us profit, since in effect human nature has received
more graces by its Saviour redeeming, than ever it would have received by Adam's innocence,
if he had persevered therein.
For though the divine Providence has left in man deep marks of his severity, yea, even
amidst the very grace of his mercy, as for example the necessity of dying, diseases, labours,
the rebellion of sensuality,—yet the divine favour floating as it were over all this, takes
pleasure in turning these miseries to the greater profit of those who love him, making patience
spring from labours, contempt of the world from the necessity of death, a thousand victories
78
from out of concupiscence; and, as the rainbow touching the thorn aspalathus makes it
more odoriferous than the lily, so Our Saviour's Redemption touching our miseries, makes
them more beneficial and worthy of love than original innocence could ever have been. I
say to you, says Our Saviour, there shall be joy in heaven upon one sinner that doth penance,
more than upon ninety-nine just who need not penance,62 and so the state of redemption is
a hundred times better than that of innocence. Verily by the watering of Our Saviour's blood
made with the hyssop of the cross, we have been replaced in a whiteness incomparably more
excellent than the snow of innocence. We come out, like Naaman, from the stream of salva-
tion more pure and clean than if we had never been leprous, to the end that the divine
Majesty, as he has ordained also for us, should not be overcome by evil, but overcome evil by
good,63 that mercy (as a sacred oil) should keep itself above judgment,64 and his tender
mercies be over all his works.65
61 Rom. v. 20.
62 Luke xv. 7.
63 Rom. xii. 21.
64 James ii. 13.
65 Ps. cxliv. 9.
101

12.5 Page 115

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of Certain Special Favours Exercised by the Divine Providence…
CHAPTER VI.
OF CERTAIN SPECIAL FAVOURS EXERCISED BY THE DIVINE PROVIDENCE
IN THE REDEMPTION OF MAN.
God indeed shows to admiration the incomprehensible riches of his power in this great
variety of things which we see in nature, yet he makes the infinite treasures of his goodness
still more magnificently appear in the incomparable variety of the goods which we acknow-
ledge in grace. For, Theotimus, he was not content, in the holy excess of his mercy, with
sending to his people, that is, to mankind, a general and universal redemption, by means
whereof every one might be saved, but he has diversified it in so many ways, that while his
liberality shines in all this variety, this variety reciprocally embellishes his liberality.
And thus he first of all destined for his most holy Mother a favour worthy of the love
of a Son who, being all wise, all mighty, and all good, wished to prepare a mother to his
liking; and therefore he willed his redemption to be applied to her after the manner of a
preserving remedy, that the sin which was spreading from generation to generation should
not reach her. She then was so excellently redeemed, that though when the time came, the
torrent of original iniquity rushed to pour its unhappy waves over her conception, with as
much impetuosity as it had done on that of the other daughters of Adam; yet when it reached
there it passed not beyond, but stopped, as did anciently the Jordan in the time of Josue,
and for the same respect: for this river held its stream in reverence for the passage of the
Ark of Alliance; and original sin drew back its waters, revering and dreading the presence
of the true Tabernacle of the eternal alliance. In this way then God turned away all captivity
from his glorious Mother, giving her the blessing of both the states of human nature; since
she had the innocence which the first Adam had lost, and enjoyed in an excellent sort the
redemption acquired for her. Whence as a garden of election which was to bring forth the
fruit of life, she was made to flourish in all sorts of perfections; this son of eternal love having
thus clothed his mother in gilded clothing, surrounded with variety,66 that she might be the
queen of his right hand, that is to say, the first of all the elect to enjoy the delights of God's
right hand:67 so that this sacred mother as being altogether reserved for her son, was by him
redeemed not only from damnation but also from all peril of damnation, he giving her grace
and the perfection of grace, so that she went like a lovely dawn, which, beginning to break,
increases continually in brightness till perfect daylight. Admirable redemption! master-piece
of the redeemer! and first of all redemptions! by which the son with a truly filial heart pre-
venting his mother with the blessings of sweetness, preserved her not only from sin as he did
the angels, but also from all danger of sin and from everything that might divert or retard
her in the exercise of holy love. And he protests that amongst all the reasonable creatures
79
80
66 Ps. xliv. 10.
67 Ps. xv. 11.
102

12.6 Page 116

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of Certain Special Favours Exercised by the Divine Providence…
he has chosen, this mother is his one dove, his all perfect one, his all dear love, beyond all
likeness and all comparison.
God also appointed other favours for a small number of rare creatures whom he would
preserve from the peril of damnation, as is certain of S. John Baptist and very probable of
Jeremias and some others, whom the Divine providence seized upon in their mother's womb,
and thereupon established them in the perpetuity of his grace, that they might remain firm
in his love, though subject to checks and venial sins, which are contrary to the perfection
of love though not to love itself. And these souls in comparison with others, are as queens,
ever crowned with charity, holding the principal place in the love of their Saviour next to
his mother, who is queen of queens, a queen crowned not only with love but with the per-
fection of love, yea, what is yet more, crowned with her own Son, the sovereign object of
love, since children are the crown of their father and mother.
There are yet other souls whom God determined for a time to leave exposed to the
danger, not of losing their salvation, but yet of losing his love; yea he permitted them actually
to lose it, not assuring them love for the whole time of their life, but only for the end of it
and for a certain time preceding. Such were the Apostles, David, Magdalen and many others,
who for a time remained out of God's grace, but in the end being once for all converted were
confirmed in grace until death; so that though from that time they continued subject to
some imperfections, yet were they exempt from all mortal sin, and consequently from danger
of losing the divine love, and were sacred spouses of the heavenly bridegroom. And they
were indeed adorned with a wedding garment of his most holy love, yet they were not
crowned because a crown is an ornament of the head, that is, of the chief part of a person;
now the first part of the life of this rank of souls having been subject to earthly love, they
were not to be adorned with the crown of heavenly love, but it is sufficient for them to wear
the robe, which fits them for the marriage bed of the heavenly spouse, and for being eternally
happy with him.
81
103

12.7 Page 117

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How Admirable the Divine Providence Is in the Diversity of…
CHAPTER VII.
HOW ADMIRABLE THE DIVINE PROVIDENCE IS IN THE DIVERSITY OF GRACES
GIVEN TO MEN.
There was then in the eternal providence an incomparable privilege for the queen of queens,
mother of fair love, and most singularly all perfect. There were also for certain others some
special favours. But after this the sovereign goodness poured an abundance of graces and
benedictions over the whole race of mankind and upon the angels, with which all were
watered as with a rain that falleth on the just and unjust, all were illuminated as with a light
that enlighteneth every man coming into this world; every one received his portion as of
seed, which falls not only upon the good ground but upon the highway, amongst thorns,
and upon rocks, that all might be inexcusable before the Redeemer, if they employ not this
most abundant redemption for their salvation.
But still, Theotimus, although this most abundant sufficiency of grace is thus poured
out over all human nature, and although in this we are all equal that a rich abundance of
benedictions is offered to us all, yet the variety of these favours is so great, that one cannot
say whether the greatness of all these graces in so great a diversity, or the diversity in such
greatness, is more admirable. For who sees not that the means of salvation amongst Chris-
tians are greater and more efficacious than amongst barbarians, and again that amongst
Christians there are people and towns where the pastors get more fruit, and are more capable?
Now to deny that these exterior means were benefits of the divine providence, or to doubt
whether they did avail to the salvation and perfection of souls, were to be ungrateful to the
divine goodness, and to belie certain experience, by which we see that ordinarily where these
exterior helps abound, the interior are more efficacious and succeed better.
In truth, as we see that there are never found two men perfectly resembling one another
in natural gifts, so are there never found any wholly equal in supernatural ones. The angels,
82
as the great S. Augustine and S. Thomas assure us, received grace according to the variety
of their natural conditions; now they are all either of a different species or at least of a different
condition, since they are distinguished one from another; therefore as many angels as there
are, so many different graces are there. And though grace is not given to men according to
their natural conditions, yet the divine sweetness rejoicing, and as one would say exulting,
in the production of graces, infinitely diversifies them, to the end that out of this variety the
fair enamel of his redemption and mercy may appear: whence the church upon the feast of
every Confessor and Bishop sings "There was not found the like to him." And as in heaven
no one knows the new name, save him that receives it,68 because each one of the blessed
has his own apart, according to the new being of glory which he acquires; similarly on earth
every one receives a grace so special that all are different. Our Saviour also compares his
68 Apoc. ii. 17.
104

12.8 Page 118

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How Admirable the Divine Providence Is in the Diversity of…
grace to pearls, which as Pliny says are otherwise called unities, because each one of them
is so singular in its qualities that two of them are never found perfectly alike; and as one star
differeth from another in glory,69 so shall men be different from one another in glory, an
evident sign that they will have been so in grace. Now this variety in grace, or this grace in
variety, composes a most sacred beauty and most sweet harmony, rejoicing all the holy city
of the heavenly Jerusalem.
But we must be very careful never to make inquiry why the supreme wisdom bestows
a grace rather upon one than another, nor why it makes its favours abound rather in one
behalf than another. No, Theotimus, never enter into this curiosity, for having all of us
sufficiently, yea abundantly, that which is requisite to salvation, what reason can any creature
living have to complain if it please God to bestow his graces more amply upon one than
another? If one should ask why God made melons larger than strawberries, or lilies larger
than violets, why the rosemary is not a rose, or why the pink is not a marigold, why the
peacock is more beautiful than a bat, or why the fig is sweet and the lemon acid,—one would
laugh at his question, and say: poor man, since the beauty of the world requires variety it is
necessary there should be difference and inequality in things, and that the one should not
83
be the other. That is why some things are little, others big, some bitter, others sweet, the one
more, the other less beautiful. Now it is the same in supernatural things. Every one hath his
proper gift from God; one after this manner, and another after that,70 says the Holy Ghost.
It is then an impertinence to search out why S. Paul had not the grace of S. Peter, or S. Peter
that of S. Paul; why S. Antony was not S. Athanasius, or S. Athanasius S. Jerome; for one
would answer to these inquiries that the church is a garden diapered with innumerable
flowers; it is necessary then they should be of various sizes, various colours, various odours,
in fine of different perfections. All have their price, their charm and their colour, and all of
them in the collection of their differences make up a most grateful perfection of beauty.
69 1 Cor. xv. 41.
70 1 Cor. vii. 7.
105

12.9 Page 119

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Much God Desires We Should Love Him.
CHAPTER VIII.
HOW MUCH GOD DESIRES WE SHOULD LOVE HIM.
Although our Saviour's redemption is applied to us in as many different manners as there
are souls, yet still, love is the universal means of salvation which mingles with everything,
and without which nothing is profitable, as we shall show elsewhere. The Cherubim were
placed at the gate of the earthly paradise with their flaming sword, to teach us that no one
shall enter into the heavenly paradise who is not pierced through with the sword of love.
For this cause, Theotimus, the sweet Jesus who bought us with his blood, is infinitely desirous
that we should love him that we may eternally be saved, and desires we may be saved that
we may love him eternally, his love tending to our salvation and our salvation to his love.
Ah! said he: I am come to cast fire on the earth; and what will I but that it be kindled?71 But
to set out more to the life the ardour of this desire, he in admirable terms requires this love
from us. Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart, and with thy whole soul, and 84
with thy whole mind. This is the greatest and the first commandment.72 Good God! Theotimus,
how amorous the divine heart is of our love. Would it not have sufficed to publish a permis-
sion giving us leave to love him, as Laban permitted Jacob to love his fair Rachel, and to
gain her by services? Ah no! he makes a stronger declaration of his passionate love of us,
and commands us to love him with all our power, lest the consideration of his majesty and
our misery, which make so great a distance and inequality between us, or some other pretext,
might divert us from his love. In this, Theotimus, he well shows that he did not leave in us
for nothing the natural inclination to love him, for to the end it may not be idle, he urges
us by this general commandment to employ it, and that this commandment may be effected,
he leaves no living man without furnishing him abundantly with all means requisite thereto.
The visible sun touches everything with its vivifying heat, and as the universal lover of in-
ferior things, imparts to them the vigour requisite to produce, and even so the divine
goodness animates all souls and encourages all hearts to its love, none being excluded from
its heat. Eternal wisdom, says Solomon, preacheth abroad, she uttereth her voice in the streets:
At the head of multitudes she crieth out, in the entrance of the gates of the city she uttereth
her words, saying: O children, how long will you love childishness, and fools covet those things
which are hurtful to themselves, and the unwise hate knowledge? Turn ye at my reproof: behold
I will utter my spirit to you, and will show you my words.73 And the same wisdom continues
in Ezechiel saying: Our iniquities and our sins are upon us, and we pine away in them: how
then can we live? Say to them: As I live, saith the Lord God, I desire not the death of the wicked,
71 Luke xii. 49.
72 Matt. xxii. 37, 38.
73 Prov. i. 20, 21, 22, 23.
106

12.10 Page 120

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Much God Desires We Should Love Him.
but that the wicked turn from his way, and live.74 Now to live according to God is to love,
and he that loveth not abideth in death.75 See now, Theotimus, whether God does not desire
we should love him!
But he is not content with announcing thus publicly his extreme desire to be loved, so
that every one may have a share in his sweet invitation, but he goes even from door to door,
knocking and protesting that, if any man shall hear my voice, and open to me the door, I will
come in to him, and will sup with him, and he with me:76 that is, he will testify all sorts of
good will towards him.
Now what does all this mean, Theotimus, except that God does not only give us a simple
sufficiency of means to love him, and in loving him to save ourselves, but also a rich, ample
and magnificent sufficiency, and such as ought to be expected from so great a bounty as his.
The great Apostle speaking to obstinate sinners: Despisest thou, says he, the riches of his
goodness, and patience, and long-suffering? Knowest thou not that the benignity of God
leadeth thee to penance? But according to thy hardness and impenitent heart, thou treasurest
up to thyself wrath, against the day of wrath and revelation of the just judgment of God.77
My dear Theotimus, God does not therefore employ a simple sufficiency of remedies to
convert the obstinate, but uses to this end the riches of his goodness. The Apostle, as you
see, opposes the riches of God's goodness against the treasures of the impenitent heart's
malice, and says that the malicious heart is so rich in iniquity that he despises even the riches
of the mildness by which God leads him to repentance; and mark that the obstinate man
not only contemns the riches of God's goodness, but also the riches which lead to penance,
riches whereof one can scarcely be ignorant. Verily this rich, full and plenteous sufficiency
of means which God freely bestows upon sinners to love him appears almost everywhere
in the Scriptures. Behold this divine lover at the gate, he does not simply knock, but stands
knocking; he calls the soul, come, arise, make haste, my love,78 and puts his hand into the
lock to try whether he cannot open it. If he uttereth his voice in the streets he does not simply
utter it, but he goes crying out, that is, he continues to cry out. When he proclaims that
every one must be converted, he thinks he has never repeated it sufficiently. Be converted,
do penance, return to me, live, why dost thou die, O house of Israel?79 In a word this heavenly
Saviour forgets nothing to show that his mercies are above all his works, that his mercy
surpasses his judgment, that his redemption is copious, that his love is infinite, and, as the
85
86
74 Ezech. xxxiii. 10, 12.
75 1 John iii. 14.
76 Apoc. iii. 20.
77 Rom. ii. 4., 5.
78 Cant. ii. 16.
79 Ezech. xviii. 30.
107

13 Pages 121-130

▲back to top


13.1 Page 121

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Much God Desires We Should Love Him.
Apostle says, that he is rich in mercy, and consequently he will have all men to be saved; not
willing that any should perish.80
80 1 Tim. ii. 4.
108

13.2 Page 122

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How the Eternal Love of God Prevents Our Hearts with His Inspirations…
CHAPTER IX.
HOW THE ETERNAL LOVE OF GOD PREVENTS OUR HEARTS WITH HIS IN-
SPIRATIONS IN ORDER THAT WE MAY LOVE HIM.
I have loved thee with an everlasting love, therefore have I drawn thee, taking pity on thee.
And I will build thee again, and thou shalt be built, O virgin of Israel.81 These are the words
of God, by which he promises that the Saviour coming into the world shall establish a new
kingdom in his Church, which shall be his virgin-spouse, and true spiritual Israelite.
Now as you see, Theotimus, it was not by the works of justice, which we have done, but
according to his mercy he saved us,82 by that ancient, yea, eternal, charity which moved his
divine Providence to draw us unto him. No man can come to me except the Father, who hath
sent me, draw him.83 For if the Father had not drawn us we had never come to the Son, our
Saviour, nor consequently to salvation.
There are certain birds, Theotimus, which Aristotle calls apodes,84 because having ex-
tremely short legs, and feeble feet, they use them no more than if they had none. And if ever
they light upon the ground they must remain there, so that they can never take flight again
of their own power, because having no use of their legs or feet, they have therefore no power
to move and start themselves into the air: hence they remain there motionless, and die, unless
some wind, propitious to their impotence, sending out its blasts upon the face of the earth,
happen to seize upon and bear them up, as it does many other things. If this happen, and
87
they make use of their wings to correspond with this first start and motion which the wind
gives them, it also continues its assistance to them, bringing them by little and little into
flight.
Theotimus, the angels are like to those birds, which for their beauty and rarity are called
birds-of-paradise, never seen on earth but dead. For those heavenly spirits had no sooner
forsaken divine love to attach themselves to self-love, than suddenly they fell as dead, buried
in hell, seeing that the same effect which death has on men, separating them everlastingly
from this mortal life, the same had the angels' fall on them, excluding them for ever from
eternal life. But we mortals rather resemble apodes: for if it chance that we, quitting the air
of holy divine love, fall upon earth and adhere to creatures, which we do as often as we offend
God, we die indeed, yet not so absolute a death but that there remains in us a little movement,
besides our legs and feet, namely, some weak affections, which enable us to make some essays
of love, though so weakly, that in truth we are impotent of ourselves to detach our hearts
81 Jerem. xxxi. 3.
82 Titus iii. 5.
83 John vi. 44.
84 i.e., Footless. [Tr.]
109

13.3 Page 123

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How the Eternal Love of God Prevents Our Hearts with His Inspirations…
from sin, or start ourselves again in the flight of sacred love, which, wretches that we are,
we have perfidiously and voluntarily forsaken.
And truly we should well deserve to remain abandoned of God, when with this disloyalty
we have thus abandoned him. But his eternal charity does not often permit his justice to
use this chastisement, but rather, exciting his compassion, it provokes him to reclaim us
from our misery, which he does by sending us the favourable wind of his most holy inspir-
ations, which, blowing upon our hearts with a gentle violence, seizes and moves them,
raising our thoughts, and moving our affections into the air of divine love.
Now this first stirring or motion which God causes in our hearts to incite them to their
own good, is effected indeed in us but not by us; for it comes unexpectedly, before we have
either thought of it or been able to think of it, seeing we are not sufficient to think anything
towards our salvation of ourselves as of ourselves, but our sufficiency is from God,85 who did
not only love us before we were, but also to the end we might be, and might be saints. For
which cause he prevents us with the blessings of his fatherly sweetness, and excites our souls,
88
in order to bring them to holy repentance and conversion. See, I pray you, Theotimus, the
prince of the Apostles, stupefied with sin in the sad night of his Master's passion; he no more
thought of sorrowing for his sin, than though he had never known his heavenly Saviour.
And as a miserable apode fallen to earth, he would never have been raised, had not the cock,
as an instrument of divine providence, struck his ears with its voice, at the same instant in
which his sweet Redeemer casting upon him a gracious look, like a dart of love, transpierced
that heart of stone, which afterwards sent forth water in such abundance, like the ancient
rock smitten by Moses in the desert. But look again and see this holy Apostle sleeping in
Herod's prison, bound with two chains: he is there in quality of a martyr, and nevertheless
he represents the poor man who sleeps amid sin, prisoner and slave to Satan. Alas! who will
deliver him? The angel descends from heaven, and striking the great Saint Peter, the prisoner,
upon the side, awakens him, saying: Arise quickly! So the inspiration comes from heaven
like an angel, and striking upon the poor sinner's heart, stirs him up to rise from his iniquity.
Is it not true then, my dear Theotimus, that this first emotion and shock which the soul
perceives, when God, preventing it with love, awakens it and excites it to forsake sin and
return unto him and not only this shock, but also the whole awakening, is done in us, and
for us, but not by us? We are awake, but have not awakened of ourselves, it is the inspiration
which has awakened us, and to awaken us has shaken and moved us. I slept, says that devout
spouse, but my beloved, who is my heart, watched. Ah! see that it is he who awakens me,
calling me by the name of our loves, and I know well by his voice that it is he. It is unawares
85 2 Cor. iii. 5.
110

13.4 Page 124

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How the Eternal Love of God Prevents Our Hearts with His Inspirations…
and unexpectedly that God calls and awakens us by his holy inspiration, and in this beginning
of grace we do nothing but feel the touch which God gives, in us, as S. Bernard says, but
without us.
89
111

13.5 Page 125

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Oftentimes Repulse the Inspiration and Refuse to Love…
CHAPTER X.
HOW WE OFTENTIMES REPULSE THE INSPIRATION AND REFUSE TO LOVE
GOD.
Wo to thee, Corozain, wo to thee, Bethsaida: for if in Tyre and Sidon had been wrought the
miracles that have been wrought in you, they had long ago done penance in sackcloth and
ashes.86 Such is the word of Our Saviour. Hark I pray you, Theotimus, how the inhabitants
of Corozain and Bethsaida, instructed in the true religion, and having received favours so
great that they would effectually have converted the pagans themselves, remained nevertheless
obstinate, and never willed to use them, rejecting this holy light by an incomparable rebellion.
Certainly at the day of judgment the Ninivites and the Queen of Saba will rise up against
the Jews, and will convict them as worthy of damnation: because, as to the Ninivites, though
idolators and barbarians, at the voice of Jonas they were converted and did penance; and as
to the Queen of Saba, she, though engaged in the affairs of a kingdom, yet having heard the
renown of Solomon's wisdom, forsook all, to go and hear him. Yet the Jews, hearing with
their ears the heavenly wisdom of the true Solomon, the Saviour of the world; seeing with
their eyes his miracles; touching with their hands his virtues and benefits; ceased not for all
that to be hardened, and to resist the grace which was proffered them. See then again,
Theotimus, how they who had less attractions are brought to penance, and those who had
more remain obdurate: those who have less occasion to come, come to the school of wisdom,
and those who have more, stay in their folly.
Thus will be made the judgment of comparison, as all doctors have remarked, which
can have no foundation save in this, that notwithstanding some have had as many calls as
others have, or more, they will have denied consent to God's mercy, whereas others, assisted
with the like, yea even lesser helps, will have followed the inspiration, betaking themselves
to holy penance. For how could one otherwise reasonably reproach the impenitent with
90
their impenitence, in comparison with such as are converted?
Certainly Our Saviour clearly shows, and all Christians in simplicity understand, that
in this just judgment the Jews shall be condemned in comparison with the Ninivites, because
those have had many favours and yet no love, much assistance and no repentance, these
less favour and more love, less assistance and much penitence.
The great S. Augustine throws a great light on this reasoning, by his own arguments in
Book XII. of the 'City of God,' Chapters vi., vii., viii., ix. For though he refers particularly to
the angels, still he likens men to them in this point.
Now, after having taken, in the sixth chapter, two men, entirely equal in goodness and
in all things, attacked by the same temptation, he presupposes that one resists, the other
gives way to the enemy; then in the ninth chapter, having proved that all the angels were
86 Matt. xi. 21.
112

13.6 Page 126

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Oftentimes Repulse the Inspiration and Refuse to Love…
created in charity, stating further as probable that grace and charity were equal in them all,
he asks how it came to pass that some of them persevered, and made progress in goodness
even to the attaining of glory, while others forsook good to embrace evil unto damnation,
and he answers that no other answer can be rendered, than that the one company persevered
by the grace of their Creator in the chaste love which they received in their creation, the
other, having been good, made themselves bad by their own sole will.
But if it is true, as S. Thomas extremely well proves, that grace was different in the angels
in proportion and according to their natural gifts, the Seraphim must have had a grace in-
comparably more excellent than the simple angels of the last order. How then did it happen
that some of the Seraphim, yea even the first of all, according to the common and most
probable opinion of the ancients, fell, while an innumerable multitude of other angels, in-
ferior in nature and grace, excellently and courageously persevered? How came it to pass
that Lucifer, so excellent by nature and so superexcellent by grace, fell, while so many angels
with less advantages remained upright in their fidelity? Truly those who persevered ought
to render all the praise thereof to God, who of his mercy created and maintained them good.
91
But to whom can Lucifer and all his crew ascribe their fall, if not, as S. Augustine says, to
their own will, which by their liberty divorced them from God's grace that had so sweetly
prevented them? How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer, who didst rise in the morning?87
Who didst come out into this invisible world clothed with original charity as with the begin-
ning of the brightness of a fair day, which was to increase unto the mid-day of eternal glory?
Grace did not fail thee, for thou hadst it, like thy nature, the most excellent of all, but thou
wast wanting to grace. God did not deprive thee of the operation of his love, but thou didst
deprive his love of thy co-operation. God would never have rejected thee if thou hadst not
rejected his love. O all-good God! thou dost not forsake unless forsaken, thou never takest
away thy gifts till we take away our hearts.
We rob God of his right if we attribute to ourselves the glory of our salvation, but we
dishonour his mercy if we say he failed us. If we do not confess his benefits we wrong his
liberality, but we blaspheme his goodness if we deny that he has assisted and succoured us.
In fine, God cries loud and clear in our ears: Destruction is thy own, O Israel: thy help is only
in me.88
87 Isa. xiv. 12.
88 Osee xiii. 9.
113

13.7 Page 127

▲back to top


Chapter XI. That It Is no Fault of the Divine Goodness if We Have not a…
CHAPTER XI.
THAT IT IS NO FAULT OF THE DIVINE GOODNESS IF WE HAVE NOT A MOST
EXCELLENT LOVE.
O God! Theotimus, if we received divine inspirations to the full extent of their virtue, in
how short a time should we make a great progress in sanctity? Be the fountain ever so copious,
its streams enter not into a garden according to their plenty, but according to the littleness
or greatness of the channel by which they are conducted thither. Although the Holy Ghost,
as a spring of living water, flows up to every part of our heart to spread his graces in it, yet
as he will not have them enter without the free consent of our will, he will only pour them
out according to his good pleasure and our own disposition and cooperation, as the Holy
Council says, which also, by reason, as I suppose, of the correspondence between our consent
and grace, calls the reception thereof a voluntary reception.
In this sense S. Paul exhorts us not to receive God's grace in vain.89 For as a sick man,
who having received a draught in his hand did not take it into his stomach, would truly have
received the potion, yet without receiving it, that is, he would have received it in a useless
and fruitless way, so we receive the grace of God in vain, when we receive it at the gate of
our heart, and not within the consent of our heart; for so we receive it without receiving it,
that is, we receive it without fruit, since it is nothing to feel the inspiration without consenting
unto it. And as the sick man who had the potion given into his hand, if he took it not wholly
but only partly, would also have the operation thereof in part only, and not wholly,—so
when God sends a great and mighty inspiration to move us to embrace his holy love, if we
consent not according to its whole extent it will but profit us in the same measure. It happens
that being inspired to do much we consent not to the whole inspiration but only to some
part thereof, as did those good people in the Gospel, who upon the inspiration which Our
Lord gave them to follow him wished to make reservations, the one to go first and bury his
father, the other to go to take leave of his people.
As long as the poor widow had empty vessels, the oil which Eliseus had by prayer mira-
culously multiplied never left off running, but when she had no more vessels to receive it,
it ceased to flow. In the same measure in which our heart dilates itself, or rather in the
measure in which it permits itself to be enlarged and dilated, keeping itself empty by the
simple fact of not refusing consent to the divine mercy, this ever pours forth and ceaselessly
spreads its sacred inspirations, which ever increase and make us increase more and more
in heavenly love; but when there is no more room, that is, when we no longer give consent,
it stops.
How comes it then that we are not so advanced in the love of God as S. Augustine, S.
Francis, S. Catharine of Genoa or S. Frances? Theotimus, it is because God has not given
92
93
89 2 Cor. vi. 1.
114

13.8 Page 128

▲back to top


Chapter XI. That It Is no Fault of the Divine Goodness if We Have not a…
us the grace. But why has he not given us the grace? Because we did not correspond with
his inspirations as we should have done. And why did we not correspond? Because being
free we have herein abused our liberty. But why did we abuse our liberty? Ah! Theotimus,
we must stop there, for, as S. Augustine says, the depravation of our will proceeds from no
cause, but from some deficiency in the agent (cause) who commits the sin. And we must
not expect to be able to give a reason of the fault which occurs in sin, because the fault would
not be a sin if it was not without reason.
The devout Brother Rufinus upon a certain vision which he had of the glory which the
great S. Francis would attain unto by his humility, asked him this question: My dear father,
I beseech you, tell me truly what opinion you have of yourself? The Saint answered: Verily
I hold myself to be the greatest sinner in the world, and the one who serves Our Lord least.
But, Brother Rufinus replied, how can you say this in truth and conscience, seeing that many
others, as we manifestly see, commit many great sins from which, God be thanked, you are
exempt. To which S. Francis answered: If God had favoured those others of whom you speak
with as great mercy as he has favoured me, I am certain, be they ever so bad now, they would
have acknowledged God's gifts far better than I do, and would serve him much better than
I do, and if my God abandoned me I should commit more wickedness than any one else.
You see, Theotimus, the opinion of this man, who indeed was scarcely man, but a seraph
upon earth. I know it was humility that moved him to speak thus of himself, yet nevertheless
he believed for a certain truth that an equal grace granted by an equal mercy might be more
faithfully employed by one sinner than by anothor. Now I hold for an oracle the sentiment
of this great doctor in the science of the saints, who, brought up in the school of the Crucifix,
breathed nothing but the divine inspirations. And this maxim has been praised and repeated
94
by all the most devout who have followed him, many of whom are of opinion that the great
Apostle S. Paul said in the same sense that he was the chief of all sinners.90
The Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa of Jesus, also, in good truth, a quite angelic virgin,
speaking of the prayer of quiet, says these words:—"There are divers souls who come up to
this perfection, but those who pass beyond are a very small number: I know not the cause
of it, certainly the fault is not on God's side, for since his divine majesty aids us and gives
us the grace to arrive at this point, I believe that he would not fail to give us still more if it
were not for our fault, and the impediment which we on our part place." Let us therefore,
Theotimus, be attentive to advance in the love which we owe to God, for that which he bears
us will never fail us.
90 1 Tim. i. 15.
115

13.9 Page 129

▲back to top


Chapter XII. That Divine Inspirations Leave Us in Full Liberty to Follow…
CHAPTER XII.
THAT DIVINE INSPIRATIONS LEAVE US IN FULL LIBERTY TO FOLLOW OR
REPULSE THEM.
I will not here speak, my dear Theotimus, of those miraculous graces which have almost in
an instant transformed wolves into shepherds, rocks into waters, persecutors into preachers.
I leave on one side those all-powerful vocations, and holily violent attractions by which God
has brought some elect souls from the extremity of vice to the extremity of grace, working
as it were in them a certain moral and spiritual transubstantiation: as it happened to the
great Apostle, who of Saul, vessel of persecution, became suddenly Paul, vessel of election.91
We must give a particular rank to those privileged souls in regard of whom it pleased God
to make not the mere outflowing, but the inundation—to exercise, if one may so say, not
the simple liberality and effusion, but the prodigality and profusion of his love. The divine
justice chastises us in this world with punishments which, as they are ordinary, so they remain 95
almost always unknown and imperceptible; sometimes, however, he sends out deluges and
abysses of punishments, to make known and dreaded the severity of his indignation. In like
manner his mercy ordinarily converts and graces souls so sweetly, gently and delicately,
that its movement is scarcely perceived; and yet it happens sometimes that this sovereign
goodness, overflowing its ordinary banks (as a flood swollen and overcharged with the
abundance of waters and breaking out over the plain) makes an outpouring of his graces so
impetuous, though loving, that in a moment he steeps and covers the whole soul with bene-
dictions, in order that the riches of his love may appear, and that as his justice proceeds
commonly by the ordinary way and sometimes by the extraordinary, so his mercy may ex-
ercise liberality upon the common sort of men in the ordinary way, and on some also by
extraordinary ways.
But what are then the ordinary cords whereby the divine providence is accustomed to
draw our hearts to his love? Such truly as he himself marks, describing the means which he
used to draw the people of Israel out of Egypt, and out of the desert, unto the land of
promise. I will draw them, says he by Osee, with the cords of Adam, with the bands of love,92
and of friendship. Doubtless, Theotimus, we are not drawn to God by iron chains, as bulls
and wild oxen, but by enticements, sweet attractions, and holy inspirations, which, in a
word, are the cords of Adam, and of humanity, that is, proportionate and adapted to the
human heart, to which liberty is natural. The band of the human will is delight and pleasure.
We show nuts to a child, says S. Augustine, and he is drawn by his love, he is drawn by the
cords, not of the body, but of the heart. Mark then how the Eternal Father draws us: while
teaching, he delights us, not imposing upon us any necessity; he casts into our hearts delect-
91 Acts ix. 15.
92 Osee xi. 4.
116

13.10 Page 130

▲back to top


Chapter XII. That Divine Inspirations Leave Us in Full Liberty to Follow…
ations and spiritual pleasures as sacred baits, by which he sweetly draws us to take and taste
the sweetness of his doctrine.
In this way then, dearest Theotimus, our free-will is in no way forced or necessitated
by grace, but notwithstanding the all-powerful force of God's merciful hand, which touches,
96
surrounds and ties the soul with such a number of inspirations, invitations and attractions,
this human will remains perfectly free, enfranchised and exempt from every sort of constraint
and necessity. Grace is so gracious, and so graciously seizes our hearts to draw them, that
she noways offends the liberty of our will; she touches powerfully but yet so delicately the
springs of our spirit that our free will suffers no violence from it. Grace has power, not to
force but to entice the heart; she has a holy violence not to violate our liberty but to make
it full of love; she acts strongly, yet so sweetly that our will is not overwhelmed by so
powerful an action; she presses us but does not oppress our liberty; so that under the very
action of her power, we can consent to or resist her movements as we list. But what is as
admirable as it is veritable is, that when our will follows the attractions and consents to the
divine movement, she follows as freely as she resists freely when she does resist, although
the consent to grace depends much more on grace than on the will, while the resistance to
grace depends upon the will only. So sweet is God's hand in the handling of our hearts! So
dexterous is it in communicating unto us its strength without depriving us of liberty, and
in imparting unto us the motion of its power without hindering that of our will! He adjusts
his power to his sweetness in such sort, that as in what regards good his might sweetly gives
us the power, so his sweetness mightily maintains the freedom of the will. If thou didst know
the gift of God, said our Saviour to the Samaritan woman, and who he is that saith to thee,
give me to drink; thou perhaps wouldst have asked of him, and he would have given thee living
water.93 Note, I pray you, Theotimus, Our Saviour's manner of speaking of his attractions.
If thou didst know, he means, the gift of God, thou wouldst without doubt be moved and
attracted to ask the water of eternal life, and perhaps thou wouldst ask it. As though he said:
Thou wouldst have power and wouldst be provoked to ask, yet in no wise be forced or
constrained; but only perhaps thou wouldst have asked, for thy liberty would remain to ask
it or not to ask it. Such are our Saviour's words according to the ordinary edition, and ac-
97
cording to S. Augustine upon S. John.
To conclude, if any one should say that our free-will does not co-operate in consenting
to the grace with which God prevents it, or that it could not reject and deny consent thereto,
he would contradict the whole Scripture, all the ancient Fathers, and experience, and would
be excommunicated by the sacred Council of Trent. But when it is said that we have power
to reject the divine inspirations and motions, it is of course not meant that we can hinder
God from inspiring us or touching our hearts, for as I have already said, that is done in us
93 John iv. 10.
117

14 Pages 131-140

▲back to top


14.1 Page 131

▲back to top


Chapter XII. That Divine Inspirations Leave Us in Full Liberty to Follow…
and yet without us. These are favours which God bestows upon us before we have thought
of them, he awakens us when we sleep, and consequently we find ourselves awake before
we have thought of it; but it is in our power to rise, or not to rise, and though he has awakened
us without us, he will not raise us without us. Now not to rise, and to go to sleep again, is
to resist the call, seeing we are called only to the end we should rise. We cannot hinder the
inspiration from taking us, or consequently from setting us in motion, but if as it drives us
forwards we repulse it by not yielding ourselves to its motion, we then make resistance. So
the wind, having seized upon and raised our apodes, will not bear them very far unless they
display their wings and co-operate, raising themselves aloft and flying in the air, into which
they have been lifted. If, on the contrary, allured may be by some verdure they see upon the
ground, or benumbed by their stay there, in lieu of seconding the wind they keep their wings
folded and cast themselves again upon the earth, they have received indeed the motion of
the wind, but in vain, since they did not help themselves thereby. Theotimus, inspirations
prevent us, and even before they are thought of make themselves felt, but after we have felt
them it is ours either to consent to them so as to second and follow their attractions, or else
to dissent and repulse them. They make themselves felt by us without us, but they do not
make us consent without us.
98
118

14.2 Page 132

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the First Sentiments of Love Which Divine Inspirations…
CHAPTER XIII.
OF THE FIRST SENTIMENTS OF LOVE WHICH DIVINE INSPIRATIONS CAUSE
IN THE SOUL BEFORE SHE HAS FAITH.
The wind that raises the apodes blows first upon their feathers, as the parts most light and
most susceptible of its agitation, by which it gives the beginning of motion to their wings,
extending and displaying them in such sort that they give a hold by which to seize the bird
and waft it into the air. And if they, thus raised, do contribute the motion of their wings to
that of the wind, the same wind that took them will still aid them more and more to fly with
ease. Even so, my dear Theotimus, when the inspiration, as a sacred gale, comes to blow us
forward into the air of holy love, it first takes our will, and by the sentiment of some heavenly
delectation it moves it, extending and unfolding the natural inclination which the will has
to good, so that this same inclination serves as a hold by which to seize our spirit. And all
this, as I have said, is done in us without us, for it is the divine favour that prevents us in
this sort. But if our will thus holily prevented, perceiving the wings of her inclination moved,
displayed, extended, stirred, and agitated, by this heavenly wind, contributes, be it never so
little, its consent—Ah! how happy it is, Theotimus. The same favourable inspiration which
has seized us, mingling its action with our consent, animating our feeble motions with its
vigour, and vivifying our weak cooperation by the power of its operation, will aid, conduct,
and accompany us, from love to love, even unto the act of most holy faith requisite for our
conversion.
True God! Theotimus, what a consolation it is to consider the secret method by which
the Holy Ghost pours into our hearts the first rays and feelings of his light and vital heat!
O Jesus! how delightful a pleasure it is to see celestial love, which is the sun of virtues, as
little by little with a progress which insensibly becomes sensible, it displays its light upon a
soul, and stops not till it has it all covered with the splendour of its presence, giving it at last
the perfect beauty of love's day! O how cheerful, beautiful, sweet and agreeable this daybreak
is! Nevertheless true it is that break of day is either not day, or if it be day, it is but a beginning
99
day, a rising of the day, and rather the infancy of the day than the day itself. In like manner
without doubt these motions of love which forerun the act of faith required for our justific-
ation are either not love properly speaking, or but a beginning and imperfect love. They are
the first verdant buds which the soul, warmed with the heavenly sun, begins, as a mystical
tree, to put forth in springtime, rather presages of fruit than fruit itself.
S. Pachomius then a young soldier and without knowledge of God, enrolled under the
colours of the army which Constantine had levied against the tyrant Maxentius, came, with
the troop to which he belonged, to lodge nigh a little town not far distant from Thebes,
where he, and indeed the whole army, were in extreme want of victuals. The inhabitants of
the little town having understood this, being by good fortune of the faithful of Jesus Christ,
and consequently friendly and charitable to their neighbours, immediately succoured the
119

14.3 Page 133

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the First Sentiments of Love Which Divine Inspirations…
soldiers in their necessities, but with such care, courtesy and love, that Pachomius was struck
with admiration thereat, and asking what nation it was that was so good, amiable and gra-
cious, it was answered him that they were Christians; and inquiring again what law and
manner of life were theirs, he learned that they believed in Jesus Christ the only Son of God,
and did good to all sorts of people, with a firm hope of receiving from God himself an ample
recompense. Alas! Theotimus, the poor Pachomius, though of a good natural disposition,
was as yet asleep in the bed of his infidelity, and behold how upon a sudden God was present
at the gate of his heart, and by the good example of these Christians, as by a sweet voice, he
calls him, awakens him, and gives him the first feelings of the vital heat of his love. For
scarcely had he heard, as I have said, of the sweet law of Our Saviour, than, all filled with a
new light and interior consolation, having retired apart, and mused for a space, he lifted up
his hands towards heaven, and with a profound sigh he said: Lord God, who hast made
heaven and earth, if thou deign to cast thine eyes upon my baseness and misery, and to give
me the knowledge of thy divinity, I promise to serve thee, and obey thy commandments all
100
the days of my life! After this prayer and promise, the love of the true good and of piety so
increased in him, that he ceased not to practise a thousand thousand acts of virtue.
Methinks I see in this example a nightingale which, awaking at the peep of day, begins
to stir, and to stretch itself, unfold its plumes, skip from branch to branch in its grove, and
little by little warble out its delicious wood-music. For did you not note, how the good ex-
ample of the charitable Christians excited and awakened with a sudden start the blessed
Pachomius? Truly this astonished admiration he had was nothing else than his awakening,
in which God touched him, as the sun touches the earth, with a ray of his brightness, which
filled him with a great feeling of spiritual pleasure. For which cause Pachomius shakes
himself loose from distractions, to the end he may with more attention and facility gather
together and relish the grace he has received, withdrawing himself to think thereupon. Then
he extends his heart and hands towards heaven, whither the inspiration is drawing him, and
beginning to display the wings of his affections, flying between diffidence of himself, and
confidence in God, he entones in a humbly amorous air the canticle of his conversion. He
first testifies that he already knows one only God Creator of heaven and earth: but withal
he knows that he does not yet know him sufficiently to serve him as he ought, and therefore
he petitions that a more perfect knowledge may be imparted to him, that thereby he may
come to the perfect service of his divine majesty.
Behold, therefore, I pray you, Theotimus, how gently God moves, strengthening by little
and little the grace of his inspiration in consenting hearts, drawing them after him, as it
were step by step, upon this Jacob's ladder. But what are his drawings? The first, by which
he prevents and awakens us, is done by him in us and without our action; all the others are
120

14.4 Page 134

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the First Sentiments of Love Which Divine Inspirations…
also done by him and in us, but not without our action. Draw me: says the sacred spouse,
we will run after thee to the odour of thy ointments,94 that is, begin thou first: I cannot awake
of myself, I cannot move unless thou move me; but when thou shalt once have given motion,
then, O dear spouse of my heart, we run, we two, thou runnest before me drawing me ever
101
forward, and, as for me, I will follow thee in thy course consenting to thy drawing. But let
no one think that thou draggest me after thee like a forced slave, or a lifeless wagon. Ah! no,
thou drawest me by the odour of thy ointments; though I follow thee, it is not that thou
trailest me but that thou enticest me; thy drawing is mighty, but not violent, since its whole
force lies in its sweetness. Perfumes have no other force to draw men to follow them than
their sweetness, and sweetness—how could it draw but sweetly and delightfully?
94 Cant. i. 3.
121

14.5 Page 135

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. Of the Sentiment of Divine Love Which Is Had by Faith.
CHAPTER XIV.
OF THE SENTIMENT OF DIVINE LOVE WHICH IS HAD BY FAITH.
When God gives us faith he enters into our soul and speaks to our spirit, not by manner of
discourse, but by way of inspiration, proposing in so sweet a manner unto the understanding
that which ought to be believed, that the will receives therefrom a great complacency, so
great indeed that it moves the understanding to consent and yield to truth without any
doubt or distrust, and here lies the marvel: for God proposes the mysteries of faith to our
souls amidst obscurities and darkness, in such sort that we do not see the truths but we only
half-see them.95 It is like what happens sometimes when the face of the earth is covered
with mist so that we cannot see the sun, but only see a little more brightness in the direction
where he is. Then, as one would say, we see it without seeing it; because on the one hand
we see it not so well that we can truly say we see it, yet again we see it not so little that we
can say we do not see it; and this is what we call half-seeing. And yet, when this obscure
light of faith has entered our spirit, not by force of reasoning or show of argument, but solely
by the sweetness of its presence, it makes the understanding believe and obey it with so
much authority that the certitude it gives us of the truth surpasses all other certitudes, and 102
keeps the understanding and all its workings in such subjection that they get no hearing in
comparison with it.
May I, Theotimus, have leave to say this? Faith is the chief beloved of our understanding,
and may justly speak to human sciences which boast that they are more evident and clear
than she, as did the sacred spouse to the other shepherdesses. I am black but beautiful,96—O
human reasonings, O acquired knowledge! I am black, for I am amidst the obscurities of
simple revelation, which have no apparent evidence, and which make me look black, putting
me well-nigh out of knowledge: yet I am beautiful in myself by reason of my infinite certainty;
and if mortal eyes could behold me such as I am by nature they would find me all fair. And
must it not necessarily follow that in effect I am infinitely to be loved, since the gloomy
darkness and thick mists, amid which I am—not seen but only half-seen cannot hinder me
from being so dearly loved, that the soul, prizing me above all, cleaving the crowd of all
other knowledges, makes them all give place to me and receives me as his queen, placing
me on the highest throne in his palace, from whence I give the law to all sciences, and keep
all argument and all human sense under? Yea, verily, Theotimus, even as the commanders
of the army of Israel taking off their garments, put them together and made a royal throne
of them, on which they placed Jehu, and said: Jehu is king:97 so on the arrival of faith, the
understanding puts off all discourse and arguments, and laying them underneath faith,
95 Nous ne voyons pas, ains seluement nous entrevoyons.
96 Cant. i. 4.
97 4 Kings ix. 13.
122

14.6 Page 136

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. Of the Sentiment of Divine Love Which Is Had by Faith.
makes her sit upon them, acknowledging her as Queen, and with great joy cries out: Long
live faith!
Pious discourses and arguments, the miracles and other advantages of the Christian
religion, make it extremely credible and knowable, but faith alone makes it believed and
acknowledged, enamouring men with the beauty of its truth, and making them believe the
truth of its beauty, by means of the sweetness faith pours into their wills, and the certitude
which it gives to their understanding. The Jews saw the miracles and heard the marvellous
103
teachings of Our Saviour, but being indisposed to receive faith, that is, their will not being
susceptible of the gentle sweetness of faith, on account of the bitterness and malice with
which they were filled, they persisted in their infidelity. They perceived the force of the ar-
gument, but they relished not the sweetness of the conclusion, and therefore did not acquiesce
in its truth. But the act of faith consists in this very acquiescence of our spirit, which having
received the grateful light of truth, accepts it by means of a sweet, yet powerful and solid
assurance and certitude which it finds in the authority of the revelation which has been
made to her.
You have heard, Theotimus, that in general councils there are great disputations and
inquiries made about truth by discourse, reasons and theological arguments, but the matters
being discussed, the Fathers, that is, the bishops, and especially the Pope who is the chief of
the bishops, conclude, resolve and determine; and the determination being once pronounced,
every one fully accepts it and acquiesces in it, not in consideration of the reasons alleged in
the preceding discussion and inquisition, but in virtue of the authority of the Holy Ghost,
who, presiding invisibly in councils, has judged, determined and concluded, by the mouth
of his servants whom he has established pastors of Christianity. The inquisition then and
the disputation are made in the priests' court by the doctors, but the resolution and acquies-
cence are formed in the sanctuary, where the Holy Ghost who animates the body of his
Church, speaks by the mouth of its chiefs, as Our Lord has promised. In like manner the
ostrich lays her eggs upon the sands of Libya, but the sun alone hatches her young ones;
and doctors by their inquiry and discourse propose truth, but only the beams of the sun of
justice give certainty and acquiescence. To conclude then, Theotimus, this assurance which
man's reason finds in things revealed and in the mysteries of faith, begins by an amorous
sentiment of complacency which the will receives from the beauty and sweetness of the
proposed truth; so that faith includes a beginning of love, which the heart feels towards divine
things.
104
123

14.7 Page 137

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Great Sentiment of Love Which We Receive by Holy H…
CHAPTER XV.
OF THE GREAT SENTIMENT OF LOVE WHICH WE RECEIVE BY HOLY HOPE.
As when exposed to the rays of the sun at mid-day, we hardly see the brightness before we
suddenly feel the heat; so the light of faith has no sooner spread the splendour of its truths
in our understanding, but immediately our will feels the holy heat of heavenly love. Faith
makes us know by an infallible certitude that God is, that he is infinite in goodness, that he
can communicate himself unto us, and not only that he can, but that he will; so that by an
ineffable sweetness he has provided us with all things requisite to obtain the happiness of
immortal glory. Now we have a natural inclination to the sovereign good, by reason of which
our heart is touched with a certain inward anxious desire and continual uneasiness, not
being able in any way to quiet itself, or to cease to testify that its perfect satisfaction and
solid contentment are wanting to it. But when holy faith has represented to our understanding
this lovely object of our natural inclination,—Oh! Theotimus, what joy! what pleasure! how
our whole soul is thrilled, and, all amazed at the sight of so excellent a beauty, it cries out
with love: Behold, thou art fair, my beloved, behold thou art fair!98
Eliezer sought a wife for the son of his master Abraham; how could he tell whether he
should find her beautiful and gracious as he desired? But when he had found her at the
fountain, and saw her so excellent in beauty and so perfect in sweetness, and especially when
he had obtained her, he adored God, and blessed him with thanksgiving, full of incomparable
joy. Man's heart tends to God by its natural inclination, without fully knowing what he is;
but when it finds him at the fountain of faith, and sees him so good, so lovely, so sweet and
gracious to all, and so ready to give himself, as the sovereign good, to all who desire him,—O
God! what delight! and what sacred movements in the soul, to unite itself for ever to this
105
goodness so sovereignty amiable! I have found, says the soul thus inspired, I have at last
found that which my heart desired, and now I am at rest. And as Jacob, having seen the fair
Rachel, after he had holily kissed her, melted into tears of sweetness for the happiness he
experienced in so desirable a meeting, so our poor heart, having found God, and received
of him the first kiss, the kiss of holy faith, it dissolves forthwith in sweetness of love for the
infinite good which it presently discovers in that sovereign beauty.
We sometimes experience in ourselves a certain joyousness which comes as it were
unexpectedly, without any apparent reason, and this is often a presage of some greater joy;
whence many are of opinion that our good angels, foreseeing the good which is coming
unto us, give us by this means a foretaste thereof, as on the contrary they give us certain
fears and terrors amidst dangers we are not aware of, to make us invoke God's assistance
and stand upon our guard. Now when the presaged good arrives, we receive it with open
arms, and reflecting upon the joyousness we formerly felt without knowing its cause, we
98 Cant. i. 14.
124

14.8 Page 138

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Great Sentiment of Love Which We Receive by Holy H…
only then begin to perceive that it was a forerunner of the happiness we now enjoy. Even
so, my dear Theotimus, our heart having had for so long a time an inclination to its sovereign
good, knew not to what end this motion tended: but so soon as faith has shown it, then man
clearly discerns that this was what his soul coveted, his understanding sought, and his inclin-
ation tended towards. Certainly, whether we wish or wish not, our soul tends towards the
sovereign good. But what is this sovereign good? We are like those good Athenians who
sacrificed unto the true God, although he was unknown to them, till the great S. Paul taught
them the knowledge of him. For so our heart, by a deep and secret instinct, in all its actions
tends towards, and aims at, felicity, seeking it here and there, as it were groping, without
knowing where it resides, or in what it consists, till faith shows and describes the infinite
marvels thereof. But then, having found the treasure it sought for,—ah! what a satisfaction
to this poor human heart! What joy, what complacency of love! O I have met with him,
whom my heart sought for without knowing him! O how little I knew whither my aims
106
tended, when nothing contented me of all I aimed at, because, in fact, I knew not what I
was aiming at. I was seeking to love and knew not what to love, and therefore my intention
not finding its true love, my love remained ever in a true but ignorant intention. I had indeed
sufficient foretaste of love to make me seek, but not sufficient knowledge of the goodness I
had to love, to actually practise love.
125

14.9 Page 139

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. How Love Is Practised in Hope.
CHAPTER XVI.
HOW LOVE IS PRACTISED IN HOPE.
Man's understanding then, being property applied to the consideration of that which faith
represents to it touching its sovereign good, the will instantly conceives an extreme compla-
cency in this divine object, which, as yet absent, begets an ardent desire of its presence,
whence the soul holily cries out: Let him kiss me with the kiss of his mouth.99 My soul panteth
after thee, O God.100
And as the unhooded falcon having her prey in view suddenly launches herself upon
the wing, and if held in her leash struggles upon the hand with extreme ardour; so faith,
having drawn the veil of ignorance, and made us see our sovereign good, whom nevertheless
we cannot yet possess, detained by the condition of this mortal life,—Ah! Theotimus, we
then desire it in such sort that, as the hart panteth after the fountains of waters; so my soul
panteth after thee, O God! My soul hath thirsted after the strong living God; when shall I come
and appear before the face of God?101
This desire is just, Theotimus, for who would not desire so desirable a good? But it
would be a useless desire, and would be but a continual torment to our heart if we had not
assurance that we should at length satiate it. He who on account of the delay of this happiness,
protests that his tears were his ordinary bread day and night, so long as his God was absent,
and his enemies demanded: where is thy God?102—Alas! what would he have done if he had
not had some hope of one day enjoying this good, after which he sighed. The divine spouse
107
goes weeping and languishing with love,103 because she does not at once find the well-beloved
she is searching for. The love of the well-beloved had bred in her a desire, that desire begot
an ardour to pursue it, and that ardour caused in her a languishing which would have con-
sumed and annihilated her poor heart, unless she had hoped at length to meet with what
she sought after. So then, lest the unrest and dolorous languor which the efforts of desiring
love cause in our souls should make us fail in courage or reduce us to despair, the same
sovereign good which moves in us so vehement a desire, also by a thousand thousand
promises made in his Word and his inspirations, gives us assurance, that we may with ease
obtain it, provided always that we will to employ the means which he has prepared for use
and offers us to this effect.
Now these divine promises and assurances, by a particular marvel, increase the cause
of our disquiet, and yet, while they increase the cause, they undo and destroy the effects.
99 Cant. i. 1.
100 Ps. xli. 1.
101 Ibid. 1, 2.
102 Ps. xli. 4.
103 Cant. v. 8.
126

14.10 Page 140

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. How Love Is Practised in Hope.
Yea, verily, Theotimus; for the assurance which God gives us that paradise is ours, infinitely
strengthens the desire we have to enjoy it, and yet weakens, yea altogether destroys, the
trouble and disquiet which this desire brought unto us; so that our hearts by the promises
which the divine goodness has made us, remain quite calmed, and this calm is the root of
the most holy virtue which we call hope. For the will, assured by faith that she has power to
enjoy the sovereign good by using the means appointed, makes two great acts of virtue: by
the one she expects from God the fruition of his sovereign goodness, by the other she aspires
to that holy fruition.
And indeed, Theotimus, between hoping and aspiring (esperer et aspirer) there is but
this difference, that we hope for those things which we expect to get by another's assistance,
and we aspire unto those things which we think to reach by means that lie in our own power.
And since we attain the fruition of our sovereign good, which is God, by his favour, grace
and mercy, and yet the same mercy will have us co-operate with his favour, by contributing
108
the weakness of our consent to the strength of his grace; our hope is thence in some sort
mingled with aspiring, so that we do not altogether hope without aspiring, nor do we ever
aspire without entirely hoping. Hope then keeps ever the principal place, as being founded
upon divine grace, without which, as we cannot even so much as think of our sovereign
good in the way required to reach it, so can we never without this grace aspire towards our
sovereign God in the way required to obtain it.
Aspiration then is a scion of hope, as our co-operation is of grace: and as those that
would hope without aspiring, would be rejected as cowardly and negligent; so those that
should aspire without hoping, would be rash, insolent and presumptuous. But when hope
is seconded with aspiration, when, hoping we aspire and aspiring we hope, then dear
Theotimus, hope by aspiration becomes a courageous desire, and aspiration is changed by
hope into a humble claim, and we hope and aspire as God inspires us. But both are caused
by that desiring love which tends to our sovereign good, to that good which the more surely
it is hoped for, the more it is loved; yea hope is no other thing than the loving complacency
we take in the expecting and seeking our sovereign good. All that is there is love, Theotimus.
As soon as faith has shown me my sovereign good, I have loved it; and because it was absent
I have desired it, and having understood that it would bestow itself upon me, I have loved
and desired it yet more ardently; for indeed its goodness is so much more to be beloved and
desired by how much more it is disposed to communicate itself. Now by this progress love
has turned its desire into hope, seeking and expectation, so that hope is an expectant and
aspiring love; and because the sovereign good which hope expects is God, and because also
she expects it from God himself, to whom and by whom she hopes and aspires, this holy
virtue of hope, abutting everywhere on God, is by consequence a divine or theological virtue.
127

15 Pages 141-150

▲back to top


15.1 Page 141

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. That the Love Which Is in Hope Is Very Good, Though Impe…
CHAPTER XVII.
THAT THE LOVE WHICH IS IN HOPE IS VERY GOOD, THOUGH IMPERFECT.
The love which we practise in hope goes indeed to God, Theotimus, but it returns to us; its
sight is turned upon the divine goodness, yet with some respect to our own profit; it tends
109
to that supreme perfection, but aiming at our own satisfaction. That is to say, it bears us to
God, not because he is sovereignty good in himself, but because he is sovereignty good to
us, in which as you see there is something of the our and the us, so that this love is truly
love, but love of cupidity and self-interest. Yet I do not say that it does in such sort return
to ourselves that it makes us love God only for the love of ourselves; O God! no: for the soul
which should only love God for the love of herself, placing the end of the love which she
bears to God in her own interest, would, alas! commit an extreme sacrilege. If a wife loved
her husband only for the love of his servant, she would love her husband as a servant, and
his servant as a husband: and the soul that only loves God for love of herself, loves herself
as she ought to love God, and God as she ought to love herself.
But there is a great difference between this expression: I love God for the good which I
expect from him, and this: I only love God for the good which I expect from him: as again it
is a very different thing to say: I love God for myself: and I love God for the love of myself. For
when I say I love God for myself, it is as if I said: I love to have God, I love that God should
be mine, should be my sovereign good; which is a holy affection of the heavenly spouse,
who a hundred times in excess of delight protests: My beloved to me, and I to him, who fee-
deth among the lilies.104 But to say: I love God for love of myself, is as if one should say; the
love which I bear to myself is the end for which I love God; in such sort that the love of God
would be dependent, subordinate, and inferior to self-love, to our love for ourselves, which
is a matchless impiety.
This love, then, which we term hope, is a love of cupidity, but of a holy and well-ordered
cupidity, by means whereof we do not draw God to us nor to our utility, but we adjoin
110
ourselves unto him as to our final felicity. By this love we love ourselves together with God,
yet not preferring or equalizing ourselves to him; in this love the love of ourselves is mingled
with that of God, but that of God floats on the top; our own love enters indeed, but as a
simple motive, not as a principal end; our own interest has some place there, but God holds
the principal rank. Yes, without doubt, Theotimus: for when we love God as our sovereign
good, we love him for a quality by which we do not refer him to us but ourselves to him.
We are not his end, aim, or perfection, but he is ours; he does not appertain to us, but we
to him; he depends not on us but we on him; and, in a word, by the quality of sovereign
good for which we love him, he receives nothing of us, but we receive of him. He exercises
towards us his affluence and goodness, and we our indigence and scarcity; so that to love
104 Cant. ii. 16.
128

15.2 Page 142

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. That the Love Which Is in Hope Is Very Good, Though Impe…
God under the title of sovereign good is to love him under an honourable and respectful
title, by which we acknowledge him to be our perfection, repose and end, in the fruition of
which our felicity consists. Some goods there are which we use for ourselves when we employ
them, as our slaves, servants, horses, clothes: and the love which we bear unto them is a love
of pure cupidity, since we love them only for our own profit. Other goods there are which
we possess, but with a possession which is reciprocal and equal on each side, as in the case
of our friends: for the love we have unto them inasmuch as they content us is indeed a love
of cupidity, yet of an honest cupidity, by which they are ours and we similarly theirs, they
belong to us and we equally to them. But there are yet other goods which we possess with
a possession of dependence, participation and subjection, as we do the benevolence, or
presence, or favour of our pastors, princes, father, mother: for the love which we bear unto
them is then truly a love of cupidity, when we love them in that they are our pastors, our
princes, our fathers, our mothers, since it is not precisely the quality of pastor, nor of prince,
nor of father, nor of mother, which is the cause of our affection towards them, but the fact
that they are so to us and in our regard. Still this cupidity is a love of respect, reverence and
honour; for we love our father, for example, not because he is ours but because we are his;
111
and after the same manner it is that we love and aspire to God by hope, not to the end he
may become our good, but because he is it; not to the end he may become ours, but because
we are his; not as though he existed for us, but inasmuch as we exist for him.
And note, Theotimus, that in this love, the reason why we love (that is, why we apply
our heart to the love of the good which we desire) is because it is our good; but the measure
and quantity of this love depend on the excellence and dignity of the good which we love.
We love our benefactors because they are such to us, but we love them more or less as they
are more or less our benefactors. Why then do we love God, Theotimus, with this love of
cupidity? Because he is our good. But why do we sovereignly love him? Because he is our
sovereign good.
But when I say we love God sovereignly, I do not therefore say that we love him with
sovereign love. Sovereign love is only in charity, whereas in hope love is imperfect, because
it does not tend to his infinite goodness as being such in itself, but only because it is such
to us. Still, because in this kind of love there is no motive more excellent than that which
proceeds from the consideration of the sovereign good, we say that by it we love sovereignly,
though in real truth no one is able by virtue of this love either to keep God's commandments,
or obtain life everlasting, because it is a love that yields more affection than effect, when it
is not accompanied with charity.
129

15.3 Page 143

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That Love Is Exercised in Penitence, and First, That There…
CHAPTER XVIII.
THAT LOVE IS EXERCISED IN PENITENCE, AND FIRST, THAT THERE ARE
DIVERS SORTS OF PENITENCE.
To speak generally, penitence is a repentance whereby a man rejects and detests the sin he
112
has committed, with the resolution to repair as much as in him lies the offence and injury
done to him against whom he has sinned. I comprehend in penitence a purpose to repair
the offence, because that repentance does not sufficiently detest the fault which voluntarily
permits the principal effect thereof, to wit the offence and injury, to subsist; and it permits
it to subsist, so long as, being able in some sort to make reparation, it does not do so.
I omit here the penitence of certain pagans, who, as Tertullian witnesses, had some ap-
pearances of it amongst them, but so vain and fruitless that they often had penitence for
having done well; for I speak only of virtuous penitence, which according to the different
motives whence it proceeds is also of various species. There is one sort purely moral and
human, as was that of Alexander the Great, who having slain his dear Clitus determined to
starve himself to death, so great, says Cicero, was the force of penitence: or that of Alcibiades,
who, being convinced by Socrates that he was not a wise man, began to weep bitterly, being
sorrowful and afflicted for not being what he ought to have been, as S. Augustine says. Aris-
totle also, recognising this sort of penitence, assures us that the intemperate man who of set
purpose gives himself over to pleasures is wholly incorrigible, because he cannot repent,
and he that is without repentance is incurable.
Certainly, Seneca, Plutarch and the Pythagoreans, who so highly commend the examen
of conscience, but especially the first, who speaks so feelingly of the torment which interior
remorse excites in the soul, must have understood that there was a repentance; and as for
the sage Epictetus, he so well describes the way in which a man should reprehend himself
that it could scarcely be better expressed.
There is yet another penitence which is indeed moral, yet religious too, yea in some sort
divine, proceeding from the natural knowledge which we have of our offending God by sin.
113
For certainly many philosophers understood that to live virtuously was a thing agreeable
to the divinity, and that consequently to live viciously was offensive to him. The good man
Epictetus makes the wish to die a true Christian (as it is very probable he did), and amongst
other things he says he should be content if dying he could lift up his hands to God and say
unto him: For my part I have not dishonoured Thee: and, further, he will have his philosopher
to make an admirable oath to God never to be disobedient to his divine Majesty, nor to
question or blame anything coming from him, nor in any sort to complain thereof; and in
another place he teaches that God and our good angel are present during our actions. You
see clearly then, Theotimus, that this philosopher, while yet a pagan, knew that sin offended
God, as virtue honoured him, and consequently he willed that it should be repented of, since
130

15.4 Page 144

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That Love Is Exercised in Penitence, and First, That There…
he even ordained an examen of conscience at night, about which, with Pythagoras, he lays
down this maxim
If thou hast ill done, chide thyself bitterly,
If thou hast well done, rest thee contentedly.
Now this kind of repentance joined to the knowledge and love of God which nature can
give, was a dependence of moral religion. But as natural reason bestowed more knowledge
than love upon the philosophers, who did not glorify God in proportion to the knowledge
they had of him, so nature has furnished more light to understand how much God is offended
by sin, than heat to excite the repentance necessary for the reparation of the offence.
But although religious penitence may have been in some sort recognized by some of
the philosophers, yet this has been so rarely and feebly, that those who were reputed the
most virtuous amongst them, to wit the Stoics, maintained that the wise man was never
grieved, whereupon they framed a maxim as contrary to reason, as the proposition on which
it was grounded was contrary to experience, namely, that the wise man sinned not.
We may therefore well say, Theotimus, that penitence is a virtue wholly Christian, since
on the one side it was so little known to the pagans, and, on the other side, it is so well re-
114
cognized amongst true Christians, that in it consists a great part of the evangelical philosophy,
according to which whosoever affirms that he sins not, is senseless, and whosoever expects
without penitence to redress his sin is mad; for it is our Saviour's exhortation of exhortations:
Do penance.105 And now let me give a brief description of the progress of this virtue.
We enter into a profound apprehending of the fact that, as far as is in us, we offend God
by our sins, despising and dishonouring him, giving way to disobedience and rebellion
against him; and he also on his part considers himself as offended, irritated, and despised;
for he dislikes, reproves and abominates iniquity. From this true apprehension there spring
several motives, which all, or several together, or each one apart, may carry us to this repent-
ance.
For we consider sometimes how God who is offended has established a rigorous pun-
ishment in hell for sinners, and how he will deprive them of the paradise prepared for the
good. And as the desire of paradise is extremely honourable, so the fear of losing it is an
excellent fear; and not only so, but the desire of paradise being very worthy of esteem, the
fear of its contrary, which is hell, is good and praiseworthy. Ah! who would not dread so
great a loss, so great a torment! And this double fear—the one servile, the other mercen-
ary—greatly bears us on towards a repentance for our sins, by which we have incurred them.
And to this effect in the Holy Word this fear is a hundred and a hundred times inculcated.
105 Matt. iv. 17.
131

15.5 Page 145

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. That Love Is Exercised in Penitence, and First, That There…
At other times we consider the deformity and malice of sin, according as faith teaches us;
for example, because by it the likeness and image of God which we have, is defiled and dis-
figured, the dignity of our soul dishonoured, we are made like brute beasts, we have violated
our duty towards the Creator of the world, forfeited the good of the society of the angels,
to associate and subject ourselves to the devil, making ourselves slaves of our passions,
overturning the order of reason, offending our good angels to whom we have so great oblig-
ations.
At other times we are provoked to repentance by the beauty of virtue, which brings as
115
much good with it as sin does evil; further we are often moved to it by the example of the
saints; for who could ever have cast his eyes upon the exercises of the incomparable penitence
of Magdalen, of Mary of Egypt, or of the penitents of the monastery called Prison, described
by S. John Climacus, without being moved to repentance for his sins, since the mere reading
of the history incites to it such as are not altogether insensible.
132

15.6 Page 146

▲back to top


Chapter XIX. That Penitence Without Love Is Imperfect.
CHAPTER XIX.
THAT PENITENCE WITHOUT LOVE IS IMPERFECT.
Now all these motives are taught us by faith and the Christian religion, and therefore the
repentance which results from them is very laudable though imperfect. Laudable certainly
it is, for neither Holy Scripture nor the Church would stir us up by such motives if the
penitence thence proceeding were not good, and we see manifestly that it is a most reasonable
thing to repent of sin for these considerations, yea, that it is impossible that he who considers
them attentively should not repent. Yet still it is an imperfect repentance, because divine
love is not as yet found in it. Ah! do you not see, Theotimus, that all these repentances are
made for the sake of our own soul, of its felicity, of its interior beauty, its honour, its dignity,
and in a word for love of ourselves, although a lawful, just and well-ordered love.
And note, that I do not say that these repentances reject the love of God, but only that
they do not include it; they do not repulse it, yet they do not contain it ; they are not contrary
to it, but as yet are without it; it is not forbidden entrance, and yet it is not in. The will which
simply embraces good is very good, yet if it so embrace this as to reject the better, it is truly
ill-ordered, not in accepting the one but in repulsing the other. So the vow to give alms this
day is good, yet the vow to give only this day is bad, because it would exclude the better,
which is to give both to-day, to-morrow, and every day when we are able. Certainly it is
good, and this cannot be denied, to repent of our sins in order to avoid the pains of hell and
obtain heaven, but he that should make the resolution never to be willing to repent for any
116
other motive, would wilfully shut out the better, which is to repent for the love of God, and
would commit a great sin. And what father would not be ill pleased that his son was willing
indeed to serve him, yet never with love, or by love?
The beginning of good things is good, the progress better, the end the best. At the same
time, it is as a beginning that the beginning is good, and as progress that progress is good:
and to wish to finish the work by its beginning or in its progress would be to invert the order
of things. Infancy is good, but to desire to remain always a child would be bad; for the child
of a hundred years old is despised. It is laudable to begin to learn, yet he that should begin
with intention never to perfect himself would go against all reason. Fear, and those other
motives of repentance of which I spoke, are good for the beginning of Christian wisdom,
which consists in penitence; but he who deliberately willed not to attain to love which is the
perfection of penitence, would greatly offend him who ordained all to his love, as to the end
of all things.
To conclude: the repentance which excludes the love of God is infernal like to that of
the damned. The repentance which does not reject the love of God, though as yet it be
without it, is a good and desirable penitence, but imperfect, and it cannot give salvation
until it attain love and is mingled therewith. So that as the great Apostle said that though
he should deliver his body to be burned, and all his goods to the poor, wanting charity it would
133

15.7 Page 147

▲back to top


Chapter XIX. That Penitence Without Love Is Imperfect.
profit him nothing,106 so we may truly say, that though our penitence were so great that it
should cause our eyes to dissolve in tears, and our hearts to break with sorrow, yet if we
have not the holy love of God, all this would profit nothing for eternal life.
106 1 Cor. xiii. 3.
134

15.8 Page 148

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How the Mingling of Love and Sorrow Takes Place in Contrit…
CHAPTER XX.
HOW THE MINGLING OF LOVE AND SORROW TAKES PLACE IN CONTRITION.
Nature, as far as I know, never converts fire into water, though some waters turn into fire.
Yet God did it once by miracle. For as it is written in the Book of Machabees,107 when the
117
children of Israel were conducted into Babylon, in the time of Sedecias, the priests, by the
counsel of Jeremias, hid the holy fire in a valley, in a dry well, and upon their return, the
children of those that had hid it went to seek it, following the direction their fathers had
given them, and they found it converted into a thick water, which being drawn by them,
and poured upon the sacrifices, as Nehemias commanded, was, when the sunbeams touched
it, converted into a great fire.
Theotimus, amongst the tribulations and remorse of a lively repentance God often puts
in the bottom of our heart the sacred fire of his love, this love is converted into the water of
tears, they by a second change into another and greater fire of love. Thus the famous penitent
lover first loved her Saviour, her love was converted into tears, and these tears into an excel-
lent love; whence Our Saviour told her that many sins were pardoned her because she had
loved much.108 And as we see fire turns wine into a certain water which is called almost
everywhere aquavitæ, which so easily takes and augments fire that in many places it is also
termed ardent; so the amorous consideration of the goodness which, while it ought to have
been sovereignly loved, has been offended by sin, produces the water of holy penitence; and
from this water the fire of divine love issues, thence properly termed water of life or ardent.
Penitence is indeed a water in its substance, being a true displeasure, a real sorrow and re-
pentance; yet is it ardent, in that it contains the virtue and properties of love, as arising from
a motive of love, and by this property it gives the life of grace. So that perfect penitence has
two different effects; for in virtue of its sorrow and detestation it separates us from sin and
the creature, to which delectation had attached us; but in virtue of the motive of love, whence
it takes its origin, it reconciles us and reunites us to our God, from whom we had separated
ourselves by contempt: so that it at once reclaims us from sin in quality of repentance, and
118
reunites us to God in quality of love.
But I do not mean to say that the perfect love of God, by which we love him above all
things, always precedes this repentance, or that this repentance always precedes this love.
For though it often so happens, still at other times, as soon as divine love is born in our
hearts, penitence is born within the love, and oftentimes penitence entering into our heart,
love enters in penitence. And as when Esau was born, Jacob his twin brother held him by
the foot, that their births might not only follow the one the other, but also might cleave to-
gether and be intermingled; so repentance, rude and rough in regard of its pain, is born
107 2 Mach. i.
108 Luke vii. 47.
135

15.9 Page 149

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How the Mingling of Love and Sorrow Takes Place in Contrit…
first, as another Esau; and love, gentle and gracious as Jacob, holds him by the foot, and
cleaves unto him so closely that their birth is but one, since the end of the birth of repentance
is the beginning of that of perfect love. Now as Esau first appeared so repentance ordinarily
makes itself to be seen before love, but love, as another Jacob, although the younger, after-
wards subdues penitence, converting it into consolation.
Mark, I pray you, Theotimus, the well-beloved Magdalen, how she weeps with love:
They have taken away my Lord, says she, melting into tears; and I know not where they have
laid him,109 but having with sighs and tears found him, she holds and possesses him by love.
Imperfect love desires and runs after him, penitence seeks and finds him; perfect love holds
and clasps him. It is with it as is said to be with Ethiopian rubies, whose fire is naturally very
faint, but when they are dipped in vinegar it sparkles out and casts a most brilliant lustre:
for the love which goes before repentance is ordinarily imperfect; but being steeped in the
sharpness of penitence, it gains strength end becomes excellent love.
It even happens sometimes that repentance, though perfect, contains not in itself the
proper action of love, but only the virtue and property of it. You will ask me, what virtue
or property of love can repentance have, if it have not the action? Theotimus, God's goodness
is the motive of perfect repentance, which it displeases us to have offended: now this motive
119
is a motive only because it stirs us and gives us movement. But the movement which the
divine goodness gives unto the heart which considers it, can be no other than the movement
of love, that is, of union. And therefore true repentance, though it seem not so, and though
we perceive not the proper effect of love, yet ever takes the movement of love, and the
unitive quality of love, by which it re-unites and re-joins us to the divine goodness. Tell me,
I pray:—it is the property of the loadstone to draw and unite iron unto itself; but do we not
see that iron touched with the loadstone, without having either it or its nature, but only its
virtue and attractive quality, can draw and unite to itself another iron? So perfect repentance,
touched with the motive of love, is not without the virtue and quality thereof, that is, the
movement of union to re-join and re-unite our hearts to the divine will. But you will reply,
what difference is there between this movement of penitence, and the proper action of love?
Theotimus, the action of love is indeed a movement of union, but it is made by complacency,
whereas the movement of union which is in penitence is not made by way of complacency,
but by displeasure, repentance, reparation, reconciliation. Forasmuch therefore as this
motive unites, it has the quality of love; inasmuch as it is bitter and dolorous it has the
quality of penitence, and in fine, by its natural condition it is a true movement of penitence,
but one which has the virtue and uniting quality of love.
So Theriacum-wine is not so named because it contains the proper substance of Theri-
acum, for there is none at all in it; but it is so called because the plant of the vine having
109 John xx. 13.
136

15.10 Page 150

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How the Mingling of Love and Sorrow Takes Place in Contrit…
been steeped in Theriacum, the grapes and the wine which have sprung from it have drawn
into themselves the virtue and operation of Theriacum against all sorts of poison. We must
not therefore think it strange if penitence, according to the Holy scripture, blots out sin,
saves the soul, makes her grateful God and justifies her, which are effects appertaining to
love, and which apparently should only be attributed to love: for though love itself be not
always found in perfect penitence, yet its virtue and properties are always there, having
flowed into it by the motive of love whence it springs.
120
Nor must we wonder that the force of love should be found in penitence before love be
formed in it, since we see that by the reflection of the rays of the sun beating upon a mirror,
heat, which is the virtue and the proper quality of fire, grows by little and little so strong
that it begins to burn before it has yet well produced the fire, or at least before we have
perceived it. For so the Holy Ghost casting into our understanding the consideration of the
greatness of our sins, in that by them we have offended so sovereign a goodness, and our
will receiving the reflection of this knowledge, repentance by little and little grows so strong,
with a certain affective heat and desire to return into grace with God, that in fine this
movement comes to such a height, that it burns and unites even before the love be fully
formed, though love, as a sacred fire, is always at once lighted, at this point. So that repentance
never comes to this height of burning and re-uniting the heart to God, which is her utmost
perfection, without finding herself wholly converted into fire and flame of love, the end of
the one giving the other a beginning; or rather, the end of penitence is within the commence-
ment of love, as Esau's foot was within Jacob's hand; in such sort that while Esau was ending
his birth, Jacob was beginning his, the end of the one's birth being joined and fastened to,
yea, what is more, included in, the beginning of the other's: for so the beginning of perfect
love not only follows the end of penitence but even cleaves and ties itself to it; and to say all
in one word, this beginning of love mingles itself with the end of penitence, and in this
moment of mingling, penitence and contrition merit life everlasting.
Now because this loving repentance is ordinarily practised by elevations and raisings
of the heart to God, like to those of the ancient penitents: I am thine, save thou me. Have
mercy on me, O God, have mercy on me: for my soul trusteth in thee! Save me, O God; for the
waters are come in even unto my soul! Make me as one of thy hired servants! O God be mer-
ciful to me a sinner!—it is not without reason that some have said, that prayer justifies; for
the repentant prayer, or the suppliant repentance, raising up the soul to God and re-uniting
it to his goodness, without doubt obtains pardon in virtue of the holy love, which gives it
121
the sacred movement. And therefore we ought all to have very many such ejaculatory
prayers, made in the sense of a loving repentance and of sighs which seek our reconciliation
with God, so that by these laying our tribulation before Our Saviour, we may pour out our
souls before and within his pitiful heart, which will receive them to mercy.
137

16 Pages 151-160

▲back to top


16.1 Page 151

▲back to top


Chapter XXI. How Our Saviour's Loving Attractions Assist and Accompany…
CHAPTER XXI.
HOW OUR SAVIOUR'S LOVING ATTRACTIONS ASSIST AND ACCOMPANY US
TO FAITH AND CHARITY.
Between the first awaking from sin or infidelity to the final resolution of a perfect belief,
there often runs a good deal of time in which we are able to pray, as we have seen S. Pacho-
mius did, and as that poor lunatic's father, who, as S. Mark relates, giving assurance that he
believed, that is, that he began to believe, knew at the same time that he did not believe
sufficiently; whence he cried out: I do believe, Lord help my unbelief,110 as though he would
say: I am no longer in the obscurity of the night of infidelity, the rays of your faith already
enlighten the horizon of my soul: but still I do not yet believe as I ought; it is a knowledge
as yet weak and mixed with darkness; Ah! Lord, help me. And the great S. Augustine solemnly
pronounces these remarkable words: "But listen, O man! and understand. Art thou not
drawn? pray, in order that thou mayest be drawn." In which words his intention is not to
speak of the first movement which God works in us without us, when he excites and awakens
us out of the sleep of sin: for how could we ask to be awakened seeing no man can pray before
he be awakened? But he speaks of the resolution which we make to be faithful, for he con-
siders that to believe is to be drawn, and therefore he admonishes such as have been excited
to believe in God, to ask the gift of faith. And indeed no one could better know the difficulties 122
which ordinarily pass between the first movement God makes in us, and the perfect resolution
of believing fully, than S. Augustine, who having had so great a variety of attractions by the
words of the glorious S. Ambrose, by the conference he had with Politian, and a thousand
other means, yet made so many delays and had so much difficulty in resolving. For more
truly to him than to any other might have been applied that which he afterwards said to
others: Alas! Augustine, if thou be not drawn, if thou believe not, pray that thou mayest be
drawn, and that thou mayest believe.
Our Saviour draws hearts by the delights that he gives them, which make them find
heavenly doctrine sweet and agreeable, but, until this sweetness has engaged and fastened
the will by its beloved bonds to draw it to the perfect acquiescence and consent of faith, as
God does not fail to exercise his greatness upon us by his holy inspirations, so does not our
enemy cease to practise his malice by temptations. And meantime we remain in full liberty,
to consent to the divine drawings or to reject them; for as the sacred Council of Trent has
clearly decreed: "If any one should say that man's freewill, being moved and incited by God,
does not in any way co-operate, by consenting to God, who moves and calls him that he
may dispose and prepare himself to obtain the grace of justification, and that he is unable
to refuse consent though he would," truly such a man would be excommunicated, and re-
proved by the Church. But if we do not repulse the grace of holy love, it dilates itself by
110 Mark ix. 23.
138

16.2 Page 152

▲back to top


Chapter XXI. How Our Saviour's Loving Attractions Assist and Accompany…
continual increase in our souls, until they are entirely converted; like great rivers, which
finding open plains spread themselves, and ever take up more space.
But if the inspiration, having drawn us to faith, find no resistance in us, it draws us also
to penitence and charity. S. Peter, as an apode, raised by the inspiration which came from
the eyes of his master, freely letting himself be moved and carried by this gentle wind of the
Holy Ghost, looks upon those life-giving eyes which had excited him; he reads as in the
book of life the sweet invitation to pardon which the divine clemency offers him; he draws
from it a just motive of hope; he goes out of the court, considers the horror of his sin, and
123
detests it; he weeps, he sobs, he prostrates his miserable heart before his Saviour's mercy,
craves pardon for his faults, makes a resolution of inviolable loyalty, and by this progress
of movements, practised by the help of grace which continually conducts, assists, and helps
him, he comes at length to the holy remission of his sins, and passes so from grace to grace:
according to what S. Prosper lays down, that without grace a man doos not run to grace.
So then to conclude this point, the soul, prevented by grace, feeling the first drawings,
and consenting to their sweetness, as if returning to herself after a long swoon, begins to
sigh out these words: Ah! my dear spouse, my friend! Draw me, I beseech thee, and take
hold of me under my arms, for otherwise I am not able to walk: but if thou draw me we run,
thou in helping me by the odour of thy perfumes, and I corresponding by my weak consent,
and by relishing thy sweetnesses which strengthen and reinvigorate me, till the balm of thy
sacred name, that is the salutary ointment of my justification be poured out over me. Do
you see, Theotimus, she would not pray if she were not excited; but as soon as she is, and
feels the attractions, she prays that she may be drawn; being drawn she runs, nevertheless
she would not run if the perfumes which draw her and by which she is drawn did not inspirit
her heart by the power of their precious odour; and as her course is more swift, and as she
approaches nearer her heavenly spouse, she has ever a more delightful sense of the sweet-
nesses which he pours out, until at last he himself flows out in her heart, like a spread balm,
whence she cries, as being surprised by this delight, not so quickly expected, and as yet un-
looked for: O my spouse, thou art as balm poured into my bosom; it is no marvel that young
souls cherish thee dearly.
In this way, my dear Theotimus, the divine inspiration comes to us, and prevents use
moving our wills to sacred love. And if we do not repulse it, it goes with us and keeps near
us, to incite us and ever push us further forwards; and if we do not abandon it, it does not
abandon us, till such time as it has brought us to the haven of most holy charity, performing
for us the three good offices which the great angel Raphael fulfilled for his dear Tobias: for
124
it guides us through all our journey of holy penitence, it preserves us from dangers and from
the assaults of the devil, and it consoles, animates, and fortifies us in our difficulties.
139

16.3 Page 153

▲back to top


Chapter XXII. A Short Description of Charity.
CHAPTER XXII.
A SHORT DESCRIPTION OF CHARITY.
Behold at length, Theotimus, how God, by a progress full of ineffable sweetness, conducts
the soul which he makes leave the Egypt of sin, from love to love, as from mansion to
mansion, till he has made her enter into the land of promise, I mean into most holy charity,
which to say it in one word, is a friendship, and a disinterested love, for by charity we love
God for his own sake, by reason of his most sovereignly amiable goodness. But this friendship
is a true friendship, being reciprocal, for God has loved eternally all who have loved him,
do, or shall love him temporally. It is shown and acknowledged mutually, since God cannot
be ignorant of the love we bear him, he himself bestowing it upon us, nor can we be ignorant
of his love to us, seeing that he has so published it abroad, and that we acknowledge all the
good we have, to be true effects of his benevolence. And in fine we have continual commu-
nications with him, who never ceases to speak unto our hearts by inspirations, allurements,
and sacred motions; he ceases not to do us good, or to give all sorts of testimonies of his
most holy affection, having openly revealed unto us all his secrets, as to his confidential
friends. And to crown his holy loving intercourse with us, he has made himself our proper
food in the most holy Sacrament of the Eucharist; and as for us, we have freedom to treat
with him at all times when we please in holy prayer, having our whole life, movement and
being not only with him, but in him and by him.
Now this friendship is not a simple friendship, but a friendship of dilection, by which
we make election of God, to love him with a special love. He is chosen, says the sacred spouse,
125
out of thousands111—she says out of thousands, but she means out of all, whence this love
is not a love of simple excellence, but an incomparable love; for charity loves God by a certain
esteem and preference of his goodness so high and elevated above all other esteems, that
other loves either are not true loves in comparison of this, or if they be true loves, this love
is infinitely more than love; and therefore, Theotimus, it is not a love which the force of
nature either angelic or human can produce, but the Holy Ghost gives it and pours it abroad
in our hearts.112 And as our souls which give life to our bodies, have not their origin from
the body but are put in them by the natural providence of God, so charity which gives life
to our hearts has not her origin from our hearts, but is poured into them as a heavenly liquor
by the supernatural providence of his divine Majesty.
For this reason, and because it has reference to God and tends unto him not according
to the natural knowledge we have of his goodness, but according to the supernatural
knowledge of faith, we name it supernatural friendship. Whence it, together with faith and
hope, makes its abode in the point and summit of the spirit, and, as a queen of majesty, is
111 Cant. v. 10.
112 Rom v. 5.
140

16.4 Page 154

▲back to top


Chapter XXII. A Short Description of Charity.
seated in the will as on her throne, whence she conveys into the soul her delights and
sweetnesses, making her thereby all fair, agreeable and amiable to the divine goodness. So
that if the soul be a kingdom of which the Holy Ghost is king, charity is the queen set at his
right hand in gilded clothing surrounded with variety;113 if the soul be a queen, spouse to
the great king of heaven, charity is her crown, which royally adorns her head; and if the soul
with the body be a little world, charity is the sun which beautifies all, heats all, and vivifies
all.
Charity, then, is a love of friendship, a friendship of dilection, a dilection of preference,
but a preference incomparable, sovereign, and supernatural, which is as a sun in the whole
soul to enlighten it with its rays, in all the spiritual faculties to perfect them, in all the powers
to moderate them, but in the will as on its throne, there to reside and to make it cherish and
love its God above all things. O how happy is the soul wherein this holy love is poured
abroad, since all good things come together with her!114
126
113 Ps. xliv. 10.
114 Wisdom vii. 11.
141

16.5 Page 155

▲back to top


Book III. Of The Progress And Perfection Of Love.
BOOK III.
OF THE
127
PROGRESS AND PERFECTION OF LOVE.
142

16.6 Page 156

▲back to top


Chapter I. That Holy Love May Be Augmented Still More and More in Every…
CHAPTER I.
THAT HOLY LOVE MAY BE AUGMENTED STILL MORE AND MORE IN EVERY
ONE OF US.
The sacred Council of Trent assures us, that the friends of God, proceeding from virtue to
virtue, are day by day renewed, that is, they increase by good works in the justice which they
have received by God's grace, and are more and more justified, according to those heavenly
admonitions; He that is just let him be justified still: and he that is holy, let him be sanctified
still.115 And: Be not afraid to be justified even to death.116 The path of the just, as a shining
light, goeth forwards and increaseth even to perfect day.117 Doing the truth in charity, let us
in all things grow up in him who is the head, even Christ.118 And finally: This I pray, that
your charity may more and more abound in knowledge and in all understanding.119 All these
are sacred words out of David, S. John, Ecclesiasticus, and S. Paul.
I never heard of any living creature whose growth was not bounded and limited, except
the crocodile, who from an extremely little beginning never ceases to grow till it comes to
its end, representing equally in this the good and the wicked: For the pride of them that hate
thee ascendeth continually,120 says the great king David; and the good increase as the break
of day, from brightness to brightness. And to remain at a standstill is impossible; he that
gains not, loses in this traffic; he that ascends not, descends upon this ladder; he that van-
quishes not in this battle, is vanquished: we live amidst the dangers of the wars which our
128
enemies wage against us, if we resist not we perish; and we cannot resist unless we overcome,
nor overcome without triumph. For as the glorious S. Bernard says: "It is written in partic-
ular of man that he never continueth in the same state;121 he necessarily either goes forward
or returns backward. All run indeed but one obtains the prize, so run that you may obtain.122
Who is the prize but Jesus Christ? And how can you take hold on him if you follow him
not? But if you follow him you will march and run continually, for he never stayed, but
continued his course of love and obedience until death and the death of the cross."
Go then, says S. Bernard; go, I say with him; go, my dear Theotimus, and admit no
other bounds than those of life, and as long as it remains run after this Saviour. But run ar-
dently and swiftly: for what better will you be for following him, if you be not so happy as
115 Apoc. xxii. 11.
116 Ecclus. xviii. 22.
117 Prov. iv. 18.
118 Eph. iv. 15.
119 Phil. i. 9.
120 Ps. lxxiii. 23.
121 Job xiv. 2.
122 1 Cor. ix. 24.
143

16.7 Page 157

▲back to top


Chapter I. That Holy Love May Be Augmented Still More and More in Every…
to take hold of him! Let us hear the Prophet: I have inclined my heart to do thy justifications
for ever,123 he does not say that he will do them for a time only, but for ever, and because
he desires eternally to do well, he shall have an eternal reward. Blessed are the undefiled in
the way, who walk in the law of the Lord.124 Accursed are they who are defiled, who walk
not in the law of the Lord: it is only for the devil to say that he will sit in the sides of the
north.125 Detestable one, wilt thou sit? Ah! knowest thou not that thou art upon the way,
and that the way is not made to sit down but to go in, and it is so made to go in, that going
is called making way. And God speaking to one of his greatest friends says: Walk before me
and be perfect.126
True virtue has no limits, it goes ever further; but especially holy charity, which is the
virtue of virtues, and which, having an infinite object, would be capable of becoming infinite
if it could meet with a heart capable of infinity. Nothing hinders this love from being infinite
except the condition of the will which receives it, and which is to act by it: a condition which
prevents any one loving God as much as God is amiable, as it prevents them from seeing
129
him as much as he is visible. The heart which could love God with a love equal to the divine
goodness would have a will infinitely good, which cannot be but in God. Charity then in us
may be perfected up to the infinite, but exclusively; that is, charity may become more and
more, and ever more, excellent, yet never infinite. The Holy Ghost may elevate our hearts,
and apply them to what supernatural actions it may please him, so they be not infinite.
Between little and great things, though the one exceed the other never so much, there is still
some proportions provided always that the excess of the thing which exceeds be not an in-
finite excess: but between finite and infinite there is no proportion, and to make any, it
would be necessary, either to raise the finite and make it infinite, or to lower the infinite
and make it finite, which is impossible.
So that even the charity which is in our Redeemer, as he is man, though greater than
Angels or men can comprehend, yet is not infinite of itself and in its own being, but only
in regard to its value and merit, as being the charity of a divine Person who is the eternal
Son of the omnipotent Father.
Meanwhile it is an extreme honour to our souls that they may still grow more and more
in the love of their God, as long as they shall live in this failing life: Ascending by steps from
virtue to virtue.127
123 Ps. cxviii. 112.
124 Ibid. 1.
125 Is. xiv. 13.
126 Gen. xvii. 1.
127 Ps. lxxxiii. 6.
144

16.8 Page 158

▲back to top


Chapter II. How Easy Our Saviour Has Made the Increase of Love.
CHAPTER II.
HOW EASY OUR SAVIOUR HAS MADE THE INCREASE OF LOVE.
Do you see, Theotimus, that glass of water or that piece of bread which a holy soul gives to
a poor body for God's sake; it is a small matter, God knows, and in human judgment hardly
worthy of consideration: God, notwithstanding, recompenses it, and forthwith gives for it
some increase of charity. The goat's-hair which was anciently presented to the Tabernacle
was received in good part, and had place amongst the holy offerings; and the little actions
which proceed from charity are agreeable to God, and have their place among merits. For
as in Araby the Blest, not only the plants which are by nature aromatic, but even all the
others, are sweet, gaining a share in the felicity of that soil; so in a charitable soul not only
the works which are excellent of their own nature, but also the little actions, smell of the
virtue of holy love, and have a good odour before the majesty of God, who in consideration
of them increases charity. And I say God does it, because Charity does not produce her own
increase as a tree does, which by its own virtue produces and throws out, one from another,
its boughs: but as Faith, Hope and Charity are virtues which have their origin from the divine
goodness, so thence also they draw their increase and perfection, not unlike bees, which,
having their extraction from honey, have also their food from it.
Wherefore, as pearls are not only bred of dew but fed also with it, the mother-pearls to
this end opening their shells towards heaven to beg, as it were, the drops which the freshness
of the air makes fall at the break of day, so we, having received Faith, Hope and Charity
from the heavenly bounty, ought always to turn our hears and keep them turned towards
it, thence to obtain the continuation and augmentation of the same virtues. "O, Lord," does
holy Church our mother teach us to say, "give us the increase of faith, hope and charity."
And this is in imitation of those that said to Our Saviour: Lord increase our faith,128 and
following the counsel of S. Paul, who assures us that: God alone is able to make all grace
abound in us.129
It is God therefore that gives this increase, in consideration of the use we make of his
grace, as it is written; For he that hath, that is, who uses well the favours received, to him
shall be given, and he shall abound. 130 Thus is Our Saviour's exhortation practised: Lay up
to yourselves treasures in heaven:131 as though he said: add ever new good works to the
former ones; for fasting, prayer and alms-deeds are the coins whereof your treasures are to
consist. Now as amongst the treasures of the temple, the poor widow's mite was much es-
teemed, and as indeed, by the addition of many little pieces treasures become great, and
130
131
128 Luke xvii. 5.
129 2 Cor. ix. 8.
130 Matt. xiii. 12.
131 Matt vi. 20.
145

16.9 Page 159

▲back to top


Chapter II. How Easy Our Saviour Has Made the Increase of Love.
their value increases, so the least little good works, even though performed somewhat coldly,
and not according to the whole extent of the charity which is in us, are agreeable to God,
and esteemed by him; in such sort that though of themselves they cannot cause any increase
in the existing love, being of less force than it, yet the divine Providence, counting, and out
of his goodness, valuing them, forthwith rewards them with increase of charity for the
present, and assigns to them a greater heavenly glory for the future.
Theotimus, bees make the delicious honey which is their chief work; but the wax, which
they also make, does not therefore cease to be of some worth, or to make their labour valuable.
The loving heart ought to endeavour to bring forth works full of fervour, and of high value,
that it may powerfully augment charity: yet if it bring forth some of lesser value, it shall not
lose its recompense; for God will be pleased by these, that is to say he will love us ever a little
more for them. Now God never loves a soul more without bestowing also upon her more
charity, our love towards him being the proper, and special effect, of his love towards us.
The more attentively we regard our image in a looking-glass, the more attentively it re-
gards us again; and the more lovingly God casts his gracious eyes upon our soul, which is
made to his image and likeness, our soul in return, with so much the more attention and
fervour is fixed upon the divine goodness, answering, according to her littleness, every in-
crease which this sovereign sweetness makes of his divine love towards her. The Council of
Trent says thus: "If any say that justice received is not preserved, yea that it is not augmented,
by good works in the sight of God, but that works are only the fruits and signs of justification
acquired, and not the cause of its increase, let him be anathema." Do you see, Theotimus,
the justification wrought by charity is augmented by good works, and, which is to be noted,
by good works without exception: for, as S. Bernard says excellently well on another subject,
nothing is excepted where nothing is distinguished. The Council speaks of good works in-
differently, and without reservation, giving us to understand, that not only the great and
132
fervent, but also the little and feeble works cause the increase of holy Charity, but the great
ones greatly, and the little much less.
Such is the love which God bears to our souls, such his desire to make us increase in
the love which we owe to him. The divine sweetness renders all things profitable to us, takes
all to our advantage, and turns all our endeavours, though never so lowly and feeble, to our
gain.
In the action of moral virtues little works bring no increase to the virtue whence they
proceed, yea, if they be very little, they impair it: for a great liberality perishes if it occupies
itself in bestowing things of small value, and of liberality becomes niggardliness. But in the
actions of those virtues which issue from God's mercy, and especially of charity, every work
gives increase. Nor is it strange that sacred love, as King of virtues, has nothing either great
or small which is not loveable, since the balm tree, prince of aromatic trees, has neither bark
146

16.10 Page 160

▲back to top


Chapter II. How Easy Our Saviour Has Made the Increase of Love.
nor leaf that is not odoriferous: and what could love bring forth that were not worthy of
love, or did not tend to love?
147

17 Pages 161-170

▲back to top


17.1 Page 161

▲back to top


Chapter III. How a Soul in Charity Makes Progress in It.
CHAPTER III.
HOW A SOUL IN CHARITY MAKES PROGRESS IN IT.
Let us make use of a parable, Theotimus, seeing that this method was so agreeable to the
sovereign Master of the love which we are teaching. A great and brave King, having espoused
a most amiable young princess, and having on a certain day led her into a very retired cab-
inet, there to converse with her more at his pleasure, after some discourse saw her by a certain
sudden accident fall down as dead at his feet. Alas! he was extremely disturbed at this, and
it well nigh put him also into a swoon; for she was dearer to him than his own life. Yet the
same love that gave him this assault of grief, gave him an equal strength to sustain it, and
set him into action to remedy, with an incomparable promptitude, the evil which had
happened to the dear companion of his life. Therefore rapidly opening a sideboard which
stood by, he takes a cordial-water, infinitely precious, and having filled his mouth with it,
by force he opens the lips and the set teeth of his well-beloved princess, then breathing and
spurting the precious liquor which he held in his mouth, into that of his poor lifeless one
who lay in a swoon, and pouring what was left in the phial about the nostrils, the temples,
and the heart, he made her return to herself and to her senses again; that done, he helps her
up gently, and by virtue of remedies so strengthens and revives her, that she begins to stand
and walk very quietly with him; but in no sort without his help, for he goes assisting and
sustaining her by her arm, till at length he lays to her heart an epithem so precious and of
so great virtue, that finding herself entirely restored to her wonted health, she walks all alone,
her dear spouse not now sustaining her so much, but only holding her right hand softly
between his, and his right arm folded over hers on to her bosom. Thus he went on treating
her, and fulfilling to her in all this four most agreeable offices: for 1. He gave testimony that
his heart was lovingly careful of her. 2. He continued ever a little nursing her. 3. If she had
felt any touch of her former faintness he would have sustained her. 4. If she had lighted on
any rough and difficult place in her walking he would have been her support and stay: and
in accidents, or when she would make a little more haste, he raised her and powerfully suc-
coured her. In fine he stayed by her with this heartfelt care till night approached, and then
he assisted to lay her in her royal bed.
The soul is the spouse of Our Saviour when she is just; and because she is never just but
when she is in charity, she is also no sooner spouse than she is led into the cabinet of those
delicious perfumes mentioned in the Canticles. Now when the soul which has been thus
honoured commits sin, she falls as if dead in a spiritual swoon; and this is in good truth a
most unlooked-for accident: for who would ever think that a creature could forsake her
Creator and sovereign good for things so trifling as the allurements of sin? Truly the heavens
are astonished at it, and if God were subject to passions he would fall down in a swoon at
this misfortune, as when he was mortal he died upon the cross for our redemption. But
seeing it is not now necessary that he should employ his love in dying for us, when he sees
133
134
148

17.2 Page 162

▲back to top


Chapter III. How a Soul in Charity Makes Progress in It.
the soul overthrown by sin he commonly runs to her succour, and by an unspeakable mercy,
lays open the gates of her heart by the stings and remorses of conscience which come from
the divers lights and apprehensions which he casts into our hearts, with salutary movements,
by which, as by odorous and vital liquors, he makes the soul return to herself, and brings
her back to good sentiments. And all this, Theotimus, God works in us without our action,132
by his all-amiable Goodness which prevents us with its sweetness. For even as our bride,
having fainted, would have died in her swoon, if the King had not assisted her; so the soul
would remain lost in her sin if God prevented her not. But if the soul thus excited add her
consent to the solicitation of grace, seconding the inspiration which prevents her, and ac-
cepting the required helps provided for her by God; he will fortify her, and conduct her
through various movements of faith, hope and penitence, even till he restore her to her true
spiritual health, which is no other thing than charity. And while he thus makes her walk in
the virtues by which he disposes her to this holy love, he does not conduct her only, but in
such sort sustains her, that as she for her part goes as well as she is able so he on his part
supports and sustains her; and it is hard to say whether she goes or is carried; for she is not
so carried that she goes not, and yet her going is such that if she were not carried she could
not go. So that, to speak apostolically, she must say; I walk, not I alone, but the grace of God
with me.133
But the soul being entirely restored to her health by the excellent epithem of charity
which the Holy Ghost infuses into her heart, she is then able to walk and keep herself upon
her feet of herself, yet by virtue of this health and this sacred epithem of holy love. Wherefore
though she is able to walk of herself, yet is she to render the glory thereof to God, who has
bestowed upon her a health so vigorous and strong: for whether the Holy Ghost fortify us
by the motions which he enables our heart to make, or sustain us by the charity which he
infuses into them, whether he succour us by manner of assistance in raising and carrying
135
us, or strengthen our hearts by pouring into them fortifying and quickening love, we always
live, walk, and work, in him and by him.
And although by means of charity poured into our hearts, we are able to walk in the
presence of God, and make progress in the way of salvation, yet still it is the goodness of
God which ever helps the soul to whom he has given his love, continually holding her with
his holy hand; for so 1: He doth better make appear the sweetness of his love towards her.
2. He ever animates her more and more. 3. He supports her against depraved inclinations
and evil habits contracted by former sins. 4. And finally, he supports her and defends her
against temptations.
132 In nobis sine nobis (S. Aug.)
133 1 Cor. xv. 10.
149

17.3 Page 163

▲back to top


Chapter III. How a Soul in Charity Makes Progress in It.
Do we not often see, Theotimus, that sound and robust men must be provoked to employ
their strength and power well; and, as one would say, must be drawn by the hand to the
work? So God having given us his charity, and by it the force and the means to gain ground
in the way of perfection, his love does not permit him to let us walk thus alone, but makes
him put himself upon the way with us, urges him to urge us, and solicits his heart to solicit
and drive forward ours to make good use of the charity which he has given us, repeating
often, by means of his inspirations, S. Paul's admonitions: See that you receive not the grace
of God in vain.134 Whilst we have time, let us work good to all men.135 So run that you may
obtain.136 So that we are often to think that he repeats in our ears the words which he used
to the good father Abraham: Walk before me and be perfect.137
But principally the special assistance of God to the soul endowed with charity is required
in sublime and extraordinary enterprises; for though charity, however weak it be, gives us
enough inclination, and, as I think, enough power, to do the works necessary for salvation,
yet, to aspire to and undertake excellent and extraordinary actions, our hearts stand in need
of being pushed and raised by the hand and motion of this great heavenly lover; as the
princess in our parable, although restored to health, could not ascend nor go fast, unless
136
her dear spouse raised and strongly supported her. Thus S. Antony and S. Simeon Stylites
were in the grace of God and charity when they designed so exalted a life; as also the B.
Mother (S.) Teresa when she made her particular vow of obedience, S. Francis and S. Louis,
when they undertook their journey beyond-seas for the advancement of God's glory, the
Blessed Francis Xavier, when he consecrated his life to the conversion of the Indians, S.
Charles, in exposing himself to serve the plague-stricken, S. Paulinus, when he sold himself
to redeem the poor widow's child; yet still never would they have struck such mighty and
generous blows, unless God, to that charity which they had in their hearts, had added special
inspirations, invitations, lights and forces, whereby he animated and pushed them forward
to these extraordinary exploits of spiritual valour.
Do you not mark the young man of the gospel, whom Our Saviour loved, and who,
consequently, was in charity? Certainly, he never dreamed of selling all he had to give it to
the poor, and following Our Saviour: nay though Our Saviour had given him such an inspir-
ation, yet had he not the courage to put it into execution. For these great works, Theotimus,
we need not only to be inspired, but also to be fortified, in order to effect what the inspiration
inclines us to. As again in the fierce assaults of extraordinary temptations, a special and
particular presence of heavenly succour is absolutely necessary. For this cause holy church
134 2 Cor. vi. 1.
135 Gal. vi. 10.
136 1 Cor. ix. 24.
137 Gen. xvii. 1.
150

17.4 Page 164

▲back to top


Chapter III. How a Soul in Charity Makes Progress in It.
makes us so frequently cry out: "Excite our hearts O Lord:" "Prevent our actions by thy holy
inspirations and further them with thy continual help:" "O Lord, make haste to help us:"
and the like, in order by such prayers to obtain grace to be able to effect excellent and ex-
traordinary works, and more frequently and fervently to do ordinary ones; as also more ar-
dently to resist small temptations, and boldly to combat the greatest. S. Antony was assailed
by a hideous legion of devils, and having long sustained their attacks, not without incredible
pain and torment, at length saw the roof of his cell burst open, and a heavenly ray enter the
breach, which made the black and darksome troop of his enemies vanish in a moment, and
delivered him from all the pain of the wounds received in that battle; whence he perceived
137
God's particular presence, and fetching a profound sigh towards the vision—"where wast
thou, O good Jesus," said he, "where wast thou? Why wast thou not here from the beginning
to have relieved my pain? It was answered him from above Antony, I was here: but I awaited
the event of thy combat: and since thou didst behave thyself bravely and valiantly, I will be
thy continual aid." But in what did the valour and courage of this brave spiritual combatant
consist? He himself declared it another time when, being set upon by a devil who acknow-
ledged himself to be the spirit of fornication, this glorious saint after many words worthy
of his great courage began to sing the 7th verse of the 117th Psalm: The Lord is my helper:
and I will look over my enemies.
And Our Saviour revealed to S. Catharine of Sienna, that he was in the midst of her
heart in a cruel temptation she had, as a captain in the midst of a fort to hold it; and that
without his succour she would have been lost in that battle. It is the same in all the great
assaults which our enemy makes against us: and we may well say with Jacob that it is the
angel that delivereth us from all evil,138 and may sing with the great King David: The Lord
ruleth me: and I shall want nothing. He hath set me in a place of pasture. He hath brought
me up, on the water of refreshment: he hath converted my soul. So that we ought often to repeat
this exclamation and prayer: And thy mercy will follow me all the days of my life.139
138 Gen. xlviii. 16.
139 Ps. xxii.
151

17.5 Page 165

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Holy Perseverance in Sacred Love.
CHAPTER IV.
OF HOLY PERSEVERANCE IN SACRED LOVE.
Even as a tender mother, leading with her her little babe, assists and supports him as need
requires, letting him now and then venture a step by himself in less dangerous and very
138
smooth places, now taking him by the hand and steadying him, now taking him up in her
arms and bearing him, so Our Lord has a continual care to conduct his children, that is such
as are in charity; making them walk before him, reaching them his hand in difficulties, and
bearing them himself in such travails, as he sees otherwise insupportable unto them. This
he declared by Isaias saying: I am the Lord thy God, who take thee by the hand, and say to
thee: fear not, I have helped thee.140 So that with a good heart we must have a firm confidence
in God, and his assistance, for if we fail not to second his grace, he will accomplish in us the
good work of our salvation, which he also began working in us both to will and to accom-
plish,141 as the holy Council of Trent assures us.
In this conduct which the heavenly sweetness makes of our souls, from their entry into
charity until their final perfection, which is not finished but in the hour of death, consists
the great gift of perseverance, to which our Saviour attaches the greatest gift of eternal glory,
according to his saying: He that shall persevere unto the end, he shall be saved:142 for this
gift is no other thing than the combination and sequence of the various helps, solaces and
succours, whereby we continue in the love of God to the end: as the education, bringing up
and supporting of a child is no other thing, than the many cares, aids, succours, and other
offices necessary to a child, exercised and continued towards him till he grow to years in
which he no longer needs them.
But the continuance of succours and helps is not equal in all those that persevere. In
some it is short; as in such as were converted a little before their death: so it happened to
the Good Thief; so to that officers who seeing the constancy of S. James made forthwith
profession of faith, and became a companion of the martyrdom of this great Apostle; so to
the blessed gaoler who guarded the forty martyrs at Sebaste, who seeing one of them lose
courage, and forsake the crown of martyrdom, put himself in his place and became Christian,
139
martyr and glorious all at once; so to the notary of whom mention is made in the life of S.
Antony of Padua, who having all his life been a false villain yet died a martyr: and so it
happened to a thousand others of whom we have seen and read that they died well, after an
ill-spent life. As for these, they stand not in need of a great variety of succours, but unless
some great temptation cross their way, they can make this short perseverance solely by the
charity given them, and by the aids by which they were converted. For they arrive at the
140 Is. xli. 13.
141 Phil. ii. 13.
142 Matt. x. 22.
152

17.6 Page 166

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Holy Perseverance in Sacred Love.
port without voyaging, and finish their pilgrimage in a single leap, which the powerful mercy
of God makes them take so opportunely that their enemies see them triumph before seeing
them fight: so that their conversion and perseverance are almost the same thing. And if we
would speak with exact propriety, the grace which they received of God whereby they attained
as soon the issue, as the beginning of their course, cannot well be termed perseverance,
though all the same, because actually it holds the place of perseverance in giving salvation,
we comprehend it under the name of perseverance. In others, on the contrary, perseverance
is longer, as in S. Anne the prophetess, in S. John the Evangelist, S. Paul the first hermit, S.
Hilarion, S. Romuald, S. Francis of Paula;—and they stood in need of a thousand sorts of
different assistances, according to the variety of the adventures of their pilgrimage and the
length of it.
But in any case, perseverance is the most desirable gift we can hope for in this life, and
the one which, as the Council of Trent says, we cannot have but from the hand of God, who
alone can assure him that stands, and help him up that falls: wherefore we must incessantly
demand it, making use of the means which Our Saviour has taught us to the obtaining of
it; prayer, fasting, alms-deeds, frequenting the sacraments, intercourse with the good, the
hearing and reading of holy words.
Now since the gift of prayer and devotion is liberally granted to all those who sincerely
will to consent to divine inspirations, it is consequently in our power to persevere. Not of
course that I mean to say that our perseverance has its origin from our power, for on the
contrary I know it springs from God's mercy, whose most precious gift it is, but I mean that
140
though it does not come from our power, yet it comes within our power, by means of our
will, which we cannot deny to be in our power: for though God's grace is necessary for us,
to will to persevere, yet is this will in our power, because heavenly grace is never wanting
to our will, and our will is not wanting to our power. And indeed according to the great S.
Bernard's opinion, we may all truly say with the Apostle that: Neither death, nor life, nor
Angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor might, nor
height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the love of God,
which is in Christ Jesus Our Lord.143 Yes, indeed, for no creature can take us away by force
from this holy love; we only can forsake and abandon it by our own will, except for which
there is nothing to be feared in this matter.
So, Theotimus, following the advice of the holy Council, we ought to place our whole
hope in God, who will perfect the work of our salvation which he has begun in us, if we be
not wanting to his grace: for we are not to think that he who said to the paralytic: Go, and
do not will to sin again:144 gave him not also power to avoid that willing which he forbade
143 Rom. viii. 38-9
144 John v. 14.
153

17.7 Page 167

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Holy Perseverance in Sacred Love.
him: and surely he would never exhort the faithful to persevere, if he were not ready to furnish
them with the power. Be thou faithful until death, said he to the bishop of Smyrna, and I
will give thee the crown of life.145 Watch ye, stand fast in the faith, do manfully, and be
strengthened. Let all your actions be done in charity.146 So run that you may obtain.147 We
must often then with the great King demand of God the heavenly gift of perseverance, and
hope that he will grant it us. Cast me not off in the time of old age; when my strength shall
fail, do not thou forsake me.148
145 Apoc. ii. 10.
146 1 Cor. xvi. 13.
147 1 Cor. ix. 24.
148 Ps. lxx. 9.
154

17.8 Page 168

▲back to top


Chapter V. That the Happiness of Dying in Heavenly Charity Is a Special…
CHAPTER V.
THAT THE HAPPINESS OF DYING IN HEAVENLY CHARITY IS A SPECIAL GIFT
OF GOD.
In fine, the heavenly King having brought the soul which he loves to the end of this life, he
141
assists her also in her blessed departure, by which he draws her to the marriage-bed of
eternal glory, which is the delicious fruit of holy perseverance. And then, dear Theotimus,
this soul, wholly ravished with the love of her well-beloved, putting before her eyes the
multitude of favours and succours wherewith she was prevented and helped while she was
yet in her pilgrimage, incessantly kisses this sweet helping hand, which conducted, drew
and supported her in the way; and confesses, that it is of this divine Saviour that she holds
her felicity, seeing he has done for her all that the patriarch Jacob wished for his journey,
when he had seen the ladder to heaven. O Lord, she then says, thou wast with me, and didst
guide me in the way by which I came. Thou didst feed me with the bread of thy sacraments,
thou didst clothe me with the wedding garment of charity, thou hast happily conducted me
to this mansion of glory, which is thy house, O my eternal Father. Oh! what remains, O
Lord, save that I should protest that thou art my God for ever and ever! Amen.
Thou hast held me by my right hand; and by thy will thou hast conducted me, and with
thy glory thou hast received me.149 Such then is the order of our journey to eternal life, for
the accomplishment of which the divine providence ordained from all eternity the number,
distinction and succession of graces necessary to it, with their dependence on one another.
He willed, first, with a true will, that even after the sin of Adam all men should be saved,
but upon terms and by means agreeable to the condition of their nature, which is endowed
with free-will; that is to say he willed the salvation of all those who would contribute their
consent, to the graces and favours which he would prepare, offer and distribute to this end.
Now, amongst these favours, his will was that vocation should be the first, and that it
should be so accommodated to our liberty that we might at our pleasure accept or reject it:
142
and such as he saw would receive it, he would furnish with the sacred motions of penitence,
and to those who would second these motions he determined to give charity, those again
who were in charity, he purposed to supply with the helps necessary to persevere, and to
such as should make use of these divine helps he resolved to impart final perseverance, and
the glorious felicity of his eternal love.
And thus we may give account of the order which is found in the effects of that
Providence which regards our salvation, descending from the first to the last, that is from
the fruit, which is glory, to the root of this fair tree, which is Our Saviour's redemption. For
the divine goodness gives glory after merits, merits after charity, charity after penitence,
penitence after obedience to vocation, obedience to vocation after vocation itself, vocation
149 Ps. lxxii. 24.
155

17.9 Page 169

▲back to top


Chapter V. That the Happiness of Dying in Heavenly Charity Is a Special…
after Our Saviour's redemption, on which rests all this mystical ladder of the great Jacob, as
well at its heavenly end, since it rests in the bosom of the eternal Father, in which he receives
and glorifies the elect, as also at its earthly end, since it is planted upon the bosom and
pierced side of Our Saviour, who for this cause died upon Mount Calvary.
And that this order of the effects of Providence was thus ordained, with the same de-
pendence which they have on one another in the eternal will of God, holy Church, in the
preface of one of her solemn prayers, witnesses in these words: "O eternal and Almighty
God, who art Lord of the living and the dead, and art merciful to all those who thou fore-
knowest will be thine by faith and good works:" as though she were declaring that glory,
which is the crown and the fruit of God's mercy towards men, has only been ordained for
those, of whom the divine wisdom has foreseen that in the future, obeying the vocation,
they will attain the living faith which works by charity.
Finally, all these effects have an absolute dependence on Our Saviour's redemption, who
merited them for us in rigour of justice by the loving obedience which he exercised even till
death and the death of the cross, which is the root of all the graces which we receive; we who
are the spiritual grafts engrafted on his stock. If being engrafted we remain in him, we shall
certainly bear, by the life of grace which he will communicate unto us, the fruit of glory
prepared for us. But if we prove broken sprigs and grafts upon this tree, that is, if by resistance
143
we interrupt the progress and break the connection of the effects of his clemency, it will not
be strange, if in the end we be wholly cut off, and be thrown into eternal fires as fruitless
branches.
God, doubtless, prepared heaven for those only who he foresaw would be his. Let us be
his then, Theotimus, by faith and works, and he will be ours by glory. Now it is in our power
to be his: for though it be a gift of God to be God's, yet is it a gift which God denies no one,
but offers to all, to give it to such as freely consent to receive it.
But mark, I pray you, Theotimus, how ardently God desires we should be his, since to
this end he has made himself entirely ours; bestowing upon us his death and his life; his life,
to exempt us from eternal death, his death, to possess us of eternal life. Let us remain
therefore in peace and serve God, to be his in this mortal life, and still more his in the
eternal.
156

17.10 Page 170

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Cannot Attain to Perfect Union with God in This Mortal…
CHAPTER VI.
THAT WE CANNOT ATTAIN TO PERFECT UNION WITH GOD IN THIS MORTAL
LIFE.
All the rivers flow incessantly, and, as the wise man says: Unto the place from whence they
come they return to flow again.150 The sea which is the place whence they spring, is also the
place of their final repose; all their motion tends no farther than to unite themselves to their
fountain. "O God," says S. Augustine, "thou hast created my heart for thyself, and it can
never repose but in thee." For what have I in heaven, and besides thee what do I desire upon
earth? Thou art the God of my heart, and the God that is my portion for ever.151 Still the
union which our heart aspires to cannot attain to its perfection in this mortal life; we can
commence our loves in this, but we can consummate them only in the other.
The heavenly Spouse makes a delicate expression of this. I found him whom my soul 144
loveth, says she, I held him, and I will not let him go, till I bring him into my mother's house,
and into the chamber of her that bore me.152 She finds him then, this well-beloved, for he
makes her feel his presence by a thousand consolations; she holds him, for these feelings
cause in her strong affections, by which she clasps and embraces him, protesting that she
will never let him go,—O no! for these affections turn into eternal resolutions; yet she cannot
consider that she kisses him with the nuptial kiss till she meet with him in her mother's
house, which is the heavenly Jerusalem, as S. Paul says. But see, Theotimus, how this spouse
thinks of nothing less than of keeping her beloved at her mercy as a slave of love; whence
she imagines to herself that it is hers to lead him at her will, and to introduce him into her
mother's happy abode; though in reality it is she who must be conducted thither by him, as
was Rebecca into Sara's chamber by her dear Isaac. The spirit urged by amorous passion
always gives itself a little advantage over what it loves; and the spouse himself confesses:
Thou hast wounded my heart, my sister, my spouse, thou hast wounded my heart with one
of thy eyes, and with one hair of thy neck:153 acknowledging himself her prisoner by love.
This perfect conjunction then of the soul with God, shall only be in heaven, where as
the Apocalypse says, the Lamb's marriage feast shall be made. In this mortal life the soul is
truly espoused and betrothed to the immaculate Lamb, but not as yet married to him: the
troth is plighted, and promise given, but the execution of the marriage is deferred: so that
we have always time, though never reason, to withdraw from it; our faithful spouse never
abandons us unless we oblige him to it by our disloyalty and unfaithfulness. But in heaven
150 Eccles. i. 7.
151 Ps. lxxii. 25-6.
152 Cant. iii. 4.
153 Ibid. iv. 9.
157

18 Pages 171-180

▲back to top


18.1 Page 171

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Cannot Attain to Perfect Union with God in This Mortal…
the marriage of this divine union being celebrated, the bond which ties our hearts to their
sovereign principle shall be eternally indissoluble.
It is true, Theotimus, that while we await this great kiss of indissoluble union which we
shall receive from the spouse there above in glory, he gives us some kisses by a thousand
145
feelings of his delightful presence: for unless the soul were kissed she would not be drawn,
nor would she run in the odour of the beloved's perfumes. Whence, according to the original
Hebrew text and the Seventy interpreters, she desires many kisses. Let him kiss me, says she,
with the kisses of his mouth. But because these little kisses of this present life all refer to the
eternal kiss of the life to come, the sacred Vulgate edition has holily reduced the kisses of
grace to that of glory, expressing the desires of the spouse in this manner: Let him kiss me
with the kiss of his mouth,154 as though she said: of all the kisses, of all the favours that the
friend of my heart, or the heart of my soul has provided for me, ah! I only breathe after and
aspire to this great and solemn marriage-kiss which remains for ever, and in comparison
of which the other kisses deserve not the name of kisses, being rather signs of the future
union between my beloved and me than union itself.
154 Cant. i. 1.
158

18.2 Page 172

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That the Charity of Saints in This Mortal Life Equals, Yea…
CHAPTER VII.
THAT THE CHARITY OF SAINTS IN THIS MORTAL LIFE EQUALS, YEA SOME-
TIMES SURPASSES, THAT OF THE BLESSED.
When after the labours and dangers of this mortal life, good souls arrive at the port of the
eternal, they ascend to the highest and utmost degree of love to which they can attain; and
this final increase being bestowed upon them in recompense of their merits, it is distributed
to them, not only in good measure, but in a measure which is pressed down and shaken to-
gether and running over,155 as Our Saviour says; so that the love which is given for reward
is greater in every one than that which was given for meriting.
Now, not only shall each one in particular have a greater love in heaven than ever he
had on earth, but the exercise of the least charity in heaven, shall be much more happy and
excellent, generally speaking, than that of the greatest which is, or has been, or shall be, in
this failing life: for there above, all the saints incessantly, without any intermission, exercise
146
love; while here below God's greatest servants, drawn away and tyrannized over by the ne-
cessities of this dying life, are forced to suffer a thousand and a thousand distractions, which
often take them off the practice of holy love.
In heaven, Theotimus, the loving attention of the blessed is firm, constant, inviolable,
and cannot perish or decrease; their intention is pure and freed from all mixture of any in-
ferior intention: in short, this felicity of seeing God clearly and loving him unchangeably is
incomparable. And who would ever equal the pleasure, if there be any, of living amidst the
perils, the continual tempests, the perpetual agitations and viscissitudes which have to be
gone through on sea, with the contentment there is of being in a royal palace, where all
things are at every wish, yea where delights incomparably surpass every wish?
There is then more content, sweetness and perfection in the exercise of sacred love
amongst the inhabitants of heaven, than amongst the pilgrims of this miserable earth. Yet
still there have been some so happy in their pilgrimage that their charity has been greater
than that of many saints already enjoying the eternal fatherland: for certainly it were strange
if the charity of the great S. John, of the Apostles and Apostolic men, were not greater, even
while they were detained here below, than that of little children, who, dying simply with the
grace of baptism, enjoy immortal glory.
It is not usual for shepherds to be more valiant than soldiers; and yet David, when a
little shepherd, coming to the army of Israel, while he found every one more expert in the
use of arms than himself, yet he was more valiant than all. So it is not an ordinary thing for
mortals to have more charity than the immortals, and yet there have been some mortals,
inferior to the immortals in the exercise of love, who, notwithstanding, have surpassed them
in charity and the habit of love. And as, when comparing hot iron and a burning lamp, we
155 Luke vi. 38.
159

18.3 Page 173

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That the Charity of Saints in This Mortal Life Equals, Yea…
say the iron has more fire and heat, the lamp more flame and light; so if we parallel a child
in glory with S. John while yet prisoner, or S. Paul yet captive, we must say that the child in
heaven has more brightness and light in the understanding, more flame and exercise of love
in the will, but that S. John or S. Paul had even on earth more fire of charity, and heat of
147
love.
160

18.4 Page 174

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. Of the Incomparable Love Which the Mother of God, Our Blessed…
CHAPTER VIII.
OF THE INCOMPARABLE LOVE WHICH THE MOTHER of GOD, OUR BLESSED
LADY, HAD.
But always and everywhere, when I make comparisons, I intend not to speak of the most
holy virgin-mother, Our Blessed Lady. O my God—no indeed! For she is the daughter of
incomparable dilection, the one only dove, the all-perfect spouse. Of this heavenly Queen,
from my heart I pronounce this thought, amorous but true, that at least towards the end of
her mortal days, her charity surpassed that of the Seraphim, for many daughters have gathered
together riches: thou hast surpassed them all.156 The Saints and Angels are but compared to
stars, and the first of them to the fairest of the stars: but she is fair as the moon, as easy to
be chosen and discerned from all the Saints as the sun from the stars. And going on further
I think again that as the charity of this Mother of love excels in perfection that of all the
Saints in heaven, so did she exercise it more perfectly, I say even in this mortal life. She
never sinned venially, as the church considers; she had then no change nor delay in the way
of love, but by a perpetual advancement ascended from love to love. She never felt any
contradiction from the sensual appetite, and therefore her love, as a true Solomon, reigned
peaceably in her soul and made all its acts at its pleasure. The virginity of her heart and body
was more worthy and honourable than that of the Angels. So that her spirit, not divided or
separated, as S. Paul says, was solicitous for the things that belong to the Lord how it might
please God.157 And, in fine, maternal love, the most pressing, the most active and the most
ardent of all, what must it not have worked in the heart of such a Mother and for the heart
of such a Son?
Ah! do not say, I pray you, that this virgin was subject to sleep; no, say not this to me, 148
Theotimus: for do you not see that her sleep is a sleep of love? So that even her spouse wishes
that she should sleep as long as she pleases. Ah! take heed, I adjure you, says he, that you
stir not up nor make the beloved to awake till she please.158 No, Theotimus, this heavenly
Queen never slept but with love, since she never gave repose to her precious body, but to
reinvigorate it, the better afterwards to serve her God, which is certainly a most excellent
act of charity. For, as the great S. Augustine says, charity obliges us to love our bodies
properly, insomuch as they are necessary to good works, as they make a part of our person,
and as they shall be sharers in our eternal felicity. In good truth, a Christian is to love his
body as a living image of Our Saviour incarnate, as having issued from the same stock, and
consequently belonging to him in parentage and consanguinity; especially after we have
renewed the alliance, by the real reception of the divine body of Our Redeemer, in the most
156 Prov. xxxi. 29.
157 1 Cor. vii. 32.
158 Cant. ii. 7.
161

18.5 Page 175

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. Of the Incomparable Love Which the Mother of God, Our Blessed…
adorable sacrament of the Eucharist, and when by Baptism, Confirmation and other Sacra-
ments we have dedicated and consecrated ourselves to the sovereign goodness.
But as to the Blessed Virgin,—O God, with what devotion must she have loved her vir-
ginal body! Not only because it was a sweet, humble, pure body, obedient to divine love,
and wholly embalmed with a thousand sweetnesses, but also because it was the living source
of Our Saviour's, and belonged so strictly to him, by an incomparable appurtenance. For
which cause when she placed her angelic body in the repose of sleep: Repose then now,
would she say, O Tabernacle of Alliance, Ark of Sanctity, Throne of the Divinity, ease thyself
a little of thy weariness, and repair thy forces, by this sweet tranquillity.
Besides, dear Theotimus, do you not know that bad dreams, voluntarily procured by
the depraved thoughts of the day, are in some sort sins, inasmuch as they are consequences
and execution of the malice preceding? Even so the dreams which proceed from the holy
affections of our waking time, are reputed virtuous and holy. O God! Theotimus, what a
consolation it is to hear S. Chrysostom recounting on a certain day to his people the vehe-
149
mence of his love towards them. "The necessity of sleep," said he, "pressing our eyelids, the
tyranny of our love towards you excites the eyes of our mind: and many a time while I sleep
methinks I speak unto you, for the soul is wont to see in a dream by imagination what she
thinks in the daytime. Thus while we see you not with the eyes of the flesh, we see you with
the eyes of charity." O sweet Jesus! what dreams must thy most holy Mother have had when
she slept, while her heart watched? Did she not dream that she had thee yet in her womb,
or hanging at her sacred breasts and sweetly pressing those virginal lilies? Ah! what sweetness
was in this soul. Perhaps she often dreamed that as Our Saviour had formerly slept in her
bosom, as a tender lambkin upon the soft flank of its mother, so she slept in his pierced side,
as a white dove in the cave of an assured rock: so that her sleep was wholly like to an ecstasy
as regards the spirit, though as regards the body it was a sweet and grateful unwearying and
rest. But if ever she dreamed, as did the ancient Joseph, of her future greatness,—when in
heaven she should be clothed with the sun, crowned with stars and having the moon under
her feet,159 that is, wholly environed with her Son's glory, crowned with that of the Saints,
and having the universe under her—or if ever, like Jacob, she saw the progress and fruit of
the redemption made by her Son, for the love of the angels and of men;—Theotimus, who
could ever imagine the immensity of so great delights? O what conferences with her dear
child! What delights on every side!
But mark, I pray you, that I neither say nor mean to say that this privileged soul of the
Mother of God was deprived of the use of reason in her sleep. Many are of opinion that
Solomon in that beautiful dream, though really a dream, in which he demanded and received
159 Gen. xxxvii.; Apoc. xii. 1.
162

18.6 Page 176

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. Of the Incomparable Love Which the Mother of God, Our Blessed…
the gift of his incomparable wisdom, had the true use of his free-will, on account of the ju-
dicious eloquence of the discourse he made, of his choice full of discretion, and of the most
excellent prayer which he used, the whole without any mixture of inconsistency or distraction
of mind. But how much more probability is there then that the mother of the true Solomon
150
had the use of reason in her sleep, that is to say, as Solomon himself makes her say, that her
heart watched while she slept? Surely it was a far greater marvel that S. John had the exercise
of reason in his mother's womb, and why then should we deny a less to her for whom, and
to whom, God did more favours, than either he did or ever will do for all creatures besides?
To conclude, as the precious stone, asbestos, does by a peerless propriety preserve for
ever the fire which it has conceived, so the Virgin Mother's heart remained perpetually in-
flamed with the holy love which she received of her Son: yet with this difference, that the
fire of the asbestos, as it cannot be extinguished, so it cannot be augmented, but the Virgin's
sacred flames, since they could neither perish, diminish nor remain in the same state, never
ceased to take incredible increase, even as far as heaven the place of their origin: so true it
is that this Mother is the Mother of fair love, that is, as the most amiable, so the most loving,
and as the most loving, so the most beloved Mother of this only Son; who again is the most
amiable, most loving, and most beloved Son of this only Mother.
163

18.7 Page 177

▲back to top


Chapter IX. A Preparation for the Discourse on the Union of the Blessed…
CHAPTER IX.
A PREPARATION FOR THE DISCOURSE ON THE UNION OF THE BLESSED
WITH GOD.
The triumphant love which the blessed in heaven exercise, consists in the final, invariable
and eternal union of the soul with its God. But this union—what is it?
By how much more agreeable and excellent are the objects our senses meet with, so
much more ardently and greedily they give themselves to the fruition of them. By how much
more fair, delightful to the view, and duly set in light they are, so much the more eagerly
and attentively does the eye regard them: and by how much more sweet and pleasant voices
or music are, so much the more is the attention of the ear drawn to them. So that every object
151
exercises a powerful but grateful violence upon the sense to which it belongs, a violence
more or less strong as the excellence is greater or less; provided always that it be proportion-
able to the capacity of the sense which desires to enjoy it; for the eye which finds so much
pleasure in light cannot, however, bear an extreme light, nor fix itself upon the sun, and be
music never so sweet, if loud and too near, it importunes and offends our ears. Truth is the
object of our understanding, which consequently has all its content in discovering and
knowing the truth of things; and according as truths are more excellent, so the understanding
applies itself with more delight and attention to the consideration of them. How great was
the pleasure, think you, Theotimus, of those ancient philosophers who had such an excellent
knowledge of so many beautiful truths of Nature? Verily they reputed all pleasures as
nothing in comparison with their well-beloved philosophy, for which some of them quitted
honours, others great riches, others their country; and there was such a one as deliberately
plucked out his eyes, depriving himself for ever of the enjoyment of the fair and agreeable
corporal light, that he might with more liberty apply himself to consider the truth of things
by the light of the spirit. This we read of Democritus: so sweet is the knowledge of truth!
Hence Aristotle has very often said that human felicity and beatitude consists in wisdom,
which is the knowledge of the eminent truths.
But when our spirit, raised above natural light, begins to see the sacred truths of faith,
O God! Theotimus, what joy! The soul melts with pleasure, hearing the voice of her heavenly
spouse, whom she finds more sweet and delicious then the honey of all human sciences.
God has imprinted upon all created things his traces, trail, or footsteps, so that the
knowledge we have of his divine Majesty by creatures seems no other thing than the sight
of the feet of God, while in comparison of this, faith is a view of the very face of the divine
Majesty. This we do not yet see in the clear day of glory, but as it were in the breaking of
day; as it happened to Jacob near to the ford of Jaboc; for though he saw not the angel with
whom he wrestled, save in the weak light of daybreak, yet this was enough to make him cry
152
out, ravished with delight: I have seen God face to face, and my soul has been saved.160 O!
160 Gen. xxxii. 30.
164

18.8 Page 178

▲back to top


Chapter IX. A Preparation for the Discourse on the Union of the Blessed…
how delightful is the holy light of faith, by which we know, with an unequalled certitude,
not only the history of the beginning of creatures, and their true use, but even that of the
eternal birth of the great and sovereign divine Word, for whom and by whom all has been
made, and who with the Father and the Holy Ghost is one only God, most singular, most
adorable, and blessed for ever and ever! Amen. Ah! says S. Jerome to his Paulinus: "The
learned Plato never knew this, the eloquent Demosthenes was ignorant of it." How sweet
are thy words, O Lord, to my palate, said that great king, more than honey to my mouth!161
Was not our burning within us, whilst he spoke in the way?162 said those happy pilgrims of
Emmaus, speaking of the flames of love with which they were touched by the word of faith.
But if divine truths be so sweet, when proposed in the obscure light of faith, O God, what
shall they be when we shall contemplate them in the light of the noonday of glory!
The Queen of Saba, who at the greatness of Solomon's renown had left all to go and see
him, having arrived in his presence, and having heard the wonders of the wisdom which he
poured out in his speeches, as one astonished and lost in admiration, cried out that what
she had learnt by hearsay of this heavenly wisdom was not half the knowledge which sight
and experience gave her.
Ah! how beautiful and dear are the truths which faith discovers unto us by hearing! But
when having arrived in the heavenly Jerusalem, we shall see the great Solomon, the King of
Glory, seated upon the thrown of his wisdom, manifesting by an incomprehensible brightness
the wonders and eternal secrets of his sovereign truth, with such light that our understanding
will actually see what it had believed here below—Ah! then, dearest Theotimus, what raptures!
what ecstasies! what admiration! what love! what sweetness! No, never (shall we say in this
excess of sweetness) never could we have conceived that we should see truths so delightsome.
153
We believed indeed all the glorious things that were said of thee, O great city of God, but we
could not conceive the infinite greatness of the abysses of thy delights.
161 Ps. cxviii. 103.
162 Luke xxiv. 32.
165

18.9 Page 179

▲back to top


Chapter X. That the Preceding Desire Will Much Increase the Union of the…
CHAPTER X.
THAT THE PRECEDING DESIRE WILL MUCH INCREASE THE UNION OF THE
BLESSED WITH GOD.
The desire which precedes enjoyment, sharpens and intensifies the feeling of it, and by how
much the desire was more urgent and powerful, by so much more agreeable and delicious
is the possession of the thing desired. Oh! my dear Theotimus, what pleasure will man's
heart take in seeing the face of the Divinity, a face so much desired, yea a face the only desire
of our souls? Our hearts have a thirst which cannot be quenched by the pleasures of this
mortal life, whereof the most esteemed and highest prized if moderate do not satisfy us, and
if extreme suffocate us. Yet we desire them always to be extreme, and they are never such
without being excessive, insupportable, hurtful. We die of joy as well as of grief: yea, joy is
more active to ruin us than grief. Alexander, having swallowed up, in effect or in hope, all
this lower world, heard some base fellow say, that there were yet many other worlds, and
like a little child, who will cry if one refuse him an apple, this Alexander, whom the world
styles the great, more foolish notwithstanding than a little child, began bitterly to weep, be-
cause there was no likelihood that he should conquer the other worlds, not having as yet
got the entire possession of this. He that did more fully enjoy the world than ever any other
did, is yet so little satisfied with it that he weeps for sorrow that he cannot have the other
worlds which the foolish persuasion of a wretched babbler made him imagine to exist. Tell
me, I pray you, Theotimus, does he not show that the thirst of his heart cannot be slaked in
this life, and that this world is not sufficient to quench it? O wonderful yet dear unrest of
man's heart! Be, be ever, my soul, without any rest or tranquillity on this earth, till thou shalt 154
have met with the fresh waters of the immortal life and the most holy Divinity, which alone
can satisfy thy thirst and quiet thy desire.
Now, Theotimus, imagine to yourself with the Psalmist, that hart which, hard set by the
hounds, has neither wind nor legs; how greedily he plunges himself into the waters which
he panted after, and with what ardour he rolls into and buries himself in that element. One
would think he would willingly be dissolved and converted into water, more fully to enjoy
its coolness. Ah! what a union of our hearts shall there be with God there above in heaven,
where, after these infinite desires of the true good never assuaged in this world, we shall
find the living and powerful source thereof. Then, truly, as we see a hungry child closely
fixed to his mother's breast, greedily press this dear fountain of most desired sweetness, so
that one would think that either it would thrust itself into its mother's breast, or else suck
and draw all that breast into itself; so our soul, panting with an extreme thirst for the true
good, when she shall find that inexhaustible source in the Divinity,—O good God! what a
holy and sweet ardour to be united and joined to the plentiful breasts of the All-goodness,
either to be altogether absorbed in it, or to have it come entirely into us!
166

18.10 Page 180

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the Vision…
CHAPTER XI.
OF THE UNION OF THE BLESSED SPIRITS WITH GOD, IN THE VISION OF THE
DIVINITY.
When we look upon anything, though it is present to us, it is not itself united to our eyes,
but only sends out to them a certain representation or picture of itself, which is called its
sensible species, by means of which we see. So also when we contemplate or understand
anything, that which we understand is not united to our understanding otherwise than by
another representation and most delicate and spiritual image, which is called intelligible
species. But further, these species, by how many windings and changes do they get to the
understanding! They arrive at the exterior senses, thence pass to the interior, then to the
imagination, then to the active understanding, and come at last to the passive understanding,
to the end that passing through so many strainers and under so many files they may be
purified, subtilised and perfected, and of sensible become intelligible.
Thus, Theotimus, we see and understand all that we see and understand in this mortal
life, yea even things of faith; for, as the mirror contains not the thing we see in it but only
the representation and species of it (which representation, stayed by the mirror, produces
another in the beholding eye), so the word of faith does not contain the things which it an-
nounces, but only represents them, and this representation of divine things which is in the
word of faith produces another representation of them, which our understanding, helped
by God's grace, accepts and receives as a representation of holy truth, and our will takes
delight in it, and embraces it, as an honourable, profitable, lovely and excellent truth. Thus
the truths signified in God's word are by it represented to the understanding as things ex-
pressed in the mirror are by the mirror represented to the eye: whence the great Apostle
said that to believe is to see as in a glass.163
But in heaven, Theotimus,—Ah! my God, what a favour!—The Divinity will unite itself
to our understanding without the mediation of any species or representation at all, but it
will itself apply and join itself to our understanding, making itself in such sort present unto
it, that that inward presence shall be instead of a representation or species. O God! what
sweetness shall it be for man's understanding to be united for ever to its sovereign object,
receiving not its representation but its presence, not the picture or species, but the very es-
sence of its divine truth and majesty. We shall be there as most happy children of the divinity,
and shall have the honour to be fed with the divine substance itself, taken into our soul by
the mouth of our understanding, and what surpasses all sweetness is, that as mothers are
not contented with feeding their babes with their milk, which is their own substance, if they
do not also put the breast into their mouth, that these may receive their substance, not in a
spoon or other instrument, but even in, and by this same substance (so that this maternal
155
156
163 I Cor. xiii. 12.
167

19 Pages 181-190

▲back to top


19.1 Page 181

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the Vision…
substance serves as well for food, as for a conduit to convey it to the dear little suckling);—so
God our Father is not contented to make us receive his proper substance in our understand-
ing, that is, to make us see his divinity, but by an abyss of his sweetness, wills himself to apply
his substance to our soul, to the end that we may no longer understand it by species or
representation but in itself and by itself; so that his fatherly and eternal substance is both
species and object to our understanding. Then these divine promises shall be fulfilled in an
excellent manner: I will lead her into the wilderness, and I will speak to her heart,164 and give
her suck. Rejoice with Jerusalem and be glad with her. That you may suck and be filled with
the breasts of her consolations, that you may milk out, and flow with delights from the
abundance of her glory: you shall be carried at the breasts, and upon the knees they shall caress
you.165
Infinite bliss, Theotimus, and one which has not been promised only, but of which we
have a pledge in the Blessed Sacrament, that perpetual feast of Divine Grace. For in it we
receive the blood of Our Saviour in his flesh, and his flesh in his blood; his blood being applied
unto us by means of his flesh, his substance by his substance to our very corporal mouth;
that we may know that so he will apply unto us his divine essence in the eternal feast of his
glory. True it is, this favour is done unto us here really but covertly, under Sacramental
species and appearances, whereas in heaven, the Divinity will give himself openly, and we
shall see him face to face as he is.
164 Osee. ii. 14.
165 Is. lxvi. 10, 11, 12.
168

19.2 Page 182

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Eternal Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the…
CHAPTER XII.
OF THE ETERNAL UNION OF THE BLESSED SPIRITS WITH GOD, IN THE VISION
OF THE ETERNAL BIRTH OF THE SON OF GOD.
O holy and Divine Spirit, eternal Love of the Father and the Son, be propitious to mine in-
157
fancy. Our understanding then shall see God, Theotimus; yes, it shall see God Himself face
to face, contemplating with a view of true and real presence, the divine essence Itself, and
in It, the infinite beauties thereof, all-power, all-goodness, all-wisdom, all-justice, and the
rest of this abyss of perfections.
It shall see clearly then, shall this understanding, the infinite knowledge which God the
Father had from all eternity of His own beauty, for the expression of which in Himself, He
pronounced and said eternally the Word, the Verbum, or the most singular and most infinite
speech and diction, which, comprising and representing all the perfection of the Father, can
be but one same God, entirely one with Him, without division or separation. We shall thus
then see that eternal and admirable generation of the Divine Word and Son, by which He
was eternally born to the image and likeness of the Father, a lively and natural image and
likeness, not representing any accidents or external thing; since in God all is substance, nor
can there be any accident, all is interior, nor can there be any exterior; but an image repres-
enting the proper substance of the Father so perfectly, so naturally, so essentially and sub-
stantially, that therefore it can be no other thing than the same God with Him, without
distinction or difference at all either in essence or substance, and with only the distinction
of Persons. For how could this Divine Son be the true, truly perfect and truly natural image,
resemblance and figure of the infinite beauty and substance of the Father, if this image did
not represent absolutely to the life and according to nature, the infinite perfections of the
Father? And how could it infinitely represent infinite perfections if it were not itself infinitely
perfect? And how could it be infinitely perfect if it were not God, and how could it be God
if it were not one same God with the Father?
This Son then, the infinite image and figure of His infinite Father, is with His Father
one sole, most unique, and infinite God, there being no difference of substance between
158
Them, but only the distinction of persons. This distinction of persons, as it is certainly re-
quired, so also it is absolutely sufficient, to effect that the Father pronounces, and the Son
is the Word pronounced; that the Father speaks, and the Son is the Word, or the diction;
that the Father expresses, and the Son is the image, likeness or figure expressed, and, in
short, that the Father is Father, and the Son, Son—two distinct persons, but one only Essence
or Divinity; so that God Who is sole is not solitary, for He is sole in His most singular and
simple Deity, yet is not solitary, because He is Father and Son in two persons. O Theotimus,
what joy, what jubilee to celebrate this eternal birth, kept in the brightness of the Saints,166
to celebrate it in seeing it, and to see it in celebrating it!
166 Ps. cix. 3.
169

19.3 Page 183

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Eternal Union of the Blessed Spirits with God, in the…
The most sweet S. Bernard, as yet a little boy at Chastillon-sur-Seine, was waiting in
Church on Christmas night for the divine office to begin, and whilst waiting the poor child
fell into a light slumber, during which (O God what sweetness!) he saw in spirit, yet in a
vision very distinct and clear, how the Son of God, having espoused human nature, and
becoming a little child in His Mother's most pure womb, was with a humble sweetness
mingled with a celestial majesty, virginally born of her:—As a bridegroom coming out of his
bride-chamber:167—a vision, Theotimus, which so replenished the loving heart of the little
Bernard with gladness, jubilation and spiritual delights, that he had all his life an extreme
sense of it, and therefore, though afterwards as a sacred bee he ever culled out of all the divine
mysteries the honey of a thousand sweet and heavenly consolations, yet had he a more
particular sweetness in the solemnity of the Nativity, and spoke with a singular relish of this
birth of his Master. But Ah! I beseech thee, Theotimus, if a mystical and imaginary vision
of the temporal and human birth of the Son of God, by which he proceeded man from a
woman, virgin from a virgin, ravishes and so highly delights a child's heart, what shall it be
when our spirits, gloriously illuminated with the light of glory, shall see this eternal birth
by which the Son proceeds, God from God, Light from Light, true God from true God, di-
vinely and eternally! Then shall our spirit be joined by an incomprehensible complacency
159
to this object of delight, and by an unchangeable attention remain united to it for ever.
167 Ps. xviii. 6.
170

19.4 Page 184

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the Union of the Blessed with God in the Vision of the…
CHAPTER XIII.
OF THE UNION OF THE BLESSED WITH GOD IN THE VISION OF THE PRODUC-
TION OF THE HOLY GHOST.
The eternal Father seeing the infinite goodness and beauty of His own essence, so perfectly,
essentially and substantially expressed in His Son, and the Son seeing reciprocally that His
same essence, goodness and beauty is originally in His Father as in its source and fountain,
ah! can it possibly be that this Divine Father and His Son should not mutually love one an-
other with an infinite love, since Their will by which They love, and Their goodness for
which They love are infinite in each of Them.
Love not finding us equal, equalizes us, not finding us united, unites us. Now the Father
and the Son finding Themselves not only equal and united, but even one same God, one
same goodness, one same essence and one same unity, how much must They needs love
one another. But this love does not act like the love which intellectual creatures have amongst
themselves, or towards their Creator; for created love is exercised by many and various
movements, aspirations, unions and joinings which immediately succeed one another, and
make a continuation of love with a grateful vicissitude of spiritual movements, but the divine
love of the eternal Father towards His Son is practised in one only spiration (souspir) mutually
from Them both, Who in this sort remain united and joined together. Yes, Theotimus; for
the goodness of the Father and Son being but one sole most perfectly singular goodness,
common to Them both, the love of this goodness can be but one only love; for though there
be two lovers, to wit, the Father and the Son, yet seeing it is only Their most singular goodness
common to Them both which is loved, and Their most unique will which loves, it is therefore
but one love exercised by one amorous spiration. The Father breathes this love and so does
the Son; but because the Father only breathes this love by means of the same will and for
160
the same goodness which is equally and singularly in Him and His Son: the Son again only
breathes this spiration of love for this same goodness and by this same will,—therefore this
spiration of love is but one spiration, or one only spirit breathed out by two breathers.
And because the Father and the Son Who breathe, have an infinite essence and will by
which They breathe, and because the goodness for which They breathe is infinite, it is im-
possible Their breathing should not be infinite; and forasmuch as it cannot be infinite
without being God, therefore this Spirit breathed from the Father and the Son is true God:
and since there neither is, nor can be, more than one only God, He is one only true God
with the Father and the Son. Moreover, as this love is an act which proceeds mutually from
the Father and the Son, it can neither be the Father, nor the Son, from whom it proceeds,
though it has the same goodness and substance of the Father and the Son, but must neces-
sarily be a third person, Who with the Father and the Son is one only God. And because
this love is produced by manner of breathings or spirations, it is called the Holy Spirit.
171

19.5 Page 185

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the Union of the Blessed with God in the Vision of the…
Now, Theotimus, King David, describing the sweetness of the friendship of God's ser-
vants, cries out: Behold how good and how pleasant it is for brethren to dwell together in
unity: like the precious ointment on the head, that ran down upon the beard, the beard of
Aaron, which ran down to the skirt of his garment: as the dew of Hermon, which descendeth
upon Mount Sion.168
But, O God! if human friendship be so agreeably lovely, and spread so delicious an
odour on them that contemplate it, what shall it be, my well-beloved Theotimus, to behold
the sacred exercise of mutual love between the eternal Father and the Son. S. Gregory
Nazianzen recounts that the incomparable love which existed between him and S. Basil the
Great was famous all through Greece, and Tertullian testifies, that the Pagans admired the
more than brotherly love which reigned amongst the primitive Christians. Oh! with what
161
celebration and solemnity, with what praises and benedictions, should be kept, with what
admirations should be honoured and loved, the eternal and sovereign friendship of the
Father and the Son! What is there to be loved and desired if friendship is not? And if
friendship is to be loved and desired, what friendship can be so in comparison with that
infinite friendship which is between the Father and the Son, and Which is one same most
sole God with them? Our heart, Theotimus, will sink lost in love, through admiration of the
beauty and sweetness of the love, that this eternal Father and this incomprehensible Son
practise divinely and eternally.
168 Ps. cxxxii.
172

19.6 Page 186

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That the Holy Light of Glory Will Serve for the Union of the…
CHAPTER XIV.
THAT THE HOLY LIGHT OF GLORY WILL SERVE FOR THE UNION OF THE
BLESSED SPIRITS WITH GOD.
The created understanding then shall see the divine essence, without any medium of species
or representation; yet not without a certain excellent light which disposes, elevates, and
strengthens it, to raise its view so high, and to an object so sublime and resplendent. For as
the owl has a sight strong enough to bear the sombre light of a clear night, but not strong
enough to stand the mid-day light, which is too brilliant to be borne by eyes so dim and
weak; so our understanding, which is strong enough to consider natural truths by its dis-
course, yea even the supernatural things of grace by the light of faith, is not yet able, by the
light of either nature or faith, to attain unto the view of the divine substance in itself.
Wherefore the sweetness of the eternal wisdom determined not to apply His essence to our
understanding till He had prepared, strengthened and fitted it to receive a sight so eminent,
and so disproportionate to its natural condition as is the view of the Divinity. So the sun,
the sovereign object of our corporal eyes amongst natural things, does not present itself
unto our view without sending first its rays, by means whereof we may be able to see it, so
that we only see it by its light. Yet there is a difference between the rays which the sun casts 162
upon our corporal eyes and the light which God will create in our understandings in heaven:
for the sun's rays do not fortify our corporal eyes when they are weak and unable to see, but
rather blind them, dazzling and confounding their infirm vision: whereas, on the contrary,
this sacred light of glory, finding our understandings unapt and unable to behold the Divinity,
raises, strengthens and perfects them so excellently, that by an incomprehensible marvel
they behold and contemplate the abyss of the divine brightness in itself with a fixed and
direct gaze, not being dazzled or beaten back by the infinite greatness of its splendour.
In like manner, therefore, as God has given us the light of reason, by which we may
know Him as Author of nature, and the light of faith by which we consider Him as source
of grace, so will He bestow upon us the light of glory by which we shall contemplate Him
as the fountain of beatitude and eternal life: but a fountain, Theotimus, which we shall not
contemplate afar off as we do now by faith, but which we shall see by the light of glory while
plunged and swallowed up in it.
Divers, who, fishing for precious stones, go down into the water, take oil, says Pliny, in
their mouths, that by scattering it, they may have more light to see in the waters where they
swim. Theotimus, a blessed soul having entered and plunged into the ocean of the divine
essence, God will pour into its understanding the sacred light of glory, which will enlighten
it in this abyss of inaccessible light, that so by the light of glory we may see the light of the
Divinity. For with Thee is the fountain of life; and in Thy light we shall see light.169
169 Ps. xxxv. 10.
173

19.7 Page 187

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That the Holy Light of Glory Will Serve for the Union of the…
174

19.8 Page 188

▲back to top


Chapter XV. That There Shall Be Different Degrees of the Union of the Blessed…
CHAPTER XV.
THAT THERE SHALL BE DIFFERENT DEGREES OF THE UNION OF THE BLESSED
WITH GOD.
Now this light of glory, Theotimus, shall be the measure of the sight and centemplation of
163
the Blessed; and according as we shall have less or more of this holy splendour, we shall see
more or less clearly, and consequently with more or less happiness, the most holy Divinity,
which as it is beholden diversely so it will make us diversely glorious. All the spirits indeed
in this heavenly Paradise see all the divine essence, yet it is not seen and cannot be seen en-
tirely by any one of them or by all of them together. No, Theotimus, for God being most
singularly one, and most simply indivisible, we cannot see Him without seeing Him all: but
being infinite, without limit, without bounds or measure at all in His perfection, there neither
is, nor can be, any capacity out of Himself which can ever totally comprehend or penetrate
the infinity of His goodness, infinitely essential and essentially infinite.
This created light of the visible sun, which is limited and finite, is in such sort all seen
by those that behold it that it is never totally seen by any one of them nor by all together. It
is in a manner so with all our senses. Amongst many that hear excellent music, though all
of them hear it all, yet some hear it not so well, nor with so much delight as others, according
as their ears are more or less delicate. The manna was all tasted by each one that ate it, yet
differently, according to the different appetites of those who ate it, and was never wholly
tasted, for it had more tastes of different kinds than the Israelites had varieties of tasting
power. Theotimus, we shall see and taste in heaven all the Divinity, but no one of the Blessed
nor all together shall ever see or taste it totally. This infinite Divinity shall still have infinitely
more excellences than we sufficiency and capacity; and we shall have an unspeakable content
to know that after we have satiated all the desires of our heart, and fully replenished its ca-
pacity in the fruition of the infinite good which is God, nevertheless there will remain in
this infinity, infinite perfections to be seen, enjoyed and possessed, which His divine Majesty
knows and sees, it alone comprehending itself.
So fishes enjoy the incredible vastness of the ocean; but not any fish, nor yet all the
164
multitude of fishes, ever saw all the shores of the sea or wetted their fins in all its waters.
Birds sport in the open air at their pleasure, but not any bird, nor yet all the flocks of birds
together, did ever beat with their wings all the regions of the air, or arrive at the supreme
region of the same. Ah! Theotimus, our souls shall freely and according to the full extent of
their wishes swim in the ocean and soar in the air of the Divinity, rejoicing eternally to see
that this air is so infinite, this ocean so vast, that it cannot be measured by their wings, and
that enjoying without reserve or exception all this infinite abyss of the Divinity, yet shall
they never be able to equalize their fruition to this infinity, which remains still infinitely
infinite beyond their capacity.
175

19.9 Page 189

▲back to top


Chapter XV. That There Shall Be Different Degrees of the Union of the Blessed…
And at this the Blessed Spirits are ravished with two admirations, first for the infinite
beauty which they contemplate, secondly for the abyss of the infinity which remains to be
seen in this same beauty. O God! how admirable is that which they see! But, O God! how
much more admirable is that which they see not! And yet, Theotimus, since the most sacred
beauty which they see is infinite, it entirely satisfies and satiates them, and being content to
enjoy it according to the rank which they hold in heaven, because God's most amiable
providence has so determined, they convert the knowledge they have of not possessing and
of not being able totally to possess their object, into a simple complacency of admiration,
in which they have a sovereign joy to see that the beauty they love is so infinite that it cannot
be totally known but by itself. For in this consists the Divinity of this infinite beauty or the
beauty of this infinite Divinity.
176

19.10 Page 190

▲back to top


Book IV. Of The Decay And Ruin Of Charity.
BOOK IV.
OF THE
165
DECAY AND RUIN OF CHARITY.
177

20 Pages 191-200

▲back to top


20.1 Page 191

▲back to top


Chapter I. That as Long as We Are in This Mortal Life We May Lose the Love…
CHAPTER I.
THAT AS LONG AS WE ARE IN THIS MORTAL LIFE WE MAY LOSE THE LOVE
OF GOD.
We do not now speak of those great elect souls whom God by a most special favour so
maintains and confirms in his love, that they run no hazard of losing it. We speak for the
rest of mortals, to whom the Holy Ghost addresses these warnings: He that thinketh himself
to stand, let him take heed lest he fall.170 Hold fast that which thou hast, that no man take
thy crown.171 Labour the more that by good works you may make sure your calling and
election.172 Whence he makes them make this prayer: Cast me not away from thy face; and
take not thy holy spirit from me.173 And lead us not into temptation: that they may work out
their salvation with a holy trembling, and a sacred fear,174 knowing that they are not more
constant and strong to preserve God's love than were the first angel with his followers and
Judas, who receiving it lost it, and losing it lost themselves for ever; nor than Solomon, who,
having once left it, holds the whole world in doubt of his damnation; nor than Adam and
Eve, David, S. Peter, who being children of salvation, fell yet for a space from the love without
which there is no salvation. Alas! Theotimus, who shall then have assurance of preserving
sacred love in the navigation of this mortal life, since, as well on earth as in heaven, so many
persons of incomparable dignity have suffered such cruel shipwrecks?
But, O eternal God! how is it possible, will one say, that a soul that has the love of God 166
can ever lose it; for where love is it resists sin, and how comes it to pass then that sin gets
entry there, since love is strong as death, hard in fight as hell?175 How can the forces of death
or hell, that is, of sins, vanquish love, which at least equals them in strength, and surpasses
them in helps and in right? And how can it be that a reasonable soul which has once relished
so great a sweetness as is that of heavenly love, can ever willingly swallow the bitter waters
of offence? Children, though children, being fed with milk, abhor the bitterness of wormwood
and of aloes, and cry themselves into convulsions when they are made to take them. Ah!
then, O true God! Theotimus, how can the soul, once joined to the goodness of the Creator,
forsake him to follow the vanity of the creature?
My dear Theotimus, the heavens themselves are astonished, their gates become desolate
with fear,176 and the angels of peace are lost in amazement at this prodigious misery of
170 1 Cor. x. 12.
171 Apoc. iii. 11.
172 2 Peter i. 10.
173 Ps. l. 13.
174 Phil. ii. 12.
175 Cant. viii. 6.
176 Jer. ii. 12.
178

20.2 Page 192

▲back to top


Chapter I. That as Long as We Are in This Mortal Life We May Lose the Love…
man's heart, abandoning a good so worthy of love, to join itself to things so unworthy. But
have you never seen that little marvel which every one knows, though every one does not
know the reason of it? When a very full barrel is broached, the wine will not run unless it
have air given from above, which yet happens not to barrels in which there is already a void,
for they are no sooner open but the wine runs. Truly in this mortal life though our souls
abound with heavenly love yet they are never so full of it but that by temptation this love
may depart: in heaven, however, when the sweetness of God's beauty shall occupy all our
understanding, and the delights of his goodness shall wholly satiate our wills, so that there
shall be nothing which the fulness of his love shall not replenish, no object, though it penetrate
even to our hearts, can ever draw or make run out one sole drop of the precious liquor of
our heavenly love. And to expect to give air above, that is, to deceive or surprise the under-
standing, shall no more be possible; for it shall be immovable in the apprehension of the
sovereign truth.
So wine well purified and separated from the lees is easily kept from turning and getting
167
thick; that which is on its lees is in continual danger; and we, so long as we are in this world,
have our souls upon the lees or tartar of a thousand moods and miseries, and consequently
easy to change and spoil in their love. But once in heaven, where, as in the great feast de-
scribed by Isaias, we shall have wine purified from all lees, we shall be no longer subject to
change, but be inseparably united by love to our sovereign good. Here in the twilight of
dawning we are afraid that in lieu of the spouse we may meet some other object, which may
engage and deceive us, but when we shall find Him above, where He feeds and reposes in
the mid-day, there will be no chance of being deceived, for His light will be too clear, and
His sweetness will bind us so closely to His goodness, that we shall no longer have the power
to will to unfasten ourselves.
We are like the coral, which in the sea, the place of its origin, is a pale-green, weak,
drooping and pliable tree, but being drawn from the bottom of the sea, as from its mother's
womb, it becomes almost a stone, firm and unbending, while it changes its pale-green into
a lively red. For so we being as yet amidst the sea of this world the place of our birth, are
subject to extreme vicissitudes, liable to be bent on every side; to the right, which is heavenly
love, by inspiration, to the left, which is earthly love, by temptation. But if, being once drawn
out of this mortality, we have changed the pale-green of our trembling hopes into the bright
red of assured fruition, we shall never more be movable, but make a settled abode for ever
in eternal love.
It is impossible to see the Divinity and not love it, but here below where we do not see
it, but only have a glimpse of it through the clouds of faith, as in a mirror, our knowledge
is not yet so perfect as not to leave an opening for the surprises of other objects and apparent
goods, which through the obscurities which are mixed with the certainty and verity of faith,
steal in unperceived, like little fox cubs, and demolish our flourishing vineyard. To conclude,
179

20.3 Page 193

▲back to top


Chapter I. That as Long as We Are in This Mortal Life We May Lose the Love…
Theotimus, when we have charity our free-will is clothed with her wedding garment, which,
as she can still keep it on if she please by well-doing, so she can put off if she please by of-
fending.
168
180

20.4 Page 194

▲back to top


Chapter II. How the Soul Grows Cold in Holy Love.
CHAPTER II.
HOW THE SOUL GROWS COLD IN HOLY LOVE.
The soul is often grieved and troubled in the body, even so far as to desert many of its
members, which remain deprived of motion and feeling, while it never forsakes the heart,
wherein it fully remains till the very end of life. So charity is sometimes weakened and de-
pressed in the affections till it seems to be scarcely in exercise at all, and yet it remains entire
in the supreme region of the soul. This happens when, under the multitude of venial sins
as under ashes, the fire of holy love remains covered, and its flame smothered, though it is
not dead or extinguished. For as the presence of the diamond hinders the exercise and action
of that property which the adamant has of drawing iron, and yet does not take it away, as
it acts immediately this obstacle is removed, so the presence of venial sins in no sort deprives
charity of its force and power to work, yet as it were benumbs it and deprives it of the use
of its activity, so that charity remains without action, sterile and unfruitful. It is true that
neither venial sin, nor even the affection to it, is contrary to the essential resolution of
charity, which is to prefer God before all things; because by this sin we love something
outside reason but not against reason, we defer a little too much, and more than is fit, to
creatures, yet we do not prefer them before the Creator, we occupy ourselves more than we
ought in earthly things, yet do we not for all that forsake heavenly things. In fine, this kind
of sin impedes us in the way of charity, but does not put us out of it, and therefore venial
sin, not being contrary to charity, never destroys charity either wholly or partially.
God signified to the Bishop of Ephesus that he had forsaken his first charity,177 where
he does not say that he was without charity, but only that it was not such as in the beginning;
that is, that it was not now prompt, fervent, growing in love, or fruitful: as we are wont to
say of him who from being bright, cheerful and blithe, becomes sad, heavy and sullen, that
he is not now the same man he was; for our meaning is not that he is not the same in sub-
169
stance, but only in his actions and exercises. And thus Our Saviour says that in the latter
days the charity of many shall grow cold,178 that is, it shall not be so active and courageous,
by reason of fear and sadness which shall oppress men's hearts. Certain it is that when con-
cupiscence hath conceived it bringeth forth sin.179 The sin however, though sin indeed, does
not always beget the death of the soul, but then only when it is complete in malice, and when
it is consummate and accomplished, as S. James says. And he here establishes so clearly the
difference between mortal and venial sin, that it is strange that some in our age have had
the temerity to deny it.
177 Apoc. ii. 4.
178 Matt. xxiv. 12.
179 James i. 15.
181

20.5 Page 195

▲back to top


Chapter II. How the Soul Grows Cold in Holy Love.
However, venial sin is sin, and consequently troubles charity, not as a thing that is
contrary to charity itself, but contrary to its operations and progress, and even to its intention.
For as this intention is that we should direct all our actions to God, it is violated by venial
sin, which directs the actions by which we commit it, not indeed against God yet outside
God and his will. And as we say of a tree rudely visited and stripped by a tempest that
nothing is left, because though the tree be entire yet it is left without fruit, so when our
charity is shaken by the affection we have to venial sin, we say it is diminished and weakened;
not because the habit of love is not entire in our hearts, but because it is without the works
which are its fruits.
The affection to great sins did so make truth prisoner to injustice amongst the pagan
philosophers, that, as the great Apostle says: Knowing God they honoured him not according
to that knowledge;180 so that though this affection did not banish natural light, yet it made
it profitless. So the affection to venial sin does not abolish charity, but it holds it as a slave,
tied hand and foot, hindering its freedom and action. This affection, attaching us too closely
to the enjoyment of creatures, deprives us of the spiritual intimacy between God and us, to
which charity, as true friendship, excites us; consequently this affection makes us lose the
interior helps and assistances which are as it were the vital and animating spirits of the soul,
in default of which there follows a certain spiritual palsy, which in the end, if it be not
remedied, brings us to death. For, after all, charity being an active quality cannot be long
170
without either acting or dying: it is, say our Ancients, of the nature of Rachel, who also
represented it. Give me, said she to her husband, children, otherwise I shall die;181 and
charity urges the heart which she has espoused to make her fertile of good works; otherwise
she will perish.
We are rarely in this mortal life without many temptations. Now low and slothful hearts,
and such as are given to exterior pleasures, not being accustomed to fight nor exercised in
spiritual warfare, never preserve charity long, but let themselves ordinarily be surprised by
mortal sin, which happens the more easily because the soul is more disposed by venial sin
to mortal. For as that man of old, having continued to carry every day the same calf, bore
him also when he was grown to be a great ox, custom having by little and little made insens-
ible the increase of so heavy a burden; so he that accustoms himself to play for pence will
in the end play for crowns, pistoles and horses, and after his stud all his estate.182 He that
gives the reins to little angers becomes in the end furious and unbearable; he that addicts
himself to lying in jest, is in great peril of lying with calumny.
180 Rom. i. 21.
181 Gen. xxx. 1.
182 Apres ses chevaux toute sa chevance.
182

20.6 Page 196

▲back to top


Chapter II. How the Soul Grows Cold in Holy Love.
In fine, Theotimus, we are wont to say that such as have a very weakly constitution have
no life, that they have not an ounce, or not a handful of it, because that which is quickly to
have an end seems indeed already not to be. And those good-for-nothing souls who are
addicted to pleasure and set upon transitory things, may well say that they no longer have
charity, for if they have it they are in the way soon to lose it.
183

20.7 Page 197

▲back to top


Chapter III. How We Forsake Divine Love for That of Creatures.
CHAPTER III.
HOW WE FORSAKE DIVINE LOVE FOR THAT OF CREATURES.
This misery of quitting God for the creature happens thus. We do not love God without
intermission, because in this mortal life charity is in us as a simple habit, which, as philo-
171
sophers have remarked, we use when we like and never against our liking. When then we
do not make use of the charity which is in us, that is, when we are not applying our spirit
to the exercises of holy love, but, when (keeping it busied in some other affair, or it being
idle in itself) it remains useless and negligent, then, Theotimus, it may be assaulted by some
bad object and surprised by temptation. And though the habit of charity be at that instant
in the bottom of our hearts and perform its office, inclining us to reject the bad suggestion,
yet it only urges us or leads us to the action of resistance according as we second it, as is the
manner of habits; and therefore charity leaving us in our freedom, it happens often that the
bad object having cast its allurements deeply into our hearts, we attach ourselves unto it by
an excessive complacency, which when it comes to grow, we can hardly get rid of, and like
thorns, according to the saying of Our Saviour, it in the end stifles the seed of grace and
heavenly love. So it fell out with our first mother Eve, whose overthrow began by a certain
amusement which she took in discoursing with the serpent, receiving complacency in
hearing it talk of her advancement in knowledge, and in seeing the beauty of the forbidden
fruit, so that the complacency growing with the amusement and the amusement feeding itself
in the complacency, she found herself at length so entangled, that giving away to consent,
she committed the accursed sin into which afterwards she drew her husband.
We see that pigeons, touched with vanity, display themselves (se pavonnent) sometimes
in the air, and sail about hither and thither, admiring the variety of their plumage, and then
the tercelets and falcons that espy them fall upon them and seize them, which they could
never do if the pigeons had been flying their proper flight, as they have a stronger wing than
have birds of prey. Ah! Theotimus, if we did not amuse ourselves with the vanity of fleeting
pleasures, especially in the complacency of self-love, but if having once got charity we were
careful to fly straight thither whither it would carry us, suggestion and temptation should
never catch us, but because as doves seduced and beguiled by self-esteem we look back upon
172
ourselves, and engage our spirits too much with creatures, we often find ourselves seized
by the talons of our enemies, who bear away and devour us.
God does not will to hinder temptations from attacking us, to the end that by resistance
our charity may be more exercised, that by fighting we may gain the victory, and by victory
obtain the triumph. But for us to have any kind of inclination to delight ourselves in the
temptation—this rises from the condition of our nature, which so earnestly loves good that
it is subject to be enticed by anything that has a show of good, and temptation's hook is ever
baited with this kind of bait: for, as holy Writ teaches, there is either some good honourable
in the world's sight to move us to the pride of a worldly life, or a good delightful to sense to
184

20.8 Page 198

▲back to top


Chapter III. How We Forsake Divine Love for That of Creatures.
carry us to concupiscence of the flesh, or a good tending towards wealth, to incite us to the
concupiscence and avarice of the eyes.183 But if we kept our faith, which can discern between
the true good we are to pursue and the false which we are to reject, sharply attentive to its
office, without doubt it would be a trusty sentinel to charity, and would give intelligence of
that evil which approaches the heart under pretext of good, and charity would immediately
repulse it. But because ordinarily we keep our faith either asleep or less attentive than is re-
quisite for the preservation of our charity, we are often surprised by temptation, which, se-
ducing our senses, while our senses incite the inferior part of our soul to rebellion, often
brings to pass that the superior part of reason yields to the violence of this revolt, and by
committing sin loses charity.
Such was the progress of the sedition which the disloyal Absalom stirred up against his
good father David; for he put forward propositions which were good in appearance, which
being once received by the poor Israelites whose prudence was put to sleep and smothered,
he solicited them in such sort that he wrought them to a complete rebellion; so that David
was constrained to depart from Jerusalem with all his most faithful friends, leaving there
173
no men of distinction save Sadoc and Abiathar, priests of the Eternal, with their children:
now Sadoc was a seer, that is to say a prophet.184
For so, most dear Theotimus, self-love, finding our faith without attention and drowsy,
presents unto us vain yet apparent goods, seduces our senses, our imagination and the fac-
ulties of our souls, and lays so hard at our free-wills that it brings them to an entire revolt
against the holy love of God, which then, as another David, departs from our heart with all
its train, that is with the gifts of the Holy Ghost and the other heavenly virtues, which are
the inseparable companions of charity, if not her properties and faculties. Nor does there
remain in the Jerusalem of our soul any virtue of importance saving Sadoc the seer, that is
the gift of faith which can make us see eternal truths, with the exercise of it, and with him
Abiathar, that is the gift of hope with its action; both these remain much afflicted and sor-
rowful, yet maintain in us the ark of alliance, that is the quality and title of Christian pur-
chased by baptism.
Alas! Theotimus, what a pitiful spectacle it is to the angels of peace to see the Holy Ghost
and his love depart in this manner out of our sinful souls! Verily I think if they could weep
they would pour out infinite tears, and, with a mournful voice lamenting our misery, would
sing the sad canticle which Jeremias took up, when sitting upon the threshold of the desolate
temple he contemplated the ruin of Jerusalem in the time of Sedecias: How doth the city sit
solitary that was full of people! How is the mistress of the Gentiles become as a widow: the
princess of provinces made tributary!185
183 1 John ii. 16.
184 2 Kings xv.
185 Jer. Lam. i. 1.
185

20.9 Page 199

▲back to top


Chapter III. How We Forsake Divine Love for That of Creatures.
186

20.10 Page 200

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Heavenly Love Is Lost in a Moment.
CHAPTER IV.
THAT HEAVENLY LOVE IS LOST IN A MOMENT.
The love of God, which brings us as far as contempt of self, makes us citizens of the heavenly
Jerusalem; self-love, which pushes us forward to the contempt of God, makes us slaves of
174
the infernal Babylon. It is true that only little by little we come to despise God, but we have
no sooner done it than instantly, in a moment, holy charity forsakes us, or rather wholly
perishes. Yes, Theotimus, for in this contempt of God does mortal sin consist, and one only
mortal sin banishes charity from the soul, inasmuch as it breaks the connection and union
with God, which is obedience and submission to his will: and as man's heart cannot live di-
vided, so charity, which is the heart of the soul and the soul of the heart, can never be
wounded without being slain: as they say of pearls, which being conceived of heavenly dew
perish if any drop of salt water get within the shell that holds them. Our soul, as you know,
does not go out of our body by little and little, but in a moment, when the indisposition of
the body is so great that it can no longer exercise the actions of life in it: even so, the very
instant the heart is so disordered by passions that charity can no longer reign there, she
quits and abandons it: for she is so noble, that she cannot cease to reign without ceasing to
be.
Habits acquired by our human actions alone do not perish by one single contrary act:
for a man is not said to be intemperate for one single act of intemperance, nor is a painter
held an unskilful master for having once failed in his art; but, as all such habits are acquired
by the influence of a series of acts, so we lose them by a long cessation from their acts or by
many contrary acts. But charity, Theotimus, which in a moment the Holy Ghost pours into
our hearts as soon as the conditions requisite for this infusion are found in us, is also in an
instant taken from us, as soon as, diverting our will from the obedience we owe to God, we
complete our consent to the rebellion and disloyalty to which temptation excites us.
It is true that charity increases by degrees and goes from perfection to perfection accord-
ing as by our works or by the frequenting of the sacraments we make place for it, yet it does
not decrease by a lessening of its perfection, for we never lose any least part of it but we lose
it all. In which it resembles the masterpiece of Phidias so famous amongst the ancients; for
175
they say that this great sculptor made at Athens an ivory statue of Minerva, twenty-six cubits
high, and in the buckler which she held, wherein he had represented the battles of the
Amazons and Giants, he carved his own face with so great art that one could not take away
one line of it, says Aristotle, without destroying the whole statue, so that this work, though
it had been brought to perfection by adding piece to piece, yet would have perished in an
instant if one little parcel of the workman's likeness had been removed. In like manner,
Theotimus, though the Holy Ghost having infused charity into a soul increases it by adding
one degree to another and one perfection of love to another, yet still, the resolution of pre-
ferring God's will before all things being the essential point of sacred love, and that wherein
187

21 Pages 201-210

▲back to top


21.1 Page 201

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Heavenly Love Is Lost in a Moment.
the image of eternal love, that is of the Holy Ghost, is represented, one cannot withdraw
one single piece of it but presently charity wholly perishes.
This preference of God before all things is the dear child of charity. And if Agar, who
was but an Egyptian, seeing her son in danger of death had not the heart to stay by him, but
would have left him, saying: Ah! I will not see the child die,186 is it strange then that charity,
the daughter of heavenly sweetness and delight, cannot bear to behold the death of her child,
which is the resolution never to offend God? So that while free-will is resolving to consent
to sin and is thereby putting to death this holy resolution, charity dies with it, saying in its
last sigh: Ah! no, never will I see this child die. In fine, Theotimus, as the precious stone
called prassius loses its lustre in the presence of any poison, so in an instant the soul loses
her splendour, grace and beauty, which consist in holy love, upon the entry and presence
of any mortal sin;—whence it is written that the soul that sinneth, the same shall die.187
186 Gen. xxi. 16.
187 Ezech. xviii. 4.
188

21.2 Page 202

▲back to top


Chapter V. That the Sole Cause of the Decay and Cooling of Charity Is in…
CHAPTER V.
THAT THE SOLE CAUSE OF THE DECAY AND COOLING OF CHARITY IS IN
THE CREATURE'S WILL.
As it would be an impious effrontery to attribute the works of holy love done by the Holy
176
Ghost in and with us to the strength of our will, it would be a shameless impiety to lay the
defect of love in ungrateful men, on the failure of heavenly assistance and grace. For the
Holy Ghost cries everywhere, on the contrary, that our ruin is from ourselves: Destruction
is thine own, O Israel! thy help is only in me:188 that Our Saviour brought the fire of love,
and desires nothing but that it should be enkindled in our hearts:189 that salvation is prepared
before the face of all peoples: a light to the revelation of the Gentiles and the glory of Israel:190
that the divine goodness is not willing that any should perish,191 but that all should come
to the knowledge of the truth: and will have all men to be saved,192 their Saviour being come
into the world, that he might redeem them who were under the law, that we might receive the
adoption of sons.193 And the wise man clearly warns us, Say not: it is through God that she
(wisdom) is not with me.194 And the sacred Council of Trent divinely inculcates upon all
the children of holy Church, that the Grace of God is never wanting to such as do what they
can, invoking the divine assistance; that God never abandons such as he has once justified
unless they abandon him first; so that, if they be not wanting to grace they shall obtain glory.
In fine, Theotimus, Our Saviour is the true light which enlighteneth every man that
cometh into this world.195 Some travellers, one summer's day about noontide, lay down to
repose under the shade of a tree, but while their weariness and the coolness of the shadow
kept them asleep, the sun advancing on them threw just upon their eyes his strongest light,
which by its glittering brightness gave glimpses of itself like little flashes of lightning about
the pupils of these sleepers' eyes, and by the heat which pierced their eyelids, forced them
by a gentle violence to awake. Some of them being awakened get up, and making way get
happily to their lodging, the rest not only do not rise, but turning their backs to the sun and
pressing their hats over their eyes, spend their day there in sleeping, till surprised by night
and yet being desirous to make towards their lodging, they stray, one here, one there, in the
177
forest, at the mercy of wolves, wild-boars, and other savage beasts. Now tell me, I pray,
188 Osee xiii. 9.
189 Luke xii. 49.
190 Luke ii. 32.
191 2 Peter iii. 9.
192 1 Tim. ii. 4.
193 Gal. iv. 5.
194 Eccli. xv. 11.
195 John i. 9.
189

21.3 Page 203

▲back to top


Chapter V. That the Sole Cause of the Decay and Cooling of Charity Is in…
Theotimus, those that arrived, ought they not to give all their thanks for their good success
to the sun, or to speak like a Christian, to the sun's Creator? Yes surely; for they thought
not of waking when it was time: the sun did them this good office, and by the gentle invitation
of his light and heat came lovingly to call them up. 'Tis true they resisted not his call, but he
also helped them much even in that; for he spread his light fairly upon them, giving them
a half-sight of himself through their eyelids, and by his heat as it were by his love he unsealed
their eyes, and urged them to see his day.
On the contrary, those poor strangers, what right had they to cry in that wood: Alas!
what have we done to the sun that he did not make us see his light, as he did our companions,
that we might have arrived at our lodgings and not have wandered in this hideous darkness?
For who would not undertake the sun's or rather God's cause, my dear Theotimus, to answer
these wretches. What is there, miserable beings, that the sun could really do for you and did
not? His favours were equal to all ye that slept: he approached you all with the same light,
touched you with the same rays, spread over you a like heat, but unhappy ye, although you
saw your risen companions take their pilgrim's staff to gain way, ye turned your backs to
the sun and would not make use of his light, nor be conquered by his heat.
Now, Theotimus, see here what I would say. We are all pilgrims in this mortal life; almost
all of us have voluntarily slept in sin; God the sun of justice darts upon us most sufficiently,
yea abundantly, the beams of his inspirations, warms our hearts with his benedictions,
touching every one with the allurements of his love. Ah! how comes it then that these allure-
ments allure so few and draw yet fewer? Ah! certainly such as, first allured, afterwards drawn,
follow the inspiration, have great occasion to rejoice, but not to glorify themselves for it.
Let them rejoice because they enjoy a great good; yet let them not glorify themselves therein,
because it is by God's pure goodness, who, leaving them the profit of their good works, re-
178
serves to himself the glory of them. But concerning them that remain in the sleep of sin:
Oh! what good reason they have to lament, groan, weep, and say: woe the day! for they are
in the most lamentable of cases; yet have they no reason to grieve or complain, save about
themselves, who despised, yea rebelled against, the light; who were untractable to invitations,
and obstinate against inspirations; so that it is their own malice alone they must ever curse
and reproach, since they themselves are the sole authors of their ruin, the sole workers of
their damnation. So the Japanese, complaining to the Blessed Francis Xavier, their Apostle,
that God who had had so much care of other nations, seemed to have forgotten their prede-
cessors, not having given them the knowledge of himself, for want of which they must have
been lost: the man of God answered them that the divine natural law was engraven in the
hearts of all mortals, and that if their forerunners had observed it, the light of heaven would
without doubt have illuminated them, as, on the contrary, having violated it, they deserved
damnation. An apostolic answer of an apostolic man, and resembling the reason given by
the great Apostle of the loss of the ancient Gentiles, whom he calls inexcusable, for that
190

21.4 Page 204

▲back to top


Chapter V. That the Sole Cause of the Decay and Cooling of Charity Is in…
having known good they followed evil; for it is in a word that which he inculcates in the
first chapter of his epistle to the Romans. Misery upon misery to those who do not acknow-
ledge that their misery comes from their malice!
191

21.5 Page 205

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Ought to Acknowledge All the Love We Bear to God to…
CHAPTER VI.
THAT WE OUGHT TO ACKNOWLEDGE ALL THE LOVE WE BEAR TO GOD TO
BE FROM GOD.
The love of men towards God takes its being, progress and perfection from the eternal love
of God towards men. This is the universal sense of the Church our mothers who with an
ardent jealousy will have us to acknowledge our salvation and the means thereof, to proceed
solely from Our Saviour's mercy, to the end that on earth as in heaven to him alone may be
honour and glory.
What hast thou that thou hast not received? says the divine Apostle, speaking of the gifts
of knowledge, eloquence, and other like qualities of Church-pastors; and if thou hast received,
why dost thou glory as if thou hadst not received.196 It is true; we have received all from God,
but especially the supernatural goods of holy love. And if we have received them, why should
we take the glory of them?
Certainly if any one would extol himself for having made progress in the love of God:
Alas! wretched man, should we say unto him, thou wast aswoon in thy iniquity, having
neither force nor life left in thee to rise (as it happened to the princess in our parable),197
and God of his infinite goodness ran to thy succour, and crying with a loud voice; Open the
mouth of thy attention and I will fill it,198 he himself put his fingers between thy lips and
unlocked thy teeth, casting into thy heart his holy inspiration, and thou didst receive it; and
when thou wast brought back to thy senses, he went on by divers movements and various
means to strengthen thy heart, till at length he infused into it his charity, as thy vital and
perfect health.
Well then, tell me now, miserable creature, what hast thou done in all this of which thou
canst boast? Thou didst consent, I know it well; the motion of thy will did freely follow that
of heavenly grace. But all this, what is it more than to receive the divine operation without
resistance? And what is there in this, that thou hast not received? Yea, poor wretch that thou
art, thou didst receive the receiving in which thou gloriest, and the consent which thou
vauntest: for tell me, I pray thee, wilt thou not grant me, that if God had not prevented thee,
thou wouldst never have perceived his goodness, and consequently never have consented
to his love? No, nor yet hadst thou thought a single good thought of him. His movement
gave being and life to thine, and if his liberty had not animated, excited and provoked thy
liberty, by the powerful invitations of his sweetness, thy liberty had been for ever unprofitable
to thy salvation. I confess thou didst co-operate with the inspiration by consenting, but, if
thou knowest it not, I teach thee that thy co-operation took being from the operation of
179
180
196 1 Cor. iv. 7.
197 See Book iii. 3.
198 Ps. lxxx. 11.
192

21.6 Page 206

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Ought to Acknowledge All the Love We Bear to God to…
grace and thy freewill together, yet so, that if grace had not prevented and filled thy heart
with its operation, never had thy heart had either power or will to co-operate.
But tell me again, I beseech thee, vile and abject man, is it not ridiculous of thee to think
that thou hast a share in the glory of thy conversion because thou didst not repel the inspir-
ation? Is not this a frenzy of robbers and tyrants, to pretend they give life to those from
whom they do not take it? And is it not a frantic impiety to think that thou gavest holy efficacy
and living activity to the divine inspiration, because by resistance thou didst not take it
away? We can hinder the effects of inspiration, but we cannot give it any; it takes its force
and virtue from the divine goodness which is the place of its starting, and not from man's
will the place of its arrival. Should we not be moved to wrath, to hear the princess of our
parable boast that it was she that gave virtue and power to the cordial waters and other
medicines, or that she cured herself, because if she had not received the remedies which the
king gave her and poured into her mouth (at such time as being half dead there remained
hardly any sense in her), they had had no operation? Yes, might one say to her: ungrateful
that thou art, thou mightest have obstinately refused to receive the remedies, thou mightest,
after thou hadst received them into thy mouth, have cast them out again, yet for all that it
is not true that thou gavest them force and virtue. This they had as their natural property,
thou didst only consent to receive them, and let them operate; and besides, thou wouldst
never have consented, if the King had not first reinvigorated thee, and then solicited thee
to take them; never hadst thou received them, had not he assisted thee to receive them,
opening thy very mouth with his fingers, and pouring the potion into it. Art thou not then
a monster of ingratitude to wish to attribute to thyself a benefit which by so many titles thou
owest to thy dear spouse?
The curious little fish, called echeneis, or remora, has indeed the power to stay or not
to stay a ship sailing on the high sea under full sail: but it has not the power to make it set
181
sail, or proceed or arrive; it can hinder motion, but cannot give it. Our free-will can stay
and hinder the course of the inspiration and when the favourable gale of God's grace swells
the sails of our soul it is in our power to refuse consent, and thereby to hinder the effect of
the wind's favour: but when our spirit sails along, and makes its voyage prosperously, it is
not we that make the gale of the inspiration blow for us, nor we that make our sails swell
with it, nor we that give motion to the ship of our heart; but we simply receive the gale sent
from heaven, consent to its motion, and let our ship sail under it, not hindering it by the
remora of our resistance. It is the inspiration then which impresses on our free-will the
happy and sweet influence whereby it not only makes it see the beauty of good, but also
heats, helps, and strengthens it, and moves it so sweetly that it thus turns and freely flows
out towards what is good.
The heavens in spring time prepare the fresh dewdrops, and shower them down upon
the face of the sea, and the mother-pearls that open their shells receive these drops, which
193

21.7 Page 207

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Ought to Acknowledge All the Love We Bear to God to…
are converted into pearls: but, on the contrary, the mother-pearls which keep their shells
shut do not hinder the dews from falling upon them, yet they hinder them from falling into
them. Now have not the heavens sent their dew and their influence as much upon the one
as the other mother-pearl? Why then did the one in effect produce its pearl and the others
not? The heavens were as bountiful to that one which remained sterile as was requisite to
empearl and impregnate it with its fair unity,199 but it hindered the effect of the heavens'
favour, by keeping itself closed and covered. And as for that which conceived the pearl on
receiving the dew, it has nothing in that work which it did not receive from heaven, not
even its opening whereby it received the dew; for without the touches of the morning's rays,
which did gently excite it, it had not risen up to the surface of the sea, nor yet opened its
shell. Theotimus, if we have any love for God, his be the honour and glory, who did all in
us, and without whom nothing were done; ours be the profit and obligation. This is the di-
vision his divine goodness makes with us; he leaves us the fruits of his benefits, and reserves
182
to himself the honour and praise of them; and verily since we are nothing but by his grace,
we ought to be nothing but for his glory.
199 i.e. pearl. See p. 82 [Tr.]
194

21.8 Page 208

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That We Must Avoid All Curiosity, and Humbly Acquiesce in…
CHAPTER VII.
THAT WE MUST AVOID ALL CURIOSITY, AND HUMBLY ACQUIESCE IN GOD'S
MOST WISE PROVIDENCE.
The human spirit is so weak that when it would look too curiously into the causes and
reasons of God's will it embarrasses and entangles itself in the meshes of a thousand diffi-
culties, out of which it has much to do to deliver itself; it resembles smoke, for as smoke
ascends it gets more subtle, and as it grows more subtle it vanishes. In striving to raise our
reasonings too high in divine things by curiosity we grow vain or empty in our thoughts,
and instead of arriving at the knowledge of truth, we fall into the folly of our vanity.
But above all we are unreasonable towards Divine providence in regard to the diversity
of the means which he bestows upon us to draw us to his holy love, and by his holy love to
glory. For our temerity urges us ever to inquire why God gives more means to one than to
another; why he did not amongst the Tyrians and Sidonians the miracles which he did in
Corozain and Bethsaida, seeing they would have made as good use of them; and, in fine,
why he draws one rather than another to his love.
O Theotimus! my friend, never, no never, must we permit our minds to be carried away
by this mad whirlwind, nor expect to find a better reason of God's will than his will itself,
which is sovereignly reasonable, yea, the reason of all reasons, the rule of all goodness, the
law of all equity. And although the Holy Ghost, speaking in the Holy Scripture, gives reason
in divers places of almost all we can wish to know of what this divine providence does in
conducting men to holy love and eternal salvation, yet on various occasions he shows that
we must in no wise depart from the respect which is due to his will, whose purpose, decree,
183
good-pleasure, and sentence we are to adore; and he being sovereign judge and sovereignly
equitable, it is not reasonable that at the end he manifest his motives, but it is sufficient that
he say simply—for reasons. And if charity obliges us to bear so much respect to the decrees
of sovereign courts, composed of corruptible judges, of the earth and earthly, as to believe
that they were not made without motives, though we know these not—ah! Lord God, with
what a loving reverence ought we to adore the equity of thy supreme providence which is
infinite in justice and goodness!
So in a thousand places of the holy Word we find the reason why God has reprobated
the Jews. Because, say S. Paul and S. Barnabas, you reject the word of God, and judge yourselves
unworthy of eternal life, behold we turn to the Gentiles.200 And he that shall consider in
tranquillity of heart Chapters IX. X. and XI. of the Epistle to the Romans, shall clearly see
that God's will did not without reason reject the Jews; nevertheless, this reason must not be
sought out by man's spirit, which, on the contrary, is obliged to be satisfied with purely and
simply reverencing the divine decree, admiring it with love as infinitely just and upright,
200 Acts xiii. 46.
195

21.9 Page 209

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That We Must Avoid All Curiosity, and Humbly Acquiesce in…
and loving it with admiration as impenetrable and incomprehensible. So that the divine
Apostle thus concludes the long discourse which he had made concerning it: O the depth
of the riches of the wisdom and of the knowledge of God! How incomprehensible are his
judgments, and how unsearchable his ways! For who hath known the mind of the Lord? Or
who hath been his counsellor?201 By which exclamation he testifies that God does all things
with great wisdom, knowledge and reason; yet so, that, as man has not entered into the divine
counsels, whose judgments and designs are placed infinitely above our reach, we ought de-
voutly to adore his decrees as most just, without searching out their motives. These he keeps
in secret to himself, in order to keep our understanding in respect and humility to ourself.
S. Augustine in a hundred places teaches us this practice. "No one cometh to Our Sa-
viour," says he, "if not drawn;—whom he draws, and whom he draws not, why he draws this
184
one and not that,—do not wish to judge if you do not wish to err. Listen once for all and
understand. Art thou not drawn, pray that thou mayst be drawn." "Verily it is sufficient for
a Christian living as yet by faith, and not seeing that which is perfect, but only knowing in
part, to know and believe that God delivers none from damnation, but by his free mercy,
through our Lord Jesus Christ; and that he condemns none but by his most just truth,
through the same Lord Jesus Christ. But to know why he delivers this one rather than the
other—let that man sound so great a depth of God's judgments who is able, but let him beware
of the precipice." "These judgments are not therefore unjust because they are hidden." "But
why then does he deliver this man rather than that? We say again, O man, who art thou that
repliest against God?202 His judgments are incomprehensible, and his ways unknown, and
let us add this: Seek not the things that are too high for thee, and search not into things above
thy ability:"203 "Now he granteth not them mercy, to whom, by a truth most secret and
furthest removed from men's thoughts, he judges it not fit to communicate his favours and
mercy."
We see sometimes twins, of whom one is born alive and receives Baptism, the other in
his birth loses his temporal life, before being regenerated to the eternal, and consequently
the one is heir of heaven, the other is deprived of the inheritance. Now why does divine
providence give such different fates to one equal birth? Truly it might be answered that or-
dinarily God's providence does not violate the laws of nature, so that one of these twins being
strong, and the other too feeble to support the labour of his delivery, the latter died before
he could be baptized, the other lived; divine providence not willing to stop the course of
201 Rom. xi. 33, 34.
202 Rom. ix. 20.
203 Eccli. iii. 22.
196

21.10 Page 210

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That We Must Avoid All Curiosity, and Humbly Acquiesce in…
natural causes, which on this occasion were the reason why the one was deprived of Baptism.
And truly this is a perfectly solid answer. But, following the advice of the divine S. Paul, and
of S. Augustine, we ought not to busy our thoughts in this consideration, which, though it
be good, yet in no respect enters into comparison with many others which God has reserved
185
to himself, and will show us in heaven. "Then," says S. Augustine, "the secret shall end why
rather the one than the other was received, the causes being equal as to both, and why miracles
were not done amongst those who in case they had been done would have been brought to
repentance, and were done amongst such as would will not to believe them." And in another
place the same saint, speaking of sinners, some of whom God leaves in their iniquity while
others he raises, says: "Now why he retains the one and not the other, it is not possible to
comprehend, nor lawful to inquire, since it is enough to know that it is by him we stand
and that it is not by him we fall." And again: "This is hidden and far removed from man's
understanding, at least from mine."
Behold, Theotimus, the most holy way of philosophising on this subject. Wherefore I
have always considered that the learned modesty and most wise humility of the seraphic
Doctor S. Bonaventure were greatly to be admired and loved, in the discourse which he
makes of the reason why divine providence ordains the elect to eternal life. "Perhaps," says
he, "it is by a foresight of the good works which will be done by him that is drawn, insomuch
as they proceed in some sort from the will: but distinctly to declare which good works being
foreseen move God's will, I am not able, nor will I make inquiry thereupon: and there is no
other reason than some sort of congruity, so that we might assign one while it might be
another. Wherefore we cannot with assurance point out the true reason nor the true motive
of God's will in this: for as S. Augustine says: 'Although the truth of it is most certain, yet is
it far removed from our thoughts.' So that we can say nothing assuredly of it unless by the
revelation of him who knows all things. And whereas it was not expedient for our salvation
that we should have knowledge of these secrets, but on the contrary, it was more profitable
that we should be ignorant of them, to keep us in humility, God would not reveal them, yea
the holy Apostle did not dare to inquire about them, but testified the insufficiency of our
understanding in this matter when he cried out: O the depth of the riches of the wisdom and
of the knowledge of God!" Could one speak more holily Theotimus of so holy a mystery?
186
Indeed these are the words of a most saintly and prudent Doctor of the Church.
197

22 Pages 211-220

▲back to top


22.1 Page 211

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. An Exhortation to the Amorous Submission Which We Owe to…
CHAPTER VIII.
AN EXHORTATION TO THE AMOROUS SUBMISSION WHICH WE OWE TO
THE DECREES OF DIVINE PROVIDENCE.
Let us love then, Theotimus, and adore in humility of spirit this depth of God's judgments,
which, as S. Augustine says, the holy Apostle discovers not, but admires, when he cries out:
O the depth of God's, judgments! "Who can count the sands of the sea, and the drops of rain,
or measure the depths of the abyss," says that excellent understanding S. Gregory Nazian-
zen:204 "and who can sound the depth of the Divine Wisdom by which it has created all
things, and governs them as it pleases and judges fit. For indeed it suffices that, after the
example of the Apostle, we admire it without stopping at the difficulty and obscurity of it.
O the depth of the riches of the wisdom and of the knowledge of God! How incomprehensible
are his judgments, and how unsearchable his ways! For who hath known the mind of the Lord?
Or who hath been his counsellor? Theotimus, the reasons of God's will cannot be penetrated
by our intelligence till we see the face of him who reacheth from end to end mightily and or-
dereth all things sweetly;205 doing all that he doth in measure, and number, and weight;206
and to whom the Psalmist says, Lord, thou hast made all things in wisdom."207
How often does it happen that we are ignorant why and how even the works of men
are done? And therefore, says the same holy Bishop of Nazianzus, "as the artist is not ignorant
of his art, so the things of this world are not carelessly and unskilfully made, though we
know not the reasons of them." Entering into a clockmaker's shop, we shall sometimes find
a clock no greater than an orange, which yet has in it a hundred or two hundred pieces, of
187
which some serve to show the time, others to strike the hour or give the morning alarm; we
shall see in it little wheels, some turning to the right, others to the left, one by the top, another
by the bottom; and the balance which with measured beats keeps rising and falling on either
side. We wonder how art could join together such a number of pieces, with so just a corres-
pondence, not knowing what each little piece serves for, nor why it is made so, unless the
master tell us; knowing only in general that all serve either to point out or to strike the hour.
It is reported that the good Indians will stand whole days musing upon a clock, to hear it
strike at the times fixed, and not being able to guess how it is done, they do not therefore
say that it is without art or reason, but are taken with love and respect towards those who
regulate the clocks, admiring them as more than men. Theotimus, we see in this manner
the universe, but specially human nature, to be a sort of clock, composed with so great a
variety of actions and movements that we cannot but be astonished at it. And we know in
204 Orat. xiv.: On Love of the Poor.
205 Wis. viii. 1.
206 Ibid. xi. 21.
207 Ps. ciii. 24.
198

22.2 Page 212

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. An Exhortation to the Amorous Submission Which We Owe to…
general that these so diversely ordered pieces serve all, either to point out, as on a dial-plate,
God's most holy justice or as by a bell of praise, to sound the triumphant mercy of his
goodness. But to know the particular use of every piece, how it is ordered to the general
end, or why it is so, we cannot conceive, unless the sovereign Workman instruct us. Now
he conceals his art from us, to the end that with more reverence we may admire it, till in
heaven he shall ravish us with the sweetness of his wisdom, where in the abundance of his
love he will discover unto us the reasons, means and motives of all that shall have passed in
the world towards our eternal salvation.
"We resemble," says yet again the great Nazianzen, "those, who are troubled with giddi-
ness or turning of the head. They think that all about them is turning upside down, though
it be but their brain and imagination which turn, and not the things; so we, when we meet
with any events of which the causes are unknown to us, fancy that the world is governed
without reason, because we are ignorant of it. Let us believe then that as God is the maker
and father of all things, so he takes care of all things by his providence, which embraces and
188
sustains all the machine of creatures. But especially let us believe that he rules our affairs,
(ours who know him) though our life be tossed about in so great contrariety of accidents.
Of these we know not the reasons, to the end, perhaps, that not being able to attain this
knowledge we may admire the sovereign reason of God which surpasses all things: for with
us things easily known are easily despised; but that which surpasses the highest powers of
our spirit, by how much it is harder to be known, by so much it excites a greater admiration
in us. Truly the reasons of divine providence were low placed if our small capacities could
reach unto them; they would be less lovable in their sweetness and less admirable in their
majesty if they were set at a less distance from our capacity!"
Let us cry out then, Theotimus, on all occurrences, but let it be with an entirely amorous
heart towards the most wise, most prudent, and most sweet providence of our eternal
Father: O the depth of the riches of the wisdom and of the knowledge of God! O Saviour Jesus,
Theotimus, how excessive are the riches of the Divine goodness! His love towards us is an
incomprehensible abyss, whence he has provided for us a rich sufficiency, or rather a rich
abundance of means proper for our salvation; and sweetly to apply them he makes use of a
sovereign wisdom, having by his infinite knowledge foreseen and known all that was requisite
to that effect. Ah! what can we fear, nay rather, what ought not we to hope for, being the
children of a Father so rich in goodness to love and to will to save us; who knows so well
how to prepare the means suitable for this and is so wise to apply them; so good to will, so
clear-sighted to ordain, and so prudent to execute?
Let us never permit our minds to flutter with curiosity about God's judgments, for, like
little butterflies, we shall burn our wings, and perish in this sacred flame. These judgments
199

22.3 Page 213

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. An Exhortation to the Amorous Submission Which We Owe to…
are incomprehensible, or, as S. Gregory Nazianzen says, inscrutable, that is, one cannot
search out and sound their motives: the means and ways by which he executes and brings
them to perfection cannot be discerned and recognized: and, clever as we may be, yet we
shall find ourselves thrown out at every turn and lose the scent. For who hath known the
189
mind, the meaning and the intention of God? Who hath been his counsellor, to know his
purposes and their motives? Or who hath first given to him? Is it not he, on the contrary,
who presents us with the benedictions of his grace to crown us with the felicity of his glory
? Ah! Theotimus, all things are from him, as being their Creator; all things are by him, as
being their Governor; all things are in him, as being their Protector; to him be honour and
glory for ever and ever, Amen!208 Let us walk in peace, Theotimus, in the way of holy love,
for he that shall have divine love in dying, after death shall enjoy love eternally.
208 Rom. xi.
200

22.4 Page 214

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of a Certain Remainder of Love That Oftentimes Rests in the…
CHAPTER IX.
OF A CERTAIN REMAINDER OF LOVE THAT OFTENTIMES RESTS IN THE SOUL
THAT HAS LOST HOLY CHARITY.
The life of a man who, spent out, lies dying little by little on his bed, hardly deserves to be
termed life, since, though it be life, it is so mingled with death that it is hard to say whether
it is a death yet living or a life dying. Alas! how pitiful a spectacle it is, Theotimus! But far
more lamentable is the state of a soul ungrateful to her Saviour, who goes backward step by
step, withdrawing herself from God's love by certain degrees of indevotion and disloyalty,
till at length, having quite forsaken it, she is left in the horrible obscurity of perdition. This
love which is in its decline, and which is fading and perishing, is called imperfect love, be-
cause, though it be entire in the soul, yet seems it not to be there entirely; that is, it hardly
stays in the soul any longer, but is upon the point of forsaking it. Now, charity being separated
from the soul by sin, there frequently remains a certain resemblance of charity which may
deceive us and vainly occupy our minds, and I will tell you what it is. Charity while it is in
us produces many actions of love towards God, by the frequent exercise of which our soul 190
gets a habit and custom of loving God, which is not charity, but only a bent and inclination
which the multitude of the actions has given to our hearts.
After a long habit of preaching or saying Mass with deliberation, it happens often that
in dreaming we utter and speak the same things which we should say in preaching or celeb-
rating; in the same manner the custom and habit acquired by election and virtue is, in some
sort, afterwards practised without election or virtues since the actions of those who are
asleep have, generally speaking, nothing of virtue save only an apparent image, and are only
the similitudes or representations thereof. So charity, by the multitude of acts which it pro-
duces, imprints in us a certain facility in loving which it leaves in us even after we are deprived
of its presence. When I was a young scholar, I found that in a village near Paris, in a certain
well, there was an echo, which would repeat several times the words that we pronounced
in it: and if some simpleton without experience had heard these repetitions of words, he
would have thought there was some one at the bottom of the well who did it. But we knew
beforehand by philosophy that it was not any one in the well who repeated our words, but
simply that there were cavities, in one of which our voices were collected, and not finding
a passage through, they, lest they might altogether perish and not employ the force that was
left to them, produced second voices, and these gathering together in another concavity
produced a third, the third a fourth, and so consecutively up to eleven, so that those voices
in the well were no longer our voices, but resemblances and images of them. And indeed
there was a great difference between our voices and those: for when we made a long continu-
ance of words, they only repeated some, they shortened the pronunciation of the syllables,
which they uttered very rapidly; and with tones and accents quite different from ours; nor
201

22.5 Page 215

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of a Certain Remainder of Love That Oftentimes Rests in the…
did they begin to form these words until we had quite finished pronouncing them. In fine,
they were not the words of a living man, but, so to say, of a hollow and empty rock, which
notwithstanding so well counterfeited man's voice whence they sprang, that an ignorant
person would have been misled and beguiled by them.
191
Now this is what I would say. When holy charity meets a pliable soul in which she long
resides, she produces a second love, which is not a love of charity, though it issues from
charity; it is a human love which is yet so like charity, that though afterwards charity perish
in the soul it seems to be still there, inasmuch as it leaves behind it this its picture and likeness,
which so represents charity that one who was ignorant would be deceived therein, as were
the birds by the painting of the grapes of Zeuxis, which they deemed to be true grapes, so
exactly had art imitated nature. And yet there is a great difference between charity and the
human love it produces in us: for the voice of charity declares, impresses, and effects all the
commandments of God in our hearts; the human love which remains after it does indeed
sometimes declare and impress all the commandments, yet it never effects them all, but
some few only. Charity pronounces and puts together all the syllables, that is, all the circum-
stances of God's commandments; human love always leaves out some of them, especially
that of the right and pure intention; and as for the tone, charity keeps it always steady, sweet,
and full of grace, human love takes it always too high in earthly things, or too low in heavenly,
and never sets upon its work until charity has ended hers. For so long as charity is in the
soul, she uses this human love which is her creature and employs it to facilitate her operations;
so that during that time the works of this love, as of a servant, belong to charity its mistress:
but when charity is gone, then the actions of this love are entirely its own, and have no
longer the price and value of charity. For as the staff of Eliseus, in his absence, though in
the hand of Giezi who received it from him, wrought no miracle, so actions done in the
absence of charity, by the simple habit of human love, are of no value or merit to eternal
life, though this human love learned from charity to do them, and is but charity's servant.
And this so comes about because this human love, in the absence of charity, has no super-
natural strength to raise the soul to the excellent action of the love of God above all things.
192
202

22.6 Page 216

▲back to top


Chapter X. How Dangerous This Imperfect Love Is.
CHAPTER X.
HOW DANGEROUS THIS IMPERFECT LOVE IS.
Alas! my Theotimus, behold, I pray you, the poor Judas after he had betrayed his Master,
how he goes to return the money to the Jews, how he acknowledges his sin, how honourably
he speaks of the blood of this immaculate Lamb. These were effects of imperfect love, which
former charity, now past, had left in his heart. We descend to impiety by certain degrees,
and hardly any one arrives in an instant at the extremity of malice.
Perfumers, though out of their shops, bear about with them for a long time the scent of
the perfumes which they have handled. In like manner, those who have been in the cabinet
of heavenly ointments, that is in holy charity, keep for some time afterwards the scent of it.
Where the hart has lodged by night, there, the morning after, is a fresh scent or vent of
him; towards night it is harder to perceive; and as his strain grows older and harder, the
hounds lose it more and more. When charity has reigned for a time in the soul, one may
find there its path, marks, strain or scent for a time after it has departed, but little by little
all this quite vanishes, and a man loses all knowledge that charity was ever there.
I have seen certain young people, well brought up in the love of God, who, putting
themselves out of that path, remained for some time during their miserable decay still giving
great signs of their past virtue, and, the habit acquired in time of charity resisting present
vice, scarcely could one for some months discern whether they were out of charity or not,
and whether they were virtuous or vicious, till such time as the course of things made it
clear that these virtuous exercises proceeded not from present charity but from past, not
from perfect but from imperfect love, which charity had left behind her, as a sign that she
had lodged in those souls.
Now this imperfect love, Theotimus, is good in itself, for being a creature of holy charity,
193
and as it were one of her retinue, it cannot but be good; and indeed it did faithfully serve
charity, while she sojourned in the soul, as it is still ready to serve upon her return. Nor is
it to be contemned because it cannot do actions of perfect love, the condition of its nature
being such; as stars, which in comparison with the sun are very imperfect, are yet extremely
beautiful beheld alone, and, having no worth in the presence of the sun, have some in his
absence.
At the same time though this imperfect love be good in itself, yet it is perilous for us;
for oftentimes we are contented with it alone, because having many exterior and interior
marks of charity, we, thinking we have charity, deceive ourselves and think we are holy,
while, in this vain persuasion, the sins which deprived us of charity increase, grow great,
and multiply so fast that in the end they make themselves masters of our heart.
Self-love deceives us, as Laban did Jacob between Rachel and Lia. We leave charity for
a moment, and this imperfect habit of human love is thrust on us, and we content ourselves
with it as if it were true charity, till some clear light shows us that we have been deceived.
203

22.7 Page 217

▲back to top


Chapter X. How Dangerous This Imperfect Love Is.
Ah! my God! is it not a great pity to see a soul flattering herself in the imagination of
being holy, and remaining in repose as though she were possessed of charity, only to find
in the end that her holiness is a fiction, her rest a lethargy, and her joy a madness.
204

22.8 Page 218

▲back to top


Chapter XI. A Means to Discern This Imperfect Love.
CHAPTER XI.
A MEANS TO DISCERN THIS IMPERFECT LOVE.
But, you will ask me, what means is there to discern whether it be Rachel or Lia, charity or
imperfect love, which gives me the feelings of devotion wherewith I am touched? If when
you examine in particular the objects of the desires, affections and designs which you have
at the time, you find any one for which you would go against the will and good-pleasure of
God by sinning mortally, it is then beyond doubt that all the feeling, all the facility and
promptitude which you have in God's service, issue from no other source than human and
imperfect love: for if perfect love reigned in us—Ah! it would break every affection, every
desire, every design, the object of which was so pernicious, and it would not endure that
your heart should behold it.
But note that I said this examination must be made upon the affections you have at the
time, for it is not requisite that you should imagine to yourself such as may arise hereafter,
since it is sufficient that we be faithful in present occurrences, according to the diversity of
times, and since each season has quite enough labour and pain of its own.
Yet if you were desirous to exercise your heart in spiritual valour, by the representation
of divers encounters and assaults, you might profitably do so, provided that after the acts
of this imaginary valour which your heart may have made, you esteem not yourself more
valiant: for the children of Ephraim, who did wonders with their bows and arrows in their
warlike games at home, when it came indeed to the push upon the day of battle, turned their
backs, and had not so much as the courage to lay their arrows on the string, or to face the
points of those of their enemies. They have turned back in the day of battle.209
When therefore we practise this valour about future occurrences, or such as are only
possible, if we find a good and faithful feeling we are to thank God for it, for this feeling is
good as far as it goes: still we are to keep ourselves with humility between confidence and
diffidence, hoping that by God's grace we should do, on occasion, that which we imagined,
and still fearing that according to our ordinary misery we should perhaps do nothing and
lose heart. But if the diffidence should become so excessive, that we should seem to ourselves
to have neither force nor courage, and therefore feel a despair with regard to imaginary
temptations, as though we were not in God's charity and grace, then in despite of our feeling
of discouragement we must make a resolution of great fidelity in all that may occur up to
the temptation which troubles us, hoping that when it comes, God will multiply his grace,
redouble his succours, and afford us all necessary assistance; and while he gives us not the
force for an imaginary and unnecessary war, he will give it us when it comes to the need.
For as many in the assault have lost courage, so many have also lost fear, and have taken
heart and resolution in the presence of danger and difficulty which without this they could
194
195
209 Ps. lxxvii. 9.
205

22.9 Page 219

▲back to top


Chapter XI. A Means to Discern This Imperfect Love.
never have done. And so, many of God's servants, representing to themselves absent
temptations, have been affrighted at them even almost to the losing of courage, while when
they saw them present, they behaved themselves courageously. Finally in those fears which
arise from the representation of future assaults, when our heart seems to fail us, it is sufficient
that we desire courage, and trust that God will bestow it upon us at the necessary time.
Samson had not his strength always but we are told in the Scripture that the lion of the vines
of Thamnatha, coming towards him, raging and roaring, the spirit of the Lord came upon
him: that is, God gave him the movement of a new force and a new courage, and he tore the
lion as he would have torn a kid in pieces.210 And the same happened when he defeated the
thousand Philistines, who thought they would have overthrown him in the field of Lechi.
So, my dear Theotimus, it is not necessary for us to have always the feeling and movement
of courage requisite to overcome the roaring lion which goeth about seeking whom he may
devour: this might cause us vanity and presumption. It is sufficient that we have a good desire
to fight valiantly, and a perfect confidence that the Holy Ghost will assist us with his helping
hand, when occasion shall present itself.
210 Judges xiv.
206

22.10 Page 220

▲back to top


Book V. Of The Two Principal Exercises Of Holy Love Which Consist In Complacency…
BOOK V.
OF THE
196
TWO PRINCIPAL EXERCISES OF HOLY LOVE WHICH CONSIST
IN COMPLACENCY AND BENEVOLENCE.
207

23 Pages 221-230

▲back to top


23.1 Page 221

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Sacred Complacency of Love; and First of What It Cons…
CHAPTER I.
OF THE SACRED COMPLACENCY OF LOVE; AND FIRST OF WHAT IT CONSISTS.
Love, as we have said, is no other thing than the movement and outflowing of the heart to-
wards good by means of the complacency which we take in it; so that complacency is the
great motive of love, as love is the great movement of complacency.
Now this movement is practised towards God in this manner. We know by faith that
the Divinity is an incomprehensible abyss of all perfection, sovereignly infinite in excellence
and infinitely sovereign in goodness. This truth which faith teaches us we attentively consider
by meditation, beholding that immensity of goods which are in God, either all together by
assembling all the perfections, or in particular by considering his excellences one after an-
other; for example, his all-power, his all-wisdom his all-goodness, his eternity, his infinity.
Now when we have brought our understanding to be very attentive to the greatness of the
goods that are in this Divine object, it is impossible that our will should not be touched with
complacency in this good, and then we use the liberty and power which we have over
ourselves, provoking our own heart to redouble and strengthen its first complacency by acts
of approbation and rejoicing. "Oh!" says the devout soul then, "how beautiful art thou, my
beloved, how beautiful art thou! Thou art all desirable, yea, thou art desire itself! Such is my
beloved and he is my friend, O ye daughters of Jerusalem.211 O blessed be my God for ever
because he is so good! Ah! whether I die or whether I live, too happy am I in knowing that
197
my God is so rich in all goodness, his goodness so infinite, and his infinity so good!"
Thus approving the good which we see in God, and rejoicing in it, we make the act of
love which is called complacency; for we please ourselves in the divine pleasure infinitely
more than in our own, and it is this love which gave so much content to the Saints when
they could recount the perfections of their well-beloved, and which caused them to declare
with so much delight that God was God. Know ye, said they, that the Lord he is God. O God,
my God, my God, thou art my God. I have said to the Lord: Thou art my God. Thou art the
God of my heart, and my God is my portion for ever.212 He is the God of our heart by this
complacency, since by it our heart embraces him and makes him its own: he is our inherit-
ance, because by this act, we enjoy the goods which are in God, and, as from an inheritance,
we draw from it all pleasure and content: by means of this complacency we spiritually drink
and eat the perfections of the Divinity, for we make them our own and draw them into our
hearts.
Jacob's ewes drew into themselves the variety of colours which they observed. So a soul,
captivated by the loving complacency which she takes in considering the Divinity, and in
it an infinity of excellences, draws into her heart the colours thereof, that is to say, the mul-
211 Cant. v. 16.
212 Ps. xcix. xv. lxxii.
208

23.2 Page 222

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Sacred Complacency of Love; and First of What It Cons…
titude of wonders and perfections which she contemplates, and makes them her own by the
pleasure which she takes in them.
O God! what joy shall we have in heaven, Theotimus, when we shall see the well-beloved
of our hearts as an infinite sea, whose waters are perfection and goodness! Then as stags,
long and sorely chased, putting their mouths to a clear and cool stream draw into themselves
the coolness of its fair waters, so our hearts, after so many languors and desires meeting
with the mighty and living spring of the Divinity, shall draw by their complacency all the
perfections of the well-beloved, and shall have the perfect fruition of them by the joy which
they shall take in them, replenishing themselves with his immortal delights; and in this way
198
the dear spouse will enter into us as into his nuptial bed, to communicate his eternal joy
unto our souls, according as he himself says, that if we keep the holy law of his love he will
come and dwell within us. Such is the sweet and noble robbery of love, which, without un-
colouring the well-beloved colours itself with his colours; without disrobing him invests itself
with his robes, without taking from him takes all that he has, and without impoverishing
him is enriched with all his wealth; as the air takes light, not lessening the original brightness
of the sun, and the mirror takes the grace of the countenance, not diminishing that of him
who looks in it.
They became abominable, as those things were which they loved,213 said the Prophet,
speaking of the wicked; so might one say of the good, that they are become lovely as the
things they have loved. Behold, I beseech you, the heart of S. Clare of Montefalco: it so de-
lighted in our Saviour's passion and in meditating on the most holy Trinity, that it drew
into itself all the marks of the passion, and an admirable representation of the Trinity, being
made such as the things it loved. The love which the great Apostle S. Paul bore to the life,
death and passion of our divine Saviour was so great that it drew the very life, death, and
passion of this divine Saviour into his loving servant's heart; whose will was filled with it by
dilection, his memory by meditation, and his understanding by contemplation. But by what
channel or conduit did the sweet Jesus come into the heart of S. Paul? By the channel of
complacency, as he himself declares, saying: God forbid that I should glory, save in the cross
of our Lord Jesus Christ.214 For if you mark well, there is no difference between glorying in
a person and taking complacency in him, between glorying and delighting in, save that he
who glories in a thing, to pleasure adds honour; honour not being without pleasure, though
pleasure can be without honour. This soul, then, had such complacency, and esteemed
himself so much honoured in the divine goodness which appears in the life, death and passion
of our Saviour, that he took no pleasure but in this honour. And it is this that made him
199
213 Osee ix. 10.
214 Gal. vi. 14.
209

23.3 Page 223

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Sacred Complacency of Love; and First of What It Cons…
say, God forbid that I should glory save in the cross of our Lord Jesus Christ; as he also said
that he lived not himself but Jesus Christ lived in him.
210

23.4 Page 224

▲back to top


Chapter II. How by Holy Complacency We Are Made as Little Infants at Our…
CHAPTER II.
HOW BY HOLY COMPLACENCY WE ARE MADE AS LITTLE INFANTS AT OUR
SAVIOUR'S BREASTS.
O God! how happy the soul is who takes pleasure in knowing and fully knowing that God
is God, and that his goodness is an infinite goodness! For this heavenly spouse, by this gate
of complacency, enters into us and sups with us and we with him. We feed ourselves with
his sweetness by the pleasure which we take therein, and satiate our heart in the divine
perfections by the delight we take in them: and this repast is a supper by reason of the repose
which follows it, complacency making us sweetly rest in the sweetness of the good which
delights us, and with which we feed our heart; for as you know, Theotimus, the heart is fed
with that which delights it, whence in our French tongue we say that such a one is fed with
honour, another with riches, as the wise man said that the mouth of fools feedeth on foolish-
ness,215 and the sovereign wisdom protests that his meat, that is his pleasure, is to do the
will of him that sent him.216 In conclusion the physician's aphorism is true—what is relished,
nourishes: and the philosophers—what pleases, feeds.
Let my beloved come into his garden, said the sacred spouse, and eat the fruit of his apple-
trees.217 Now the heavenly spouse comes into his garden when he comes into the devout
soul, for seeing his delight is to be with the children of men, where can he better lodge than
in the country of the spirit, which he made to his image and likeness. He himself plants in
this garden the loving complacency which we have in his goodness, and which we feed on;
as, likewise, his goodness takes his pleasure and repast in our complacency; so that, again,
200
our complacency is augmented in perceiving that God is pleased to see us pleased in him.
So that these reciprocal pleasures cause the love of an incomparable complacency, by which
our soul, being made the garden of her spouse, and having from his goodness the apple trees
of his delights, renders him the fruit thereof, since she is pleased that he is pleased in the
complacency she takes in him. Thus do we draw God's heart into ours, and he spreads in it
his precious balm, and thus is that practised which the holy bride spoke with such joy. The
king hath brought me into his store-rooms: we will be glad and rejoice in thee, remembering
thy breasts more than wine; the righteous love thee.218 For I pray you, Theotimus, what are
the store-rooms of this king of love but his breasts, which abound in the variety of sweetness
and delights. The bosom and breasts of the mother are the storeroom of the little infant's
treasures: he has no other riches than those, which are more precious unto him than gold
or the topaz, more beloved than all the rest of the world.
215 Prov. xv. 14.
216 John iv. 34.
217 Cant. v. 1.
218 Cant. i. 3.
211

23.5 Page 225

▲back to top


Chapter II. How by Holy Complacency We Are Made as Little Infants at Our…
The soul then which contemplates the infinite treasures of divine perfections in her
well-beloved, holds herself too happy and rich in this that love makes her mistress by com-
placency of all the perfections and contentments of this dear spouse. And even as a baby
makes little movements towards his mother's breasts, and dances with joy to see them dis-
covered, and as the mother again on her part presents them unto him with a love always a
little forward, even so the devout soul feels the thrillings and movements of an incomparable
joy, through the content which she has in beholding the treasures of the perfections of the
king of her holy love; but especially when she sees that he himself discovers them by love,
and that amongst them that perfection of his infinite love excellently shines. Has not this
fair soul reason to cry: O my king how lovable are thy riches and how rich thy loves! Oh!
which of us has more joy, thou that enjoyest it, or I who rejoice thereat! We will be glad and
rejoice in thee remembering thy breasts219 so abounding in all excellence of sweetness! I be-
cause my well-beloved enjoys it, thou because thy well-beloved rejoices in it; we both enjoy
201
it, since thy goodness makes thee enjoy my rejoicing, and my love makes me rejoice in thy
enjoying. Ah! the righteous and the good love thee, and how can one be good and not love
so great a goodness! Worldly princes keep their treasures in the cabinets of their palaces,
their arms in their arsenals, but the heavenly Prince keeps his treasures in his bosom, his
weapons within his breast, and because his treasure is his goodness, as his weapons are his
loves, his breast and bosom resemble those of a tender mother, who has her breasts like two
cabinets rich in the treasures of sweet milk, armed with as many weapons to conquer the
dear little baby as it makes its attacks in sucking.
Nature surely lodges the breasts in the bosom to the end that, since the heat of the heart
there concocts the milk, as the mother is the child's nurse, so her heart may be his foster-
father, and the milk may be a food of love, better a hundred times than wine. Note, meantime,
Theotimus, that the comparison of milk and wine seems so proper to the holy spouse that
she is not content to have said once that the breasts of her beloved are better than wine,220
but she repeats it thrice. Wine, Theotimus, is the milk of grapes, and milk is the wine of the
breasts, and the sacred spouse says that her well-beloved is to her a cluster of grapes, but of
Cyprian grapes,221 that is, of an excellent odour. Moses said that the Israelites might drink
the most pure and excellent blood of the grape, and Jacob describing to his son Juda the
fertility of the portion which he should have in the land of promise, prophesied under this
figure the true felicity of Christians, saying that the Saviour would wash his robe, that is, his
holy Church, in the blood of the grape,222 that is in his own blood. Now blood and milk are
219 Cant. i. 3.
220 Cant. i. 1.
221 Botrus Cypri. Our version wrongly translates this as a cluster of Cypress [Tr.]
222 Gen. xlix. 11.
212

23.6 Page 226

▲back to top


Chapter II. How by Holy Complacency We Are Made as Little Infants at Our…
no more different than verjuice and wine, for as verjuice ripening by the sun's heat changes
its colour, becomes a grateful wine, and is made good for food, so blood tempered by the
heat of the heart takes a fair white colour, and becomes a food most suited for infants.
Milk, which is a food provided by the heart and all of love, represents mystical science
202
and theology, that is, the sweet relish which proceeds from the loving complacency taken
by the spirit when it meditates on the perfections of the divine goodness. But wine signifies
ordinary and acquired science, which is squeezed out by force of speculation under the press
of divers arguments and discussions. Now the milk which our souls draw from the breasts
of our Saviour's charity is incomparably better than the wine which we press out from human
reasoning; for this milk flows from heavenly love, who prepares it for her children even before
they have thought of it; it has a sweet and agreeable taste, and the odour thereof surpasses
all perfumes; it makes the breath fresh and sweet as that of a sucking child; it gives joy
without immoderation, it inebriates without stupefying, it does not excite the senses but
elevates them (ne leve pas mais releve).
When the holy Isaac embraced and kissed his dear child Jacob, he smelt the good odour
of his garments, and at once, filled with an extreme pleasure, he said: Behold the smell of my
son is as the smell of a plentiful field which the Lord hath blessed.223 The garment and perfumes
were Jacob's, but Isaac had the complacency and enjoyment of them. Ah! the soul which by
love holds her Saviour in the arms of her affections, how deliciously does she smell the
perfumes of the infinite perfections which are found in him, with what complacency does
she say in herself: behold how the scent of my God is as the sweet smell of a flowery garden,
ah! how precious are his breasts, spreading sovereign perfumes.
So the soul of the great S. Augustine, stayed in suspense between the sacred contentment
which he had in considering on the one side the mystery of his Master's birth, on the other
the mystery of his passion, cried out, ravished in this complacency "I know not whither to
turn my heart. On the one side the Mother's breast offers me its milk, on the other the life-
giving wound of the Son gives me to drink of his blood."
203
223 Gen. xxvii. 27.
213

23.7 Page 227

▲back to top


Chapter III. That Holy Complacency Gives Our Heart to God, and Makes Us…
CHAPTER III.
THAT HOLY COMPLACENCY GIVES OUR HEART TO GOD, AND MAKES US
FEEL A PERPETUAL DESIRE IN FRUITION.
The love which we bear to God starts from the first complacency which our heart feels on
first perceiving the divine goodness, when it begins to tend towards it. Now when by the
exercise of love we augment and strengthen this first complacency, as we have explained in
the preceding chapters, we then draw into our hearts the divine perfections and enjoy the
divine goodness by rejoicing in it, practising the first part of the amorous contentment of
love expressed by the sacred spouse, saying: My beloved to me.224 But because this amorous
complacency being in us who have it, ceases not to be in God in whom we have it, it gives
us reciprocally to his divine goodness; so that by this holy love of complacency we enjoy the
goods which are in God as though they were our own; but because the divine perfections
are stronger than our spirit, entering into it they possess it reciprocally, insomuch that we
not only say God is ours by this complacency but also that we are to Him.225
The herb aproxis (as we have said elsewhere) has so great a correspondence with fire,
that though at a distance from it, as soon as it sees it, it draws the flame and begins to burn,
conceiving fire not so much from the heat as from the light of the fire presented to it. When
then by this attraction it is united to the fire, if it could speak, might it not well say: my well-
beloved fire is mine since I draw it to me and enjoy its flames, but I am also its, for though
I drew it to me it reduced me into it as more strong and noble; it is my fire and I am its herb:
I draw it and it sets me on fire. So our heart being brought into the presence of the divine
goodness, and having drawn the perfections thereof by the complacency it takes in them,
may truly say: God's goodness is all mine since I enjoy his excellences, and I again am wholly
his, seeing that his delights possess me.
204
By complacency our soul, like Gideon's fleece, is wholly filled with heavenly dew, and
this dew belongs to the fleece because it falls upon it, and again the fleece is the dew's because
it is steeped in it and receives virtue from it. Which belongs more to the other, the pearl to
the oyster or the oyster to the pearl? The pearl is the oyster's because she drew it to her, but
the oyster is the pearl's because it gives her worth and value. Complacency makes us pos-
sessors of God, drawing into us his perfections, but it makes us also possessed of God, ap-
plying and fastening us to his perfections.
Now in this complacency we satiate our soul with delights in such a manner that we do
not yet cease to desire to be satiated, and relishing the divine goodness we desire yet to relish
it; while satiating ourselves we would still eat, as whilst eating we feel ourselves satisfied.
The chief of the Apostles, having said in his first epistle that the ancient prophets had
224 Cant. ii. 2.
225 Cant. ii. 2.
214

23.8 Page 228

▲back to top


Chapter III. That Holy Complacency Gives Our Heart to God, and Makes Us…
manifested the graces which were to abound amongst Christians, and amongst other things
our Saviour's passion, and the glory which was to follow it (as well by the resurrection of
his body as also by the exaltation of his name), in the end concludes that the very angels
desire to behold the mysteries of the redemption in this divine Saviour: On whom, says he,
the angels desire to look.226 But how can this be understood, that the angels who see the
Redeemer and in him all the mysteries of our salvation, do yet desire to see him? Theotimus,
verily they see him continually, but with a view so agreeable and delightsome that the
complacency they take in it satiates them without taking away their desire, and makes them
desire without removing their satiety; the fruition is not lessened by desire, but perfected,
as their desire is not cloyed but intensified by fruition.
The fruition of a thing which always contents never lessens, but is renewed and flourishes
incessantly; it is ever agreeable, ever desirable. The perpetual contentment of heavenly lovers
produces a desire perpetually content, as their continual desire begets in them a contentment
perpetually desired. Good which is finite in giving the possession ends the desire, and in
205
giving the desire takes away the possession, being unable to be at once possessed and desired.
But the infinite good makes desire reign in possession and possession in desire, finding a
way to satiate desire by a holy presence, and yet to make it live by the greatness of its excel-
lence, which nourishes in all those that possess it a desire always content and a content always
full of desire.
Consider, Theotimus, such as hold in their mouth the herb sciticum; according to report
they are never hungry nor thirsty, it is so satisfying, and yet never lose their appetite, it
nourishes them so deliciously. When our will meets God it reposes in him, taking in him a
sovereign complacency, yet without staying the movement of her desire, for as she desires
to love so she loves to desire, she has the desire of love and the love of desire. The repose of
the heart consists not in immobility but in needing nothing, not in having no movement
but in having no need to move.
The damned are in eternal movement without any mixture of rest; we mortals who are
yet in this pilgrimage have, now movement, now rest, in our affections; the Blessed ever
have repose in their movements and movement in their repose; only God has repose without
movement, because he is sovereignly a pure and substantial act. Now although according
to the ordinary condition of this mortal life we have not repose in movement, yet still, when
we practise the acts of holy love, we find repose in the movement of our affections, and
movement in the repose of the complacency which we take in our well-beloved, receiving
hereby a foretaste of the future felicity to which we aspire.
If it be true that the chameleon lives on air, wheresoever he goes in the air he finds food,
and though he move from one place to another, it is not to find wherewith to be filled, but
226 1 Pet. i. 12.
215

23.9 Page 229

▲back to top


Chapter III. That Holy Complacency Gives Our Heart to God, and Makes Us…
to exercise himself within that element which is also his food, as fishes do in the sea. He
who desires God while possessing him, does not desire him in order to seek him, but in order
to exercise this affection within the very good which he enjoys; for the heart does not make
this movement of desire as aiming at the enjoyment of a thing not had, since it is already
206
had, but as dilating itself in the enjoyment which it has; not to obtain the good, but to recreate
and please itself therein; not to gain the enjoyment of it but to take enjoyment in it. So we
walk and move to go to some delicious garden, where, being arrived, we cease not to walk
and exercise ourselves, not now to get there, but being there to walk and pass our time
therein: we walk in order to go and enjoy the pleasantness of the garden, being there we
walk to take our pleasure in the enjoyment of it. Seek ye the Lord and be strengthened, seek
his face evermore.227 We always seek him whom we always love, says the great S. Augustine:
love seeks that which it has found, not to have it but to have it always.
Finally, Theotimus, the soul which is in the exercise of the love of complacency cries
continually in her sacred silence: It suffices me that God is God, that his goodness is infinite,
that his perfection is immense; whether I die or whether I live matters little to me since my
dear well-beloved lives eternally an all-triumphant life. Death itself cannot trouble a heart
which knows that its sovereign love lives. It is sufficient for a heart that loves that he whom
it loves more than itself is replenished with eternal happiness, seeing that it lives more in
him whom it loves than in him whom it animates; yea, that it lives not itself, but its well-
beloved lives in it.
227 Ps. civ. 4.
216

23.10 Page 230

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Loving Condolence by Which the Complacency of Love Is…
CHAPTER IV.
OF THE LOVING CONDOLENCE BY WHICH THE COMPLACENCY OF LOVE IS
STILL BETTER DECLARED.
Compassion, condolence, commiseration, or pity, is no other thing than an affection which
207
makes us share in the suffering and sorrow of him whom we love, drawing the misery which
he endures into our heart; whence it is called misericorde, or, as it were, misere de cœur: as
complacency draws into the lover's heart the pleasures and contentments of the thing beloved.
It is love that works both effects, by the virtue it has of uniting the heart which loves to the
thing loved, thus making the goods and the evils of friends common; and what happens in
compassion much illustrates what regards complacency.
Compassion takes its greatness from the love which produces it. Thus the condolence
of mothers in the afflictions of their only children is great, as the Scripture often testifies.
How great was the sorrow of Agar's heart upon the pains of her Ismael, whom she saw well-
nigh perish with thirst in the desert! How much did David's soul commiserate the misery
of his Absalom! Ah! do you not mark the motherly heart of the great Apostle, sick with the
sick, burning with zeal for such as were scandalized, having a continual sorrow for the ruin
of the Jews, and daily dying for his dear spiritual children. But especially consider how love
draws all the pains, all the torments, travails, sufferings, griefs, wounds, passion, cross and
very death of our Redeemer into his most sacred mother's heart. Alas! the same nails that
crucified the body of this divine child, also crucified the soul of this all-sweet mother; she
endured the same miseries with her son by commiseration, the same dolours by condolence,
the same passions by compassion, and, in a word, the sword of death which transpierced
the body of this best beloved Son, struck through the heart of this most loving mother,228
whence she might well have said that he was to her as a bundle of myrrh between her
breasts,229 that is, in her bosom and in the midst of her heart. You see how Jacob, hearing
the sad though false news of the death of his dear Joseph, is afflicted with it. Ah! said he, I
will go down mourning into hell, that is to say, to Limbo into Abraham's bosom, to my son.230
Condolence is also great according to the greatness of the sorrows which we see those
208
we love suffering; for how little soever the friendship be, if the evils which we see endured
be extreme, they cause in us great pity. This made Cæsar weep over Pompey, and the
daughters of Jerusalem could not refrain from weeping over our Saviour, though the greater
number of them were not greatly attached to him; as also the friends of Job, though wicked
friends, made great lamentation in beholding the dreadful spectacle of his incomparable
misery. And what a stroke of grief was it in the heart of Jacob to think that his dear child
228 Luke ii. 35.
229 Cant. i. 12.
230 Gen. xxxvii. 35.
217

24 Pages 231-240

▲back to top


24.1 Page 231

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Loving Condolence by Which the Complacency of Love Is…
had died by a death so cruel as that of being devoured by a savage beast. But, besides all this,
commiseration is much strengthened by the presence of the object which is in misery; this
caused poor Agar to go away from her dying son, to disburden herself in some sort of the
compassionate grief which she felt, saying: I will not see the boy die;231 as on the contrary
our Saviour weeps seeing the sepulchre of his well-beloved Lazarus and regarding his dear
Jerusalem; and our good Jacob is beside himself with grief when he sees the bloody coat of
his poor little Joseph.
Now the same causes increase complacency. In proportion as a friend is more dear to
us we take more pleasure in his contentment, and his good enters more deeply into our
heart. If the good is excellent, our joy is also greater. But if we see our friend enjoying it, our
rejoicing becomes extreme. When the good Jacob knew that his son lived,—O God! What
joy! His spirit returned to him, he lived once more, he, so to speak, rose again from death.
But what does this mean,—he revived or returned to life? Theotimus, spirits die not their
own death but by sin, which separates them from God, their true supernatural life, yet they
sometimes die another's death; and this happened to the good Jacob of whom we speak, for
love, which draws into the heart of the lover the good and evil of the thing beloved, the one
by complacency, the other by commiseration, drew the death of the beloved Joseph into the
loving Jacob's heart, and, by a miracle impossible to any other power than love, the spirit
209
of this good father was full of the death of him that was living and reigning, for affection
having been deceived ran before the effect.
But, on the contrary, as soon as he knew that his son was alive, love which had so long
kept the supposed death of the son in the spirit of the good father, seeing that it had been
deceived, speedily rejected this imaginary death, and made enter in its place the true life of
the same son. Thus then he returned to a new life, because the life of his son entered into
his heart by complacency, and animated him with an incomparable contentment: with
which finding himself satisfied, and not esteeming any other pleasure in comparison of this:
It is enough for me, said he, if Joseph my son be yet living.232 But when with his own eyes he
saw by experience the truth of the grandeur of this dear child in Gessen, falling upon his
neck and embracing him, he wept saying: Now shall I die with joy because I have seen thy
face and leave thee alive.233 Ah! what a joy, Theotimus, and how excellently expressed by
this old man! For what would he say by these words, now shall I die with joy because I have
seen thy face, but that his content was so great, that it was able to render death itself joyful
and agreeable, even death, which is the most grievous and horrible thing in the world. Tell
me, I pray you, Theotimus, who has more sense of Joseph's good, he who enjoys it or Jacob
231 Gen. xxi. 16.
232 Gen. xlv. 28.
233 Gen. xlvi. 30.
218

24.2 Page 232

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Loving Condolence by Which the Complacency of Love Is…
who rejoices in it. Certainly, if good be not good but in respect of the content which it affords
us, the father has as much as the son, yea more, for the son, together with the viceroy's dignity
of which he is possessed, has consequently much care and many affairs, but the father enjoys
by complacency, and purely possesses all that is good in this greatness and dignity of his
son, without charge, care or trouble. Now shall I die with joy, says he. Ah! who does not see
his contentment? If even death cannot trouble his joy, who can ever change it? If his content
can live amidst the distresses of death, who can ever bereave him of it? Love is strong as
death, and the joys of love surmount the sorrows of death, for death cannot kill but enlivens
them; so that, as there is a fire which is marvellously kept alive in a fountain near Grenoble
210
(as we know for certain and the great S. Augustine attests), so holy charity has strength to
nourish her flames and consolations in the most grievous anguishes of death, and the waters
of tribulations cannot quench her fire.
219

24.3 Page 233

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Condolence and Complacency of Love in the Passion of Our…
CHAPTER V.
OF THE CONDOLENCE AND COMPLACENCY OF LOVE IN THE PASSION OF
OUR LORD.
When I see my Saviour on the Mount of Olives with his soul sorrowful even unto death:—Ah!
Lord Jesus, say I, what can have brought the sorrows of death into the soul of life except
love, which, exciting commiseration, drew thereby our miseries into thy sovereign heart?
Now a devout soul, seeing this abyss of heaviness and distress in this divine lover, how can
she be without a holily loving sorrow? But considering, on the other hand, that all the afflic-
tions of her well-beloved proceed from no imperfection or want of strength, but from the
greatness of his dearest love, she cannot but melt away with a holy sorrowful love. So that
she cries: I am black with sorrow by compassion, but beautiful with love by complacency;
the anguish of my well-beloved has changed my colour: for how could a faithful lover behold
such torments in him whom she loves more than her life, without swooning away and be-
coming all wan and wasted with grief. The tents of nomads, perpetually exposed to the in-
juries of weather and war, are almost always ragged and covered with dust; and I, ever exposed
to the griefs which by condolence I receive from the immeasurable travails of my divine
Saviour, I am all covered with distress, and rent with sorrow. But because the pains of him
I love come from his love, in what measure they afflict me by compassion, they delight me
by complacency; for how could a faithful lover not take an extreme content to see herself
so loved by her heavenly spouse? Wherefore the beauty of love is in the ill-favour of sorrow.
And if I wear mourning for the passion and death of my King, all swarthy and black with 211
grief, I cease not to have an incomparable sweetness in seeing the excess of his love amid
his travails and his sorrows; and the tents of Solomon, all embroidered and worked in an
admirable variety of decorations, were never so lovely as I am content, and, consequently,
sweet, amiable and agreeable, in the variety of the sentiments of love which I have amid
those griefs. Love equalizes lovers; Ah! I see him, this dear lover—he is a fire of love burning
in a thorny bush of sorrow, and I am the same: I am all inflamed with love amid the thorny
bushes of my griefs, I am a lily among thorns. Ah! do not even look at the horrors of my
poignant sorrows, but see the beauty of my agreeable love. Alas! he suffers insupportable
pains, this well-beloved divine lover: it is this which grieves me and makes me faint with
anguish; but he takes pleasure in suffering, he loves his torments, and dies with joy at dying
with pain for me: wherefore as I am sorrowing over his pains, so I am all ravished with joy
at his love; not only do I grieve with him, but I glorify myself in him.
It was this love, Theotimus, which brought upon the seraphic S. Francis the stigmata,
and upon the loving angelic S. Catharine of Siena the burning wounds of the Saviour,
amorous complacency having sharpened the points of dolorous compassion; as honey makes
more penetrating and sensible the bitterness of wormwood, whilst on the contrary the sweet
smell of roses is intensified by the neighbourhood of garlic planted near the trees. For, in
220

24.4 Page 234

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Condolence and Complacency of Love in the Passion of Our…
the same way, the loving complacency we have taken in the love of our Saviour makes the
compassion we feel for his pains infinitely stronger: as reciprocally, passing back from the
compassion for his pains to complacency in love, the pleasure of this is far more ardent and
exalted. Then are practised pain in love and love in pain; then amorous condolence and
dolorous complacency, as another Esau and another Jacob, struggling as to which shall make
the greater effort, put the soul in incredible convulsions and agonies, and there takes place
an ecstasy lovingly sorrowful and sorrowfully loving. So those great souls of S. Francis and
S. Catharine felt matchless love in their pains, and incomparable pains in their love, when
they were stigmatized, relishing that joyous love of suffering for a beloved one, which their
212
Saviour exercised in the supreme degree on the tree of the cross. Thus is born the precious
union of our heart with its God, which, like a mystical Benjamin, is the child of pain and
joy both together.
It cannot be declared, Theotimus, how strongly the Saviour desires to enter into our
souls by this love of sorrowing complacency. Ah! says he, Open to me, my sister, my love,
my dove, my undefiled; for my head is full of dew, and my locks of the drops of the night.234
What is this dew, and what are the drops of the night but the afflictions and pains of his
passion? Pearls, in sooth (as we have said often enough), are nothing but drops of dew,
which the freshness of night rains over the face of the sea, received into the shells of oysters
or pearl-mothers. Ah! this divine lover of the soul would say, I am laden with the pains and
sweats of my passion, almost all of which passed either in the darkness of the night, or in
the night of the darkness which the obscured sun made in the very brightness of its noon.
Open then thy heart towards me as the pearl-mothers open their shells towards the sky, and
I will shed upon thee the dew of my passion, which will be changed into pearls of consolation.
234 Cant. v. 2.
221

24.5 Page 235

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Love of Benevolence Which We Exercise towards Our Saviour…
CHAPTER VI.
OF THE LOVE OF BENEVOLENCE WHICH WE EXERCISE TOWARDS OUR SA-
VIOUR BY WAY OF DESIRE.
In the love which God exercises towards us he always begins by benevolence, willing and
effecting all the good that is in us, in which afterwards he takes complacency. He made
David according to his heart by benevolence, then he found him according to his heart by
complacency. He first created the universe for man, and man in the universe, giving to each
thing such a measure of goodness as was proportionable to it, out of his pure benevolence,
then he approved all that he had done, finding that all was very good, and by complacency
rested in his work.
But, on the contrary, our love towards God begins from the complacency which we
have in the sovereign goodness and infinite perfection which we know is in the Divinity,
then we come to the exercise of benevolence; and as the complacency which God takes in
his creatures is no other thing than a continuation of his benevolence towards them, so the
benevolence which we bear towards God is nothing else but an approbation of and persever-
ance in the complacency we have in him.
Now this love of benevolence towards God is practised in this sort. We cannot, with a
true desire, wish any good to God, because his goodness is infinitely more perfect than we
can either wish or think: desire is only of a future good, and no good is future to God, since
all good is so present to him that the presence of good in his divine Majesty is nothing else
but the Divinity itself. Not being able then to make any absolute desire for God, we make
imaginary and conditional ones, in this manner: I have said to the Lord, thou art my God,
who being full of thine own infinite goodness, hast no need of my goods,235 nor of anything
whatever, but if, by imagination of a thing impossible, I could think thou hadst need of
anything, I would never cease to wish it thee, even with the loss of my life, of my being, and
of all that is in the world. And if, being what thou art, and what thou canst not but still be,
it were possible that thou couldst receive any increase of good,—O God! what a desire would
I have that thou shouldst have it! I would desire, O eternal Lord! to see my heart converted
into a wish, and my life into a sigh, to desire thee such a good! Ah! yet would I not for all
this, O thou sacred well-beloved of my soul, desire to be able to wish any good to thy Majesty,
yea I delight with all my heart in this supreme degree of goodness which thou hast, to which
nothing can be added, either by desire or yet by thought. But if such a desire were possible,
O infinite Divinity, O divine Infinity! my soul would be that desire and nothing else, so in-
tensely would she be desirous to desire for thee that which she is infinitely pleased that she
cannot desire; seeing that her powerlessness to make this desire proceeds from the infinite
infinity of thy perfection, which outstrips all desire and all thought. Ah! O my God! how
213
214
235 Ps. xv. 2.
222

24.6 Page 236

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Love of Benevolence Which We Exercise towards Our Saviour…
dearly I love the impossibility of being able to desire thee any good, since this comes from
the incomprehensible immensity of thy abundance. That is so sovereignly infinite, that if
there were an infinite desire it would be infinitely satiated by the infinity of thy goodness,
which would convert it into an infinite complacency. This desire then, by imagination of
impossibilities, may be sometimes profitably practised amidst great and extraordinary feelings
and fervours. We are told that the great S. Augustine often made such, pouring out in an
excess of love these words: "Ah! Lord, I am Augustine and thou art God, but still, if that,
which neither is nor can be, were, that I were God and thou Augustine, I would, changing
my condition with thee, become Augustine to the end that thou mightest be God!"
It is yet another kind of benevolence towards God, when feeling we cannot exalt him
in himself, we strive to do it in ourselves, that is, still more and more to increase the compla-
cency we take in his goodness. And then, Theotimus, we desire not the complacency for the
pleasure it yields us, but purely because this pleasure is in God. For as we desire not the
compassion for the pain it brings to our heart, but because this sorrow unites and associates
us to our well-beloved, who is in pain; so we do not love the complacency because it brings
us pleasure, but because this pleasure is taken in union with the pleasure and good which
is in God, to be more united to which, we would desire to exercise a complacency infinitely
greater, in imitation of the most holy Queen and Mother of love, whose sacred soul continu-
ally magnified and exalted God. And that it might be known that this magnifying was made
by the complacency which she took in the divine goodness, she declares; My spirit hath ex-
ultingly rejoiced in God my Saviour.236
236 Luke i. 47.
223

24.7 Page 237

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How the Desire to Exalt and Magnify God Separates Us from Inferior…
CHAPTER VII.
HOW THE DESIRE TO EXALT AND MAGNIFY GOD SEPARATES US FROM IN-
FERIOR PLEASURES, AND MAKES US ATTENTIVE TO THE DIVINE PERFECTIONS.
The love of benevolence, then, causes in us a desire, more and more to increase the compla-
cency which we take in the divine goodness; and to effect this increase, the soul sedulously
deprives herself of all other pleasure that she may give herself more entirely to taking
pleasure in God. A religious man asked the devout Brother Giles, one of the first and most
holy companions of S. Francis, in what work he could be most agreeable to God: he answered
by singing: "One to one," which he afterwards explained, saying, "Give ever your whole soul
which is one, to God who is one." The soul pours itself out by pleasures, and the diversity
of these dissipates and hinders her from being able to apply herself attentively to the pleasure
which she ought to take in God. The glorious S. Paul reputed all things as dung and dirt in
comparison of his Saviour. And the sacred spouse is wholly for her well-beloved only: My
beloved to me and I to him. And if the soul that stands thus holily affected meet with creatures
never so excellent, yea though they were angels, she makes no delay with them, save only
what she needs for the help and furtherance of her desire. Tell me then, says she to them,
tell me, I conjure you, have you seen him whom my soul loveth?237 The glorious lover Mag-
dalen met the angels at the sepulchre, who doubtless spoke to her angelically, that is most
sweetly, but she, on the contrary, wholly ruthful, could take no content, either in their sweet
words or in the glory of their garments, or in the all-heavenly grace of their deportment, or
in the most delightsome beauty of their faces, but all steeped in tears: They have taken away
my Lord, says she, and I know not where they have laid him:238 and, turning about, she saw
her sweet Saviour, but in form of a gardener, with whom her heart cannot be satisfied, for
full of the love of the death of her Master, flowers she will have none, nor consequently
gardeners; she has within her heart the cross, the nails, the thorns; she seeks her crucified.
Ah! my dear sir gardener, says she, if perchance you have planted my well-beloved deceased
Lord amongst your flowers, as a crushed and withered lily, tell me quickly and I, I will carry
him away. But no sooner had he called her by her name, than, wholly melting with delight,
O God! says she, my Master! Nothing can content her, nor angels' company delight her, no
nor yet her very Saviour's, unless he appear in that form in which he had stolen her heart.
The kings could not content themselves either in the beauty of Jerusalem or in the magnifi-
cence of Herod's court, or in the brightness of the star; their heart seeks the little cave and
the little child of Bethlehem. The mother of fair loving and the spouse of most holy love
cannot stay among their kinsfolks and acquaintance; they still walk on in grief, seeking after
the only object of their delight. The desire to increase holy complacency cuts off all other
215
216
237 Cant. iii. 3.
238 John xx. 13.
224

24.8 Page 238

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How the Desire to Exalt and Magnify God Separates Us from Inferior…
pleasure, to the end that it may more actively practise that to which the divine benevolence
excites it.
Now still more to magnify this sovereign well-beloved, the soul goes ever seeking his
face: that is, with an attention more and more careful and fervent, she keeps noting every
particular of the beauties and perfections which are in him, making a continual progress in
this sweet searching out of motives, which may perpetually urge her to a greater complacency
in the incomprehensible goodness which she loves. So David in many of his heavenly psalms
recites one by one the works and wonders of God, and the sacred spouse ranges, in her divine
canticles, as a well-ranked army, all the perfections of her beloved, one after another, to
provoke her soul to most holy complacency, thereby more highly to magnify his excellence,
and also to subject all other spirits to the love of her beloved so dear.
225

24.9 Page 239

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Holy Benevolence Produces the Praise of the Divine We…
CHAPTER VIII.
HOW HOLY BENEVOLENCE PRODUCES THE PRAISE OF THE DIVINE WELL-
BELOVED.
Honour, my dear Theotimus, is not in him who is honoured, but in him who honours: for
217
how often it happens that he whom we honour knows nothing of it, nor has so much as
thought about it. How often we praise such as know us not, or who are sleeping; and yet
according to the common estimation of men, and their ordinary manner of conceiving, it
seems that we do one some good when we do him honour, and that we give him much when
we give him titles and praises, and we find no difficulty in saying that a man is rich in honour,
glory, reputation, praise, though indeed we know that all this is outside the person who is
honoured. He oftentimes receives no manner of profit therefrom, according to a saying
ascribed to the great S. Augustine: O poor Aristotle, thou art being praised where thou art
not, and where thou art, thou art being burned. What fruit, I pray you, do Cæsar and Alex-
ander the Great reap from so many vain words which some vain souls employ in their praise?
God being replenished with a goodness which surpasses all praise and honour, receives
no advantage nor increase by all the benedictions which we give him. He is neither richer
nor greater, nor more content or happy by them, for his happiness, his content, his greatness,
and his riches neither are nor can be any other thing than the divine infinity of his goodness.
At the same time, since, according to our ordinary estimation, honour is held one of the
greatest effects of our benevolence towards others, and since by it we not only do not imply
any indigence in those we honour, but rather protest that they abound in excellence, we
therefore make use of this kind of benevolence towards God, who not only approves it, but
exacts it, as suitable to our condition, and so proper to testify the respectful love we bear
him, that he has ordained we should render and refer all honour and glory unto him.
Thus then the soul who has taken a great complacency in God's infinite perfection,
seeing that she cannot wish him any increase of goodness, because he has infinitely more
218
than she can either wish or conceive, desires at least that his name may be blessed, exalted,
praised, honoured and adored ever more and more. And beginning with her own heart, she
ceases not to provoke it to this holy exercise, and, as a sacred bee, flies hither and thither
amongst the flowers of the divine works and excellences, gathering from them a sweet
variety of complacencies, from which she works up and composes the heavenly honey of
benedictions, praises, and confessions of honour, by which, as far as she is able, she magnifies
and glorifies the name of her well-beloved: in imitation of the great Psalmist, who having
gone round, and as it were in spirit run over the wonders of the divine goodness, immolated
on the altar of his heart the mystic victim of the utterances of his voice, by canticles and
psalms of admiration and benediction: I have gone round, and have offered up in his tabernacle
a sacrifice of jubilation: I will sing, and recite a psalm to the Lord.239 But, Theotimus, this
239 Ps. xxvi. 6
226

24.10 Page 240

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Holy Benevolence Produces the Praise of the Divine We…
desire of praising God which holy benevolence excites in our hearts is insatiable, for the
soul that is touched with it would wish to have infinite praises to bestow upon her well-be-
loved, because she finds his perfections more than infinite: so that, finding herself to fall far
short of being able to satisfy her desire, she makes extreme efforts of affection to praise at
least in some measure this goodness all worthy of praise, and these efforts of benevolence
are marvellously augmented by complacency: for in proportion as the soul finds God good,
relishing more and more his sweetness, and taking complacency in his infinite goodness,
she would also raise higher the benedictions and praises she gives him. And again, as the
soul grows warm in praising the incomprehensible sweetness of God, she enlarges and dilates
the complacency she takes in him, and by this enlargement she more strongly excites herself
to his praise. So that the affection of complacency and that of praise, by these reciprocal
movements and mutual inclinations, advance one another with great and continual increase.
So nightingales, according to Pliny, take such complacency in their songs, that, by
reason of this complacency, for fifteen days and fifteen nights they never cease warbling,
219
forcing themselves to sing better in emulous striving with one another; so that when they
sing the best, they take a greater complacency, and this increase of complacency makes them
force themselves to greater efforts of trilling, augmenting in such sort their complacency by
their song and their song by their complacency, that it is often found that they die and their
throats burst with their singing. Birds worthy the fair name of philomel, since they die thus,
of and for the love of melody!
O God! my Theotimus, how the soul ardently pressed with affection to praise her God,
is touched with a dolour most delicious and a delight most dolorous, when after a thousand
efforts of praise she comes so short. Alas! she would wish, this poor nightingale, to raise her
accents ever higher, and perfect her melody, the better to sing the praises of her well-beloved.
By how much more she praises, by so much more is she delighted in praising: and by how
much greater her delight in praising is, by so much her pain is greater that she cannot yet
more praise him; still, to find what content she can in this passion, she makes all sorts of
efforts, and in the midst of them faints and fails, as it happened to the most glorious S.
Francis, who amidst the pleasure he had in praising God and singing his canticles of love,
shed a great abundance of tears, and often let fall through feeblessness, what he might be
holding in his hands: being like a sacred nightingale all outspent, and often losing respiration
through the effort of aspiration after the praises of him whom he could never praise suffi-
ciently.
But hear an agreeable similitude upon this subject, drawn from the name which this
loving Saint gave his religious; for he called them Cicalas, by reason of the nightly praises
they sang to God. Cicalas, Theotimus, as though they were nature's organs, have their breasts
set with pipes; and to sing the better they live only on dew, which they take not by the mouth,
for they have none, but suck it by a certain little tongue they have on the breast, by which
227

25 Pages 241-250

▲back to top


25.1 Page 241

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Holy Benevolence Produces the Praise of the Divine We…
they utter their cries with so much noise that they seem to be nothing but voice. Now this
is the state of the sacred lover; for all the faculties of her soul are as so many pipes which
she has in her breast, to repeat the canticles and praises of the well-beloved. Her devotion
in the midst of all these is the tongue of her heart, according to S. Bernard, by which she
receives the dew of the divine perfections, sucking and drawing them to her, as her food,
220
by the most holy complacency which she takes in them; and by the same tongue of devotion
she utters all her voices of prayer, praise, canticles, psalms, benedictions, according to the
testimony of one of the most glorious spiritual cicalas that was ever heard, who sang thus:
Bless the Lord, O my soul: and let all that is within me bless his holy name.240 For is it not as
though he had said, I am a mystical cicala, my soul, my spirit, my thoughts, all the faculties
that are collected within me, are organ pipes. Let all these for ever bless the name and sound
the praises of my God. I will bless the Lord at all times, his praise shall be always in my mouth.
In the Lord shall my soul be praised; let the meek hear and rejoice.241
240 Ps. cii. 1.
241 Ps. xxxiii. 1, 2.
228

25.2 Page 242

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How Benevolence Makes Us Call All Creatures to the Praise of…
CHAPTER IX.
HOW BENEVOLENCE MAKES US CALL ALL CREATURES TO THE PRAISE OF
GOD.
The heart that is taken and pressed with a desire of praising the divine goodness more than
it is able, after many endeavours goes oftentimes out of itself, to invite all creatures to help
it in its design. As did the three children in the furnace, in that admirable canticle of bene-
dictions, by which they excite all that is in heaven, on earth and under the earth, to render
thanks to the eternal God, by blessing and praising him sovereignly. So the glorious Psalmist,
quite mastered by holily disordered passion moving him to praise God, goes without order,
leaping from heaven to earth, and from earth to heaven again, invoking angels, fishes,
mountains, waters, dragons, birds, serpents, fire, hail, mists, assembling by his desires all
creatures,—to the end that they all may conspire to lovingly magnify their Creator, some
in their own persons celebrating the divine praise, others affording matter of praise by the
wonders of their different properties, which manifest their Maker's power; so that this divine 221
royal Psalmist, having composed a great number of psalms with this inscription: Praise God:
after he had run through all creatures, holily inviting them to bless the divine Majesty, and
gone over a great variety of means and instruments proper for the celebration of the praises
of this eternal goodness, in the end, as falling down through lack of breath, closes his sacred
song with this ejaculation: Let every spirit praise the Lord;242 that is, let all that has life,
neither live nor breathe but to bless its Creator, according to the invitation he had elsewhere
given: O magnify the Lord with me; and let us extol his name together.243
So the great S. Francis sang the canticle of the sun, and a hundred other excellent bene-
dictions, to invoke creatures to help his heart, all fainting because he could not satisfy himself
in the praises of the dear Saviour of his soul. So the heavenly spouse perceiving herself almost
to faint away amid the violent efforts she made to bless and magnify the well-beloved king
of her heart, Ah! she cried out to her companions, this divine spouse has led me by contem-
plation into his wine-cellar, making me taste the incomparable delights of the perfections
of his excellence, and I have so steeped and holily inebriated myself in the holy complacency
which I have taken in this abyss of beauty, that my soul languishes, wounded with a lovingly
mortal desire, which urges me everlastingly to praise so exalted a goodness. Ah! come, I
beseech you, to the assistance of my poor heart, which is upon the point of falling down
dead. For pity sustain it, and stay me up with flowers; strengthen me and compass me about
with apples, or I fall lifeless. Complacency draws the divine sweetnesses into her heart, which
so ardently fills itself therewith that it is overcharged. But the love of benevolence makes
our heart pass out of itself, and exhale itself in vapours of delicious perfumes, that is, in all
242 Ps. cl. 6.
243 Ps. xxxiii. 4.
229

25.3 Page 243

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How Benevolence Makes Us Call All Creatures to the Praise of…
kinds of holy praises. And yet not being able to produce as many as it would wish: Oh! it
says, let all creatures come and contribute the flowers of their benedictions, the apples of
their thanksgivings, honours and adorations, so that on every side we may smell odours
poured out to the glory of him whose infinite sweetness surpasses all honour, and whom
222
we can never right worthily magnify.
It is this divine passion that brings forth so many discourses, sends through all hazards
a Xavier, a Berzée, an Anthony, that multitude of Jesuits, Capuchins, and religious and ec-
clesiastics of all kinds, to the Indies, Japan, Marañon, that the holy name of Jesus may be
known, acknowledged, and adored throughout those immense nations. It is this holy passion
which causes so many books of piety to be written, so many churches, altars, pious houses
to be erected, and in a word which makes many of God's servants watch, labour, and die
amid the flames of zeal which consume and spend them.
230

25.4 Page 244

▲back to top


Chapter X. How the Desire to Praise God Makes Us Aspire to Heaven.
CHAPTER X.
HOW THE DESIRE TO PRAISE GOD MAKES US ASPIRE TO HEAVEN.
The amorous soul, perceiving that she cannot satiate the desire she has to praise her well-
beloved while she lives in this world, and knowing that the praises which are given in
heaven to the divine goodness are sung to an incomparably more delightful air,—O God!
says she, how much to be praised are the praises which are poured forth by those blessed
spirits before the throne of my heavenly king; how blessed are their blessings! O what a
happiness is it to hear this melody of the most holy eternity, in which by the sweetest con-
currence of dissimilar and varied tones, are made those admirable accords—all the parts
mingling together with a continued sequence and marvellous linking of progressive move-
ments—by which perpetual Alleluias do resound on every side.
Voices which for their loudness are compared to thunders, to trumpets, to the noise of
the waves of a troubled sea; yet voices which, for their incomparable softness and sweetness,
are compared to the melody of harps, delicately and delightfully touched by hands of the
most skilful players; and voices all of which unite to sing the joyous Paschal canticle: Alleluia,
praise God, Amen, praise God. For know, Theotimus, that a voice goes out from the divine
throne which ceases not to cry to the happy inhabitants of the glorious heavenly Jerusalem:
223
Praise God, O you that are his servants, and you that fear him great and little:244 at which
all the innumerable multitude of saints,—the choirs of angels and the choirs of assembled
men,—answer, singing with all their force: Alleluia, praise God. But what is this admirable
voice, which issuing out from the divine throne entones the Alleluias of the elect, except
most holy complacency, which being received into the heart, makes them feel the sweetness
of the divine perfections, whereupon a loving benevolence, the source of heavenly praises,
is bred in them? So that complacency coming from the throne, declares to the blessed the
grandeurs of God, and benevolence excites them to pour out in their turn the perfumes of
praise before the throne. Wherefore by way of answer they eternally sing: Alleluia, that is,
praise God. The complacency comes from the throne into the heart, and benevolence goes
from the heart to the throne.
O how worthy of love is this temple, wholly resounding with praise! O what content
have such as live in this sacred dwelling, where so many heavenly philomels and nightingales
sing with this holy strife of love, the canticles of eternal delight!
The heart, then, that in this world can neither sing nor hear the divine praises to its
liking, enters into unutterable desires of being delivered from the bonds of this life to pass
to the other, where the heavenly well-beloved is so perfectly praised: and these desires having
taken possession of the heart, often become so strong and urgent in the breast of sacred
lovers, that banishing all other desires they cause disgust of all earthly things, and render
244 Apoc. xix.
231

25.5 Page 245

▲back to top


Chapter X. How the Desire to Praise God Makes Us Aspire to Heaven.
the soul languishing and lovesick: yea, sometimes the holy passion goes so far, that, God
permitting, one dies of it.
So that glorious and seraphical lover S. Francis, having been long torn with this strong
affection for praising God, in the end, in his last years, after he had had assurance, by a
special revelation, of his eternal salvation, could not contain his joy, but wasted daily, as if
his life and soul had burnt away like incense, upon the fire of the ardent desires which he
had to see his Master, incessantly to praise him: so that these ardours taking every day a
fresh increase, his soul left his body by a passionate movement which he made towards
224
heaven; for the divine Providence thought good that he should die pronouncing these sacred
words: Bring my soul out of prison, that I may praise thy name: the just wait for me, until
thou reward me.245 Behold, Theotimus, I beseech you, this soul, who, as a heavenly nightin-
gale shut up in the cage of his body, in which he cannot at will sing the benedictions of his
eternal love, knows that he could better trill and practise his delicious song if he could gain
the air, to enjoy his liberty and the society of other philomels, amongst the gay and flowery
hills of the land of the blessed; wherefore he cries: Alas! O Lord of my life, ah! by thy sweet
goodness, deliver poor me from the cage of my body, free me from this little prison, to the
end that released from this bondage I may fly to my dear companions, who expect me there
above in heaven, to make me one of their choirs, and environ me with their joy. There, Lord,
according my voice to theirs, I with them will make up a sweet harmony of delicious airs
and words, singing, praising, and blessing thy mercy. This admirable Saint, as an orator
who would end and conclude all he had said in some short sentence, put this happy ending
to all his wishes and desires, whereof these last words were an abridgment; words to which
he so firmly attached his soul, that in breathing them he breathed his last. My God, Theo-
timus, what a sweet and dear death was this! a happily loving death, a holily mortal love.
245 Ps. cxli. 8.
232

25.6 Page 246

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How We Practise the Love of Benevolence in the Praises Which…
CHAPTER XI.
HOW WE PRACTISE THE LOVE OF BENEVOLENCE IN THE PRAISES WHICH
OUR SAVIOUR AND HIS MOTHER GIVE TO GOD.
We mount then in this holy exercise from step to step, by the creatures which we invite to
praise God, passing from the insensible to the reasonable and intellectual, and from the
Church militant to the triumphant, in which we rise through the angels and the saints, till
above them all we have found the most sacred virgin, who in a matchless air praises and
magnifies the divinity more highly, holily and delightfully than all other creatures together
can ever do.
Being two years ago at Milan, whither the veneration of the recent memory of the great
Archbishop S. Charles had drawn me, with some of our clergy, we heard in different churches
many sorts of music: but in a monastery of women we heard a religious whose voice was so
admirably delightful that she alone created an impression more agreeable, beyond compar-
ison, than all the rest together, which though otherwise excellent, yet seemed to serve only
to bring out and raise the perfection and grace of this unique voice. So, Theotimus, amongst
all the choirs of men and all the choirs of angels, the most sacred virgin's clear voice is heard
above all the rest, giving more praise to God, than do all the other creatures. And indeed
the heavenly King in a particular manner invites her to sing: Show me thy face, says he, my
well-beloved, let thy voice sound in my ears: for thy voice is sweet, and thy face comely.246
But these praises which this mother of honour and fair love, together with all creatures,
gives to the divinity, though excellent and admirable, come so infinitely short of the infinite
merit of God's goodness, that they bear no proportion to it: and therefore, although they
greatly please the sacred benevolence which the loving heart has for its well-beloved, yet do
they not satiate it. Wherefore it goes forward and invites our Saviour to praise and glorify
his eternal Father with all the benedictions which a Son's love can furnish him with. And
then, Theotimus, the spirit comes unto a place of silence, for we can no longer do aught but
wonder and admire. O what a canticle is this of the Son to his Father! O how fair this dear
well-beloved is amongst all the children of men! O how sweet is his voice, as issuing from
the lips upon which the fulness of grace was poured! All the others are perfumed, but he is
perfume itself; the others are embalmed, but he is balm poured out; the Eternal receives
others' praises, as scents of particular flowers, but perceiving the odour of the praises which
our Saviour gives him, doubtless he cries out: Behold the smell of the praises of my Son is as
the smell of a plentiful field, which I have blessed!247 Yes, my dear Theotimus, all the bene-
dictions which the Church militant and triumphant offers to God are angelic and human
benedictions; for, although they are addressed to the Creator, yet they proceed from the
225
226
246 Cant. ii. 14.
247 Gen. xxvii. 27.
233

25.7 Page 247

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How We Practise the Love of Benevolence in the Praises Which…
creature; but those of the Son are divine, for they not only tend to God, as the others, but
they flow from God: the Redeemer being true God, they are not only divine in respect of
their end but also of their origin; divine, because they tend to God; divine, because they issue
from God. To others God gives his inspiration and sufficient grace, for the utterance of
praise; but that of the Redeemer, he, who is God, himself produces, and therefore it is infinite.
He who, on a morning, having heard for some good space of time in the neighbouring
woods the sweet chanting of finches, linnets, goldfinches, and such like little birds, should
in the end hear a master-nightingale, which in perfect melody filled the air and ear with its
admirable voice, doubtless would prefer this one woodland singer before the whole flock
of the others. So, having heard all the praises which so many different sorts of creatures, in
emulation of one another, render unanimously to their Creator, when at length we listen
to the praise our Saviour gives, we find in it a certain infinity of merit, of worth, of sweetness,
which surpasses all the hope and expectation of the heart: and the soul, as if awakened out
of a deep sleep, is then instantly ravished with the extreme sweetness of such melody. Ah!
I hear it: Oh! the voice, the voice of my well-beloved! the king-voice of all voices, a voice,
in comparison with which all other voices are but a dumb and gloomy silence! See how this
dear love springs forward, see how he comes leaping upon the highest mountains, transcend-
ing the hills: his voice is heard above the Seraphim, and all other creatures; he has the eyes
of a roe to penetrate deeper than any other into the beauty of the sacred object which he
desires to praise. He loves the melody of the glory and praise of his Father more than all
others do, and therefore he takes his Father's praises and benedictions in a strain above them
all. Ah! behold him, this divine love of the beloved, how he stands behind the wall of his
humanity, making himself to be seen through the wounds of his body and the opening of
227
his side, as by windows, and as by a lattice through which he looks out on us.248
Yea, truly, Theotimus, divine love being seated upon our Saviour's Heart as upon his
royal throne, beholds by the cleft of his pierced side all the hearts of the sons of men: for
this Heart being the King of hearts keeps his eyes ever fixed upon hearts. But as those that
look through a lattice see others clearly, and are but half-seen themselves, so the divine love
of this Heart, or rather this Heart of divine love, continually sees our hearts clearly and re-
gards them with the eyes of his love, but we do not see him, we only half-see him. For, O
God! if we could see him as he is, we should die of love for him, so long as we are mortal;
as he himself died for us while he was mortal, and as he would yet die, if he were not immor-
tal. O when we hear this divine Heart, as it sings with a voice of infinite sweetness the canticle
of praise to the divinity, what joy, Theotimus, what efforts of our hearts to spring up to
heaven that we may ever hear it! And verily this dear friend of our hearts invites us to this.
Arise, make haste, leave thyself and take thy flight towards me, my dove, my beautiful, unto
248 Cant. ii.
234

25.8 Page 248

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How We Practise the Love of Benevolence in the Praises Which…
this heavenly abode, where all is joy and nought is heard but praises and benedictions. All
is flowers, all is sweetness and perfume; the turtles, the most silent of all birds, yet there take
up their songs. Come, my well-beloved and all-dear; and to see me more clearly, come to the
same windows by which I see thee: come and behold my heart in the clefts of the opening
in my side, which was made when my body, like a house in ruins, was so pitifully broken
down on the tree of the cross: come, show me thy face. Ah! I see it now without thy showing
it, but then I shall see it, and thou shalt show it me, for thou shalt see that I see thee: let thy
voice sound in my ears, for I would join it with mine: thus shall thy voice be sweet and thy
face comely. O what a delight will it be to our hearts, when, our voices being tuned and ac-
corded to our Saviour's, we shall take part in the infinite sweetness of the praises which the
well-beloved Son gives to his eternal Father!
228
235

25.9 Page 249

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Sovereign Praise Which God Gives unto Himself, and How…
CHAPTER XII.
OF THE SOVEREIGN PRAISE WHICH GOD GIVES UNTO HIMSELF, AND HOW
WE EXERCISE BENEVOLENCE IN IT.
All our Saviour's human actions are of an infinite merit and value, by reason of the person
who produces them, who is the same God with the Father and the Holy Ghost, yet they are
not infinite by nature and essence. For as, being in a chamber, we receive not light according
to the greatness of the brightness of the sun which sends it out, but according to the greatness
of the window, by which it is communicated,—so our Saviour's human actions are not in-
finite, though indeed they are of infinite value; for although they are the actions of a divine
person, yet they are not done according to the extent of his infinity, but according to the
finite greatness of his humanity by which he does them. So that, as the human actions of
our sweet Saviour are infinite compared to ours, so are they only finite in comparison with
the essential infinity of the divinity. They are infinite in value, estimation and dignity, as
proceeding from a person who is God; yet are they finite by nature and essence, as being
done by God according to his human nature and substance, which is finite; and therefore
the praises which are given by our Saviour, as he is man, not being in all respects infinite,
cannot fully correspond to the infinite greatness of the divinity, to which they are directed.
Wherefore after the first ravishment of admiration which seizes us, when we meet with
a praise so glorious as is that which our Saviour renders to his Father, we fail not to recognise
that the divinity is yet infinitely more deserving of praise than it can be praised, either by
all creatures, or by the very humanity of the eternal Son.
If a man were praising the sun for its light, the more he lifted himself towards it in
praising it, the more praiseworthy he would find it, because he would still discover more
and more brightness in it. And if, as is very probable, it be the beauty of this light which
provokes larks to sing, it is no marvel that, as they fly more loftily, they sing more clearly,
229
equally raising their voice and their flight, till such time as hardly being able to sing any
more, they begin to fall in voice and body, bringing down by little and little their flight and
their voice. So, Theotimus, while by benevolence we are rising towards the divinity to intone
and hear his praises, we see ever that he is above all praise. And finally, we learn that he
cannot be praised according to his worth save only by himself, who alone can worthily match
his sovereign goodness with sovereign praise. Hereupon we cry out: "Glory be to the Father,
and to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost:" and that every one may know that it is not the glory
of created praises which we wish God by this ejaculation, but the essential and eternal glory
that is in himself, by himself, of himself, and which is himself, we add: "As it was in the be-
ginning, is now, and ever shall be, world without end. Amen." As though we expressed a
wish that God should be glorified for ever with the glory which he had before all creatures,
in his infinite eternity and eternal infinity. For this we add the verse Gloria to every psalm
and canticle, according to the ancient custom of the Eastern Church, which the great S.
236

25.10 Page 250

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Sovereign Praise Which God Gives unto Himself, and How…
Jerome begged Pope S. Damasus to institute here in the Western; to protest, that all the
praises of men and angels are too low to praise worthily the divine goodness, and that, to
be worthily praised, itself must be its own glory, praise and benediction.
O God! what complacency, what a joy to the soul who loves, when she has her desire
satisfied, in seeing her beloved infinitely praise, bless and magnify himself! But from this
complacency there springs a new desire of praise: for the soul would gladly praise this so
worthy a praise given to God by himself, thanking him profoundly for it, and calling again
all things to her assistance, to come and glorify the glory of God with her, to bless his infinite
benedictions, and praise his eternal praises; so that by this return and repetition of praises
upon praises, she engages herself, between complacency and benevolence, in a most happy
labyrinth of love, being wholly lost in this immense sweetness, sovereignly praising the di-
vinity in that it cannot be sufficiently praised but by itself. And though in the beginning,
the amorous soul had conceived a certain desire of being able to praise God sufficiently; yet
230
reflecting upon herself again, she protests that she would not wish to have power to praise
him sufficiently, but remains in a most humble complacency, to perceive that the divine
goodness is so infinitely praiseworthy, that it cannot be sufficiently praised save by its own
infinity alone.
And here the soul, ravished with admiration, sings the song of sacred silence: A hymn
becometh thee, O Lord, in Sion, and a vow shall be paid to thee in Jerusalem.249
For so the seraphim of Isaias, adoring and praising God, veiled their faces and feet,
confessing therein their want of ability to contemplate or serve him properly; for our feet,
by which we go, signify service: but still they fly with two wings in the sweet unrest of com-
placency and benevolence, their love reposing in that delightful unrest.
Man's heart is never so much disquieted as when the motion by which it continually
opens and shuts itself is hindered, never so quiet as when its motions are free; so that the
heart's quiet consists in its motion. Now it is the same with the love of the Seraphim and
seraphical men; for this has its repose in its continual movement of complacency, by which
it draws God into itself, as if shutting itself, and of benevolence, by which it opens itself and
throws itself entirely into God. This love then desires to behold the infinite wonders of God's
goodness, yet it spreads its wings over its face, confessing that it cannot succeed in this: it
would also present some worthy service, but it folds this desire over its feet, confessing that
it has not power to perform it, nor does anything remain save the two wings of complacency
and benevolence, by which it flies and darts towards God.
249 Ps. lxiv. 1.
237

26 Pages 251-260

▲back to top


26.1 Page 251

▲back to top


Book VI. Of the Exercises of Holy Love in Prayer.
BOOK VI.
OF THE
231
EXERCISES OF HOLY LOVE IN PRAYER.
238

26.2 Page 252

▲back to top


Chapter I. A Description of Mystical Theology, Which Is No Other Thing…
CHAPTER I.
A DESCRIPTION OF MYSTICAL THEOLOGY, WHICH IS NO OTHER THING
THAN PRAYER.
We have two principal exercises of our love towards God, the one affective, the other effective,
or, as S. Bernard calls it, active; by that we affect or love God and what he loves, by this we
serve God and do what he ordains; that joins us to God's goodness, this makes us execute
his will: the one fills us with complacency, benevolence, yearnings, desires, aspirations and
spiritual ardours, causing us to practise the sacred infusions and minglings of our spirit with
God's; the other establishes in us the solid resolution, the constancy of heart, and the inviol-
able obedience requisite to effect the ordinances of the divine will, and to suffer, accept,
approve and embrace, all that comes from his good-pleasure; the one makes us pleased in
God, the other makes us please God: by the one we conceive, by the other we bring forth:
by the one we place God upon our heart, as a standard of love, around which all our affections
are ranged, by the other we place him upon our arm, as a sword of love whereby we effect
all the exploits of virtue.
Now the first exercise consists principally in prayer; in which so many different interior
movements take place that to express them all is impossible, not only by reason of their
number, but also for their nature and quality, which being spiritual, they cannot but be very
rarefied, and almost imperceptible to our understanding. The cleverest and best trained
hounds are often at fault; they lose the strain and scent by the variety of sleights which the
stag uses, who makes doubles, puts them on a wrong scent, and practises a thousand arts
232
to escape the cry; and we oftentimes lose the scent and knowledge of our own heart in the
infinite diversity of motions by which it turns itself, in so many ways and with such
promptitude, that one cannot discern its track.
God alone is he, who, by his infinite wisdom, sees, knows and penetrates all the turnings
and windings of our hearts: he understands our thoughts from afar, he finds out our traces,
doubles and turnings; his knowledge therein is admirable, surpassing our capacity and reach.
Certainly if our spirits would turn back upon themselves by reflections, and by reconsider-
ations of their acts, we should enter into labyrinths from which we should find no outgate;
and it would require an attention quite beyond our power, to think what our thoughts are,
to consider our considerations, to observe all our spiritual observations, to discern that we
discern, to remember that we remember,—these acts would be mazes from which we could
not deliver ourselves. This treatise, then, is difficult, especially to one who is not a man of
great prayer.
We take not here the word prayer (oraison) only for the petition (priere) or demand for
some good, poured out by the faithful before God, as S. Basil calls it, but as S. Bonaventure
does, when he says that prayer, generally speaking; comprehends all the acts of contemplation;
or as S. Gregory Nazianzen, who teaches that prayer is a conference or conversation of the
239

26.3 Page 253

▲back to top


Chapter I. A Description of Mystical Theology, Which Is No Other Thing…
soul with God; or again as S. Chrysostom, when he says that prayer is a discoursing with
the divine Majesty; or finally as S. Augustine and S. Damascene, who term prayer an ascent
or raising of the soul to God. And if prayer be a colloquy, a discourse or a conversation of
the soul with God, by it then we speak to God, and he again speaks to us; we aspire to him
and breathe in him, and he reciprocally inspires us and breathes upon us.
But of what do we discourse in prayer? What is the subject of our conference? Theotimus,
in it we speak of God only: for of what can love discourse and talk but of the well-beloved?
And therefore prayer, and mystical theology, are one same thing. It is called theology, because,
as speculative theology has God for its object, so this also treats only of God, yet with three
differences: for, 1. The former treats of God as God, but the latter treats of him as sovereignly
233
amiable; that is, the former regards the Divinity of the supreme goodness, and the latter the
supreme goodness of the Divinity. 2. The speculative treats of God with men and amongst
men, the mystical speaks of God with God, and in God himself. 3. The speculative tends to
the knowledge of God, and the mystical to the love of God; that, therefore, makes its scholars
wise, and learned, and theologians, but this makes its scholars fervent, and affectionate,
lovers of God, a Philotheus or a Theophilus.
Now it is called mystical, because its conversation is altogether secret, and there is
nothing said in it between God and the soul save only from heart to heart, by a communic-
ation incommunicable to all but those who make it. Lovers' language is so peculiar to
themselves that none but themselves understand it. I sleep, said the holy spouse, and my
heart watcheth. Ah! hark! The voice of my beloved knocking.250 Who would have guessed
that this spouse being asleep could yet talk with her beloved? But where love reigns, the
sound of exterior words is not necessary, nor the help of sense to entertain and to hear one
another. In fine, prayer and mystical theology is nothing else but a conversation in which
the soul amorously entertains herself with God concerning his most amiable goodness, to
unite and join herself thereto.
Prayer is a manna, for the infinity of delicious tastes and precious sweetnesses which it
gives to such as use it, but it is hidden,251 because it falls before the light of any science, in
the mental solitude where the soul alone treats with her God alone. Who is she, might one
say of her, that goeth up by the desert, as a pillar of smoke of aromatical spices, of myrrh, and
frankincense, and of all the powders of the perfumer?252 And it was the desire of secrecy that
250 Cant. v. 2.
251 Apoc. ii. 17.
252 Cant. iii. 6.
240

26.4 Page 254

▲back to top


Chapter I. A Description of Mystical Theology, Which Is No Other Thing…
moved her to make this petition to her love: Come, my beloved, let us go forth into the field,
let us abide in the villages.253 For this reason the heavenly spouse is styled a turtle, a bird
which is delighted in shady and solitary places, where she makes no other use of her song
but for her only mate, either in life wooing him or after his death plaining him. For this
234
reason, in the Canticles, the divine lover and the heavenly spouse describe their loves by a
continual conversing together; and if their friends sometimes speak during their conference,
it is but casually, and without interrupting their colloquy. Hence the Blessed Mother (S.)
Teresa of Jesus found at first more profit in the mysteries where our Saviour was most alone;
as in the Garden of Olives, and where he was awaiting the Samaritan woman, for she fancied
that he being alone would more readily admit her into his company.
Love desires secrecy; yea, though lovers may have nothing secret to say, yet they love
to say it secretly: and this is partly, if I am not mistaken, because they would speak only for
themselves, whereas when they speak out loud it seems no longer to be for themselves alone;
partly because they do not say common things in a common manner, but with touches
which are particular, and which manifest the special affection with which they speak. The
language of love is common, as to the words, but in manner and pronunciation it is so special
that none but lovers understand it. The name of a friend uttered in public is no great thing,
but spoken apart, secretly in the ear, it imports wonders, and the more secretly it is spoken
the more delightful is its signification. O God! what a difference there is between the language
of the ancient lovers of the Divinity,—Ignatius, Cyprian, Chrysostom, Augustine, Hilary,
Ephrem, Gregory, Bernard,—and that of less affectionate theologians! We use their very
words, but with them the words were full of fire and of sweets of amorous perfumes; with
us they are cold and have no scent at all.
Love speaks not only by the tongue, but by the eyes, by sighs, and play of features; yea,
silence and dumbness are words for it. My heart hath said to thee, my face hath sought thee:
thy face, O Lord, will I still seek.254 My eyes have failed for thy word, saying: When wilt thou
comfort me?255 Hear my prayer, O Lord, and my supplication: give ear to my tears.256 Let
not the apple of thy eye cease,257 said the desolate heart of the inhabitants of Jerusalem to
their own city. Do you mark, Theotimus, how the silence of afflicted lovers speaks by the
235
apple of their eye, and by tears? Truly the chief exercise in mystical theology is to speak to
God and to hear God speak in the bottom of the heart; and because this discourse passes in
253 Cant. vii. 11.
254 Ps. xxvi. 8.
255 Ps. cxviii. 82.
256 Ps. xxxviii. 13.
257 Jer. Lam. ii. 18.
241

26.5 Page 255

▲back to top


Chapter I. A Description of Mystical Theology, Which Is No Other Thing…
most secret aspirations and inspirations, we term it a silent conversing. Eyes speak to eyes,
and heart to heart, and none understand what passes save the sacred lovers who speak.
242

26.6 Page 256

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of Meditation the First Degree of Prayer or Mystical Theol…
CHAPTER II.
OF MEDITATION—THE FIRST DEGREE OF PRAYER OR MYSTICAL THEOLOGY.
This word is much used in the holy Scriptures, and means simply an attentive and reiterated
thought, proper to produce good or evil affections. In the first Psalm, the man is said to be
blessed: Whose will is in the way of the Lord, and who in his law shall meditate day and night.
But in the second Psalm: Why did the Gentiles rage, and the people meditate vain things?
Meditation therefore is made as well for evil as for good. Yet whereas in the holy Scripture,
the word meditation is ordinarily applied to the attention which we have to divine things
to stir us up to love them, it has, as one might say, been canonized by the common consent
of theologians, like the name, angel, and, zeal; as on the contrary the words, craft (dol), and,
demons have been stigmatized: so that now when we say, meditation, we mean that which
is holy, and that by which we begin mystical theology.
Every meditation is a thought, but every thought is not meditation. For we have thoughts
to which our mind is carried without any design or aim, by way of simple musing, as we see
common flies flying from from one flower to another, without drawing anything from them.
And be this kind of thought as attentive as it may, it can never bear the name of meditation,
but should simply be called thought. Sometimes we consider a thing attentively to learn its
causes, its effects, its qualities, and this thought is named study; in which the mind acts as
236
locusts do, which promiscuously fly upon flowers and leaves, to eat them and nourish
themselves therewith. But when we think of divine things, not to learn, but to make ourselves
love them, this is called meditating, and this exercise, Meditation; in which our spirit, not
as a fly for simple amusement, nor as a locust to eat and be filled, but as a sacred bee, moves
over the flowers of holy mysteries, to extract from them the honey of divine love.
Thus many persons are always dreaming, and engaged in unprofitable thoughts, almost
without knowing what they are thinking about; and, which is noteworthy, they are only at-
tentive to these thoughts inadvertently, and would wish not to have them; witness him who
said: My thoughts are dissipated, tormenting my heart:258 many also study, and by a most
laborious occupation fill themselves with vanity, not being able to resist curiosity: but there
are few who meditate to inflame their heart with holy heavenly love. In fine, thoughts and
study may be upon any subject, but meditation, in our present sense, has reference only to
those objects whose consideration tends to make us good and devout. So that meditation
is no other thing than an attentive thought, voluntarily reiterated or entertained in the mind,
to excite the will to holy and salutary affections and resolutions.
The holy Word explains in a truly admirable manner, and by an excellent similitude,
in what holy meditation consists. Ezechias wishing to express in his canticle the attentive
consideration which he makes of his evil: I will cry, says he, like a young swallow, I will
258 Job xvii. 11.
243

26.7 Page 257

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of Meditation the First Degree of Prayer or Mystical Theol…
meditate like a dove.259 For, my dear Theotimus, if ever you took notice of it, the young
swallows open their beaks very wide in their chirping, and, on the contrary, doves, above
all birds, make their murmuring with their beaks close shut up, keeping their voices in their
throat and breast, nothing passing outward but a certain resonant, echo-like sound; and
this little murmuring equally serves them to express their griefs and to declare their loves.
Ezechias, then, to show that in his calamity he made many vocal prayers, says: I will cry like
237
a young swallow, opening my mouth, to utter before God many lamentable cries; and to
testify also that he made use of holy mental prayer, he adds: I will meditate like a dove,
turning and doubling my thoughts within my heart by an attentive consideration, to excite
myself to bless and praise the sovereign mercy of my God, who has brought me back from
death's gate, taking compassion on my misery. So Isaias says: We shall roar all of us like
bears, and shall lament, meditating like doves,260 where the roaring of bears refers to the
exclamations which we utter in vocal prayer, and the mourning of doves to holy meditation.
But to make it appear that doves use their cooing on occasions not only of grief but also of
love and joy, the sacred lover, describing the natural spring-time in order to express the
beauties of the spiritual springtime, says: The voice of the turtle is heard in our land,261 because
in the spring the turtle begins to glow with love, which she testifies by her more frequent
song; and presently after: My dove, shew me thy face, let thy voice sound in my ears: for thy
voice is sweet, and thy face comely.262 He means, Theotimus, that the devout soul is very
agreeable unto him when she presents herself before him, and meditates to inflame herself
with holy spiritual love. So he who had said, I will meditate like a dove: putting his conception
into other words: I will think over again for thee, said he, all my years in the bitterness of my
soul.263 For to meditate, and to think over again in order to move the affections, is the same
thing. Hence Moses, exhorting the people to recall to mind the benefits received of God,
adds this reason: That thou shouldst keep the commandments of the Lord thy God, and walk
in his ways, and fear him.264 And Our Lord himself gave this command to Josue: Let not
the book of this law depart from thy mouth: but thou shalt meditate on it day and night, that
thou mayest observe and do all things that are written in it.265 What in one of the passages
is expressed by the word, meditate, is declared in the other by, think over again, and to show
that reiterated thought and meditation tend to move us to affections, resolutions and actions,
238
259 Is. xxxviii. 14.
260 Is. lix. 11.
261 Cant. ii. 12.
262 Cant. ii. 14.
263 Is. xxxviii. 15.
264 Deut. viii. 6.
265 Josue i. 8.
244

26.8 Page 258

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of Meditation the First Degree of Prayer or Mystical Theol…
it is said, as well in the one as the other passage, that we must think over again, and meditate
in, the law, to observe and practise it. In this sense the apostle exhorts us thus: Think diligently
upon him that endured such opposition from sinners against himself; that you be not wearied,
fainting in your minds.266 When he says think diligently, it is as though he said meditate.
But why would he have us to meditate the holy passion? Not that we should become learned,
but that we should become patient and constant in the way of heaven. O how have I loved
thy law, O Lord! says David: It is my meditation all the day.267 He meditates on the law be-
cause he loves it, and he loves it because he meditates on it.
Meditation is the mystical rumination268 required for not being unclean, to which one
of the devout shepherdesses who followed the sacred Sulamitess invites us: for she assures
us that holy writ is as a precious wine, worthy not only to be drunk, by pastors and doctors,
but also to be diligently relished, and, so to speak, ruminated and turned over and over. Thy
throat, says she (in which the holy words are formed) is like the best wine, worthy for my
beloved to drink, and for his lips and his teeth to ruminate.269 So the blessed Isaac, as a chaste
and pure lamb, went forth into the field, the day being now well spent, to make his retirement,
his conference, and his exercise of spirit with God, that is, to pray and to meditate.270
The bee flies from flower to flower in the spring-time, not at hazard but of set purpose,
not only to be recreated in the verdant diapering of the meadows, but to gather honey; which
having found, she sucks it up, and loads herself with it; then carrying it to her hive, she treats
it skilfully, separating from it the wax, of which she makes comb, to store the honey for the
ensuing winter. Such is the devout soul in meditation. She passes from mystery to mystery,
not at random, or only to solace herself in viewing the admirable beauty of those divine
objects, but deliberately and of set purpose, to find out motives of love or of some heavenly
239
affection; and having found them she draws them to her, she relishes them, she loads herself
with them, and having brought them back and put them within her heart, she lays up what
she sees most useful for her advancement, by finally making resolutions suitable for the
time of temptation. Thus in the Canticle of Canticles the heavenly spouse, as a mystical bee,
settles, now on the eyes, now on the lips, on the cheeks, on the hair of her beloved, to draw
thence the sweetness of a thousand passions of love, noting in particular whatever she finds
best for this. So that, inflamed with holy love, she speaks with him, she questions him, she
listens to him, sighs, aspires, admires him, as he on his part fills her with delight, inspiring
her, touching and opening her heart, and pouring into it brightness, lights and sweetnesses
266 Heb. xii. 3.
267 Ps. cxviii. 97.
268 Lev. xi. 3.
269 Cant. vii. 9.
270 Gen. xxiv. 63.
245

26.9 Page 259

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of Meditation the First Degree of Prayer or Mystical Theol…
without end, but in so secret a manner that one may rightly say of this holy conversation of
the soul with God, what the holy text says of God's with Moses: that Moses being alone upon
the top of the mountain spoke to God, and God answered him.271
271 Ex. xix. 19.
246

26.10 Page 260

▲back to top


Chapter III. A Description of Contemplation, and of the First Difference…
CHAPTER III.
A DESCRIPTION OF CONTEMPLATION, AND OF THE FIRST DIFFERENCE THAT
THERE IS BETWEEN IT AND MEDITATION.
Theotimus, contemplation is no other thing than a loving, simple and permanent attention
of the spirit to divine things; which you may easily understand by comparing meditation
with it.
Little bees are called nymphs or schadons until they make honey, and then they are
called bees: so prayer is named Meditation until it has produced the honey of devotion, and
then it is converted into Contemplation. For as the bees fly through their meadows, settling
here and there and gathering honey, which having heaped together, they work in it for the
240
pleasure they take in its sweetness, so we meditate to gather the love of God, but having
gathered it we contemplate God, and are attentive to his goodness, by reason of the sweetness
which love makes us find in it. The desire we have to obtain divine love makes us meditate,
but love obtained makes us contemplate; for by love we find so agreeable a sweetness in the
thing beloved, that we can never satiate our spirits in seeing and considering it.
Behold, Theotimus, how the queen of Saba,—regarding the proofs of Solomon's wisdom
in his answers, in the beauty of his house, in the magnificence of his table, in his servants'
lodgings, in the order that his courtiers kept while executing their charges, in their apparel
and behaviour, in the multitude of holocausts which were offered in the Temple,—was taken
with an ardent love, which changed her meditation into contemplation, in which, being
rapt out of herself, she uttered divers words of extreme satisfaction. The sight of so many
wonders begot in her heart an exceeding love, and that love enkindled a new desire, to see
still more and enjoy the presence of him whose they were; whence she cried: Blessed are thy
servants who stand before thee always, and hear thy wisdom.272 In like manner we sometimes
begin to eat to get an appetite, but our appetite being excited, we continue eating to content
it. And in the beginning we consider the goodness of God to excite our will to love him, but
love being formed in our hearts, we consider the same goodness to content our love, which
cannot be satiated in seeing continually what it loves. In conclusion, Meditation is the
mother, and Contemplation the daughter of love, and for this reason I called Contemplation
a loving attention, for children are named after their fathers, and not fathers after their
children.
It is true, Theotimus, that as Joseph of old was the crown and glory of his father, greatly
increased his honours and contentment, and made him young in his old age, so contempla-
tion crowns its father which is love, perfects him, and gives him the crown of excellence;
for love having excited in us contemplative attention, that attention breeds reciprocally a
241
greater and more fervent love, which at last is crowned with perfection when it enjoys what
272 3 Kings x. 8.
247

27 Pages 261-270

▲back to top


27.1 Page 261

▲back to top


Chapter III. A Description of Contemplation, and of the First Difference…
it loves. Love makes us take pleasure in the sight of our well-beloved, and the sight of our
well-beloved makes us take pleasure in his divine love, so that by this mutual movement,
from love to sight, and from sight to love, as love renders the beauty of the thing beloved
more beautiful, so the sight of it makes love more loving and delightful. Love by an imper-
ceptible power makes the beauty which we love appear more fair, and sight likewise refines
love, to make it find beauty more amiable. Love urges the eyes continually to behold the
beloved beauty more attentively, and sight forces the heart to love it ever more ardently.
248

27.2 Page 262

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Love in This Life Takes Its Origin but Not Its Excellence…
CHAPTER IV.
THAT LOVE IN THIS LIFE TAKES ITS ORIGIN BUT NOT ITS EXCELLENCE FROM
THE KNOWLEDGE OF GOD.
But which has the more force, I pray you; love, to make us look upon the well-beloved, or
the sight to make us love him? Knowledge, Theotimus, is required for the production of
love, for we can never love what we do not know; and according as the attentive knowledge
of good is augmented, love is also augmented, provided there is nothing to hinder its activity.
Yet it happens often, that knowledge having produced holy love, love does not stay within
the limits of the knowledge which is in the understanding, but goes forward and passes very
far beyond it; so that in this life we are able to have more love than knowledge of God:
whence the great S. Thomas assures us, that oftentimes the most simple women abound in
devotion, and are ordinarily more capable of heavenly love than clever and learned men.
The famous Abbot of S. Andrew's at Vercelli, master of S. Antony of Padua, in his
commentaries upon S. Denis, often repeats that love penetrates where exterior knowledge
242
cannot reach, and says that many bishops of old, though not very learned, have penetrated
the mystery of the Trinity; admiring in this point his scholar S. Antony of Padua, who,
without earthly knowledge, had so profound a grasp of mystical theology, that, like another
S. John Baptist, one might have called him a burning and a shining light. The Blessed
Brother Giles, one of the first companions of S. Francis, said one day to S. Bonaventure: "O
how happy you learned men are, for you understand many things whereby you praise God,
but what can we idiots do?" And S. Bonaventure replied: "The grace to be able to love God
is sufficient." "Nay, but Father," replied Brother Giles, "can an ignorant man love God as
well as a learned?" "Yes," said S. Bonaventure, "and further, a poor simple woman may love
God as much as a doctor of divinity." Then Brother Giles cried out in fervour: "O poor
simple woman, love thy Saviour, and thou shall be as great as Brother Bonaventure." And
upon this he remained for the space of three hours in a rapture.
The will only perceives good by means of the understanding, but having once perceived
it she has no more need of the understanding to practise love, for the force of pleasure which
she feels, or expects to feel, from union with her object, draws her powerfully to the love
and to the desire of enjoying it; so that the knowledge of good gives birth, but not measure,
to love; as we see the knowledge of an injury starts anger, which, if not suppressed, almost
always becomes greater than the subject deserves. The passions do not follow the knowledge
which moves them, but very often, leaving this quite in the rear, they make towards their
object without any measure or limit.
Now this happens still more strongly in holy love, inasmuch as our will is not applied
to it by a natural knowledge, but by the light of faith, which assuring us of the infinite
goodness that is in God, gives us sufficient cause to love him with all our force. We dig the
earth to find gold and silver, employing a present labour for a good which as yet is only
249

27.3 Page 263

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Love in This Life Takes Its Origin but Not Its Excellence…
hoped for; so that an uncertain knowledge sets us upon a present and certain labour, and
as we more discover the vein of the mineral, we search and search more earnestly. Even a
cold scent serves to move the hound to the game, so, dear Theotimus, a knowledge obscure
and involved in clouds, like that of faith, most powerfully stirs our affection to love the
243
goodness which it makes us perceive. O how true it is, according to S. Augustine's exclama-
tion, that the unlearned bear away heaven, while many of the wise are swallowed up in hell!
In your opinion, Theotimus, which of the two would love the light more—the one born
blind, who might know all the discourses that philosophers make of it and the praises they
give it, or the ploughman, who by a clear sight feels and realizes the agreeable splendour of
the fair rising sun? The first has more knowledge of it, but the second more fruition, and
that fruition produces a love far more lively and affective than a simple knowledge by reasons;
for the experience of good makes it infinitely more agreeable than all the science which can
be had of it. We begin our love by the knowledge which faith gives us of God's goodness,
which afterwards we relish and taste by love; love whets our taste and our taste heightens
our love, so that, as we see the waves, under the stress of winds, roll against one another and
swell up, as if contact forced each to strive to outdo the rest, so the taste of good strengthens
our love of it, and increases our relish for it, according to that oracle of the divine Wisdom:
They that eat me, shall yet hunger: and they that drink me shall yet thirst.273 Which of the
two I pray you loved God more, the theologian Occam, held by some to be the most subtle
of mortals, or S. Catharine of Genoa, an unlearned woman? He knew God better by science,
she by experience; and her experience conducted her deep into seraphic love, while he with
his knowledge remained far remote from this excellent perfection.
We extremely love the sciences, even before we fully know them, says S. Thomas, from
such confused and general knowledge as we may have of them: in the same way, it is the
knowledge of God's goodness which makes our will begin to love, but as soon as it is set
going, love increases of itself, by the pleasure which the will takes in being united to this
sovereign good. Before children have tasted honey and sugar it is difficult to make them
receive them into their mouth; but after they have tasted their sweetness, they love them
244
much more than we wish, and eagerly seek to get them always.
We must admit, however, that the will, attracted by the delectation which it takes in its
object, is much more forcibly drawn to unite itself therewith, when the understanding on
its side excellently proposes the goodness thereof; for it is then at once both drawn and
pushed; pushed by knowledge, drawn by delight: so that knowledge is not of itself contrary,
but very useful to devotion, and meeting together they marvellously assist one another;
though it often happens through our misery that knowledge hinders the birth of devotion,
because knowledge puffeth up and makes us proud, and pride, which is contrary to all virtue,
273 Ecclus. xxiv. 29.
250

27.4 Page 264

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Love in This Life Takes Its Origin but Not Its Excellence…
is the total ruin of devotion. Without doubt, the eminent science of a Cyprian, an Augustine,
a Hilary, a Chrysostom, a Basil, a Gregory, a Bonaventure, a Thomas,—has not only much
recommended but greatly improved their devotion, as again their devotion has not only
raised but eminently perfected their science.
251

27.5 Page 265

▲back to top


Chapter V. The Second Difference between Meditation and Contemplation.
CHAPTER V.
THE SECOND DIFFERENCE BETWEEN MEDITATION AND CONTEMPLATION.
Meditation considers in detail, and as it were piece by piece, the objects calculated to move
us, but contemplation takes a very simple and collected view of the object which it loves,
and the consideration thus brought to a point causes a more lively and strong movement.
One may behold the beauty of a rich crown two ways; either by looking upon all its orna-
ments, and all the precious stones of which it is composed, one after the other; or again,
having considered all the particular parts, by beholding all the work of it together in one
single and simple view. The first kind resembles meditation, in which, for example, we
consider the effects of God's mercy to excite us to his love; but the second is like to contem-
plation, in which we consider with one single steady regard of our mind, all the variety of
the same effects as a single beauty, composed of all these pieces, making up a single splendid
brilliant. In meditating, we as it were count the divine perfections which we find in a mystery,
but in contemplating we sum up their total. The companions of the sacred spouse had asked
her what manner of one was her well-beloved, and she makes answer in an admirable de-
scription of all the parts of his perfect beauty: My beloved is white and ruddy, his head is as
the finest gold, his locks as branches of palm trees, black as a raven, his eyes as doves, his cheeks
are as beds of aromatical spices, set by the perfumers, his lips are as lilies dropping choice
myrrh, his hands are turned and as of gold full of hyacinths, his legs as pillars of marble. Thus
she goes on, meditating this sovereign beauty in detail, till at length she concludes by way
of contemplation, putting all the beauties into one: His throat is most sweet, and he is all
lovely: such is my beloved, and he is my friend.274
Meditation reminds of one who smells a pink, a rose, rosemary, thyme, jessamine, or-
ange-flower, separately one after the other; but contemplation is like to one smelling the
perfumed water distilled from all those flowers: for the latter in one smell receives all the
scents together, which the other had smelt divided and separated; and there is no doubt that
this one scent alone, arising from the mingling together of all these scents, is more sweet
and precious by itself than the scents of which it is composed, smelt separately one after
another. Hence it is that the heavenly lover so prizes the being seen by his well-beloved with
one of her eyes, and that her hair is so well plaited that it seems to be but one hair; for what
is this beholding the spouse with one eye only, except the beholding him with a single attent-
ive view without multiplying looks? And what is it to have her hair thus plaited together,
except the not scattering her thoughts in the multiplicity of considerations. Oh! how happy
are they who, having run over the multitude of motives which they have to love God, reducing
all their looks to one only look, and all their thoughts to one conclusion, stay their mind in
the unity of contemplation; after the example of S. Augustine or S. Bruno, pronouncing
245
246
274 Cant. v.
252

27.6 Page 266

▲back to top


Chapter V. The Second Difference between Meditation and Contemplation.
secretly in their soul in a permanent admiration: "O Goodness! Goodness! Goodness, ever
old and ever new!" or after the example of the great S. Francis, who, kneeling in prayer
passed the whole night in these words: "O God, thou art my God and my All!" repeating the
same continually, as the Blessed Brother Bernard of Quintaval relates who had heard it with
his own ears.
Look at S. Bernard, Theotimus: he had meditated all the passion point by point; then
of all the principal points put together he made a nosegay of loving grief, and putting it
upon his breast to change his meditation into contemplation, he cried out: A bundle of myrrh
is my beloved to me.275
But again look with still greater devotion at the Creator of the world, how in the creation
he first meditated the goodness of his works severally, one by one, as he saw them produced.
He saw, says the Scripture, that the light was good, that the heavens and the earth were good,
and so the herbs and plants, the sun, moon and stars, the living beasts, and in fine all the
rest of creatures as he created them one after another: till at length, all the universe being
accomplished, the divine meditation is changed as it were into contemplation: for viewing
all the goodness that was in his works with one only look—He saw, says Moses, all the things
that he had made, and they were very good.276 The different parts considered severally by
manner of meditation were good, but beheld in one only regard all together in form of
contemplation, they were found very good: as many little brooks running together make a
river, which carries greater freights than the multitude of the same brooks separately could
do.
After we have excited a great many different pious affections by the multitude of con-
siderations of which meditation is composed, we in the end gather together the virtue of all
these affections, from which, by the pouring together and mixture of their forces, springs a
certain quintessence of affection, and of affection more active and powerful than all the af-
247
fections whence it proceeds, because, though it be but one, yet it contains the virtue and
property of all the others, and is called contemplative affection.
So it is an opinion amongst divines that the angels who are higher in glory have a
knowledge of God and creatures much more simple than the inferior have, and that the
species or ideas by which they see are more universal, so that what the less perfect angels
see by various species and various regards, the more perfect see by fewer species and fewer
acts of regard. And the great S. Augustine, followed by S. Thomas, says that in heaven we
shall not have these vicissitudes, varieties, changes and returns of thoughts and cogitations,
which come and go, from object to object and from one thing to another, but with one sole
thought we shall be able to attend to the diversity of many things, and receive the knowledge
275 Cant. i. 12.
276 Gen. i. 31.
253

27.7 Page 267

▲back to top


Chapter V. The Second Difference between Meditation and Contemplation.
of them. The further water runs from its source, the more does it divide itself, and waste its
waters, unless it is kept in with a great care; and perfections separate and divide themselves
according as they are more remote from God their source; but approaching near him they
are united, until they are lost in the abyss of that sole sovereign perfection, which is the ne-
cessary unity and the better part, which Magdalen chose and which shall not be taken away
from her.
254

27.8 Page 268

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That Contemplation Is Made Without Labour, Which Is the Third…
CHAPTER VI.
THAT CONTEMPLATION IS MADE WITHOUT LABOUR, WHICH IS THE THIRD
DIFFERENCE BETWEEN IT AND MEDITATION.
Now the simple view of contemplation is performed in one of these three ways. Sometimes
we regard only some one of God's perfections, as for example his infinite goodness, not
thinking of his other attributes or virtues; like a bridegroom, who simply stays his eye upon
the beautiful complexion of his bride, and by this means truly sees all her countenance,
forasmuch as her colour is spread over almost all the parts of it, and who yet at the same
time would not be attending to the features, expression, and other points of beauty: for, in 248
like manner, sometimes the mind, considering the sovereign goodness of the divinity, al-
though withal it sees in it justice, wisdom, power, yet is only attentive to its goodness, to
which the simple view of its contemplation is addressed. Sometimes also we attentively behold
in God several of his infinite perfections, yet with a simple view and without distinction, as
he who with one glance, passing his eyes from the head to the feet of his richly dressed
spouse, would attentively have seen all in general, and nothing in particular, not well dis-
cerning what neck-jewels, or gown, she wore, nor what countenance she bore, nor what
expression she had, nor what her eyes were saying, but only that all was fair and agreeable:
for so in contemplation we often cast one single regard of simple contemplation over several
divine greatnesses and perfections together, and we could not describe anything in particular,
but only say that all is perfectly good and lovely. And finally we at other times consider
neither many nor only one of the divine perfections, but only some divine action or work,
to which we are attentive; as for example to the act of mercy by which God pardons sins, or
the act of creation, or the resurrection of Lazarus, or the conversion of S. Paul: as a bride-
groom who might not regard the eyes, but only the sweetness of the looks which his spouse
casts upon him, nor take notice of her mouth, but only of the sweetness of the words uttered
by it. And here, Theotimus, the soul makes a certain outburst of love, not only upon the
actions she considers, but upon him from whom they proceed: Thou art good; and in thy
goodness teach me thy justifications.277 His throat (that is, the word which comes from it)
is most sweet, and he is all lovely.278 Ah! How sweet are thy words to my palate, more than
honey to my mouth;279 or with S. Thomas: My Lord and my God; and with S. Magdalen:
"Rabboni, Ah! my master!"
But take which of these three ways you will, contemplation has still this excellency that
it is made with delight, for it supposes that we have found God and his holy love, that we 249
enjoy it and delight in it, saying: I found him whom my soul loveth: I held him: and I will not
277 Ps. cxviii. 68.
278 Cant. v. 16.
279 Ps. cxviii. 103.
255

27.9 Page 269

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That Contemplation Is Made Without Labour, Which Is the Third…
let him go.280 In which it differs from meditation, which almost always is performed with
difficulty, labour and reasoning; our mind passing in it from consideration to consideration,
searching in many places either the well-beloved of her love, or the love of her well-beloved.
Jacob labours in meditation to obtain Rachel, but in contemplation he rejoices with her,
forgetting all his labour. The divine lover like a shepherd, and indeed he is one, prepared a
sumptuous banquet according to the country fashion for his sacred spouse, which he so
described that mystically it represented all the mysteries of man's redemption. I am come
into my garden, said he, O my sister, my spouse, I have gathered my myrrh, with aromatical
spices; I have eaten the honey-comb with my honey, I have drunk my wine with my milk; eat,
O friends, and drink, and be inebriated, my dearly beloved!281 Theotimus, Ah! when was it,
I pray you, that our Saviour came into his garden, if not when he came into his mother's
purest, humblest and sweetest womb, replenished with all the flourishing plants of holy
virtues? And what is meant by our Saviour's gathering his myrrh with his perfumes, except
that he joined suffering to suffering until death, even the death of the cross, heaping by that
means merit upon merit and treasures upon treasures, to enrich his spiritual children? And
how did he eat his honey-comb with his honey, but when he lived a new life, reuniting his
soul, more sweet than honey, to his pierced and wounded body, with more holes than a
honeycomb? And when ascending into heaven he took possession of all the surroundings
and dependencies of his divine glory, what other thing did he if not mix the exhilarating
wine of the essential glory of his soul, with the delightful milk of the perfect felicity of his
body, in a more excellent manner than hitherto he had done?
Now in all these divine mysteries, which contain all others, there is food provided for
dear friends to eat and drink well, and for dearest friends to be inebriated. Some eat and
250
drink, but they eat more than they drink and so are not inebriated: the others eat and drink,
but drink more than they eat, and those are they who are inebriated. Now to eat is to med-
itate, for in meditating a man doth chew, turning his spiritual meat hither and thither
between the teeth of consideration, to bruise, break and digest it, which is not done without
some labour. To drink is to contemplate, which we do without labour or difficulty, yea with
pleasure and tranquillity. But to be inebriated is to contemplate so frequently and so ardently
as to be quite out of self to be wholly in God. O holy and sacred inebriation, which, contrarily
to corporal inebriation, does not alienate us from the spiritual sense, but from the corporal
senses; does not dull or besot us, but angelicizes and in a sort deifies us; putting us out of
ourselves, not to abase us and rank us with beasts, as terrestrial drunkenness does, but to
raise us above ourselves and range us with angels, so that we may live more in God than in
280 Cant. iii. 4.
281 Cant. v. 1.
256

27.10 Page 270

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That Contemplation Is Made Without Labour, Which Is the Third…
ourselves, being attentive to and occupied in seeing his beauty and being united to his
goodness by love!
Now whereas to attain unto contemplation we stand ordinarily in need of hearing the
word of God, of having spiritual discourse and conference with others, like the ancient an-
chorites, of reading, praying, meditating, singing canticles, conceiving good thoughts,—for
this reason, holy contemplation being the end and aim of all these exercises, they are all re-
duced to it, and those who practise them are called contemplatives, as also the occupation
itself is called a contemplative life. This is on account of the action of our understanding,
by which we regard the truth of the divine beauty and goodness with an amorous attention,
that is, with a love which makes us attentive, or, with an attention which proceeds from
love, and augments the love which we have for the infinite sweetness of our Lord.
257

28 Pages 271-280

▲back to top


28.1 Page 271

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Loving Recollection of the Soul in Contemplation.
CHAPTER VII.
OF THE LOVING RECOLLECTION OF THE SOUL IN CONTEMPLATION.
I speak not here, Theotimus, of the recollection by which such as are about to pray, place
themselves in God's presence, entering into themselves, and as one would say bringing their
251
soul into their hearts, there to speak with God; for this recollection is made by love's com-
mand, which, provoking us to prayer, moves us to take this means of doing it well, so that
we ourselves make this withdrawing of our spirit. But the recollection of which I mean to
speak is not made by love's command but by love itself, that is, we do not make it by free
choice, for it is not in our power to have it when we please, and does not depend on our
care, but God at his pleasure works it in us by his most holy grace. The Blessed Mother (S.)
Teresa of Jesus says: "He who has written that the prayer of recollection is made as when a
hedgehog or tortoise draws itself within itself, said well, saying that these beasts draw
themselves in when they please, whereas recollection is not in our will, but comes to us only
when it pleases God to do us this grace."
Now it comes thus. Nothing is so natural to good as to draw and unite unto itself such
things as are sensible of it; as our souls do, which continually draw towards them and give
themselves to their treasure, that is, what they love. It happens then sometimes that our
Lord imperceptibly infuses into the depths of our hearts a certain agreeable sweetness, which
testifies his presence, and then the powers, yea the very exterior senses of the soul, by a
certain secret contentment, turn in towards that most interior part where is the most amiable
and dearest spouse. For as a new swarm of bees when it would take flight and change
country, is recalled by a sound softly made on metal basins, by the smell of honied wine, or
by the scent of some odoriferous herbs, being stayed by the attraction of these agreeable
things, and entering into the hive prepared for it:—so our Saviour,—pronouncing some
secret word of his love, or pouring out the odour of the wine of his dilection, more delicious
than honey, or letting stream the perfumes of his garments, that is, feelings of his heavenly
consolations in our hearts, and thereby making them perceive his most welcome pres-
ence,—draws unto him all the faculties of our soul, which gather about him and stay them-
252
selves in him as in their most desired object. And as he who should cast a piece of loadstone
amongst a number of needles would instantly see them turn all their points towards their
well-beloved adamant, and join themselves to it, so when our Saviour makes his most deli-
cious presence to be felt in the midst of our hearts, all our faculties turn their points in that
direction, to be united to this incomparable sweetness.
O God! says then the soul in imitation of S. Augustine, whither was I wandering to seek
thee! O most infinite beauty! I sought thee without, and thou wast in the midst of my heart.
All Magdalen's affections, and all her thoughts, were scattered about the sepulchre of her
Saviour, whom she went seeking hither and thither, and though she had found him, and he
spoke to her, yet leaves she them dispersed, because she does not perceive his presence; but
258

28.2 Page 272

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Loving Recollection of the Soul in Contemplation.
as soon as he had called her by her name, see how she gathers herself together and entirely
attaches herself to his feet: one only word puts her into recollection.
Propose to yourself, Theotimus, the most holy Virgin, our Lady, when she had conceived
the Son of God, her only love. The soul of that well-beloved mother did wholly collect itself
about that well-beloved child, and because this heavenly dear one was harboured in her
sacred womb, all the faculties of her soul gathered themselves within her, as holy bees into
their hive, wherein their honey is; and by how much the divine greatness was, so to speak,
straitened and contracted within her virginal womb, by so much her soul did more increase
and magnify the praises of that infinite loving-kindness, and her spirit within her body leapt
with joy (as S. John in his mother's womb) in presence of her God, whom she felt. She
launched not her affections out of herself, since her treasure, her loves and her delights were
in the midst of her sacred womb. Now the same contentment may be practised by imitation,
among those who, having communicated, feel by the certainty of faith that which, not flesh
and blood, but the Heavenly Father has revealed, that their Saviour is body and soul present,
with a most real presence, to their body and to their soul, by this most adorable sacrament.
For as the pearl-mother, having received the drops of the fresh dew of the morning, closes
253
up, not only to keep them pure from all possible mixture with the water of the sea, but also
for the pleasure she feels in relishing the agreeable freshness of this heaven-sent germ:—so
does it happen to many holy and devout of the faithful, that having received the Divine
Sacrament which contains the dew of all heavenly benedictions, their heart closes over It,
and all their faculties collect themselves together, not only to adore this sovereign King, but
for the spiritual consolation and refreshment, beyond belief, which they receive in feeling
by faith this divine germ of immortality within them. Where you will carefully note, Theo-
timus, that to say all in a word this recollection is wholly made by love, which perceiving
the presence of the well-beloved by the attractions he spreads in the midst of the heart,
gathers and carries all the soul towards it, by a most agreeable inclination, a most sweet
turning, and a delicious bending of all the faculties towards this well-beloved, who attracts
them unto him by the force of his sweetness, with which he ties and draws hearts, as bodies
are drawn by material ropes and bands.
But this sweet recollection of our soul in itself is not only made by the sentiment of
God's presence in the midst of our heart, but also by any means which puts us in this sacred
presence. It happens sometimes that all our interior powers close and withdraw themselves
into themselves by the extreme reverence and sweet fear which seizes upon us in the consid-
eration of his sovereign Majesty who is present with us and beholds us; just as, however
distracted we may be, if the Pope or some great prince should appear we return to ourselves,
and bring back our thoughts upon ourselves, to keep ourselves in good behaviour and respect.
The blue lily, otherwise called the flag, is said to draw its flowers together at the sight of the
sun, because they close and unite while the sun shines, but in its absence they spread out
259

28.3 Page 273

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Loving Recollection of the Soul in Contemplation.
and keep open all the night. The like happens in this kind of recollection which we speak
of; for at the simple presence of God, or the simple feeling that he sees us, either from
heaven or from any other place outside us (even if we are not remembering the other sort
of presence by which he is in us), our powers and faculties assemble and gather together
254
within us, out of respect to his divine Majesty, which love makes us fear with a fear of honour
and respect.
Indeed I know a soul who, as soon as she heard mention of some mystery or sentence
which put her a little more expressly in mind of the presence of God than usual, whether
in confession or private conference, would so deeply enter into herself that she could hardly
recover herself to speak and make answer, so that outwardly she remained as one deprived
of life, and with all her senses benumbed, till her spouse permitted her to quit that state:
which was sometimes pretty soon, and other times more slowly.
260

28.4 Page 274

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. Of the Repose of a Soul Recollected in Her Well-Beloved.
CHAPTER VIII.
OF THE REPOSE OF A SOUL RECOLLECTED IN HER WELL-BELOVED.
The soul, then, being thus inwardly recollected in God or before God, now and then becomes
so sweetly attentive to the goodness of her well-beloved, that her attention seems not to her
to be attention, so purely and delicately is it exercised: as it happens to certain rivers, which
glide so calmly and smoothly that beholders, and such as float upon them, seem neither to
see nor feel any motion, because the waters are not seen to ripple or flow at all. And it is this
admirable repose of the soul which the Blessed Virgin (S.) Teresa of Jesus names prayer of
quiet, not far different from that which she also calls the sleep of the powers, at least if I
understand her right.
Even human lovers are content, sometimes, with being near or within sight of the person
they love without speaking to her, and without even distinctly thinking of her or her perfec-
tions, satiated, as it were, and satisfied to relish this dear presence, not by any reflection they
make upon it, but by a certain gratification and repose which their spirit takes in it. A bundle
of myrrh is my beloved to me, he shall abide between my breasts. My beloved to me, and I to
him, who feedeth among the lilies, till the day break, and the shadows retire. Shew me, O thou
whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou liest in the mid-day.282 Do you see,
255
Theotimus, how the holy Sulamitess is contented with knowing that her well-beloved is
with her, whether in her bosom, or in her gardens, or elsewhere, so she know where he is.
And indeed she is the Sulamitess, wholly peaceable, calm, and at rest.
Now this repose sometimes goes so deep in its tranquillity, that the whole soul and all
its powers fall as it were asleep, and make no movement nor action whatever, except the
will alone, and even this does no more than receive the delight and satisfaction which the
presence of the well-beloved affords. And what is yet more admirable is, that the will does
not even perceive the delight and contentment which she receives, enjoying it insensibly,
being not mindful of herself but of him whose presence gives her this pleasure, as happens
frequently when, surprised by a light slumber, we only hear indistinctly what our friends
are saying around us, or feel their caresses almost imperceptibly, not feeling that we feel.
However, the soul who in this sweet repose enjoys this delicate sense of the divine
presence, though she is not conscious of the enjoyment, yet clearly shows how dear and
precious this happiness is unto her, if one offer to deprive her of it or divert her from it; for
then the poor soul complains, cries out, yea sometimes weeps, as a little child awakened
before it has taken its full sleep, who, by the sorrow it feels in being awakened, clearly shows
the content it had in sleeping. Hereupon the heavenly shepherd adjures the daughters of
Jerusalem, by the roes and harts of the fields, not to make the beloved awake until she please,283
282 Cant. i.
283 Cant. ii. 7.
261

28.5 Page 275

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. Of the Repose of a Soul Recollected in Her Well-Beloved.
that is, to let her awake of herself. No, Theotimus, a soul thus recollected in her God would
not change her repose for the greatest goods in the world.
Such, or little different from it, was the quiet of most holy Magdalen, when sitting at
her Master's feet she heard his holy word. Behold her, I beseech you, Theotimus; she is in
a profound tranquillity, she says not a word, she weeps not, she sobs not, she sighs not, she
stirs not, she prays not. Martha, full of business passes and repasses through the hall: Mary
notices her not. And what then is she doing? She is doing nothing, but only hearkening.
256
And what does this mean—she hearkens? It means that she is there as a vessel of honour,
to receive drop by drop the myrrh of sweetness which the lips of her well-beloved distilled
into her heart; and this divine lover, jealous of this love-sleep and repose of this well-beloved,
chid Martha for wanting to awaken her: Martha, Martha, thou art careful, and art troubled
about many things. But one thing is necessary, Mary hath chosen the best part, which shall
not be taken away from her.284 But what was Mary's portion or part? To remain in peace,
repose, and quiet, near unto her sweet Jesus.
The well-beloved S. John is ordinarily painted, in the Last Supper, not only lying but
even sleeping in his Master's bosom, because he was seated after the fashion of the Easterns
(Levantins), so that his head was towards his dear lover's breast; and as he slept no corporal
sleep there,—what likelihood of that?—so I make no question but that, finding himself so
near the breasts of the eternal sweetness, he took a profound mystical sleep, like a child of
love which locked to its mother's breast sucks while sleeping. Oh! what a delight it was to
this Benjamin, child of his Saviour's joy, to sleep in the arms of that father, who the day
after, recommended him, as the Benoni, child of pain, to his mother's sweet breasts. Nothing
is more desirable to the little child, whether he wake or sleep, than his father's bosom and
mother's breast.
Wherefore, when you shall find yourself in this simple and pure filial confidence with
our Lord, stay there, my dear Theotimus, without moving yourself to make sensible acts,
either of the understanding or of the will; for this simple love of confidence, and this love-
sleep of your spirit in the arms of the Saviour, contains by excellence all that you go seeking
hither and thither to satisfy your taste: it is better to sleep upon this sacred breast than to
watch elsewhere, wherever it be.
284 Luke x. 41, 42.
262

28.6 Page 276

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How This Sacred Repose Is Practised.
CHAPTER IX.
HOW THIS SACRED REPOSE IS PRACTISED.
Have you never noted, Theotimus, with what ardour little children sometimes cleave to
their mother's breast when hungry? You will see them, with a deep soft murmur, hold and
257
squeeze it with their mouths, sucking so eagerly that they even put their mother to pain;
but after the freshness of the milk has in some sort allayed the urgent heat of their little
frame, and the agreeable vapours which it sends to the brain begin to lull them to sleep,
Theotimus, you will see them softly shut their little eyes, and little by little give way to sleep;
yet without letting go the breast, upon which they make no action saving a slow and almost
insensible movement of the lips, whereby they continually draw the milk which they swallow
imperceptibly. This they do without thinking of it, yet not without pleasure; for if one draw
the teat from them before they fall sound asleep, they awake and weep bitterly, testifying by
the sorrow which they show in the privation that their content was great in the possession.
Now it fares in like manner with the soul who is in rest and quiet before God: for she sucks
in a manner insensibly the delights of his presence, without any discourse, operation or
motion of any of her faculties, save only the highest part of the will, which she moves softly
and almost imperceptibly, as the mouth by which enter the delight and insensible satiety
she finds in the fruition of the divine presence. But if one trouble this poor little babe, or
offer to take from it its treasure because it seems to sleep, it will plainly show then that
though it sleep to all other things yet not to that; for it perceives the trouble of this separation
and grieves over it, showing thereby the pleasure which it took, though without thinking of
it, in the good which it possessed. The Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa having written that she
found this a fit similitude, I have thought good to make use of it.
And tell me, Theotimus, why should the soul recollected in its God be disquieted? Has
she not reason to be at peace and to remain in repose? For indeed what should she seek?
She has found him whom she sought, what remains now for her but to say: I found him
whom my soul loveth: I held him and I will not let him go.285 She has no need to trouble
herself with the discourse of the understanding, for she sees her spouse present with so sweet
a view that reasonings would be to her unprofitable and superfluous. And even if she do
258
not see him by the understanding she cares not, being content to feel his presence by the
delight and satisfaction which the will receives from it. Ah! the mother of God, our Blessed
Lady and Mistress, while she did not see her divine child but felt him within her,—Ah! my
God! what content had she therein! And did not S. Elizabeth admirably enjoy the fruits of
our Saviour's divine presence without seeing him, upon the day of the most holy Visitation?
Nor does the soul in this repose stand in need of the memory, for she has her lover present.
Nor has she need of the imagination, for why should we represent in an exterior or interior
285 Cant. iii. 4.
263

28.7 Page 277

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How This Sacred Repose Is Practised.
image him whose presence we are possessed of? So that, to conclude, it is the will alone that
softly, and as it were tenderly sucking, draws the milk of this sweet presence; all the rest of
the soul quietly reposing with her by the sweetness of the pleasure which she takes.
Honied wine is used not only to withdraw and recall bees to their hives, but also to pa-
cify them. For when they stir up sedition and mutiny amongst themselves with mutual
slaughter and destruction, their keeper has no better remedy than to throw honied wine
amidst this enraged little people; because, when they perceive this sweet and agreeable odour,
they are pacified, and giving themselves up to the fruition of this sweetness, they remain
quieted and tranquil. O Eternal God! When by thy sweet presence thou dost cast odoriferous
perfumes into our hearts, perfumes more pleasing than delicious wine and honey, all the
powers of our soul enter into so delightful a repose and so absolute a rest, that there is no
movement save of the will, which, as the spiritual sense of smell, remains delightfully engaged
in enjoying, without adverting to it, the incomparable good of having its God present.
264

28.8 Page 278

▲back to top


Chapter X. Of Various Degrees of This Repose, and How It Is to Be Pres…
CHAPTER X.
OF VARIOUS DEGREES OF THIS REPOSE, AND HOW IT IS TO BE PRESERVED.
There are souls active, fertile and abounding in considerations. There are souls who readily
double and bend back on themselves, who love to feel what they are doing, who wish to see
259
and scrutinize what passes in them, turning their view ever on themselves to discover the
progress they make. And there are yet others who are not content to be content unless they
feel, see, and relish their contentment; these are like to persons who being well protected
against the cold would not believe it if they knew not how many garments they had on, or
who, seeing their cabinets full of money, would not esteem themselves rich unless they knew
the number of their coins.
Now all these spirits are ordinarily subject to be troubled in prayer, for if God deign
them the sacred repose of his presence, they voluntarily forsake it to note their own behaviour
therein, and to examine whether they are really in content, disquieting themselves to discern
whether their tranquillity is really tranquil, and their quietude quiet: so that instead of sweetly
occupying their will in tasting the sweets of the divine presence, they employ their under-
standing in reasoning upon the feelings they have; as a bride who should keep her attention
on her wedding-ring without looking upon the bridegroom who gave it her. There is a great
difference, Theotimus, between being occupied with God who gives us the contentment,
and being busied with the contentment which God gives us.
The soul, then, to whom God gives holy, loving quiet in prayer, must abstain as far as
she is able from looking upon herself or her repose, which to be preserved must not be
curiously observed; for he who loves it too much loses it, and the right rule of loving it
properly is not to love it too anxiously.286 And as a child who, to see where his feet are, has
taken his head from his mother's breast, immediately returns to it, because he dearly loves
it; so if we perceive ourselves distracted, through a curiosity to know what we are doing in
prayer, we must replace our hearts in the sweet and peaceable attention to God's presence
from whence we strayed. Yet we are not to apprehend any danger of losing this sacred repose
260
by actions of body or mind which are not done from lightness or indiscretion. For, as the
Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa says, it were a superstition to be so jealous of this repose as not
to cough, spit or breathe, for fear of losing it, since God who gives this peace does not
withdraw it for such necessary movements, nor yet for those distractions and wanderings
of the mind which are not voluntary: and the will having once tasted the divine presence
does not cease to relish the sweetness thereof, though the understanding or memory should
make an escape and slip away after foreign and useless thoughts.
It is true the repose of the soul is not then so great as when the understanding and
memory conspire with the will, yet is it a true spiritual tranquillity, since it continues to
286 La juste reigle de le bien affectionner, c’est de ne point l’affecter.
265

28.9 Page 279

▲back to top


Chapter X. Of Various Degrees of This Repose, and How It Is to Be Pres…
reign in the will, which is the mistress of all the other faculties. Indeed we have seen a soul
most strongly fixed and united to her God, who yet had her understanding and memory so
free from all interior occupation, that she understood very distinctly all that was said around
her, and perfectly remembered it, though she could not answer, or loose herself from God,
to whom she was fastened by the application of her will. And so attached, I tell you, that she
could not be withdrawn from this sweet entertainment without experiencing a great grief,
which provoked her to sighs: these indeed she gave in the very deepest of her consolation
and quiet; as we see young children murmur and make little plaints when they have ardently
desired the milk, and begin to suck; or as Jacob did, who, in kissing the fair and chaste
Rachel, lifting up his voice wept,287 through the vehemence of the consolation and tenderness
which he felt. This soul, then, whom I speak of, having only her will engaged, but her under-
standing, memory, hearing and imagination free, resembled, I think, the little child who,
while sucking, might see and hear and even move his arms, without quitting the dear breast.
However, the peace of the soul would be much greater and sweeter if there were no
noise around her, nor occasion given of stirring herself either in body or mind, for she would
261
greatly wish to be solely occupied in the sweetness of this divine presence; however, being
sometimes unable to hinder distractions in her other faculties, she preserves peace in the
will at least, which is the faculty whereby she receives the enjoyment of good. And note, that
then the will being retained in quiet by the pleasure which it takes in the divine presence,
does not move itself to bring back the other powers which are straying; because by under-
taking this she would lose her repose, separating herself from her dearly beloved; and she
would lose her labour if she ran hither and thither to catch these volatile powers, which also
can never be better brought to their duty than by the perseverance of the will in holy quiet:
for little by little all the faculties are attracted by the pleasure which the will receives, and of
which she gives them a certain perception like perfumes which excite them to draw near
her, to participate in the good which she enjoys.
287 Gen. xxix. 11.
266

28.10 Page 280

▲back to top


Chapter XI. A Continuation of the Discourse Touching the Various Degrees…
CHAPTER XI.
A CONTINUATION OF THE DISCOURSE TOUCHING THE VARIOUS DEGREES
OF HOLY QUIET, AND OF AN EXCELLENT ABNEGATION OF SELF WHICH IS
SOMETIMES PRACTISED THEREIN.
According then to what we have said, holy quiet has divers degrees. For sometimes it is in
all the powers of the soul joined and united to the will; sometimes it is in the will only, and
there sometimes sensibly at other times imperceptibly: because it happens sometimes that
the soul takes an incomparable delight in feeling by certain interior sweetnesses that God
is present with her (as happened to S. Elizabeth when our Blessed Lady visited her): and at
other times the soul has a certain ardent sweetness in being in God's presence, which for
the moment is imperceptible to her, as happened to the pilgrim-disciples, who walking with
our Saviour did not fully perceive the agreeable pleasure with which they were thrilled, till
such time as they had arrived and had known him in the divine breaking of the bread.288 262
Sometimes the soul not only perceives God's presence, but hears him speak, by certain inward
illuminations and interior persuasions which stand in place of words. Sometimes she per-
ceives him, and in her turn speaks to him, but so secretly, sweetly and delicately, that it does
not make her lose her holy peace and quiet, so that without awaking she watches with him;
that is, she wakes and speaks to her well-beloved's heart, with as sweet tranquillity and
grateful repose as though she sweetly slumbered. At other times she hears the beloved speak,
but she cannot speak to him, because the delight she has to hear him, or the reverence she
bears him, keeps her in silence, or, perhaps, because she is in dryness, and is so languid in
spirit that she has only strength to hear and not to speak; as is sometimes the case in corporeal
matters with those who are going to sleep, or who are greatly weakened by some malady.
But, finally, sometimes she neither hears nor speaks to her well-beloved, nor yet feels
any sign of his presence, but simply knows that she is in the presence of her God, to whom
it is pleasing that she should be there. Suppose, Theotimus, that the glorious Apostle S. John
had slept with a bodily sleep in the bosom of his dear Master at the Last Supper, and that
he had slept by his commandment; verily in that case he would have been in his Master's
presence without in any way feeling it. And mark, I pray you, that there is more care required
to place oneself in God's presence, than to remain there when placed: for, to place oneself
there it is requisite to apply the mind and render it actually attentive to this presence (as I
explain in the Introduction.289) But being placed in this presence, we keep ourself there by
many other means, so long as, whether by understanding or by will, we do anything in God
288 Luke xxiv.
289 II. 2.
267

29 Pages 281-290

▲back to top


29.1 Page 281

▲back to top


Chapter XI. A Continuation of the Discourse Touching the Various Degrees…
or for God: as, for example, by beholding him, or anything for love of him; by hearing him,
or those that speak for him; by speaking to him, or to some one for love of him; and by doing
any work whatsoever for his honour and service. Yea, one may continue in God's presence
not only by hearing him, seeing him, or speaking to him, but also by waiting to see if it may
263
please him to look at us, to speak to us, or to make us speak to him: or yet again, by doing
nothing of all this, but by simply staying where it pleases him for us to be, and because it
pleases him for us to be there. But if to this simple fashion of staying before him, it pleases
him to add some little feeling that we are all his, and he all ours—O God! how desirable and
precious is our privilege!
My dear Theotimus, let us further take the liberty to frame this imagination. If a statue
which the sculptor had niched in the gallery of some great prince were endowed with under-
standing, and could reason and talk; and if it were asked: O fair statue, tell me now, why art
thou in that niche?—It would answer,—Because my master placed me there. And if one
should reply,—But why stayest thou there without doing anything?—Because, would it say,
my master did not place me here to do anything, but simply that I should be here motionless.
But if one should urge it further, saying: But, poor statue, what art thou the better for remain-
ing there in that sort? Well! would it say, I am not here for my own interest and service, but
to obey and accomplish the will of my master and maker; and this suffices me. And if one
should yet insist thus: Tell me then, statue, I pray, not seeing thy master how dost thou find
contentment in contenting him? No, verily, would it confess; I see him not, for I have not
eyes for seeing, as I have not feet for walking; but I am too contented to know that my dear
master sees me here, and takes pleasure in seeing me here. But if one should continue the
dispute with the statue, and say unto it: But wouldst thou not at least wish to have power to
move that thou mightest approach near thy maker, to afford him some better service?
Doubtless it would answer, No, and would protest that it desired to do nothing but what its
master wished. Is it possible then, would one say at last, that thou desirest nothing but to
be an immovable statue there, within that hollow niche? Yes, truly, would that wise statue
answer in conclusion; I desire to be nothing but a statue and ever in this niche, so long as
my master pleases, contenting myself to be here, and thus, since such is the contentment of
him whose I am, and by whom I am what I am.
264
O true God! how good a way it is of remaining in God's presence to be, and to will to
be, ever and for ever, at his good-pleasure! For so, I consider, in all occurrences, yea, in our
deepest sleep, we are still more deeply in the most holy presence of God. Yea, verily, Theo-
timus: for if we love him we sleep not only in his sight, but at his pleasure, and not only by
his will, but also according to his will. And meseems it is himself, our Creator and heavenly
sculptor, who lays us there on our beds as statues in their niches, that we may settle there
as birds nestle in their nests. Then at our waking, if we reflect upon it, we find that God was
ever present with us, and that we were in no wise absent or separated from him. We have
268

29.2 Page 282

▲back to top


Chapter XI. A Continuation of the Discourse Touching the Various Degrees…
then been there in the presence of his good-pleasure, though without seeing or noticing
him, so that we might say in imitation of Jacob:290 Indeed I have slept by my God and in
the arms of his divine presence and providence, and I knew it not!
Now this quiet, in which the will works not save only by a simple acquiescence in the
divine good-pleasure, willing to be in prayer without any other aim than to be in the sight
of God according as it shall please him, is a sovereignly excellent quiet, because it has no
mixture of self-interest, the faculties of the soul taking no content in it, nor even the will
save by its supreme point, in which its contentment is to admit no other contentment but
that of being without contentment for the love of the contentment and good-pleasure of its
God, in which it rests. For in fine the height of love's ecstasy is to have our will not in its
own contentment but in God's, or, not to have our contentment in our own will, but in
God's.
290 Gen. xxviii. 16.
269

29.3 Page 283

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Outflowing (escoulement) or Liquefaction of the Soul…
CHAPTER XII.
OF THE OUTFLOWING (escoulement) OR LIQUEFACTION OF THE SOUL IN GOD.
Moist and liquid things easily receive the figures and limits which may be given them, because
they have no firmness or solidity which stops or limits them in themselves. Put liquid into
265
a vessel, and you will see it remain bounded within the limits of the vessel, and according
as this is round or square the liquid will be the same, having no other limit or shape than
that of the vessel which contains it.
The soul is not so by nature, for she has her proper shapes and limits: she takes her
shape from her habits and inclinations, her limits from her will; and when she is fixed upon
her own inclinations and wills, we say she is hard, that is, self-willed, obstinate. I will take
away, says God, the stony heart out of your flesh, and will give you a heart of flesh.291 To
change the form of stones, iron, or wood, the axe, hammer and fire are required. We call
that a heart of iron, or wood, or stone, which does not easily receive the divine impressions,
but lives in its own will, amidst the inclinations which accompany our depraved nature. On
the contrary, a gentle, pliable and tractable heart, is termed a melting and liquefied heart.
My heart, said David, speaking in the person of our Saviour upon the cross, is become like
wax melting in the midst of my bowels!292 Cleopatra, that infamous Queen of Egypt, striving
to outvie Mark Antony in all the excesses and dissolutions of his banquets, at the end of a
feast which she made in her turn, called for a vial of fine vinegar, and dropped into it one
of the pearls which she wore in her ears, valued at two hundred and fifty thousand crowns,
which being dissolved, melted and liquefied, she swallowed it, and would further have buried,
in the sink of her vile stomach, the pearl which she wore in her other ear, if Lucius Plautus
had not prevented her. Our Saviour's heart, the true oriental pearl, singularly unique and
priceless, thrown into the midst of a sea of incomparable bitternesses in the day of his passion,
melted in itself, dissolved, liquefied, gave way and flowed out in pain, under the press of so
many mortal anguishes; but love, stronger than death, mollifies, softens and melts hearts far
more quickly than all the other passions.
266
My heart, said the holy spouse, melted when he spoke.293 And what does melted mean
save that it was no longer contained within itself, but had flowed out towards its divine
lover? God ordered that Moses should speak to the rock, and that it should produce waters:
no marvel then if he himself melted the heart of his spouse when he spoke to her in his
sweetness. Balm is so thick by nature that it is not fluid or liquid, and the longer it is kept
the thicker it grows, and in the end grows hard, becoming red and transparent: yet heat
dissolves it and makes it fluid. Love had made the beloved fluid and flowing, whence the
291 Ezech. xxxvi. 26.
292 Ps. xxi. 15.
293 Cant. v. 6.
270

29.4 Page 284

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Outflowing (escoulement) or Liquefaction of the Soul…
spouse calls him oil poured out; and now she tells us that she herself is all melted with love.
My soul, said she, melted when he spoke. The love of her spouse was in her heart and breast
as a strong new wine which cannot be contained in the tun; for it overflowed on every side;
and, because the soul follows its love, after the spouse had said: Thy breasts are better than
wine, smelling sweet of the best ointments, she adds: Thy name is as oil poured out.294 And
as the beloved had poured out his love and his soul into the heart of the spouse, so the spouse
reciprocally pours her soul into the heart of her beloved; and as we see a honeycomb touched
with the sun's ardent rays goes out of itself, and forsakes its form, to flow out towards that
side where the rays touch it, so the soul of this lover flowed out towards where the voice of
her beloved was heard, going out of herself and passing the limits of her natural being, to
follow him that spoke unto her.
But how does this sacred outflowing of the soul into its well-beloved take place? An
extreme complacency of the lover in the thing beloved begets a certain spiritual powerlessness,
which makes the soul feel herself no longer able to remain in herself. Wherefore, as melted
balm, that no longer has firmness or solidity, she lets herself pass and flow into what she
loves: she does not spring out of herself as by a sudden leap, nor does she cling as by a
joining and union, but gently glides as a fluid and liquid thing, into the divinity whom she
loves. And as we see that the clouds, thickened by the south wind, melting and turning to
267
rain, cannot contain themselves, but fall and flow downwards, and mix themselves so entirely
with the earth which they moisten that they become one thing with it, so the soul which,
though loving, remained as yet in herself, goes out by this sacred outflowing and holy lique-
faction, and quits herself, not only to be united to the well-beloved, but to be entirely mingled
with and steeped in him.
You see then clearly, Theotimus, that the outflowing of a soul into her God is a true
ecstasy, by which the soul quite transcends the limits of her natural form of existence
(maintien) being wholly mingled with, absorbed and engulfed in, her God. Hence it happens
that such as attain to these holy excesses of heavenly love, afterwards, being come to them-
selves, find nothing on the earth that can content them, and living in an extreme annihilation
of themselves, remain much weakened in all that belongs to the senses, and have perpetually
in their hearts the maxim of the Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa: "What is not God is to me
nothing." And it seems that such was the loving passion of that great friend of the well-be-
loved, who said: I live, now not I; but Christ liveth in me,295 and: Our life is hid with Christ
in God.296 For tell me, I pray you, Theotimus, if a drop of common water, thrown into an
ocean of some priceless essence, were alive, and could speak and declare its condition, would
294 Cant. i. 1, 2.
295 Gal. ii. 20.
296 Col. iii. 3.
271

29.5 Page 285

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Outflowing (escoulement) or Liquefaction of the Soul…
it not cry out with great joy: O mortals! I live indeed, but I live not myself, but this ocean
lives in me, and my life is hidden in this abyss?
The soul that has flowed out into God dies not, for how can she die by being swallowed
up in life? But she lives without living in herself, because, as the stars without losing their
light still do not shine in the presence of the sun, but the sun shines in them and they are
hidden in the light of the sun, so the soul, without losing her life, lives not herself when
mingled with God, but God lives in her. Such, I think, were the feelings of the great Blessed
(SS.) Philip Neri and Francis Xavier, when, overwhelmed with heavenly consolations, they
petitioned God to withdraw himself for a space from them, since his will was that their life
268
should a little longer appear unto the world; which could not be while it was wholly hidden
and absorbed in God.
272

29.6 Page 286

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the Wound of Love.
CHAPTER XIII.
OF THE WOUND OF LOVE.
All these terms of love are drawn from the resemblance there is between the affections of
the mind and the passions of the body. Grief, fear, hope, hatred, and the rest of the affections
of the soul, only enter the heart when love draws them after it. We do not hate evil except
because it is contrary to the good which we love: we fear future evil because it will deprive
us of the good we love. Though an evil be extreme yet we never hate it except in so far as
we love the good to which it is opposed. He who does not much love the commonwealth is
not much troubled to see it ruined: he who scarcely loves God, scarcely also hates sin. Love
is the first, yea the principle and origin, of all the passions, and therefore it is love that first
enters the heart; and because it penetrates and pierces down to the very bottom of the will
where its seat is, we say it wounds the heart. "It is sharp," says the apostle of France,297 "and
enters into the spirit most deeply." The other affections enter indeed, but by the agency of
love, for it is this which piercing the heart makes a passage for them. It is only the point of
the dart that wounds, the rest only increases the wound and the pain.
Now, if it wound, it consequently gives pain. Pomegranates, by their vermilion colour,
by the multitude of their seeds, so close set and ranked, and by their fair crowns, vividly
represent, as S. Gregory says, most holy charity, all red by reason of its ardour towards God,
loaded with all the variety of virtues, and alone bearing away the crown of eternal rewards:
but the juice of pomegranates, which as we know is so agreeable both to the healthy and to
the sick, is so mingled of sweet and sour that one can hardly discern whether it delights the
269
taste more because it has a sweet tartness or because it has a tart sweetness. Verily, Theotimus,
love is thus bitter-sweet, and while we live in this world it never has a sweetness perfectly
sweet, because it is not perfect, nor ever purely satiated and satisfied: and yet it fails not to
be of very agreeable taste, its tartness correcting the lusciousness of its sweetness, as its
sweetness heightens the relish of its tartness. But how can this be? You shall see a young
man enter into a company, free, hearty, and in the best of spirits, who, being off his guard,
feels, before he goes away, that love, making use of the glances, the gestures, the words, yea
even of the hair of a silly and weak creature, as of so many darts, has smitten and wounded
his poor heart, so that there he is, all sad, gloomy and depressed. Why I pray you is he sad?
Without doubt because he is wounded. And what has wounded him? Love. But love being
the child of complacency, how can it wound and give pain? Sometimes the beloved object
is absent, and then, my dear Theotimus, love wounds the heart by the desire which it excites;
this it is which, being unable to satiate itself, grievously torments the spirit.
If a bee had stung a child, it were to poor purpose to say to him: Ah! my child, the bee
that stung you is the very same that makes the honey you are so fond of. For he might say:
297 S. Denis (Tr.)
273

29.7 Page 287

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the Wound of Love.
it is true, that its honey is very pleasant to my taste, but its sting is very painful, and while
its sting remains in my cheek I cannot be at peace, and do you not see that my face is all
swollen with it? Theotimus, love is indeed a complacency, and consequently very delightful,
provided that it does not leave in our heart the sting of desire; for when it leaves this, it leaves
therewith a great pain. True it is this pain proceeds from love, and therefore is a loveable
and beloved pain. Hear the painful yet love-full ejaculations of a royal lover. My soul hath
thirsted after the strong living God; when shall I come and appear before the face of God? My
tears have been my bread day and night, whilst it is said to me daily: where is thy God?298
And the sacred Sulamitess, wholly steeped in her dolorous loves, speaking to the daughters
of Jerusalem: Ah! says she, I adjure you, O daughters of Jerusalem, if you find my beloved,
270
that you tell him that I languish with love.299 Hope that is deferred afflicteth the soul.300
Now the painful wounds of love are of many sorts. 1. The first strokes we receive from
love are called wounds, because the heart which appeared sound, entire and all its own before
it loved, being struck with love begins to separate and divide itself from itself, to give itself
to the beloved object. Now this separation cannot be made without pain, seeing that pain
is nothing but the division of living things which belong to one another. 2. Desire incessantly
stings and wounds the heart in which it is, as we have said. 3. But, Theotimus, speaking of
heavenly love, there is in the practice of it a kind of wound given by God himself to the soul
which he would highly perfect. For he gives her admirable sentiments of and incomparable
attractions for his sovereign goodness, as if pressing and soliciting her to love him; and then
she forcibly lifts herself up as if to soar higher towards her divine object; but stopping short,
because she cannot love as much as she desires:—O God! she feels a pain which has no equal.
At the same time that she is powerfully drawn to fly towards her dear well-beloved, she is
also powerfully kept back and cannot fly, being chained to the base miseries of this mortal
life and of her own powerlessness: she desires the wings of a dove that she may fly away and
be at rest,301 and she finds not. There then she is, rudely tormented between the violence
of her desires and her own powerlessness. Unhappy man that I am, said one of those who
had experienced this torture, who shall deliver me from the body of this death?302 In this
case, if you notice, Theotimus, it is not the desire of a thing absent that wounds the heart,
298 Ps. xli. 3.
299 Cant. v. 8.
300 Prov. xiii. 12.
301 Ps. liv. 7.
302 Rom. vii. 24.
274

29.8 Page 288

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Of the Wound of Love.
for the soul feels that her God is present; he has already led her into his wine-cellar, he has
planted upon her heart the banner of love: but still, though already he sees her wholly his,
he urges her, and from time to time casts a thousand thousand darts of his love, showing
her in new ways, how much more he is lovable than loved. And she, who has not so much
271
force to love as love to force herself, seeing her forces so weak in respect of the desire she
has to love worthily him whom no force of love can love enough,—Ah! she feels herself
tortured with an incomparable pain; for, as many efforts as she makes to fly higher in her
desiring love, so many thrills of pain does she receive.
This heart in love with its God, desiring infinitely to love, sees notwithstanding that it
can neither love nor desire sufficiently. And this desire which cannot come to effect is as a
dart in the side of a noble spirit; yet the pain which proceeds from it is welcome, because
whosoever desires earnestly to love, loves also earnestly to desire, and would esteem himself
the most miserable man in the universe, if he did not continually desire to love that which
is so sovereignly worthy of love. Desiring to love, he receives pain; but loving to desire, he
receives sweetness.
My God! Theotimus, what am I going to say? The blessed in heaven seeing that God is
still more lovable than they are loving, would fail and eternally perish with a desire to love
him still more, if the most holy will of God did not impose upon theirs the admirable repose
which it enjoys: for they so sovereignly love this sovereign will, that its willing stays theirs,
and the divine contentment contents them, they acquiescing to be limited in their love even
by that will whose goodness is the object of their love. If this were not so, their love would
be equally delicious and dolorous, delicious by the possession of so great a good, dolorous
through an extreme desire of a greater love. God therefore continually drawing arrows, if
we may say so, out of the quiver of his infinite beauty, wounds the hearts of his lovers,
making them clearly see that they do not love him nearly as much as he is worthy to be be-
loved. That mortal who does not desire to love the divine goodness more, loves him not
enough; sufficiency in this divine exercise is not sufficient, when a man would stay in it as
though it sufficed him.
275

29.9 Page 289

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. Of Some Other Means by Which Holy Love Wounds the Heart.
CHAPTER XIV.
OF SOME OTHER MEANS BY WHICH HOLY LOVE WOUNDS THE HEART.
Nothing so much wounds a loving heart as to perceive another wounded with the love of
it. The pelican builds her nest upon the ground, wherefore serpents often sting her young
ones. Now when this happens, the pelican, as an excellent physician, with the point of her
beak wounds these poor chicks all over, to cause the poison which the serpents' sting had
spread through all the parts of their bodies to flow out with the blood; and to get out all the
poison she lets out all the blood, and thus consequently, permits this little pelican-brood to
perish. But seeing them dead she wounds herself, and spreading her blood over them she
vivifies them with a new and purer life. Her love wounded them, and forthwith by the same
love she wounds herself. Never do we wound a heart with the wound of love but we ourselves
are wounded with the same. When the soul sees her God wounded by love for her sake, she
immediately receives from it a reciprocal wound. Thou hast wounded my heart,303 said the
heavenly lover to the Sulamitess, and the Sulamitess cries out: Tell my beloved that I languish
with love.304 Bees never wound without being themselves wounded to death. And we, seeing
the Saviour of our souls wounded to death by love of us, even to the death of the cross,—how
can we but be wounded for him, but wounded with a wound as much more dolorously
amorous as his was amorously dolorous, and a wound as great as is our inability to love him
as much as his love and death require? It is, again, another wound of love, when the soul
feels truly that she loves God, and yet he treats her as if he knew not that she loved him, or
as if he were distrustful of her love: for then, my dear Theotimus, the soul is put into an ex-
treme anguish, as it is insupportable to her to see and feel even the mere pretence God makes
of distrusting her. The poor S. Peter had and felt his heart all filled with love for his master,
and Our Lord, hiding his knowledge of it: Peter, said he, dost thou love me more than these?
Ah! Lord, said the Apostle, thou knowest that I love thee. But, Peter, lovest thou me, replied
Our Saviour. My dear Master, said the Apostle, truly I love thee, thou knowest it. But this
sweet master to prove him, and as if showing a diffidence of his love: Peter, said he, dost
thou love me? Ah! Lord, thou woundest this poor heart, which greatly afflicted cries out,
amorously yet dolorously: Lord thou knowest all things: thou knowest that I love thee.305 It
happened once that a possessed person was being exorcised, and the wicked spirit being
urged to tell his name: I am, said he, that miserable being deprived of love: and S. Catharine
of Genoa who was there present suddenly perceived her whole frame disturbed and dis-
ordered, merely from having heard the words, privation of love, pronounced: for as the
devils so hate divine love that they quake when they see its sign, or hear its name, that is,
272
273
303 Cant. iv. 9.
304 Cant. v. 8.
305 John xxi. 19.
276

29.10 Page 290

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. Of Some Other Means by Which Holy Love Wounds the Heart.
when they see the cross, or hear the name of Jesus pronounced, so those who dearly love
Our Lord thrill with pain and horror when they see some sign or hear some word, that refers
to the privation of this holy love.
S. Peter was quite sure that Our Lord, knowing all things, could not be ignorant how
much he was loved by him, yet because the repetition of this demand: Peter, dost thou love
me? had some appearance of distrust, S. Peter is greatly grieved by it. Alas! that poor soul
who feels that she is resolved rather to die than offend her God, and yet feels not a spark of
fervour, but on the contrary an extreme coldness, which so benumbs and weakens her that
at every step she falls into very sensible imperfections,—this soul I say, Theotimus, is all
wounded: for her love is exceedingly in pain to see that God lets himself look as if he did
not see how much she loves him, leaving her as a creature not belonging to him; and she
fancies that amid her failings, her distractions and coldness, Our Lord smites her with this
reproach: How canst thou say that thou lovest me, seeing thy soul is not with me? And this
is a dart of pain through her heart, but a dart of pain which proceeds from love; for if she
loved not, she would not be afflicted with the fear that she loved not.
Sometimes this wound of love is made merely by the remembrance we have that there
was a time in which we loved not our God. "Oh! too late have I loved thee, beauty ever ancient
274
and ever new," said that saint who for thirty years was a heretic. The past life is an object of
horror to the present life of him who has passed his previous life without loving the sovereign
goodness.
Sometimes love wounds us with the mere consideration of the multitude of those who
contemn the love of God; so that we faint away with grief for this, as did he who said: My
zeal hath made me pine away: because my enemies forgot thy words.306 And the great S.
Francis, thinking he was not heard, upon a day wept, sobbed and lamented so pitifully, that
a good man hearing him ran as if to the succour of one who was going to be slain, and
finding him all alone asked him: why dost thou cry so hard, poor man? Alas! said he, I weep
to think that Our Lord endured so much for love of us and no one thinks of it: and having
said thus he took to his tears again, and this good man sobbed and wept with him.
But, however it be, there is this admirable in the wounds received from the divine love
that their pain is delightful, and all that feel it consent to it, and would not change this pain
for all the pleasures of the world. There is no pain in love, or if there is pain it is well-beloved
pain. Once a Seraph, holding a golden arrow, from the head of which issued a little flame,
darted it into the heart of the Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa; and when he would draw it out,
it seemed to this virgin that he was tearing out her very entrails, the pain being so excessive
that she had only strength to utter low and feeble moans; but yet a pain so dear that she
would have wished never to be delivered from it. Such was the arrow of love that God sent
306 Ps. cxviii. 139.
277

30 Pages 291-300

▲back to top


30.1 Page 291

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. Of Some Other Means by Which Holy Love Wounds the Heart.
into the heart of the great S. Catharine of Genoa in the beginning of her conversion, after
which she became another woman, dead to the world and things created, to live only to her
Creator. The well-beloved is a bundle of bitter myrrh, and this bitter bundle again is well-
beloved, which abides dearly placed between the breasts,307 that is, the best-beloved of all
the well-beloved.
275
307 Cant. i. 12.
278

30.2 Page 292

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Affectionate Languishing of the Heart Wounded with …
CHAPTER XV.
OF THE AFFECTIONATE LANGUISHING OF THE HEART WOUNDED WITH
LOVE.
It is a thing very well known that human love not only wounds the heart, but even makes
the body sick unto death; because, as the passion and temperament of the body have great
power to incline the soul and draw her after it, so the affections of the soul have great force
to stir the humours and change the qualities of the body. But besides this, love when it is
violent bears away the soul to the thing beloved with such impetuosity, and so strongly
possesses her, that she fails in all her other operations, be they sensitive or intellectual; so
that to feed and second this love, the soul seems to abandon all other care, all other exercises,
yea and herself too, whence Plato said that love was poor, ragged, naked, barefoot, miserable,
houseless, that it lies without doors upon the hard ground, always in want. It is poor, because
it makes one quit all for the thing beloved; it is houseless, because it urges the soul to leave
her own habitation to follow continually him who is loved; it is miserable, pale, lean and
broken down, because it makes one lose sleep, meat and drink; it is naked and barefoot,
since it makes one forsake all other affections to embrace those of the thing beloved; it lies
without upon the hard ground because it causes the heart that is in love to lie open, making
it manifest its passion by sighs, plaints, praises, suspicions, jealousies; it lies along at the gate
like a beggar, because it makes the lover perpetually attentive to the eyes and mouth of the
thing which it loves, keeping continually to the ears thereof to speak to it and beg favours,
wherewith love is never satiated; now the eyes, ears, and mouth are the gates of the soul. In
fine the condition of its life is to be ever indigent, for if ever it is satiated it is no longer ardent,
nor, consequently, love.
True it is, Theotimus, that Plato spoke thus of the abject, vile and miserable love of 276
worldlings; yet the same properties fail not to be found in heavenly and divine love. For
turn your eyes a little upon those first masters of Christian doctrine, I mean those first
doctors of holy evangelical love, and mark what one of them who had laboured the most
said: Even unto this hour, says he, we both hunger, and thirst, and are naked, and are buffeted,
and have no fixed abode. And we labour working with our own hands: we are reviled, and
we bless: we are persecuted, and we suffer it. We are blasphemed, and we entreat: we are made
as the refuse of this world, the off-scouring, and as it were the parings, of all even until now.308
As though he had said we are so abject that if the world be a palace we are held the sweepings
thereof, if the world be an apple we are its parings. What I pray you had brought them to
this state but love? It was love that threw S. Francis naked before his bishop, and made him
die naked upon the ground; it was love that made him a beggar all his life; it was love that
sent the great S. Francis Xavier poor, needy, ragged, through the Indies and amongst the
308 1 Cor. iv. 11.
279

30.3 Page 293

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Affectionate Languishing of the Heart Wounded with …
Japanese; it was love that brought the great Cardinal S. Charles, Archbishop of Milan, to
that extremity of poverty amidst the riches which his birth and dignity gave him, that, as
says the eloquent orator of Italy, Master (Monseigneur) Pancirola, he was as a dog in his
master's house, eating but a bit of bread, drinking but a drop of water, and lying upon a little
straw.
Let us hear, I beseech you, the holy Sulamitess, who cries almost in this manner: Although
by reason of a thousand consolations which my love gives me I be more fair than the rich
tents of my Solomon (I mean more fair than heaven, which is the inanimate pavilion of his
royal majesty, while I am his animated pavilion), yet am I all black, rent, dust-worn, and all
spoilt by so many wounds and blows given me by the same love. Ah! regard not my hue,
for truly I am brown, because my beloved, who is my sun, has darted the rays of his love
upon me; rays which by their light illuminate, but which by their heat have made me sunburnt
and swarthy, and touching me with their splendour they have bereft me of my colour. The
277
passion of love has made me too happy in giving me a spouse such as is my king, but the
same passion which is a mother to me (seeing she alone gave me in marriage, and not my
merits), has other children which fiercely assault and trouble me, bringing me to such a
languor, that as, on the one hand, I am like to a queen who is beside her king, so on the
other hand I am as a vineyard-keeper who, in a miserable hut, looks to a vineyard, and a
vineyard that is not his own.
Truly, Theotimus, when the wounds and strokes of love are frequent and strong they
put us into a languor, and into love's well-beloved sickness. Who could ever describe the
loving languors of the SS. Catharine of Siena and Genoa, or of a S. Angela of Foligno, or S.
Christina, or the Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa, a S. Bernard, a S. Francis. And as for this last,
his life was nothing but tears, sighs, plaints, languors, wastings, love-trances. But in all this
nothing is so wonderful as that admirable communication which the sweet Jesus made him
of his loving and precious pains, by the impression of his wounds and stigmata. Theotimus,
I have often pondered this wonder, and have made this conception of it. That great servant
of God, a man wholly seraphical, beholding the lively picture of his crucified Saviour, rep-
resented in a shining seraph, who appeared unto him upon Mount Alverno, was touched
beyond what could be imagined, being taken with a sovereign consolation and compassion,
in beholding this bright mirror of love, which the angels cannot satisfy themselves in behold-
ing. Ah! he as it were swooned away with sweetness and contentment. But seeing also the
lively representation of the marks and wounds of his Saviour crucified, he felt in his soul
the merciless sword which transfixed the sacred breast of the virgin-mother on the day of
the passion, with as much interior pain as though he had been crucified with his dear Saviour.
280

30.4 Page 294

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Affectionate Languishing of the Heart Wounded with …
O God! Theotimus, if the picture of Abraham holding the death-stroke over his dear only-
begotten, to sacrifice him, a picture drawn by mortal hand, had the power to touch and
make weep the great S. Gregory, Bishop of Nyssa, as often as he beheld it,—Ah! how extreme
was the tenderness of the great S. Francis when he beheld the picture of our Saviour sacrificing
278
himself upon the cross, a picture which not a mortal hand, but the master-hand of a heavenly
seraph, had drawn and traced from its very original, representing to the life and to nature
the divine king of angels, bruised, wounded, pierced, broken, crucified.
This soul then being thus mollified, softened and almost melted away in this love-full
pain, was thereby extremely disposed to receive the impressions and marks of the love and
pain of his sovereign lover; for his memory was wholly steeped in the remembrance of this
divine love, his imagination forcibly applied to represent unto himself the wounds and livid
bruises which his eyes then saw so perfectly expressed in the picture before him; the under-
standing received those most vivid images which the imagination furnished to it; and, finally,
love employed all the forces of the will to enter into and conform itself to the passion of her
well-beloved; whence without doubt the soul found herself transformed into a second cru-
cified. Now the soul, as the form and mistress of the body, exercising her authority over it,
impressed the pains of the wounds with which she was struck, on the parts corresponding
to those wherein her beloved had endured them. Love is admirable in sharpening the ima-
gination to penetrate to the exterior. In Laban's ewes the imagination had a corporal effect
upon the lambs, and the imagination of human mothers affects their children. A strong
imagination makes a man become grey in one night, and disturbs his health and all his hu-
mours. Love then drove the interior torment of this great lover S. Francis to the exterior,
and wounded the body with the same dart of pain with which it had wounded the heart;
but love being within could not well make the holes in the flesh without, and therefore the
burning seraph coming to its help, darted rays of so penetrating a light, that it really made
in the flesh the exterior wounds of the crucified, which love had imprinted interiorly in the
soul. So the seraph seeing that Isaias did not dare to speak, because he perceived his lips
defiled, came in the name of God to touch and purify his lips with a burning coal taken from
off the altar, seconding in this sort his desire. The myrrh tree brings forth its gum and first
279
liquor by way of sweat and transpiration, but that it may let out all its juice, it must be helped
by incision. In the same way the divine love of S. Francis appeared in his whole life, after
the manner of a sweating, for in all his actions he showed nothing but this sacred affection;
but to make the incomparable abundance of it plainly appear, the divine seraph came to
make the incision and wounds. And to the end it might be known that these wounds were
wounds of Heaven's love, they were made not with the steel, but with rays of light. O true
God! Theotimus, what amorous dolours and dolorous loves! For not only at that instant,
but also his whole life after, this poor Saint went pining and languishing, as sick with very
love.
281

30.5 Page 295

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Affectionate Languishing of the Heart Wounded with …
The Blessed (S.) Philip Neri, at fourscore years of age, had such an inflammation of
heart through divine love, that the heat making the ribs give way to it, greatly enlarged them,
and broke the fourth and fifth, that the heart might receive air and be refreshed. B. (S.)
Stanislaus Kotska, a youth of fourteen years, was so assaulted by the love of his Saviour that
he often fainted away and fell down, and he was constrained to apply linen steeped in cold
water to his breast, to moderate the violence of the burning which he felt.
To conclude, Theotimus, how do you think that a soul which has once tasted divine
consolations at all freely, can live in this world so full of miseries, without an almost continual
pain and languishing? That great man of God, Francis Xavier, was often heard lifting up his
voice to Heaven, when he thought himself all alone, in this sort: Ah! my God, do not, for
pity, do not bear me down with so great abundance of consolations; or if through thy infinite
goodness it please thee to make me so abound in delights, draw me then into Paradise; for
he who has once tasted thy sweetness must necessarily live in bitterness while he does not
enjoy thee. And therefore when God has somewhat largely bestowed his heavenly sweetnesses
upon a soul, and afterwards withdraws them, he wounds her by this privation, and she af-
terwards is left pining; sighing out with David: My soul hath thirsted after the strong living
280
God; when shall I come and appear before the face of God?309 And with the great Apostle:
Unhappy man that I am, who shall deliver me from the body of this death?310
309 Ps. xli. 3.
310 Rom. vii. 24.
282

30.6 Page 296

▲back to top


Book VII. Of the Union of the Soul with Her God, Which Is Perfected in…
BOOK VII.
OF THE
281
UNION OF THE SOUL WITH HER GOD, WHICH IS PERFECTED
IN PRAYER.
283

30.7 Page 297

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Love Effects the Union of the Soul with God in Prayer.
CHAPTER I.
HOW LOVE EFFECTS THE UNION OF THE SOUL WITH GOD IN PRAYER.
We speak not here of the general union of the heart with its God, but of certain particular
acts and movements which the soul, recollected in God, makes by way of prayer, to be more
and more united and joined to his divine goodness: for there is truly a difference between
joining or uniting one thing to another, and clasping or pressing one thing against or upon
another; because to join or unite there is only required an application of one thing to the
other, so that they may touch, and be together, as we join vines to elms, and jessamine to
the trellis-work of the arbours which are made in gardens. But to squeeze and press together,
a strong application must be made, which increases and augments the union; so that to clasp
together is to join strongly and closely, as we see ivy joined to trees, which is not united
only, but pressed and clasped so hard to them that it even penetrates and enters into their
bark.
We must not drop the comparison of the love of little children towards their mothers,
because of its innocence and purity. Regard, then, that sweet little child, to whom the seated
mother presents her breast. It casts itself into her arms, gathering and folding its little body
in this bosom and on this beloved breast. And see the mother, reciprocally, how, receiving
it she clasps it, and as it were glues it to her bosom, and joining her mouth to its mouth
kisses it. But see again this little babe, allured with its mother's caresses, how for its part it
282
concurs in this union between its mother and itself: for it also, as much as it possibly can,
squeezes and presses itself to its mother's breast and face, as though it would wholly dive
into, and hide itself in that beloved being from whom it came. Now, Theotimus, in this
moment union is perfect; which being but one, proceeds notwithstanding from the mother
and the child, yet so, that it has its whole dependence upon the mother. For she drew the
child to her, she first locked it in her arms, and pressed it to her breast; nor had the babe
strength enough to clasp and keep itself so tight to its mother. Yet the poor little one does
for its part what it can, and joins itself with all its strength to its mother's bosom, not con-
senting only to the delightful union which its mother makes, but contributing, with all its
heart, its feeble endeavours: and I say its feeble endeavours, because they are so weak that
they rather resemble efforts after union than actual union.
Thus then, Theotimus, our Saviour, showing the most delightful breast of his divine
love to the devout soul, draws her wholly to himself, gathers her up, and as it were folds all
her powers in the bosom of his more than motherly sweetness, and then burning with love,
he clasps the soul, joins, presses and glues her on his lips of sweetness, and to his delicious
breast, kissing her with the sacred kiss of his mouth, and making her relish his breasts more
sweet than wine.311 Then the soul, allured with the delights of these favours, not only con-
311 Cant. i. 1.
284

30.8 Page 298

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Love Effects the Union of the Soul with God in Prayer.
sents, and yields herself to the union which God makes, but with all her power co-operates,
forcing herself to join and clasp herself closer and closer to the divine goodness; yet in such
a way that she fully acknowledges her union and attachment to this sovereign sweetness to
be wholly dependent upon God's operation, without which she could not make the least
effort in the world to be united unto him.
When we see an exquisite beauty beheld with great ardour, or an excellent melody heard
with great attention, or a rare discourse listened to with great satisfaction, we are wont to
283
say that this beauty rivets the eyes of the spectators, this music takes the ears, and this dis-
course captivates the hearts, of the auditors. What does this mean—to rivet the eyes and
ears, or to captivate the heart—save to unite and most closely join these senses and powers
to their objects? The soul then closely joins herself to, and presses herself upon, her object,
when she exercises her affection towards it with great intensity; for pressure is nothing more
than the progress and advancement of the union and conjunction. We make use of this
word, according to our language, even in moral matters: he presses me to do this, or he
presses me to stay, that is, he does not merely use his persuasion and prayer, but does it with
earnestness and entreaty, as did the pilgrims in Emmaus, who not only petitioned our Saviour,
but even pressed and forcibly urged him, and compelled him by a loving violence to remain
in their lodging with them.
Now in prayer this union is often made by manner of little yet frequent flights and ad-
vancings of the soul towards God: and if you take notice of little children united and joined
to their mothers' breasts, you will see that ever and anon they press and clasp closer, with
little movements which the pleasure they take in sucking makes them give: so the heart
united to God in prayer often makes certain renewals of union, by movements which press
and join it more closely to the divine sweetness. As for example, the soul having long dwelt
in the feeling of the union whereby she sweetly tastes how happy she is to belong to God,
in fine, augmenting this union by an amorous pressing and moving forwards: Yea, Lord,
will she say, I am thine, all, all, all, without reserve; or: Ah Lord! I am so indeed, and will be
daily ever more; or, by way of prayer: O sweet Jesus! Ah! draw me still more deeply into thy
heart, that thy love may devour me, and that I may be swallowed up in its sweetness.
But at other times the union is made not by repeated movements, but by way of a con-
tinued insensible pressing and advancing of the heart in the divine goodness. For as we see
a great and heavy mass of lead, brass or stone, though not forced down, so work itself, sink
down, and press itself, into the earth where it lies, that at length it is found buried, by reason
of the effect of its weight, which makes it incessantly tend to the centre;—so our heart, being
284
once joined to God, if without being drawn away it remain in this union, sinks still deeper
by an insensible progress of union, till it is wholly in God, by reason of the sacred inclination
given it by love to unite itself ever more and more to the sovereign goodness. For as the
great apostle of France says: "Love is a unitive virtue:" that is, it carries us to perfect union
285

30.9 Page 299

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Love Effects the Union of the Soul with God in Prayer.
with the sovereign good. And since it is an undoubted truth that divine love, while we are
in this life, is a movement, or at least a habit active and tending to movement; even after it
has attained simple union, it ceases not to act, though imperceptibly, in order more and
more to increase and perfect it.
So trees that require transplanting, as soon as they are moved spread their roots and
lodge them deeply in the bosom of the earth, which is their element and their aliment, nor
do any perceive it while it is doing, but only after it is done. And man's heart, transplanted
out of the world into God by celestial love, if it earnestly practise prayer, will certainly ever
extend itself, and will fasten itself to the Divinity, uniting itself more and more to his good-
ness, but by imperceptible advances, whose progress one can hardly see while it is doing,
but only when it is done. If you drink any exquisite water, for instance, imperial water, the
simple union of it with you is instantly made upon your receiving it; for the receiving and
union is all one in this case; but afterwards by little and little this union is increased, by a
progress imperceptibly sensible: for the virtue of this water penetrating to all parts, will
strengthen the brain, invigorate the heart, and extend its influence through all your humours.
In like manner, a feeling of love—as for example: How good God is!—having got entrance
into the heart, at first causes union with this goodness; but being entertained for some fairly
long time, as a precious perfume it penetrates every part of the soul, pours out and dilates
itself in our will, and as it were, incorporates itself with our spirit, joining and fastening itself
on every side more and more closely to us, and uniting us to it. And this is what the great
David teaches us, when he compares the sacred words to honey; for who knows not that
the sweetness of honey is united more and more to our sense by a continual increase of sa-
285
vour, when, keeping it a good while in our mouth, or swallowing it slowly, the relish thereof
more deeply penetrates our sense of taste. In the same way that sentiment of the divine
goodness, expressed in those words of S. Bruno: O Goodness! or those of S. Thomas: My
Lord and my God! or those of S. Magdalen: Ah! my Master! or those of S. Francis: My God
and my All!—this sentiment, I say, having been kept some while within a loving heart, dilates
itself, spreads itself, and sinks into the spirit by an intimate penetration, and more and more
steeps it all in its savour. This is nothing else than to increase union; as does precious oint-
ment or balm, which, falling upon cotton-wool, so sinks into it and unites itself to it more
and more, little by little, that in the end one cannot easily say whether the wool is perfumed
or perfume, or, whether the perfume is wool, or the wool perfume. Oh! how happy is the
soul who in the tranquillity of her heart lovingly preserves the sacred feeling of God's pres-
ence! For her union with the divine goodness will have continual though imperceptible in-
crease, and will thoroughly steep the spirit of such a one in infinite sweetness. Now when I
speak here of the sacred sentiment of the presence of God, I do not mean to speak of a
sensible feeling, but of that which resides in the summit and supreme point of the spirit,
where heavenly love reigns and conducts its principal exercises.
286

30.10 Page 300

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Love Effects the Union of the Soul with God in Prayer.
287

31 Pages 301-310

▲back to top


31.1 Page 301

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of the Various Degrees of the Holy Union Which Is Made in P…
CHAPTER II.
OF THE VARIOUS DEGREES OF THE HOLY UNION WHICH IS MADE IN
PRAYER.
Sometimes the union is made without our co-operation, save only by a simple following
286
(suite), permitting ourselves to be united to the divine goodness without resistance, as a
little child, in love with its mother's breasts, and yet so feeble that it cannot move itself towards
them, nor cleave to them when there; only it is—Ah! so happy, to be taken and drawn
within its mother's arms, and to be pressed by her to her bosom.
Sometimes we co-operate, when, being drawn, we willingly run,312 to second the force
of God's goodness which draws us and clasps us to him by love.
Sometimes we seem to begin to join and fasten ourselves to God before he joins himself
to us, because we feel the action of the union on our part, without perceiving what God is
doing on his side, who, however, there is no doubt, always acts first on us, though we do
not always perceive his action: for unless he united himself to us we should never unite
ourselves to him; he always chooses and lays hold of us, before we choose or lay hold of him.
But when, following his imperceptible attractions, we begin to unite ourselves to him, he
sometimes makes the continuation of our union, assisting our weakness, and joining himself
perceptibly to us, insomuch that we feel him enter and penetrate our hearts with an incom-
parable sweetness. And sometimes also, as he drew us insensibly to the union, he continues
insensibly to aid and assist us. And we know not indeed how so great a union is made, yet
know we well that our forces are not able to make it, wherefore we justly argue that some
secret power is working insensibly in us: as skippers with a cargo of iron perceiving their
ships move apace with a very light breeze, know that they are near mountains of loadstone,
which draw them imperceptibly, and thus they perceive a sensible and perceptible advance-
ment caused by an insensible and imperceptible means. For so when we see our spirit unite
itself ever closer and closer to God, during the little efforts which our will makes, we rightly
judge that we have too little wind to sail so fast, and that it must needs be that the loadstone
of our souls draws us by the secret influence of his grace: which he would leave imperceptible,
287
that it may be more admirable, and that undistracted by the sense of his drawings, we may
with more purity and simplicity be occupied in uniting ourselves to his goodness.
Sometimes this union is made so insensibly that our heart neither perceives the divine
operation in her, nor yet her own co-operation, but finds simply the union itself insensibly
effected, like Jacob, who found himself married to Lia without thinking of it: or rather, like
another Samson, but more happy, the heart finds itself netted and tied in the bands of holy
union, without having ever perceived it.
312 Cant. i. 3.
288

31.2 Page 302

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of the Various Degrees of the Holy Union Which Is Made in P…
At other times we feel the embraces, the union being made by sensible actions as well
on God's side, as on ours.
Sometimes the union is made by the will only, and in the will only; and sometimes the
understanding has its part therein, because the will draws it after it and applies it to its object,
making it take a special pleasure in being fastened down to the consideration thereof; as we
see that love causes in our corporal eyes a profound and special attention, to rivet them on
the sight of what we love.
Sometimes this union is made by all the faculties of the soul, which gather about the
will, not to be united to God themselves, not being all capable of it, but to give more con-
venience to the will to make its union; for if the other faculties were applied each to its
proper object, the soul working in them, could not so perfectly give herself to the action by
which the union with God is made. Such is the variety of unions.
Look at S. Martial (for he was, they say, the blessed child mentioned in S. Mark): Our
Saviour took him, lifted him up, and held him for a good while in his arms. O lovely little
Martial, how happy thou art to be laid hold of, taken up and carried, to be united, joined
and clasped to the heavenly bosom of our Saviour, and kissed with his sacred mouth, without
any co-operation of thine, save that thou didst not resist the receiving of those divine caresses!
On the contrary, S. Simeon embraces our Saviour, and clasps him to his bosom, our Saviour
giving no sign of co-operating in this union, though, as the holy Church sings: "The old
man carried the child, but the child was governing the old man." S. Bonaventure, touched
288
with a holy humility, did not only not unite himself to our Saviour, but withdrew himself
from his real presence, that is, from the holy sacrament of the altar, when, hearing Mass one
day, our Saviour came to unite himself with him, bringing him his holy sacrament. But this
union being made,—Ah! Theotimus, think with what fervour this holy soul locked his Saviour
in his heart! On the contrary S. Catharine of Siena ardently desiring our Saviour in the holy
communion, pressing and advancing her soul and affection towards him—he came and
joined himself unto her, entering into her mouth with a thousand benedictions. So that our
Saviour began the union with S. Bonaventure, and S. Catharine seemed to begin that which
she had with her Saviour. The sacred spouse in the Canticles speaks as having practised both
sorts of unions. I to my beloved, and his turning is towards me:313 which is as much as if she
had said: I am united to my dear love, and he likewise turns towards me, to the end that
uniting himself more and more unto me he may become wholly mine. A bundle of myrrh
is my beloved to me, he shall abide between my breasts.314 My soul, says David, hath stuck
close to thee: thy right hand hath received me.315 But in another place she confesses that she
313 Cant. vii. 10.
314 Cant. i. 12.
315 Ps. lxii. 9.
289

31.3 Page 303

▲back to top


Chapter II. Of the Various Degrees of the Holy Union Which Is Made in P…
is first taken, saying: My beloved to me and I to him.316 We make a holy union, by which he
joins himself to me and I join myself to him. And yet to show that the whole union is ever
made by God's grace, which draws us unto it, and by its attractions moves our soul and an-
imates the movement of our union towards him, she cries out, as being wholly powerless:
Draw me: yet to testify that she will not let herself be drawn as a stone or a galley-slave, but
that on her side she will concur and will mingle her feeble movements with the mighty
drawings of her lover: We will run after thee, she says, to the odour of thy ointments.317 And
to make it known that if she is strongly drawn by the will, all the powers of the soul will
make towards the union: Draw me, says she, and we will run; the spouse draws but one, and
many run to the union. It is the will only that God desires, but all the other powers run after
289
it to be united to God with it.
To this union the divine Shepherd of souls provoked his dear Sulamitess. Put me, says
he, as a seal upon thy heart, as a seal upon thy arm.318 To impress properly a signet upon
wax, one not only applies it, but presses it hard down: so he desires that we should be united
unto him by a union so strict and close, that we should remain marked with his seal.
The charity of Christ presses us.319 O God! what an example of excellent union! He was
united to our human nature by grace, as a vine to its elm, to make it in some sort participate
in his fruit; but seeing this union undone by Adam's sin, he made another more close and
pressing union in the Incarnation, whereby human nature remains for ever joined in per-
sonal unity to the Divinity; and to the end that not human nature only, but that every man
might be intimately united with his goodness, he instituted the Sacrament of the most holy
Eucharist, in which every one may participate, to unite his Saviour to himself really and by
way of food. Theotimus, this sacramental union urges and aids us towards the spiritual, of
which we speak.
316 Cant. ii. 16.
317 Cant. i. 3.
318 Cant. viii. 6.
319 2 Cor. v. 14.
290

31.4 Page 304

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Sovereign Degree of Union by Suspension and Ravishm…
CHAPTER III.
OF THE SOVEREIGN DEGREE OF UNION BY SUSPENSION AND RAVISHMENT.
Whether, therefore, the union of our soul with God be made perceptibly or imperceptibly,
God is always the author thereof; for none can be united to him, but by going unto him,
nor can any one go unto him, unless he be drawn by him, as the heavenly lover testifies,
saying: No man can come to me, except the Father, who hath sent me, draw him.320 Which
his holy spouse also protests, saying: Draw me; we will run after thee to the odour of thy
ointments.321
Now the perfection of this union consists in two points; in being pure, and in being
strong. May I not approach a person to speak to him, to see him better, to obtain something
of him, to smell the perfumes which are about him, to lean on him? And then I certainly go
towards him and join myself unto him: yet the approach and union is not my principal in-
tention, and I only make this a means and way to the obtaining of another thing. But if I
approach and join myself to him for no other end than to be near him, and to enjoy this
proximity and union, it is then an approach of pure and simple union.
Thus many approach our Saviour: some to hear him as Magdalen; some to be cured by
him, as she that had the issue of blood; others to adore him, as the three kings; others to
serve him, as Martha; others to overcome their unbelief, as S. Thomas; others to embalm
him, as Magdalen, Joseph, Nicodemus; but his divine Sulamitess seeks him to find him, and
having found him, desires no other thing than to hold him fast, and holding him, never to
quit him. I held him, says she, and will not let him go.322 Jacob, says S. Bernard, having fast
hold of God, will let him go, provided he receive his benediction; but the Sulamitess will
not let him depart for all the benedictions he can give her; for she wills not the benedictions
of God, but the God of benedictions, saying with David: What have I in heaven, and besides
thee what do I desire upon earth? Thou art the God of my heart, and the God that is my portion
for ever.323
Thus was the glorious Mother at the foot of her Son's cross. Ah! what dost thou seek,
O Mother of life, on this mount of Calvary, in this place of death? I am seeking, would she
have said, my child, who is the life of my life. And why dost thou seek him? To be close by
him. But now he is amidst the sorrows of death. Ah! it is not joy I seek, it is himself, and my
heart, full of love, makes me seek alway to be united to that amiable child, my tenderly beloved
one. In a word, the intention of the soul in this union is nothing, save to be with her lover.
290
291
320 John vi. 44.
321 Cant. i. 3.
322 Cant. iii. 4.
323 Ps. lxxii. 25, 26.
291

31.5 Page 305

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Sovereign Degree of Union by Suspension and Ravishm…
But when the union of the soul with God is most specially strict and close, it is called
by theologians inhesion or adhesion, because by it the soul is caught up, fastened, glued and
affixed to the divine majesty, so that she cannot easily loose or draw herself back again. Re-
gard, I pray you, that man caught and pressed by attention to the delight of an harmonious
music, or mayhap (which is extravagant) to the folly of a game at cards: you would draw
him from it, but cannot; what business soever is waiting for him at home, there is no forcing
him thence; even meat and drink are forgotten for it. O God! Theotimus, how much more
ought the soul which is in love with its God to be held and fast locked, being united to the
divinity of the infinite sweetness, and taken and wholly possessed by this object of incom-
parable perfections? Such was the soul of the great vessel of election who cried out: That I
may live to God, with Christ I am nailed to the Cross:324 and he protests that nothing, no
not death itself can separate him from his master. This effect of love was also produced
between David and Jonathan, for it is said that: The soul of Jonathan was knit with the soul
of David.325 And it is an axiom celebrated amongst the ancient Fathers, that friendship
which can end was never true friendship, as I have said elsewhere.
See, I beseech you, Theotimus, this little child cleaving to the breast and neck of his
mother; if one offer to take him thence to lay him in his cradle, it being high time, he struggles
and disputes as far as he is able, in order not to leave that beloved bosom, and if he is made
to let go with one hand, with the other he grapples, and if he is carried quite off, he falls a
weeping; and keeping his heart and his eyes where he cannot keep his body, he continues
crying out for his dear mother, till by rocking he is brought to sleep. So the soul who by the
exercise of union has come as far as to be taken and fastened to the divine goodness, can
hardly be drawn from it save by force and with much pain. It is not possible to make her
loose hold; if one divert her imagination she ceases not to keep hold by her understanding,
and if one loose her understanding she cleaves by the will; or if by some violent distraction
292
one make her abandon it with her will, she turns back every instant towards her dear object,
from which she cannot be entirely untied, but, striving all she can to link together again the
sweet bonds of her union with him by the frequent returns which she makes, as by stealth,
she experiences S. Paul's distress:326 for she is pressed with two desires; to be freed from all
exterior employment in order to remain with Jesus Christ in her interior, and yet to proceed
to the work of obedience which the very union with Jesus Christ teaches her to be necessary.
Now the Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa says excellently, that when union arrives at this
perfection of keeping us held by and fastened to our Saviour, it is not distinguished from a
rapture, trance, or suspension of the spirit; but that it is called only union, trance or suspen-
324 Gal. ii. 19.
325 1 Kings xviii. 1
326 Phil. i. 23.
292

31.6 Page 306

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Sovereign Degree of Union by Suspension and Ravishm…
sion, when it is short; and when it is long, ecstasy or rapture, because the soul which is so
firmly and closely united to her God that she cannot easily be drawn from him, is actually
no longer in herself but in God; as a crucified body belongs not to itself but to the cross, and
as ivy which grasps a wall, is no longer its own, but of the wall.
But to avoid all ambiguity, know, Theotimus, that charity is a bond, and a bond of per-
fection;327 and he that has more charity is more closely united and fastened unto God. But
we have not been speaking of that union which is permanent in us by manner of habit,
whether we be sleeping or waking, but of the union made by action, and which is one of the
exercises of love and charity. Imagine then that S. Paul, S. Denis, S. Augustine, S. Bernard,
S. Francis, SS. Catharine of Genoa and Siena, are again in this world, and have fallen asleep,
wearied with their many labours, undertaken for the love of God. Represent to yourself on
the other side some good soul, yet not so holy as they are, who is in the prayer of union at
the same time: I ask you, Theotimus, who is more united, clasped and fastened to God,—is
it these great saints who sleep, or that soul who prays? Without doubt, these admirable
lovers; for they have more charity, and their affections, though in some sort asleep, are so
engaged and tied to their master that they cannot be separated from him. But, you will say
293
to me, how can it be, that a soul in the prayer of union, even unto ecstasy, should be less
united unto God than such as sleep, be they never so saintly? Mark what I tell you, Theotimus;
that soul is more advanced in the exercise of union, those in the union itself: these are united,
they are not being united, as they are asleep: and that one is being united, that is, she is in
the actual practice and exercise of union.
For the rest, this exercise of union with God may even be practised by short and passing,
yet frequent, movements of our heart to God, by way of ejaculatory prayer made for this
intention. Ah Jesus! Who will give me the grace to be one spirit with thee! At last, Lord, re-
jecting the multiplicity of creatures, I desire thine only unity! O God, thou art the only one
and only unity necessary for my soul! Alas! dear love of my heart, unite my poor one soul,
to thy one singular goodness! Ah! thou art wholly mine, when shall I be wholly thine? The
adamant draws and unites iron unto it; O Lord, my lover, be my draw-heart, clasp, press
and unite my heart for ever unto thy fatherly breast! Ah! since I am made for thee, why am
I not in thee? Swallow up, as a single drop, this spirit which thou hast bestowed upon me,
into the sea of thy goodness from whence it proceeds. Ah Lord! seeing that thy heart loves
me, why does it not force me to itself, since I truly will it? Draw me, and I will run after thy
drawings, to cast myself into thy fatherly arms, to leave them no more for ever and ever.
Amen.
327 Col. iii. 14.
293

31.7 Page 307

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Rapture, and of the First Species of It.
CHAPTER IV.
OF RAPTURE, AND OF THE FIRST SPECIES OF IT.
An ecstasy is called a rapture inasmuch as God does thereby rapt us, and raise us up to
himself, and a rapture is termed an ecstasy, because by it we go and remain out of, and
294
above, ourselves, to be united to God. And although the attractions by which God draws us
be admirably pleasing, sweet and delicious, yet on account of the force which the divine
beauty and goodness have to draw unto them the attention and application of the spirit, it
seems that it not only raises us but that it ravishes and bears us away. As, on the contrary,
by reason of the most free consent and ardent motion, by which the ravished soul goes out
after the divine attractions, she seems not only to mount and rise, but also to break out of
herself and cast herself into the very divinity. Similarly the soul may be ravished out of itself
by the infamous ecstasy of sensual pleasure, by which however it is not raised up, but is de-
graded below itself.
But, my dear Theotimus, as to sacred ecstasies, they are of three kinds; the one of them
belongs to the understanding, another to the affection, and the third to action. The one is
in splendour, the other in fervour, the third in works: the one is made by admiration, the
other by devotion, and the third by operation. Admiration is caused in us by the meeting
with a new truth, which we neither knew, nor yet expected to know; and if the new truth
we meet with be accompanied by beauty and goodness, the admiration which proceeds from
it is very delicious. So the Queen of Saba finding more true wisdom in Solomon than she
had imagined, became filled with admiration. And the Jews, acknowledging in our Saviour
more knowledge than they could ever have believed, were taken with a great admiration.
When therefore it pleases the divine goodness to illuminate our heart with some special
light, whereby it is raised to an extraordinary and sublime contemplation of heavenly mys-
teries, then, discovering more beauty in them than it could have imagined, it falls into ad-
miration.
Now admiration of things that cause pleasure closely fixes and glues the spirit to the
thing admired, as well by reason of the excellent beauty which it causes to be found therein,
295
as by the novelty of this excellence, the understanding being unable to delight itself enough
in seeing what it never saw before, and what is so agreeable to the view. Sometimes also be-
sides this, God imparts to the soul a light not only clear but growing, like the daybreak; and
then, as those who have found a gold-mine continually break more earth, ever to find more
of the wished-for metal, so the understanding ever buries itself deeper and deeper in the
consideration and admiration of its divine object: for even as admiration has produced
philosophy, and the attentive study of natural things, so it has also caused contemplation
and mystical theology; and as this admiration when it is strong, keeps us out of ourselves
and above ourselves by a lively attention and application of our understanding to heavenly
things, it carries us consequently into ecstasy.
294

31.8 Page 308

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Rapture, and of the First Species of It.
295

31.9 Page 309

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Second Species of Rapture.
CHAPTER V.
OF THE SECOND SPECIES OF RAPTURE.
God draws men's spirits unto him by his sovereign beauty and incomprehensible goodness,
which two excellences are however but one supreme divinity, at once most singularly
beautiful and good. Every thing is done for the good and for the beautiful, all things look
towards them, are moved and stayed by them. The good and beautiful are desirable, agreeable,
and dear to all, for them all things do and will whatsoever they do and will. And as for the
beautiful, because it draws and recalls all things to itself, the Greeks give it a name which
signifies recalling.328
In like manner, as to good, its true image is light, especially because light collects, reduces
and turns all things towards itself, whence the sun is named amongst the Greeks from a
word329 which shows that its influence causes all things to be drawn together and united,
bringing together things dispersed; as goodness turns all things unto itself, being not only
the sovereign unity, but sovereignly unitive, since all things desire it, as their principle, their
296
preservation and their last end. So that in conclusion, the good and the beautiful is but one
and the same thing, because all things desire the good and the beautiful.
This discourse, Theotimus, is almost entirely composed of the words of the divine S.
Denis the Areopagite; and certainly it is true that the sun, the source of corporeal light, is
the true image of the good and the beautiful; for amongst merely corporeal creatures there
is neither goodness nor beauty equal to that of the sun. Now the beauty and goodness of
the sun consist in his light, without which nothing would be beautiful, nothing good, in this
corporeal world. As beautiful he illuminates all, as good he heats and quickens all: insomuch
as he is beautiful and bright, he draws unto himself all seeing eyes in the world; insomuch
as he is good and gives heat, he gains unto himself all the appetites and inclinations of the
corporeal world. For he extracts and draws up the exhalations and vapours, he draws and
makes rise from their originals plants and living creatures; nor is there any production to
which the vital heat of this great luminary does not contribute. So God, Father of all light,
sovereignly good and beautiful, draws our understanding by his beauty to contemplate him,
and draws our will by his goodness to love him. As beautiful, replenishing our understanding
with delight, he pours his love into our wills; as good, filling our wills with his love, he excites
our understanding to contemplate him,—love provoking us to contemplation, and contem-
plation to love: whence it follows that ecstasies and raptures depend wholly on love, for it
is love that carries the understanding to contemplation and the will to union: so that, finally,
we must conclude with the great S. Denis, that divine love is ecstatic, not permitting lovers
328 τὸ καλόν [Tr.]
329 ἥλιος [Tr.]
296

31.10 Page 310

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Second Species of Rapture.
to live to themselves, but to the thing beloved: for which cause the admirable Apostle S.
Paul, being possessed of this divine love, and participating in its ecstatic power, said with
divinely inspired mouth: I live, now not I, but Christ liveth in me.330 As a true lover gone
out of himself into God, he lived now not his own life, but the life of his beloved, as being
297
sovereignly to be loved.
Now this rapture of love happens in the will thus. God touches it with the attractions
of his sweetness, and then, as the needle touched by the loadstone turns and moves towards
the pole, forgetful of its insensible condition, so the will touched with heavenly love moves
forward and advances itself towards God, leaving all its earthly inclinations, and by this
means enters into a rapture, not of knowledge, but of fruition; not of admiration but of af-
fection; not of science but of experience; not of sight but of taste and relish. It is true, as I
have already signified, the understanding enters sometimes into admiration, seeing the
sacred delight which the will takes in her ecstasy, as the will often takes pleasure to perceive
the understanding in admiration, so that these two faculties interchange their ravishments;
the view of beauty making us love it, and the love thereof making us view it. Rarely is a man
warmed by the sunbeams without being illuminated, or illuminated without being warmed.
Love easily makes us admire, and admiration easily makes us love. Still the two ecstasies, of
the understanding and of the will, are not so essential to one another that the one may not
very often be without the other; for as philosophers have had more knowledge than love of
the Creator, so good Christians often have more love than knowledge, and consequently
exceeding knowledge is not always followed by exceeding love, as I have remarked elsewhere.
Now if the ecstasy of admiration be alone, we are not made better by it, according to what
he said of it who had been lifted up in ecstasy into the third heaven. If I should know, said
he, all mysteries, and all knowledge,—and have not charity, I am nothing;331 and therefore
the evil spirit can put into an ecstasy, if we may so say, and ravish the understanding by
proposing unto it wonders which hold it suspended and elevated above its natural forces,
and further, by such lights he can give the will some kind of vain, soft, tender and imperfect
love, by way of sensible complacency, satisfaction and consolation. But to give the true ecstasy
of the will, whereby it is solely and powerfully joined unto the divine goodness, appertains
298
only to that sovereign Spirit by whom the charity of God is spread abroad in our hearts.332
330 Gal. ii. 20
331 1 Cor. xiii. 2.
332 Rom. v. 5.
297

32 Pages 311-320

▲back to top


32.1 Page 311

▲back to top


Of the Signs of Good Rapture, and of the Third Species of the Same.
CHAPTER VI.
OF THE SIGNS OF GOOD RAPTURE, AND OF THE THIRD SPECIES OF THE
SAME.
Indeed, Theotimus, there have been many in our age who believed, and others with them,
that they were very frequently ravished by God in ecstasy, and yet in the end it was discovered
that all were but diabolical illusions and operations. A certain priest in S. Augustine's time
put himself into ecstasies whenever he pleased, singing or getting sung certain mournful
and melancholy airs, and this only to content the curiosity of those who desired to view this
spectacle. But what is most wonderful is, that his ecstasy went so far that he did not feel fire
which was applied to him, till after he was come to himself; and yet if any one spoke somewhat
loudly, and with a clear voice, he heard them as if from afar, and he had no respiration. The
philosophers themselves acknowledged certain species of natural ecstasies, caused by a
vehement application of the spirit to the consideration of high things: wherefore we must
not think it strange if the devil, to play the ape, to beguile souls, to scandalize the weak, and
to transform himself into an angel of light, cause raptures in certain souls who are not solidly
instructed in solid piety.
To the end, then, that one might discern divine ecstasies from human and diabolical,
God's servants have left many teachings: but for my part, it will suffice for my purpose to
propose to you two marks of the good and holy ecstasy. The one is, that sacred ecstasy
never so much takes and affects the understanding as it does the will, which it moves, warms
299
and fills with a powerful affection towards God. So that, if the ecstasy be more beautiful
than good, more bright than warm, more speculative than affective, it is very doubtful, and
deserving of suspicion. I do not say that one may not have raptures, yea prophetical visions,
without charity: for, as I know well one may have charity without being ravished, or
prophesying, so one may also be ravished and may prophesy without having charity: but I
affirm that he who in his rapture has more light in the understanding to admire God, than
heat in the will to love him, is to stand upon his guard; for it is to be feared that this ecstasy
may be false, and may rather puff up the spirit than edify it, putting him indeed as Saul,
Balaam, and Caiphas, amongst the prophets, yet still leaving him amongst the reprobate.
The second mark of true ecstasy consists in the third species of ecstasy which we men-
tioned above, an ecstasy all holy, all worthy of love, the crown of the two others,—the ecstasy
of act and life. The entire observance of God's commandments is not within the bounds of
human strength, yet is it within the stretch of the instinct of the human spirit, as being most
conformable to natural light and reason: so that living according to God's commandments,
we are not therefore outside our natural inclination. Yet besides God's commandments,
there are certain heavenly inspirations to the effecting of which it is not only requisite that
God should raise us above our own strength, but also that he should draw us above our
natural instincts and inclinations, because although these inspirations are not opposite to
298

32.2 Page 312

▲back to top


Of the Signs of Good Rapture, and of the Third Species of the Same.
human reason, yet they exceed it, surpass it, and are placed above it, so that then we live not
only a civil, honest, and Christian life, but a supernatural, spiritual, devout and ecstatic life,
that is, a life which is in every way beyond and above our natural condition.
Not to steal, not to lie, not to commit impurity, to pray to God, not to swear in vain, to
love and honour one's father, not to kill,—is to live according to man's natural reason: but
to forsake all our goods, to love poverty, to call her and to consider her a most delightful
mistress, to repute reproaches, contempts, abjections, persecutions, martyrdoms, as felicities
and beatitudes, to contain oneself within the terms of a most absolute chastity, and in fine
300
to live, amidst the world and in this mortal life, contrary to all the opinions and maxims of
the world, and against the current of the river of this life, by habitual resignations, renunci-
ations, and abnegatioris of ourselves;—this is not to live in ourselves, but out of and above
ourselves; and because no one is able to go out of himself in this manner above himself unless
the eternal Father draw him, hence it is that this kind of life is a perpetual rapture, and a
continual ecstasy of action and operation.
You are dead, said the great Apostle to the Colossians, and your life is hid with Christ
in God.333 Death's effect is that the soul no longer lives in its body nor in the limits thereof.
What then do these words of the Apostle mean, Theotimus: you are dead? it is as though
he said: you no longer live in yourselves nor in the limits of your natural condition; your
soul does not now live according to herself but above herself. The true nature of the phoenix
lies in this, that by the help of the sunbeams, she annihilates her own life, to have a life more
desirable and vigorous, hiding, as it were, her life under ashes. Silkworms change their being,
and from worms become butterflies; bees are born worms, then become nymphs crawling
on their feet, and at last they become flying bees. We do the same, Theotimus, if we are
spiritual: for we forsake our natural life to live a more eminent life above ourselves, hiding
all this new life in God with Jesus Christ, who alone sees, knows and bestows it. Our new
life is heavenly love, which quickens and animates our soul, and this love is wholly hidden
in God and divine things with Jesus Christ: for since (as the sacred Gospel text says), after
our Saviour had shown himself for a little to his disciples as he rose up to heaven, thither
above, he was at length environed with a cloud which took him and hid him from their
view,—therefore Jesus Christ is hidden in heaven in God. Now Jesus Christ is our love, and
our love is the life of our soul: therefore our life is hidden in God with Jesus Christ; and when
Jesus Christ, who is our love, and consequently our spiritual life, shall appear, in the day of
301
Judgment, we also shall appear with him in glory; that is, Jesus Christ our love will glorify
us, communicating to us his felicity and splendour.
333 Col. iii. 3.
299

32.3 Page 313

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How Love Is the Life of the Soul, and Continuation of the Discourse…
CHAPTER VII.
HOW LOVE IS THE LIFE OF THE SOUL, AND CONTINUATION OF THE DIS-
COURSE ON THE ECSTATIC LIFE.
The soul is the first act and principle of all the vital movements of man, and, as Aristotle
expresses it, the principle whereby we live, feel and understand: whence it follows, that we
know the different kinds of life from the difference of movements; so much so, indeed, that
animals when entirely without movement are entirely without life. Even so, Theotimus, love
is the first act or principle of our devout or spiritual life, by which we live, feel and move:
and our spiritual life is such as the movements of our love are, and a heart that has no
movement nor affection, has no love; as on the contrary a heart possessed of love is not
without affective movement. As soon therefore as we have set our affection upon Jesus
Christ, we have consequently placed in him our spiritual life. But he is now hidden in God
in heaven, as God was hidden in him while he was here below. Our life therefore is hidden
in him, and when he shall appear in glory, our life and our love shall likewise appear with
him in God. Hence S. Ignatius (Martyr) as S. Denis relates, said that his love was crucified,
as though he would say: my natural and human love, with all the passions that depend on
it, is nailed to the cross; I have put it to death as a mortal love, which made my heart live a
mortal life; and as my Saviour was crucified and died according to his mortal life, so did I
die with him upon the cross according to my natural love, which was the mortal life of my
soul, to the end that I might rise again to the supernatural life of a love which, because it
can be exercised in heaven, is consequently also immortal.
302
When therefore we see a soul that has raptures in prayer, by which she goes out from
and mounts above herself in God, and yet has no ecstasy in her life, that is, leads not a life
elevated and united to God, by abnegation of worldly concupiscences, by mortification of
natural wills and inclinations, by an interior sweetness, simplicity, humility, and above all
by a continual charity;—believe, Theotimus, that all these raptures are exceedingly doubtful
and dangerous; these are raptures fit to stir up men to admiration, but not to sanctify them.
For what can it profit the soul to be ravished unto God by prayer, while in her life and con-
versation she is ravished by earthly, base and natural affections; to be above herself in
prayer and below herself in life and operation, to be angelic in meditation and brutish in
conversation? It is to halt on two sides,334 to swear by the Lord and swear by Melchom.335
In a word it is a true mark that such raptures and ecstasies are but operations and deceits
of the evil spirit. Blessed are they who live a superhuman and ecstatic life, raised above
themselves, though they may not be ravished above themselves in prayer. There are many
saints in heaven who were never in ecstasy or rapture of contemplation. For how many
334 3 Kings xviii. 21.
335 Soph. i. 5.
300

32.4 Page 314

▲back to top


Chapter VII. How Love Is the Life of the Soul, and Continuation of the Discourse…
martyrs and great saints do we see in history never to have had other privilege in prayer
than that of devotion and fervour. But there was never saint who had not the ecstasy and
rapture of life and operation, overcoming himself and his natural inclinations.
And who sees not, I pray you, Theotimus, that it is the ecstasy of life and operation that
the great Apostle principally speaks of when he says: I live now, not I, but Christ liveth in
me;336 for he himself explains it in other terms to the Romans, saying that: Our old man is
crucified with him,337 that we are dead to sin with him, and that we are also risen with him
to walk in newness of life, that we may serve sin no longer. Behold, Theotimus, how two men
are represented in each of us, and consequently two lives; the one of the old man, which is
an old life; like, they say, the eagle's, which having grown into old age can but drag its wings
303
along, and is unable to take flight: the other is the life of the new man, which also is a new
life, like that of the eagle, which, being disburdened of its old feathers, now shaken off into
the sea, takes new ones, and having grown young again, flies in the newness of its strength.
In the first life we live according to the old man, that is, according to the failings,
weaknesses and infirmities contracted by the sin of our first father, Adam; and therefore we
live to Adam's sin, and our life is a mortal life, yea death itself. In the second life we live ac-
cording to the new man, that is, according to the graces, favours, ordinances and wills of
our Saviour, and consequently, we live to salvation and redemption, and this new life is a
lively, living and life-giving life. But whosoever would attain the new life, must make his
way by the death of the old, crucifying his flesh with the vices and concupiscences338 thereof,
burying it under the waters of holy baptism or penance: as Naaman drowned and buried in
the waters of Jordan his leprous and infected old life, to live a new, sound, and spotless life;
for one might well have said of him, that he was not now the old, leprous, corrupt, infected
Naaman, but a new, clean, sound, and honourable Naaman, because he was dead to leprosy
and was living to health and cleanness.
Now whosoever is raised up again to this new life of our Saviour, neither lives to himself,
nor for himself, but to his Saviour, in his Saviour, and for his Saviour. So you also reckon,
says S. Paul, that you are dead to sin but alive unto God, in Christ Jesus our Lord.339
336 Gal. ii. 20.
337 Rom. vi. 6.
338 Gal. v. 24.
339 Rom. vi. 11
301

32.5 Page 315

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. An Admirable Exhortation of S. Paul to the Ecstatic and Superhuman…
CHAPTER VIII.
AN ADMIRABLE EXHORTATION OF S. PAUL TO THE ECSTATIC AND SUPER-
HUMAN LIFE.
But finally, methinks S. Paul makes the most forcible, pressing and admirable argument
that ever was made, to urge us all to the ecstasy and rapture of life and operation. Hear,
Theotimus, I beseech you; be attentive and weigh the force and efficacy of the ardent and
heavenly words of this Apostle, ravished and transported with the love of his Master.
Speaking then of himself (and the like is to be said of everyone), the charity, says he, of Christ
presseth us.340 Yes, Theotimus, nothing so much presses man's heart as love; if a man know
that he is beloved, be it by whom it may, he is pressed to love in his turn. But if a common
man be beloved by a great lord, he is much more pressed; and if by a great monarch, how
much more yet? And now, I pray you, knowing well that Jesus Christ, the true eternal God
omnipotent, has loved us even to suffering death for us, and the death of the cross is——not
this, O my dear Theotimus, to have our hearts under the press, and to feel them strongly
pressed, and to feel love pressed out of them by violence and constraint, which is so much
the more violent by how much it is more lovable and beloved! But how does this divine
lover press us? The charity of Christ presseth us, says his holy Apostle, judging this. What
means that judging this? It means that our Saviour's charity presses us then especially when
we judge, consider, ponder, meditate, and attend to, the resolution of this question which
faith gives. And what resolution? Mark, my good Theotimus, how he proceeds, graving,
fixing and stamping his conception on our hearts. Judging this, says he; and what? That if
one died for all, then all were dead, and Jesus Christ died for all. It is true, indeed: if one Jesus
Christ died for all, all then are dead in the person of this only Saviour who died for them,
and his death is to be imputed unto them, since it was endured for them and in consideration
of them.
But what follows from this? Methinks I hear that apostolic mouth, as with a peal of
thunder startling the ears of our hearts! That follows then, O Christians, which Jesus Christ
dying for us desired of us. And what did he desire of us but that we should be conformed
unto him, to the end, says the Apostle, that those who live may not now live to themselves,
but unto him who died for them, and rose again. True God! Theotimus, how powerful a
consequence is this in the matter of love! Jesus Christ died for us; by his death he has given
us life; we only live because he died; he died for us, as ours, and in us; our life then is no
more ours, but his who has purchased it for us by his death: we are therefore no more to
live to ourselves but to him, nor in ourselves but in him, nor for ourselves but for him. A
maiden of the Isle of Sestos had brought up a young eagle with the care children are wont
to bestow upon such affairs; the eagle being come to its full growth began little by little to
304
305
340 2 Cor. v. 14.
302

32.6 Page 316

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. An Admirable Exhortation of S. Paul to the Ecstatic and Superhuman…
fly and to chase birds, according to its natural instinct; then getting more strength it seized
upon wild beasts, never failing faithfully to take home the prey to its dear mistress, as in
acknowledgment of the bringing up which it had had from her. Now it happened upon a
day that this young damsel died, while the poor eagle was on the hunt, and her body, accord-
ing to the custom of that time and country, was publicly placed upon the funeral pile to be
burnt; when even as the flame began to seize upon her the eagle came up with strong and
eager flight, and, when it beheld this unlooked-for and sad spectacle, pierced with grief, it
opened its talons, let fall its prey, and spread itself upon its poor beloved mistress; and cov-
ering her with its wings, as it were to defend her from the fire, or for pity's sake to embrace
her, it remained there constant and immovable, courageously dying and burning with her;
the ardour of its affection not giving way to flames and ardours of fire, that so it might become
the victim and holocaust of its brave and prodigious love, as its mistress was of death and
fire.
O Theotimus! To what a high flight this eagle moves us! Our Saviour has bred us up
from our tender youth, yea he formed us and received us as a loving nurse into the arms of
his divine Providence, even from the instant of our conception.
Not being yet, thy holy hand did make me;
Scarce born, into thy arms thy love did take me.
306
He made us his own by Baptism, and tenderly nourishes both our soul and our body with
an incomprehensible love; to purchase us life he suffered death, he has fed us with his own
flesh and blood. Ah! what remains then, my dear Theotimus, what conclusion are we to
draw from this, except that those who live should live no more to themselves but to him that
died for them: that is to say, that we should consecrate all the moments of our life to the divine
love of our Saviour's death, bringing home to his glory all our prey, all our conquests, all
our actions, all our thoughts, and all our affections. Let us behold him, Theotimus, this
heavenly Redeemer, extended upon the cross as upon a funeral pile of honour, where he
dies of love for us, yea of a love more dolorous than death itself, or a death more amorous
than love itself. Ah! why do we not spiritually cast ourselves upon him to die upon the cross
with him, who has truly willed to die for love of us? I will hold him, should we say, if we had
the eagle's generosity, and will never depart from him. I will die with him and burn in the
flames of his love, one and the same fire shall consume this divine Creator and his poor
creature. My Jesus is wholly mine, and I am wholly his: I will live and die upon his breast,
nor life nor death shall ever separate me from him. Thus then is made the holy ecstasy of
true love, when, we live not according to human reason and inclinations, but above them,
following the inspirations and instincts of the divine Saviour of our souls.
303

32.7 Page 317

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of the Supreme Effect of Affective Love, Which Is the Death…
CHAPTER IX.
OF THE SUPREME EFFECT OF AFFECTIVE LOVE, WHICH IS THE DEATH OF
THE LOVERS; AND FIRST, OF SUCH AS DIED IN LOVE.
Love is as strong as death.341 Death separates the soul of him who dies from the body, and
307
from all the things of the world; sacred love separates the soul of the lover from his body
and from all the things of the world: nor is there any other difference, saving that death does
that in effect, which love ordinarily does only in affection. I say ordinarily, Theotimus, be-
cause holy love is sometimes so violent that it even actually causes a separation between the
body and the soul; making the lovers die a most happy death, better than a hundred lives.
As it is the special character of the reprobate that they die in sin, so of the elect it is, that
they die in the love and grace of God. But still this happens in different ways. The just man
never dies unprovidedly; for to have persevered in Christian justice even to the end, is to
have well provided for death; but he does sometimes die of unexpected or sudden death.
For this cause the all-wise Church does not make us pray in her Litanies that we may simply
be delivered from sudden death, but from sudden and unprovided death. It is no worse for
being sudden, if it be not also unprovided. If weak and ordinary souls had seen the fire from
heaven fall upon the great S. Simeon Stylites's head and kill him, what would they have
thought but thoughts of scandal? Yet ought we to have no other thought than that this great
saint, having most perfectly immolated himself to God in his heart, and being already wholly
consumed with love, the fire came from heaven to perfect the holocaust and entirely consume
it; for the Abbot Julian, being a day's journey off, saw his soul ascend to heaven, and
thereupon caused incense to be offered in thanksgiving to God. The Blessed Homobonus
of Cremona, on a certain day hearing Mass on his knees with extreme devotion, rose not at
the Gospel according to custom, whence those that were about him, looked at him, and
perceived that he was dead. There have been in our time men most famous for virtue and
learning, found dead, some in a confessional, others while hearing a sermon: yea some have
been seen to fall down dead at their going out of the pulpit, where they had preached with
308
great fervour; and all these deaths were sudden, yet not unprovided. And how many good
people do we see die in apoplexy, in a lethargy, and a thousand other ways, very suddenly?
And others die in delirium and madness, out of the use of reason; and all these, together
with children who are baptized, die in grace and consequently in the love of God. But how
could they die in the love of God, since they did not even think of God at the time of their
departure?
Learned men, Theotimus, lose not their knowledge while they are asleep; otherwise they
would be unlearned at their awaking, and have to return to school. The like it is in all the
habits of prudence, temperance, faith, hope and charity; they are ever within the just man's
341 Cant. viii. 6.
304

32.8 Page 318

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of the Supreme Effect of Affective Love, Which Is the Death…
heart, though they are not always in action. While a man sleeps it seems that all his habits
sleep with him, and when he awakes awake with him; so a just man dying suddenly,
whether crushed by a house falling upon him, or killed by thunder, or stifled by an effusion
on the lungs, or dying out of his senses by the violence of a burning fever, dies not indeed
in the exercise of holy love, yet he dies in the habit thereof. Whereupon the wise man says:
The just man, if he be prevented with death, shall be in rest:342 for to obtain eternal life it
suffices to die in the state and habit of love and charity.
Many saints, however, have departed this life not only in charity and with the habit of
heavenly love, but even in the act and practice thereof. S. Augustine died in the exercise of
holy contrition, which cannot be without love: S. Jerome exhorting his dear children to the
love of God, of their neighbour, and of virtue: S. Ambrose in a rapture, sweetly discoursing
with his Saviour, immediately after he had received the holy Sacrament of the altar: S. Antony
of Padua after he had recited a hymn to the glorious Virgin-mother, and while talking joy-
ously with our Saviour: S. Thomas Aquinas joining his hands, elevating his eyes towards
heaven, raising his voice very high, and pronouncing by way of ejaculation with great fervour,
these words of the Canticles (the last which he had expounded): Come my beloved, let us go
forth into the field, let us abide in the villages.343 All the Apostles and almost all the Martyrs
309
died in prayer. The Blessed and Venerable Bede having foreknown by revelation the time
of his departure, went to Vespers (and it was Ascension day), and standing upright, leaning
only on the elbows of his stall, without any disease at all, ended his life at the same instant
that he ended his singing of Vespers, as it were directly to follow his Master ascending unto
heaven, there to enjoy the fair morning of eternity, which has no Vesper.344 John Gerson,
Chancellor of the University of Paris, a man so learned and pious that, as Sixtus Senensis
says, one can hardly discern whether his learning surpassed his piety, or his piety his learning,
having expounded the fifty properties of divine love mentioned in the Canticle of Canticles,
three days afterwards, having a face and heart full of life, expired pronouncing and repeating
many times, by way of ejaculatory prayer, these holy words, drawn out of the same Canticles:
O God! thy love is strong as death. S. Martin, as everyone knows, died so attentive to the
exercise of devotion, that more could not be. S. Louis, that great king amongst saints, and
great saint amongst kings, being struck with the plague, never ceased to pray; and then,
having received the divine Viaticum, spreading out his arms in form of a cross, his eyes
fixed upon heaven, yielded up the ghost, ardently sighing out these words with a perfect
confidence of love: I will come into thy house; I will worship towards thy holy temple and I
342 Wis. iv. 7.
343 Cant. vii. 11.
344 S. Francis's account of this blessed death is not strictly according to history. We cannot ascertain what
Life of Venerable Bede he used (Tr.).
305

32.9 Page 319

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of the Supreme Effect of Affective Love, Which Is the Death…
will give glory to thy name.345 S. Peter Celestine, being wholly steeped in cruel afflictions
which can scarce be described, having reached the end of his days, began to sing, as a sacred
swan, the last of the psalms, and ended his song and his life with these amorous words: Let
every spirit praise the Lord. The admirable S. Eusebia, surnamed the stranger, died on her
knees and in fervent prayer, S. Peter Martyr, writing with his finger and in his own blood
the confession of the faith for which he died, and uttering these words: Lord, into thy hands
I commend my spirit: and the great Apostle of the Japanese, S. Francis Xavier, holding and
310
kissing the image of the crucifix, and repeating at every kiss these ejaculations of his soul:
"O Jesus! the God of my heart!"
345 Pss. v. 8; cxxxvii. 2.
306

32.10 Page 320

▲back to top


Chapter X. Of Those Who Died by and for Divine Love.
CHAPTER X.
OF THOSE WHO DIED BY AND FOR DIVINE LOVE.
All the Martyrs, Theotimus, died for the love of God; for when we say that some of them
died for the faith, we mean not that they died for a dead faith, but for the living faith, that
is, quickened by charity. And again the confession of faith is not so much an act of the un-
derstanding and of faith, as an act of the will and of the love of God. And this is why the
great S. Peter, keeping the faith in his soul on the day of the passion, yet lost charity, refusing
in words to profess him to be his Master, whom in his heart he acknowledged to be such.
But there were yet other Martyrs who died expressly for charity alone, as our Saviour's great
Precursor, who was martyred for fraternal correction; and the glorious princes of the Apostles,
S. Peter and S. Paul, and particularly S. Paul, died for having reclaimed those women to a
pious and pure life whom the infamous Nero had led into sin. The holy Bishops Stanislaus
and Thomas of Canterbury were slain for a matter that touched not faith, but charity. In
fine a great part of the sacred Virgin-martyrs were slain for the zeal they had to preserve
their chastity, which charity had caused them to dedicate to their heavenly spouse.
But some sacred lovers so absolutely give themselves over to the exercises of divine love,
that this holy fire wastes and consumes their life. Grief does sometimes so long hinder the
afflicted from eating, drinking, or sleeping, that in the end weakened and wasted they die;
whence it is commonly said that such die of grief: but it is not so indeed; for they die through
failure of strength, and inanition. Yet since this failure came through grief, we must allow
311
that though they died not of grief, they died by reason of grief and by grief. So, my dear
Theotimus, when the fervour of holy love is great, it gives so many assaults to the heart, so
often wounds it, causes in it so many languors, melts it so habitually, and puts it so frequently
into ecstasies and raptures, that by this means, the soul, almost entirely occupied in God,
not being able to afford sufficient assistance to nature to effect digestion and nourish itself
properly, the animal and vital spirits begin little by little to fail, life is shortened, and death
takes place.
O God! Theotimus, how happy this death is! How delightful is this love-dart, which,
wounding us with the incurable wound of heavenly love, makes us for ever pining and sick,
with so strong a beating of the heart, that at length we must yield to death. How much, do
you think, did these sacred languors and labours undergone for charity, advance the days
of the divine lovers S. Catharine of Siena, S. Francis, young Stanislaus Kotska, S. Charles,
and many hundreds more who died so young? Verily, as for S. Francis, from the time that
he received the holy stigmata of his master, he had such violent and sharp pains, pangs,
convulsions and illnesses, that he became mere skin and bone, and he seemed rather to be
a skeleton, or a picture of death, than a man yet living and breathing.
307

33 Pages 321-330

▲back to top


33.1 Page 321

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Some of the Heavenly Lovers Died Also of Love.
CHAPTER XI.
HOW SOME OF THE HEAVENLY LOVERS DIED ALSO OF LOVE.
All the elect then, Theotimus, died in the habit of holy love; but further, some died even in
the exercise of it, others for this love, and others by this same love. But what belongs to the
sovereign degree of love is, that some die of love; and then it is that love not only wounds
the soul, so as to make her languish, but even pierces her through, delivering its blow right
in the middle of the heart, and so fatally, that it drives the soul out of the body;—which
happens thus. The soul, powerfully drawn by the divine sweetness of her beloved, to corres-
pond on her side with his sweet attractions, forcibly and to the best of her power springs
out towards this longed-for beloved who attracts her, and, not being able to draw her body
after her, rather than stay with it in this miserable life, she quits it and gets clear; flying alone,
as a fair dove, into the delicious bosom of her heavenly spouse. She throws herself upon her
beloved, and her beloved draws and ravishes her to himself. And as the bridegroom leaves
father and mother to cleave to his dearly beloved, so this chaste bride forsaketh the flesh to
unite herself to her beloved. Now this is the most violent effect of love in a soul, and one
which requires first a great offstripping of all such affections as keep the heart attached either
to the world or to the body, so that as fire, having by little and little separated an essence
from its mass, and wholly purified it, at length brings out the quintessence,—even so holy
love having withdrawn man's heart from all humours, inclinations, and passions, as far as
may be, does at length urge out the soul, to the end that by this death, precious in the divine
eyes, she may pass to eternal glory.
The great S. Francis, who in this subject of heavenly love ever returns before my eyes,
could not possibly escape dying by love, because of the manifold and great languors, ecstasies
and faintings which his love of God gave him; but besides this, God, who had set him forth
to the view of the whole world as a miracle of love, willed that he should not only die for
love but also of love. For consider, I beseech you, Theotimus, his death. Perceiving himself
upon the point of his departure, he caused himself to be laid naked upon the ground, where
having received as an alms a habit which they put on him, he discoursed to his brethren,
animating them to the love of God and the Church, had our Saviour's passion read, and
then with an extreme fervour began Psalm cxli.: I cried to the Lord with my voice; with my
voice I made supplication to the Lord; and having pronounced these last words: Bring my
soul out of prison, that I may praise thy name; the just wait for me, until thou reward me, he
died,—in his forty-fifth year. Who sees not, I beseech you, Theotimus, that this seraphical
man who had so earnestly desired to be martyred and to die for love, died in the end of love,
as in another place I have described?
S. Magdalen having for the space of thirty years lived in a cave which is yet to be seen
in Provence, having seven times each day bad raptures and been borne up in the air by angels,
as though she went to sing the seven canonical hours in their choir; in the end, upon a
312
313
308

33.2 Page 322

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Some of the Heavenly Lovers Died Also of Love.
Sunday, she came to Church, where her dear Bishop, S. Maximin, finding her in contempla-
tion, her eyes full of tears and her arms stretched out, communicated her, and soon afterwards
she delivered up her blessed soul, which once again, for good and all, went to her Saviour's
feet, to enjoy the better part, which she had already made choice of here below.
S. Basil had contracted a strict friendship with a physician, a Jew by nation and religion,
with the intention of bringing him to the faith of Jesus Christ, which nevertheless he could
not effect till such time as, worn out with fastings, watchings and labours, being upon the
point of dying, he inquired of the physician what opinion he had of him, conjuring him to
speak frankly. The physician did so, and having felt his pulse:—there is no further remedy,
said he; before the sun sets you will depart this life. But what will you say, replied the patient,
if to-morrow I shall be alive? I will become a Christian, I promise you, said the physician.
With this the saint prayed to God, and obtained a prolongation of his own temporal life,
for the good of his physician's spiritual life, who having seen this miracle was converted,
and S. Basil rising courageously out of his bed, went to the Church and baptized him with
all his family, then returning to his chamber and to his bed, having entertained himself a
good space with our Saviour in prayer, he holily exhorted the assistants to serve God with
their whole heart, and finally, seeing the angels approach, and pronouncing with an extreme
delight these words: O God I recommend unto thee my soul, and restore it into thy hands;
he died. But the poor converted physician seeing him thus pass away, embracing him, and
melting into tears over him:—"O great Basil, said he, indeed if thou hadst willed thou wouldst
no more have died to-day than yesterday." Who does not see that this death was wholly of
314
love? And the Blessed Mother (S.) Teresa of Jesus revealed after her death that she died of
an impetuous assault of love, which had been so violent that nature not being able to support
it, the soul had departed towards the beloved object of its affections.
309

33.3 Page 323

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Marvellous History of the Death of a Gentleman Who Died of…
CHAPTER XII.
MARVELLOUS HISTORY OF THE DEATH OF A GENTLEMAN WHO DIED OF
LOVE ON MOUNT OLIVET.
Besides what I have said, I have found a history which to sacred lovers is none the less
credible for being wonderful, since, as the holy Apostle says: Charity willingly believeh all
things;346 that is, it is not quick to believe that any one is lying, and if there are no apparent
marks of falsehood in things which are told, it makes no difficulty about believing them;
but above all when they are things which exalt and magnify the love of God towards men,
or the love of men towards God, for charity, which is sovereign queen of the virtues, rejoices
in the things which contribute to the glory of its empire and domination. And although the
account I am about to give is not so fully published nor so well witnessed as the greatness
of the marvel which it contains would require, it does not therefore lose its truth; for, as S.
Augustine excellently says, miracles, magnificent as they may be, are scarcely known in the
very place where they are worked; and even when they are related by those who have seen
them, they are with difficulty believed, but they do not therefore cease to be true; and, in
matter of religion, good souls have more sweetness in believing things in which there is
more difficulty and admiration.
Upon a time, then, a very illustrious and virtuous knight went beyond seas to Palestine,
to visit the holy places in which Our Lord had done the works of our redemption; and, 315
properly to begin this holy exercise, before everything he worthily confessed and commu-
nicated. Then he went first to the town of Nazareth, where the angel announced to the most
holy Virgin the most sacred Incarnation, and where the most adorable conception of the
Eternal Word took place; and there this good pilgrim set himself to contemplate the abyss
of the heavenly goodness, which had deigned to take human flesh in order to withdraw men
from perdition. Thence he passed to Bethlehem, to the place of the Nativity, and one could
not say how many tears there he shed, contemplating those with which the Son of God, little
infant of the Virgin, had watered that holy stable, kissing and kissing again a hundred times
that sacred earth, and licking the dust on which the first infancy of the divine Babe had been
received. From Bethlehem he went to Bethabara, and passed as far as the little place of
Bethania, when, remembering that Our Lord had unclothed himself to be baptized, he also
unclothed himself, and entering into the Jordan, and bathing in it, and drinking of the waters
thereof, it seemed to him as if he saw his Saviour receiving baptism from the hand of his
precursor, and the Holy Ghost descending upon him in the form of a dove, with the heavens
yet opened, while from them seemed to him to come the voice of the Eternal Father, saying:
This is my beloved Son in whom I am well pleased. From Bethania he goes into the desert,
and there sees with the eyes of his Spirit the Saviour fasting, and fighting and conquering
346 1 Cor. xiii. 7.
310

33.4 Page 324

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Marvellous History of the Death of a Gentleman Who Died of…
the enemy, then the angels ministering to him admirable meats. Thence he goes up to Mount
Thabor, where he sees the Saviour transfigured, then to Mount Sion, where he seems to see
Our Lord still on his knees in the supper-room, washing the disciples' feet, and afterwards
distributing to them his divine body in the sacred Eucharist. He passes the torrent of Cedron,
and goes to the Garden of Gethsemani, where his heart melts into the tears of a most loving
sorrow, while he there represents to himself his dear Saviour sweating blood, in that extreme
agony, which he suffered there, to be soon afterwards bound fast with cords and led into
Jerusalem; whither he goes also, following everywhere the footprints of his beloved, and in
imagination sees him dragged hither and thither, to Annas, to Caiphas, to Pilate, to Herod,
316
scourged, blindfolded, spat upon, crowned with thorns, presented to the people, condemed
to death, loaded with his cross—which he carries, and while carrying it has the pitiful
meeting with his mother all steeped in grief, and with the daughters of Jerusalem who weep
over him. He ascends at last, this devout pilgrim, to Mount Calvary, when he sees in spirit
the cross laid upon the earth, and our Saviour, stript naked, thrown down and nailed hands
and feet upon it, most cruelly. He contemplates then how they raise the cross and the Cru-
cified into the air, and the blood which streams from all parts of this ruined divine body.
He regards the poor sacred Virgin, quite transpierced with the sword of sorrow; then he
turns his eyes on the crucified Saviour, whose seven words he hears with a matchless love,
and at last he sees him dying, then dead, then receiving the lance-stroke, and showing by
the opening of the wound his divine heart, then taken down from the cross and carried to
the sepulchre, whither he follows him, shedding a sea of tears on the places moistened with
the blood of his Redeemer. And so he enters into the sepulchre and buries his heart by the
body of his divine Master; then, rising again with him, he goes to Emmaus, and sees all that
passes between the Lord and the two disciples; and at last returning to Mount Olivet, where
the mystery of the Ascension took place, and there seeing the last marks and vestiges of the
feet of the Divine Saviour, prostrate upon them, and kissing them a thousand thousand
times, with sighs of an infinite love, he began to draw up to himself all the forces of his af-
fections, as an archer draws the string of his bow when he wishes to shoot his arrow, then
rising, his eyes and his hands turned to heaven: O Jesus! said he, my sweet Jesus! I know no
more where to seek and follow thee on earth. Ah! Jesus, Jesus, my love, grant then to this
heart that it may follow thee and go after thee thither above. And with these ardent words,
he at the same moment shot his soul into heaven, a sacred arrow which as an archer of God
he directed into the central-white of his most blessed mark. But his companions and servants
who saw this poor lover fall suddenly thus as if dead, amazed at this accident, ran instantly
for the doctor, who coming found that he had really passed away: and to make a safe judg-
317
ment on the causes of so unexpected a death, he inquires of what temperament, of what
manners, and of what feelings, the deceased might be; and he learned that he was of a dis-
position very sweet, very amiable, wondrously devout, and most ardent in the love of God.
311

33.5 Page 325

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Marvellous History of the Death of a Gentleman Who Died of…
Whereupon the doctor said: Without doubt, then, his heart has broken with excess and
fervour of love. And in order the better to confirm his decision, he would have him opened,
and found that glorious heart open, with this sacred word engraved within it: Jesus my love!
Love, then, did in this heart the office of death, separating the soul from the body, no other
cause concurring. And it is S. Bernardine of Siena, a very wise and very holy doctor, who
makes this relation in the first of his Sermons on the Ascension.
Indeed, another author of nearly the same age, who has concealed his name out of hu-
mility, but who is worthy to be named, in a book which he has entitled: Mirror of Spiritual
Persons, relates a history even more admirable. For he says that in the parts of Provence
there was a nobleman entirely devoted to the love of God and to the devotion of the Most
Holy Sacrament of the Altar. Now one day, being extremely afflicted with a malady which
caused him continual vomitings, the divine communion was brought him; and not daring
to receive it on account of the danger of casting it up again, he begged his pastor to apply it
at least to his breast, and with it to make the sign of the cross over him. This was done, and
in a moment his breast, inflamed with holy love, was cleft, and drew into itself the heavenly
food wherein his beloved was contained, and at the same instant gave up its breath. I see in
good truth that this history is extraordinary, and would deserve a more weighty testimony:
yet after the true history of the cleft heart of S. Clare of Montefalco, which all the world may
see even to this day, and that of the stigmata of S. Francis, which is most certain, my soul
finds nothing hard to be believed amongst the effects of divine love.
318
312

33.6 Page 326

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. That the Most Sacred Virgin Mother of God Died of Love for…
CHAPTER XIII.
THAT THE MOST SACRED VIRGIN MOTHER OF GOD DIED OF LOVE FOR HER
SON.
One can hardly well doubt that the great S. Joseph died before the passion and death of our
Saviour, who otherwise would not have commended his mother to S. John. And how can
one then imagine that the dear child of his heart, his beloved foster-child, did not assist him
at the hour of his departure? Blessed are the merciful for they shall obtain mercy. Ah! how
much sweetness, charity and mercy, did this good foster-father use towards our Saviour,
when he was born a little child in the world! And who can then believe but that, at his de-
parture out of it, this divine child rendered him the like a hundred-fold, filling him with
heavenly delights? Storks are the true representation of the mutual piety of children towards
their parents and of parents towards their children: for, being birds of passage, they bear
their old parents with them in their journey, as their parents had borne them while they
were yet young, on the like occasions. While our Saviour was yet a little child, the great S.
Joseph his foster-father, and the most glorious Virgin his mother, had many times carried
him, but especially in their journey from Judea to Egypt, and from Egypt to Judea. Ah! who
then can doubt that this holy father being come to the end of his days, was reciprocally
carried by his divine foster-child, in the passage from this to another life, into Abraham's
bosom, to be translated thence into his own, into glory, on the day of his Ascension? A saint
who had loved so much in his life, could not die but of love; for his heart not being able to
love his dear Jesus as much as he desired while he continued amongst the distractions of
this life, and having already performed the duty which was required in the childhood of Jesus,
what remained but that he should say to the eternal Father: O Father, I have finished the
work which thou gavest me to do:347 and then to the Son, O my child! as thy heavenly Father
put thy tender body into my hands the day of thy coming into this world, so do I render up
my soul into thine, this day of my departure out of the world.
319
Such, as I conceive, was the death of this great patriarch, a man elected to perform the
most tender and loving offices that ever were or shall be performed to the Son of God, save
those that were done by his sacred spouse, the true natural mother of the said Son. Now of
her it is not possible to imagine that she died of any other kind of death than of love, the
noblest of deaths, and consequently due to the noblest life that ever was amongst creatures:
a death of which the very angels would desire to die, if die they could. If the primitive
Christians were said to have but one heart and one soul, by reason of their perfect mutual
love, if S. Paul lived not in himself, but Jesus Christ lived in him, by reason of the close
union of his heart to his Master's, whereby his soul was as it were dead in his heart which
it animated, to live in the heart of the Saviour which it loved,—O true God! how much more
347 John xvii. 4.
313

33.7 Page 327

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. That the Most Sacred Virgin Mother of God Died of Love for…
really had the sacred virgin and her son but one soul, one heart and one life, so that this
heavenly mother, living, lived not, but her son lived in her! 'Twas a mother the most loving
and the most beloved that ever could be, yea loving and beloved with a love incomparably
more eminent than that of all the orders of angels and men, as the names of mother-only
and only-son, are names passing all other names in matter of love. And I say mother-only
and only-son, because all the other sons of men divide the acknowledgment of their produc-
tion between their father and mother; but in this son, as all his human birth depended on
his mother alone, who alone contributed that which was requisite to the virtue of the Holy
Ghost for the conception of this heavenly child, so to her alone all the love which sprang
from that production was due and rendered: wherefore this son and this mother were united
in a union by so much more excellent, as her name is excellent in love above all other names.
For which of all the seraphim can say to our Saviour: Thou art my true son, and I love thee
as my true son? And to which of all his creatures did our Saviour ever say: Thou art my true
mother, and as my true mother I love thee: thou art my true mother, entirely mine, and I
320
am thy true son wholly thine? If then a loving servant durst say, and did say, that he had no
other life than his master's—Ah! how confidently and fervently might this mother exclaim:
I have no life but the life of my son, my life is wholly in his, and his wholly in mine; for it
was no longer union but unity of hearts between this mother and this son.
And if this mother lived her son's life, she also died her son's death. The phoenix, as
report goes, grown very aged, gathers together on the top of a mountain a quantity of aro-
matical wood, upon which, as upon its bed of honour, it goes to end its days: for when the
sun, being at its highest, pours out its hottest beams, this sole bird, to contribute an increase
of activity to the ardour of the sun, ceases not to beat with its wings upon its bed, till it has
made it take fire, and burning with it is consumed, and dies in those odoriferous flames. In
like manner, Theotimus, the virgin-mother, having collected in her spirit all the most beloved
mysteries of the life and death of her son by a most lively and continual memory of them,
and withal, ever receiving directly the most ardent inspirations which her child, the sun of
justice, has cast upon human beings in the highest noon of his charity; and besides, making
on her part also, a perpetual movement of contemplation, at length the sacred fire of this
divine love consumed her entirely as a holocaust of sweetness, so that she died thereof, the
soul being wholly ravished and transported into the arms of the dilection of her son. O,
death, amorously life-giving! O, love, vitally death-giving!
Several sacred lovers were present at the death of the Saviour, amongst whom those
who had the most love had the most sorrow; for love was then all steeped in sorrow, and
sorrow in love; and all they who for their Saviour were impassioned with love were in love
314

33.8 Page 328

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. That the Most Sacred Virgin Mother of God Died of Love for…
with his passion and sorrow. But the sweet Mother, who loved more than all, was more than
all transfixed with the sword of sorrow. The sorrow of the Son at that time was a piercing
sword, which passed through the heart of the Mother, because that Mother's heart was glued,
joined and united to her Son, with so perfect a union that nothing could wound the one
321
without inflicting a lively torture upon the other. Now this maternal bosom, being thus
wounded with love, not only did not seek a cure for its wound, but loved her wound more
than all cure, dearly keeping the shafts of sorrow she had received, on account of the love
which had shot them into her heart, and continually desiring to die of them, since her Son
died of them, who, as say all the Holy Scriptures and all Doctors, died amidst the flames of
his charity, a perfect holocaust for all the sins of the world.
315

33.9 Page 329

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That the Glorious Virgin Died by and Extremely Sweet and Tranquil…
CHAPTER XIV.
THAT THE GLORIOUS VIRGIN DIED BY AN EXTREMELY SWEET AND TRAN-
QUIL DEATH.
It is said on the one side that Our Lady revealed to S. Mechtilde that the malady of which
she died was no other thing than an impetuous assault of divine love; but S. Bridget and S.
John Damascene testify that she died an extremely peaceful death: and both statements are
true, Theotimus.
The stars are marvellously beautiful to see, and send forth a fair light; but, if you have
taken notice, it is by flushes of light, by sparks and flashes, that they produce their rays, as
if they brought forth light with effort, at distinct intervals; whether it is because their feebler
light cannot so continuously shine with evenness, or because our weak eyes do not allow us
a constant and firm view of them, on account of the great distance there is between them
and our eyes. In the same way, generally speaking, the saints who died of love felt a great
variety of accidents and symptoms of love, before it brought them to death; many sudden
movement, many assaults, many ecstasies, many languors, many agonies; and it seemed
that their love with many renewed efforts brought forth their blessed death: this happened
on account of the weakness of their love, not yet absolutely perfect, which could not continue
its loving with an even fervour.
But it was quite otherwise with the most holy Virgin. For, as we see the lovely dawning
of day grow, not at intervals and by shocks, but by a certain dilating and continuous
322
brightening, which is almost insensibly perceptible, so that we truly see it grow in clearness,
but so evenly that no one perceives any interruption, separation or discontinuance in its
growing;—thus divine love grew at each moment in the virginal heart of our glorious Lady,
but by sweet, peaceable and continuous growths, without any agitation, or shock, or violence.
Ah! no, Theotimus, we must not suppose an impetuosity of agitation in this celestial love
of the maternal heart of the Virgin; for love, of itself, is sweet, gracious, peaceful and tranquil.
If it sometimes deliver assaults, if it give shocks to the spirit, this is because it finds resistance
there: but when the passages of the soul are opened to it without opposition or contradiction,
it makes its progress peaceably, with an incomparable sweetness. It was so, then, that holy
love employed its force in the virginal heart of the sacred Mother, without effort of violent
impetuosity, because it found no resistance or hindrance whatever. For as we see great rivers
boil and leap, with a mighty roaring, in rough places where the rocks make shoals and reefs
to oppose and prevent the flowing of the waters, but, on the contrary, finding themselves
on the plain, sweetly glide and flow without effort;—so divine love, finding in human souls
some hindrance and resistance (as in truth all have in some degree, though differently),
does violence there, combating bad inclinations, striking the heart, pushing the will by divers
agitations and various efforts to get room for itself, or at least to pass these obstacles. But in
the sacred Virgin, everything favoured and seconded the course of heavenly love; its progress
316

33.10 Page 330

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That the Glorious Virgin Died by and Extremely Sweet and Tranquil…
and increase were incomparably greater than in all other creatures, yet a progress infinitely
sweet, peaceful and tranquil. No, she swooned not away, either with love or with compassion,
by the cross of her Son, although she then experienced the most ardent and painful attack
of love that can be imagined: for although the attack was extreme, yet, at the same time, it
was at once equally strong and gentle, mighty and tranquil, active and peaceful, consisting
in a heat which was sharp but sweet.
I am not saying, Theotimus, that in the soul of the most holy Virgin there were not two
portions, and consequently two appetites, one according to the spirit and superior reason,
323
the other according to the senses and inferior reason, so that she could feel repugnances
and contradictions of the one to the other appetite, for this burden was felt even by her
Son;—but I say that in this celestial Mother all the affections were so well ranged and ordered,
that divine love exercised in her its empire and domination most peaceably, without being
troubled by the diversity of wills and appetites, or by the contradiction of the senses, because
neither the repugnances of the natural appetite nor the movements of the senses ever went
as far as sin, not even as far as venial sin; but, on the contrary, all was employed holily and
faithfully in the service of holy love, for the exercise of the other virtues, which, for the most
part, cannot be practised save amid difficulties, oppositions and contradictions.
Thorns, according to the vulgar opinion, are not only different from, but even contrary
to, flowers; and it seems as if things would go better if there were none in the world: which
has made S. Ambrose think that but for sin there would be none. But still, as here they are,
the good husbandman renders them useful, making from them, about his fields and young
trees, hedges and enclosures which serve as defence and rampart against cattle. So the glor-
ious Virgin, having had a part in all human miseries, saving such as directly tend to sin,
employed them most profitably for the exercise and increase of the holy virtues of fortitude,
temperance, justice and prudence, poverty, humility, patience and compassion: so that these
were so far from hindering, that they even assisted and strengthened heavenly love by con-
tinual exercises and advancements. And, in her, Magdalen is not distracted from the attention
wherewith she receives from her Saviour the impressions of love, by all Martha's ardour
and solicitude. She has made choice of her Son's love, and nothing deprives her of it.
The loadstone, as every one knows, Theotimus, naturally draws iron unto it, by a secret
and most wonderful virtue: yet five things there are which hinder this operation. 1°. A too
great distance. 2°. A diamond interposed. 3°. If the iron be greased. 4°. If it be rubbed with
an onion. 5°. If it be too weighty. Our heart is made for God, who continually allures it,
never ceasing to throw into it the baits of his celestial love. But five things hinder the opera-
tion of his holy attraction. 1°. Sin, which puts us at a distance from God. 2°. Affection to
324
riches. 3°. Sensual pleasures. 4°. Pride and vanity. 5°. Self-love together with the multitude
of inordinate passions which it brings forth, and which are to us an overcharging load which
weighs us down. But none of these hindrances had place in the glorious Virgin's heart. 1°.
317

34 Pages 331-340

▲back to top


34.1 Page 331

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. That the Glorious Virgin Died by and Extremely Sweet and Tranquil…
She was ever preserved from all sin. 2°. Ever most poor in spirit. 3°. Ever most pure. 4°.
Ever most humble. 5°. Ever peaceful mistress of all her passions, and totally exempt from
the rebellion which self-love raises against the love of God. And therefore as iron, if clear
of all obstacles and freed from its own weight, would be powerfully, yet gently and equably,
drawn by the loadstone, in such sort, however, that the attraction would ever grow more
active and forcible as they came nearer the one to the other, and the motion nearer to its
end:—so the most holy Mother, having nothing in her which hindered the operation of the
divine love of her Son, was united unto him in an incomparable union, by gentle ecstasies,
without trouble or travail, ecstasies in which the sensible powers ceased not to perform their
actions, without in any way disturbing the union of the spirit, as again the perfect application
of her spirit did not much divert her senses. So that this Virgin's death was more sweet than
could be imagined, her Son sweetly drawing her after the odour of his perfumes, and she
most lovingly flowing out after their sacred sweetness even into the bosom of her Son's
goodness. And although this holy soul extremely loved her most holy, most pure, and most
love-worthy body, yet she forsook it without any pain or resistance; as the chaste Judith,
though she greatly loved the weeds of penance and widowhood yet forsook them and freely
put them off, to put on her marriage garments when she went to be victorious over
Holofernes; or as Jonathan did when for the love of David he stripped himself of his garments.
Love had given at the foot of the cross to this divine Spouse the supreme sorrows of death,
and therefore it was reasonable that at length death should give her the sovereign delights
of love.
318

34.2 Page 332

▲back to top


Book VIII. Love of Conformity, by Which We Unite Our Will to the Will of…
BOOK VIII.
OF THE
LOVE OF CONFORMITY, BY WHICH WE UNITE OUR WILL TO THE WILL OF
325
GOD, SIGNIFIED UNTO US BY HIS COMMANDMENTS, COUNSELS AND INSPIRA-
TIONS.
319

34.3 Page 333

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Love of Conformity Proceeding from Sacred Complacency
CHAPTER I.
OF THE LOVE OF CONFORMITY PROCEEDING FROM SACRED COMPLACENCY.
As good ground having received the seed renders it back in its season a hundredfold, so the
heart which has taken complacency in God cannot hinder itself from wishing to offer another
complacency to God. No one pleases us but we desire to please him. Cool wine cools for a
while those who drink it, but, as soon as it grows warm within the receiver, it reciprocally
warms him, and the more heat is given to it, the more it gives back. True love is never un-
grateful, but strives to please those in whom it finds its pleasure; and hence comes that loving
conformity, which makes us such as those we love. The most devout and most wise King
Solomon, became idolatrous and foolish when he loved women who were foolish and idol-
atrous, and served as many idols as his wives had. For this cause the Scripture terms those
men effeminate who passionately love women as such, because love metamorphoses them
from men into women, in manners and humours.
Now this transformation is made insensibly by complacency, which having got entry
into our heart brings forth another complacency, to give to him of whom we have received
it. They say there is a little land animal in the Indies, which finds such pleasure with fishes
and in the sea, that by often swimming with them it becomes a fish, and of an animal of the
land becomes entirely an animal of the sea. So by often delighting in God we become con-
326
formed to God, and our will is transformed into that of the Divine Majesty, by the compla-
cency which it takes therein. The example of those we love has a sweet and unperceived
empire and insensible authority over us: it is necessary either to imitate or forsake them.
He who, drawn by the sweetness of perfumes, enters a perfumer's shop, while receiving the
pleasure which he takes in the smell of those odours, perfumes himself, and going out,
communicates to others the pleasure which he has received, spreading amongst them the
scent of perfumes which he has contracted. Our heart, together with the pleasure which it
takes in the thing beloved, draws unto itself the quality thereof, for delight opens the heart,
as sorrow closes it, whence the sacred holy Scripture often uses the word, dilate, instead of,
rejoice. Now the heart being opened by pleasure, the impressions of the qualities on which
the pleasure depends find easy passage into the spirit; and together with them such others
also as are in the same subject, though disagreeable to us, creep in amid the throng of
pleasures, as he that lacked his marriage garment got into the banquet amongst those that
were adorned with it. So Aristotle's scholars took pains to stammer like him, and Plato's
walked bent-backed in imitation of their master. In fine the pleasure which we take in a
thing has a certain communicative power which produces in the lover's heart the qualities
of the thing which pleases. And hence it is that holy complacency transforms us into God
whom we love, and by how much greater the complacency, by so much the transformation
is more perfect: thus the saints that loved ardently were speedily and perfectly transformed,
320

34.4 Page 334

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Love of Conformity Proceeding from Sacred Complacency
love transporting and translating the manners and disposition of the one heart into the
other.
A strange yet a true thing! Place together two lutes which are in unison, that is, of the
same sound and accord, and let one of them be played on:—the other though not touched
will not fail to sound like that which is played on, the affinity which is between them, as by
a natural love, causing this correspondence. We have a repugnance to imitate those we hate
even in good things, nor would the Lacedæmonians follow the good counsel of a wicked
man, unless some good man pronounced it after him. On the contrary, we cannot help
327
conforming ourselves to what we love. In this sense, as I think, the great Apostle said that
the law was not made for the just:348 for in truth the just man is not just but insomuch as
he has love, and if he have love there is no need to press him by the rigour of the law, love
being the most pressing teacher and solicitor, to urge the heart which it possesses to obey
the will and the intention of the beloved. Love is a magistrate who exercises his authority
without noise, without pursuivants or sergeants, by that mutual complacency, by which, as
we find pleasure in God, so also we desire to please him. Love is the abridgment of all
theology; it made the ignorance of a Paul, an Antony, an Hilarion, a Simeon, a Francis, most
holily learned, without books, masters or art. In virtue of this love, the spouse may say with
assurance. My beloved is wholly mine, by the complacency wherewith he pleases and feeds
me; and I, I am wholly his, by the benevolence wherewith I please and feed him again. My
heart feeds on the pleasure it takes in him, and his on my taking pleasure in him for his own
sake. As a holy shepherd he feeds me, his dear sheep, amidst the lilies of his perfections, in
which I take pleasure; and I, as his dear sheep, feed him with the milk of my affections, by
which I strive to please him. Whosoever truly takes pleasure in God desires faithfully to
please God, and in order to please him, desires to conform himself to him.
348 1 Tim. i. 9.
321

34.5 Page 335

▲back to top


Of the Conformity of Submission Which Proceeds from the Love of Benevol…
CHAPTER II.
OF THE CONFORMITY OF SUBMISSION WHICH PROCEEDS FROM THE LOVE
OF BENEVOLENCE.
Complacency then draws into us the traits of the divine perfections according as we are
capable of receiving them, as the mirror receives the sun's image, not according to the excel-
lence and amplitude of that great and admirable luminary, but in proportion to the capacity
and measure of its glass: so that we thus become conformed to God.
But besides this the love of benevolence brings us to this holy conformity by another
way. The love of complacency draws God into our hearts, but the love of benevolence casts
our hearts into God, and consequently all our actions and affections, most lovingly dedicating
and consecrating them unto him: for benevolence desires to God all the honour, all the
glory, and all the acknowledgment which it is possible to give him, as a certain exterior good
which is due to his goodness.
Now this desire is practised according to the complacency which we take in God, as
follows. We have had an extreme complacency in perceiving that God is sovereignly good,
and therefore by the love of benevolence we desire that all the loves which we can possibly
imagine be employed to love this goodness properly. We have taken delight in the sovereign
excellency of God's perfection, and thereupon we desire that he be sovereignly loved, hon-
oured and adored. We have rejoiced to consider how God is not only the first beginning
but also the last end, author, preserver, and Lord of all things, for which reason we desire
that all things be subject to him by a sovereign obedience. We see God's will sovereignly
perfect, right, just and equitable; and upon this consideration our desire is that it be the rule
and sovereign law of all things, and that it be observed, kept and obeyed by all other wills.
But note, Theotimus, that I treat not here of the obedience due unto God as he is our
Lord and Master, our Father and Benefactor, for this kind of obedience belongs to the virtue
of justice, not to love. No, it is not this I speak of at present, for though there were no hell
to punish the rebellious, nor heaven to reward the good, and though we had no kind of ob-
ligation or duty to God (be this said by imagination of a thing impossible and scarce imagin-
able), yet would the love of benevolence move us to render all obedience and submission
to God by election and inclination, yea by a sweet violence of love, in consideration of the
sovereign goodness, justice and rectitude of his divine will.
Do not we see, Theotimus, that a maiden by a free choice, which proceeds from the love
of benevolence, subjects herself to her husband, to whom otherwise she owed no duty; or
that a gentleman submits himself to a foreign prince's command, or, perhaps, gives up his
will into the hands of the superior of some religious order which he may join? Even so is
our heart conformed to God's, when by holy benevolence we throw all our affections into
the hands of the divine will, to be turned and directed as it chooses, to be moulded and
formed to its good liking. And in this point consists the profoundest obedience of love,
328
329
322

34.6 Page 336

▲back to top


Of the Conformity of Submission Which Proceeds from the Love of Benevol…
which has no need to be spurred by menaces or rewards, nor by any law or any command-
ment; for it foreruns all this, submitting itself to God solely for the most perfect goodness
which is in God, whereby he deserves that all wills should be obedient, subject and submissive
to him, conforming and uniting themselves for ever, in everything, and everywhere, to his
divine intentions.
323

34.7 Page 337

▲back to top


Chapter III. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to That Divine Will Which Is…
CHAPTER III.
HOW WE ARE TO CONFORM OURSELVES TO THAT DIVINE WILL, WHICH IS
CALLED THE SIGNIFIED WILL.
We sometimes consider God's will as it is in itself, and finding it all holy and all good, we
willingly praise, bless and adore it, and sacrifice our own and all other creatures' wills to its
obedience, by that divine exclamation: Thy will be done on earth as it is in heaven. At other
times we consider God's will in the particular effects of it, as in the events that touch us, and
accidents that befall us, and finally in the declaration and manifestation of his intentions.
And although God in reality has but one quite single and most simple will, yet we call it by
different names, according to the variety of the means whereby we know it; by which variety
also we are, in various ways, obliged to conform ourselves to it.
Christian doctrine clearly proposes unto us the truths which God wills that we should
believe, the goods he will have us hope for, the pains he will have us dread, what he will have
us love, the commandments he will have us observe, and the counsels he desires us to follow.
And this is called God's signified will, because he has signified and made manifest unto us
that it is his will and intention that all this should be believed, hoped for, feared, loved and
330
practised.
Now forasmuch as this signified will of God proceeds by way of desire, and not by way
of absolute will, we have power either to follow it by obedience, or by disobedience to resist
it; for to this purpose God makes three acts of his will: he wills that we should be able to
resist, he desires that we should not resist, and yet allows us to resist if we please. That we
have power to resist depends on our natural condition and liberty; that we do resist proceeds
from our malice; that we do not resist is according to the desire of the divine goodness. And
therefore when we resist, God contributes nothing to our disobedience, but leaving our will
in the hands of its liberty permits it to make choice of evil; but when we obey, God contributes
his assistance, his inspiration, and his grace. For permission is an action of the will which
of itself is barren, sterile and fruitless, and is as it were a passive action, which acts not but
only permits action; desire on the contrary is an active, fruitful, fertile action, which excites,
invites and urges. Wherefore God, in his desire that we should follow his signified will, soli-
cits, exhorts, excites, inspires, aids and succours us, but in permitting us to resist he does
nothing but simply leave us to our own wills, according to our free election, contrary to his
desire and intention. And yet this desire is a true desire, for how can one more truly express
the desire that his friend should make good cheer, than by providing a good and excellent
banquet, as did the king in the Gospel parable, and then, inviting, urging, and in a manner
compelling him, by prayers, exhortations and pressing messages, to come and sit down at
the table and eat. In truth, he that should by main force open his friend's mouth, cram meat
into his throat, and make him swallow it, would not be giving courteous entertainment to
324

34.8 Page 338

▲back to top


Chapter III. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to That Divine Will Which Is…
his friend, but would be using him like a beast, and like a capon that has to be fattened. This
kind of favour requires to be offered by way of invitation, persuasion, and solicitation, not
violently and forcibly thrust upon a man, and hence it is done by way of desire, not of absolute
will. Now it is the same with regard to the signified will of God: for in this, God desires with
331
a true desire that we should do what he makes known, and to this end he provides us with
all things necessary, exhorting and urging us to make use of them. In this kind of favour
one could desire no more, and as the sunbeams cease not to be true sunbeams when they
are shut out and repulsed by some obstacle, so God's signified will remains the true will of
God even if it be resisted, though it has not the effects which it would have if it were seconded.
The conformity then of our heart to the signified will of God consists in this, that we
will all that the divine goodness signifies unto us to be of his intention,—believing according
to his doctrine, hoping according to his promises, fearing according to his threats, loving
and living according to his ordinances and admonitions, to which all the protestations which
we make so often in the holy ceremonies of the Church do tend. For on this account we
stand while the Gospel is read, as being prepared to obey the holy signification of God's will
contained therein; hence we kiss the book at the place of the Gospel, in adoration of the
sacred word which declares his heavenly will. Hence many saints of the old time carried in
their bosoms the Gospel written, as an epithem of love, as is related of S. Cecily, and S.
Matthew's Gospel was actually found upon the heart of the dead S. Barnabas, written with
his own hand. Wherefore in the ancient councils, in the midst of the whole assembly of
Bishops, there was erected a high throne, and upon it was placed the book of the holy Gospels,
which represented the person of our Saviour,—King, Doctor, Director, Spirit and sole Heart
of the Councils, and of the whole Church: so much did they reverence the signification of
God's will expressed in that divine book. Indeed that great mirror of the pastoral order, S.
Charles, Archbishop of Milan, never studied the holy Scripture but bareheaded and upon
his knees, to testify with what respect we are to read and hear the signified will of God.
325

34.9 Page 339

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Conformity of Our Will to the Will Which God Has to Save…
CHAPTER IV.
OF THE CONFORMITY OF OUR WILL TO THE WILL WHICH GOD HAS TO
SAVE US.
God has signified unto us by so many ways and means that his will is that we should all be
332
saved, that none can be ignorant of it. To this purpose he made us to his own image and
likeness by creation, and made himself to our image and likeness by his Incarnation; after
which he suffered death to ransom and save all mankind, which he did with so much love
that, as the great S. Denis, apostle of France, recounts, he said once to the holy man Carpus
that he was ready to suffer another Passion to save mankind, and that this would be agreeable
to him if it could be done without any man's sin.
And although all are not saved, yet is this will a true will of God's, who works in us ac-
cording to the condition of his and of our nature. For his goodness moves him to liberally
communicate unto us the succours of his grace in order to bring us to the felicity of his
glory, but our nature requires that his liberality should leave us at liberty to make use of it
to our salvation, or to neglect it to our damnation.
One thing I have asked of the Lord, said the prophet, this will I seek after; . . . . that I may
see the delight of the Lord and visit his temple.349 But what is the delight of the sovereign
goodness, save to pour out and communicate his perfections? Verily his delights are to be
with the children of men, and to shower his graces upon them. Nothing is so agreeable and
delightful to free agents as to do their own will. Our sanctification is the will of God, and
our salvation his good-pleasure, nor is there any difference at all between good-pleasure
and delight, nor, consequently, between the divine delight and the divine good will: yea the
will which God has to do man good is called good,350 because it is amiable, kind, favourable,
agreeable, delicious, and as the Greeks, after S. Paul, said; it is a true Philanthropy, that is a
benevolence or a will entirely loving towards men.
All the celestial temple of the triumphant and of the militant Church resounds on every
side with the canticles of this sweet love of God towards us. And the most sacred body of
333
our Saviour, as a most holy temple of his divinity, is all decorated with the marks and tokens
of this benevolence. So that in visiting the divine temple we behold the loving delights which
his heart takes in doing us favours.
Let us then a thousand times a day turn our eyes upon this loving will of God, and,
making ours melt into it, let us devoutly cry out: O goodness infinitely sweet, how amiable
is thy will, how desirable are thy favours! Thou hast created us for eternal life, and, thy ma-
ternal bosom, with its sacred swelling breasts of an incomparable love, abounds in the milk
of mercy, whether it be to pardon sinners or to perfect the just. Ah! why do not we then
349 Ps. xxvi. 4.
350 Rom. xii. 2.
326

34.10 Page 340

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Conformity of Our Will to the Will Which God Has to Save…
fasten our wills to thine, as children fasten themselves on to their mother's breast, to draw
the milk of thy eternal benedictions!
Theotimus, we are to will our salvation in such sort as God wills it; now he wills it by
way of desire, and we also must incessantly desire it, following his desire. Nor does he will
it only, but in effect gives us all necessary means to attain it: we then, in fulfilment of the
desire we have to be saved, must not only will, but in effect accept all the graces which he
has provided for us and offers unto us. It is enough to say: I desire to be saved. But with regard
to the means of salvation, it is not enough to say: I desire them;—but we must, with an ab-
solute resolution, will and embrace the graces which God presents to us: for our will must
correspond with God's. And inasmuch as it gives us the means of salvation, we ought to
receive them, as we ought to desire salvation in such sort as God desires it for us, and because
he desires it.
But it often happens that the means of attaining salvation, considered in the gross and
in general, are according to our hearts' liking, but considered piecemeal and in particular,
are terrifying to us. For have we not seen poor S. Peter prepared to undergo in general all
kind of torments, yea, death itself, to follow his master, and yet, when it came to the deed
and performance, grow pale, tremble, and, at the word of a simple maid, deny his master?
Everyone deems himself able to drink our Saviour's chalice with him, but when it is in fact
presented to us, we fly, we give up all. Things proposed in detail make a more strong impres-
sion, and more sensibly wound the imagination. And for this reason we have advised in the
334
Introduction that after general affections we should descend to particular ones in holy
prayer.351 David accepted particular afflictions as an advancement towards his perfection,
when he sang in this wise: O Lord, how good it is for me that thou hast humbled me, that I
might learn thy justifications!352 So also were the Apostles joyous in their tribulations, because
they were held worthy to endure ignominy for their Saviour's name.
351 II. 6.
352 Ps. cxviii. 71.
327

35 Pages 341-350

▲back to top


35.1 Page 341

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God's Which Is…
CHAPTER V.
OF THE CONFORMITY OF OUR WILL TO THAT WILL OF GOD'S WHICH IS
SIGNIFIED TO US BY HIS COMMANDMENTS.
The desire which God has to make us observe his commandments is extreme, as the whole
Scripture witnesses. And how could he better express it, than by the great rewards which
he proposes to the observers of his law, and the awful punishments with which he threatens
those who shall violate the same! This made David cry out: O Lord, thou hast commanded
thy Commandments to be kept most diligently.353
Now the love of complacency, beholding this divine desire, wills to please God by ob-
serving it; the love of benevolence which submits all to God, consequently submits our desires
and wills to that will which God has signified to us; and hence springs not only the observ-
ance, but also the love of the commandments, which David extraordinarily extols in Psalm
cxviii., which he seems only to have composed for this object: O how have I loved thy law,
O Lord! It is my meditation all the day . . . . . Therefore have I loved thy commandments above
gold and the topaz . . . . . How sweet are thy words to my palate, more than honey to my
mouth.354
But to stir up in us this holy and salutary love of the commandments, we must contem-
plate their admirable beauty: for, as there are works which are bad because they are prohib-
335
ited, and others which are prohibited because they are bad; so there are some that are good,
because they are commanded, and others that are commanded because they are good and
very useful. So that all of them are exceeding good and worthy of love, because the command-
ment gives goodness to such as were not otherwise good, and gives an increase of goodness
to those others which even if not commanded would not cease to be good. We do not take
good in good part, when it is presented by an enemy's hand. The Lacedæmonians would
not follow solid and wholesome advice coming from a wicked person, till it was repeated
to them by a good man. On the contrary, a friend's present is always grateful. The sweetest
commandments become bitter when they are imposed by a tyrannical and cruel heart; and
they become most amiable when ordained by love. Jacob's service seemed a royalty unto
him, because it proceeded from love. O how sweet and how much to be desired is the yoke
of the heavenly law, established by so amiable a king!
Many keep the commandments as sick men take medicines, more from fear of dying
in a state of damnation, than from love of living according to our Saviour's pleasure. But as
some persons have an aversion for physic, be it never, so agreeable, only because it bears
the name of physic, so there are some souls who abhor things commanded simply because
they are commanded: and there was a certain man, 'tis said, who, having lived quietly in the
353 Ps. cxviii. 4.
354 vv. 97, 127, 103.
328

35.2 Page 342

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God's Which Is…
great city of Paris for the space of fourscore years without ever going out of it, as soon as it
was enjoined him by the king that he should remain there the rest of his days, went abroad
to see the country, which in his whole lifetime before he had not desired.
On the contrary, the loving heart loves the commandments; and the harder they are,
the more sweet and agreeable it finds them, because it more perfectly pleases the beloved,
and gives him more honour. It pours forth and sings hymns of joy when God teaches it his
commandments and justifications. And as the pilgrim who merrily sings on his way adds
indeed the exertion of singing to that of walking, and yet actually, by this increase of labour,
336
unwearies himself, and lightens the hardship of the way; even so the sacred lover finds such
sweetness in the commandments, that nothing so much eases and refreshes him, as the
gracious load of the precepts of his God. Whereupon the holy Psalmist cries out: O Lord,
thy justifications, or commandments, were the subject of my song in the place of my pilgrim-
age.355 It is said that mules and horses laden with figs presently fall under their burden and
lose all their strength: more sweet than figs is the law of our Lord, but brutal man who is
become as the horse and the mule which have no understanding, loses courage and finds not
strength to bear this dear burden. But as a branch of Agnus Castus keeps the traveller that
bears it about him from being weary, so the cross, the mortification, the yoke, the law of
our Saviour, who is the true Chaste Lamb, is a burden which unwearies, refreshes and recre-
ates the hearts that love his divine Majesty. There is no labour where love is, or if there be
any, it is a beloved labour. Labour mixed with love is a certain bitter-sweet, more pleasant
to the palate than a thing purely sweet.
Thus then does heavenly love conform us to the will of God, and make us carefully ob-
serve his commandments, as being the absolute desire of his divine Majesty whom we will
to please. So that this complacency with its sweet and amiable violence, foreruns that necessity
of obeying which the law imposes upon us, converting this necessity into the virtue of love,
and every difficulty into delight.
355 Ps. cxviii. 54.
329

35.3 Page 343

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God Which Is Signified…
CHAPTER VI.
OF THE CONFORMITY OF OUR WILL TO THAT WILL OF GOD WHICH IS SIG-
NIFIED UNTO US BY HIS COUNSELS.
A Commandment testifies a most entire and absolute will in him who gives it, but counsel
337
only represents a will of desire: a commandment obliges us, counsel only invites us; a com-
mandment makes the transgressors thereof culpable; counsel only makes such as do not
follow it less worthy of praise; those who violate commandments deserve damnation, those
who neglect counsels deserve only to be less glorified. There is a difference between com-
manding and recommending: in commanding we use authority to oblige, but in recommend-
ing we use friendliness to induce and incite: a commandment imposes necessity, counsel
and recommendation induce to what is of greater utility: commandments correspond to
obedience, counsels to credence: we follow counsel with intention to please, and command-
ments lest we should displease. And thence it is that the love of complacency which obliges
us to please the beloved, consequently urges us to follow his counsels, and the love of bene-
volence, which desires that all wills and affections should be subjected unto him, causes that
we not only will what he ordains, but also what he counsels and exhorts to: as the love and
respect which a good child bears to his father make him resolve to live not only according
to the commandments which his father imposes, but also according to the desires and in-
clinations which he manifests.
A counsel is indeed given for the benefit of him who receives it, to the end that he may
become perfect: If thou wilt be perfect, said our Saviour, go sell all that thou hast, give it to
the poor, and come, follow me.356 But the loving heart does not receive a counsel for its
utility, but to conform itself to the desire of him who gives the counsel, and to render him
the homage due to his will. And therefore it receives not counsels but in such sort as God
desires, nor does God desire that every one should observe all counsels, but such only as are
suitable, according to the diversity of persons, times, occasions, strengths, as charity requires:
for she it is who, as queen of all the virtues, of all the commandments, of all the counsels,
and, in short, of all Christian laws and works, gives to all of them their rank, order, season
and worth.
338
If your assistance be truly necessary to your father or mother to enable them to live, it
is no time then to practise the counsel of retiring into a monastery, for charity ordains that
you presently put into execution its command of honouring, serving, aiding and succouring
your father or your mother. You are perhaps a prince, by whose posterity the subjects of
your crown are to be preserved in peace, and assured against tyranny, sedition, civil wars:
the effecting, therefore, of so great a good, obliges you to beget lawful successors in a holy
marriage. It is either not to lose chastity, or at least to lose it chastely, when for love of
356 Matt. xix. 21.
330

35.4 Page 344

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God Which Is Signified…
charity it is sacrificed to the public good. Are you weak and uncertain in your health, and
does it require great support? Do not then voluntarily undertake actual poverty, for this is
forbidden you by charity. Charity not only forbids fathers of families to sell all and give it
to the poor, but also commands them honestly to gather together what is requisite for the
support and education of wife, children and servants: as also it commands kings and princes
to lay up treasures, which, being acquired by a laudible frugality, and not by tyrannical
measures, serve as wholesome defences against visible enemies. Does not S. Paul counsel
such as are married, that, the time of prayer being ended, they should return to the well-
ordered course of their married life?357
The counsels are all given for the perfection of the Christian people, but not for that of
each Christian in particular. There are circumstances which make them sometimes im-
possible, sometimes unprofitable, sometimes perilous, sometimes hurtful to some men,
which is one of the reasons why Our Saviour said of one of the counsels, what he would
have to be understood of them all: He that can receive it, let him receive it:358 as though he
had said, according to S. Jerome's exposition: he that can win and bear away the honour of
chastity as a prize of renown, let him take it, for it is proposed to such as shall run valiantly.
Not every one then is able, that is, it is not expedient for every one, to observe always all the
counsels, for as they are granted in favour of charity, so is this the rule and measure by which
339
they are put in practice.
When, therefore, charity so orders, monks and religious are drawn out of their cloisters
to be made cardinals, prelates, parish-priests, yea sometimes they are even joined in matri-
mony for a kingdom's repose, as I have already said. And if charity make those leave their
cloister that bad bound themselves thereto by solemn vow,—for better reason, and upon
less occasion, one may by the authority of the same charity, counsel many to live at home,
to keep their means, to marry, yea to turn soldiers and go to war, which is so perilous a
profession.
Now when charity draws some to poverty and withdraws others from it, when she directs
some to marriage and others to continence, when she shuts one up in a cloister and makes
another quit it, she is not bound to give account thereof to any one: for she has the plenitude
of power in Christian laws, as it is written: charity can do all things; she has the perfection
of prudence, according to that: charity does nothing wrongly.359 And if any would contest,
and demand why she so does, she will boldly make answer: The Lord hath need of it.360 All
is made for charity, and charity for God. All must serve her and she none: no, she serves
357 1 Cor. vii. 5.
358 Matt. xix. 11.
359 1 Cor. xiii.
360 Matt. xxi. 3.
331

35.5 Page 345

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Conformity of Our Will to That Will of God Which Is Signified…
not her well-beloved, whose servant she is not, but his spouse, whom she does not serve,
but love: for which cause we are to take our orders from her how to exercise counsels. To
some she will appoint chastity without poverty, to others obedience and not chastity, to
others fasting but not alms-deeds, to others alms-deeds and fasting, to others solitude and
not the pastoral charge, to others intercourse with men and not solitude. In fine she is a
sacred water, by which the garden of the church is fertilized, and though she herself have
no colour that can be called colour, yet the flowers which she makes spring have each one
its particular colour. She makes Martyrs redder than the rose, Virgins whiter than the lily;
some she dyes with the fine violet of mortification, others with the yellow of marriage-cares,
variously employing the counsels, for the perfection of the souls who are so happy as to live
under her conduct.
340
332

35.6 Page 346

▲back to top


VII. That the Love of God's Will Signified in the Commandments Moves Us…
CHAPTER VII.
THAT THE LOVE OF GOD'S WILL SIGNIFIED IN THE COMMANDMENTS MOVES
US TO THE LOVE OF THE COUNSELS.
O Theotimus! how amiable is this Divine will! O how amiable and desirable it is! O law all
of love and all for love! The Hebrews by the word, peace, understand the collection and
perfection of all good things, that is, happiness: and the Psalmist cries out: Much peace have
they that love thy law; and to them there is no stumbling-block:361 as though he would say:
O Lord! what delights are in the love of thy sacred commandments! The heart that is pos-
sessed with the love of thy law is possessed of all delicious sweetness. Truly that great king
whose heart was made according to the heart of God, did so relish the perfect excellence of
the divine commandments, that he seems to be a lover captivated with the beauty of this
law as with the chaste spouse and queen of his heart; as appears by his continual praises
thereof.
When the heavenly spouse would express the infinite sweetness of her divine lover's
perfumes: Thy name, says she unto him, is as oil poured out:362 as though she said: thou art
so excellently perfumed, that thou seemest to be all perfume, and thou art more fitly termed
ointment and perfume, than anointed and perfumed. So the soul that loves God is so
transformed into the divine will, that it merits rather to be called, God's will, than to be
called, obedient and subject to his will. Whence God says by Isaias, that he will call the
Christian church by a new name, which the mouth of the Lord will pronounce, imprint,
and engrave, in the hearts of his faithful; and then, explaining this name, he says it shall be:
My will in her:363 as though he had said, that among such as are not Christians every one
has his own will in the midst of his heart, but among the true children of our Saviour, every
341
one shall forsake his own will, and shall have only one master-will, dominant and universal,
which shall animate, govern and direct all souls, all hearts and all wills: and the name of
honour amongst Christians shall be no other than God's will in them, a will which shall rule
over all wills, and transform them all into itself; so that the will of Christians and the will of
Our Lord may be but one single will. This was perfectly verified in the primitive Church,
when, as says the glorious S. Luke: In the multitude of the faithful there was but one heart
and one soul:364 for he means not there to speak of the heart that keeps alive our bodies,
nor of the soul which animates hearts with a human life, but he speaks of the heart which
gives our souls heavenly life, and of the soul that animates our hearts with the supernatural
life; the one, the singularly one heart and soul of true Christians, which is no other thing
361 Ps. cxviii. 165.
362 Cant. i. 2.
363 Is. lxii. 14.
364 Acts iv. 32.
333

35.7 Page 347

▲back to top


VII. That the Love of God's Will Signified in the Commandments Moves Us…
than the will of God. Life, says the Psalmist, is in the will of God,365 not only because our
temporal life depends on the divine pleasure, but also because our spiritual life consists in
the execution of it, by which God lives and reigns in us, making us live and subsist in him.
On the contrary, the wicked from of old (that is, always) have broken the yoke of the law of
God, and have said: I will not serve.366 Wherefore God says that he named them transgressors
and rebels from the womb;367 and speaking to the king of Tyre, he reproaches him for having
set his heart as the heart of God:368 for the spirit of revolt will have its heart to be its own
master, and its own will to be sovereign like the will of God; it would not have the divine
will to reign over it, but would be absolute and without any dependence. O eternal Lord!
suffer not this,—but effect that not my will but thine be done. Yes, we are in this world not
to do our own will, but the will of thy goodness which has placed us here. It was written of
thee, O Saviour of my soul, that thou didst the will of thy Eternal Father,369 and by the first
act of the will of thy human soul, at the instant of thy conception, thou didst lovingly embrace
this law of the divine will, and didst place it in the midst of thy heart there to reign and have
342
dominion for ever. Ah! who will give my soul the grace of having no will save the will of her
God!
Now when our love is exceeding great towards God's will, we are not content to do only
the Divine will which is signified unto us by the commandments, but we also put ourselves
under the obedience of the counsels, which are only given us for a more perfect observing
of the commandments, to which also they have reference, as S. Thomas says excellently well.
O how well does he observe the prohibition of unlawful pleasures who has even renounced
the most just and legitimate delights! How far is he from coveting another man's goods who
rejects even such as he might holily have kept! How far is he from preferring his own will
before God's, who, to do God's will, submits himself to that of a man!
David upon a day was in his camp, and the Philistine garrison in Bethlehem.370 And
David longed, and said: Oh! that some man would give me a drink of the water out of the
cistern that is in Bethlehem, by the gate! And behold, he had no sooner said the word than
three valiant men set out, hand and head lowered, break through the hostile camp, go to
the cistern of Bethlehem, draw water, and bring it to David, who, seeing the hazard which
these three knightly men had run to gratify his longing, would not drink the water obtained
at the peril of their blood and life, but poured it out in sacrifice to the eternal God. Ah! mark,
365 Ps. xxix. 6.
366 Jer. ii. 20.
367 Is. xlviii. 8.
368 Ezech. xxviii. 2.
369 Ps. xxxix. 9.
370 2 Kings xxiii.
334

35.8 Page 348

▲back to top


VII. That the Love of God's Will Signified in the Commandments Moves Us…
I beseech you, Theotimus, how great the ardour of these cavaliers in the service and satisfac-
tion of their master! They fly, they break through the ranks of their enemies, they incur a
thousand dangers of destruction, to gratify only one simple desire, which their king expresses
before them. Our Saviour when he was in this world declared his will in some cases by way
of commandment, and in many others he only signified it by way of desire: for he did highly
commend chastity, poverty, obedience and perfect resignation, the abnegation of one's own
will, widowhood, fasting, continual prayer; and what he said of chastity, that he who could
win the prize should win it, he said sufficiently of all the other counsels. At this desire, the
343
most valiant Christians have entered on the race, and overcoming all repugnances, concu-
piscences and difficulties, they have arrived at holy perfection, keeping themselves to the
strict observance of their King's desires, and by this means bearing away the crown of glory.
Verily, as witnesses the divine Psalmist, God hears not only the prayers of his faithful,
but even their very desire and the mere preparation of their hearts for prayer;371 so inclined
and forward is he to do the will of those who love him. And why shall not we then in return
be so zealous in following God's holy will, as to do not only what he orders, but also what
we know he likes and wishes. Noble souls need no other spur to the undertaking of a design
than to know that their beloved desires it: My soul, said one of them, melted when he spoke.372
371 Ps. ix. 38
372 Cant. v. 6.
335

35.9 Page 349

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. That the Contempt of the Evangelical Counsels Is a Great …
CHAPTER VIII.
THAT THE CONTEMPT OF THE EVANGELICAL COUNSELS IS A GREAT SIN.
The words in which our Saviour exhorts us to tend towards and aim at perfection, are so
forcible and so pressing, that we cannot dissemble the obligation we have to undertake to
carry out that design. Be holy, says he, because I am holy.373 He that is holy, let him be
sanctified still; and he that is just, let him be justified still.374 Be perfect, as your heavenly
Father is perfect.375 For this cause, the great S. Bernard writing to the glorious S. Guerin,
Abbot of Aulps, whose life and miracles have left so sweet an odour in this diocese: "The
just man," says he, "never says it is enough; he still hungers and thirsts after justice."
Truly, Theotimus, in temporal matters nothing suffices him who is not satisfied with
what is enough; for what can suffice him to whom sufficiency is not sufficient? But in spir-
itual goods he has not sufficient who is satisfied with what is enough, and sufficiency is not
sufficient, because true sufficiency in divine things consists partly in the desire of affluence.
344
God in the beginning commanded the earth to bring forth the green herb, and such as may
seed, and the fruit-tree yielding fruit after its kind, which has also seed in itself.376
And do we not see by experience, that plants and fruits are not come to their full growth
and maturity till they bring forth their seeds and pips, whence other trees and plants of the
same kind spring. Never do our virtues come to their full stature and measure, till such time
as they beget in us desires of progress, which like spiritual seeds serve for the production of
new degrees of virtue. And, methinks, the earth of our heart is commanded to bring forth
the plants of virtue, which bear the fruits of good works, every one in its kind, and having
the seeds of desires and resolutions of ever multiplying and advancing in perfection. And
the virtue that bears not the seed of these desires is not yet come to its growth and maturity.
"So then," says S. Bernard to the tepid man, "you do not want to advance in perfection? No.
Nor yet grow worse? No, truly. What, then—you would neither grow better nor worse?—poor
man, you would be what cannot be. Nothing, indeed, in the world is either stable or constant;
but of man it is said even more specially that he never remaineth in the same state.377 It is
necessary then that he either go forward or backward."
Now I say not, any more than does S. Bernard, that it is a sin not to practise the counsels.
No, in truth, Theotimus: for it is the very difference between commandments and counsels,
that the commandment obliges us under pain of sin, and the counsel only invites us without
pain of sin. Yet I distinctly say that to contemn the aiming after Christian perfection is a
373 Levit. xi. 44.
374 Apoc. xxii. 11
375 Matt. v. 48.
376 Gen. i. 11.
377 Job xiv. 2.
336

35.10 Page 350

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. That the Contempt of the Evangelical Counsels Is a Great …
great sin, and that it is a still greater to contemn the invitation by which our Saviour calls
us to it; but it is an insupportable impiety to contemn the counsels and means which our
Saviour points out for the attainment of it. It were a heresy to say, that our Saviour had not
given us good counsel, and a blasphemy to say to God: Depart from us, we desire not the
knowledge of thy ways:378 but it is a horrible irreverence towards him who with so much
345
love and sweetness invites us to perfection, to say: I will not be holy or perfect, nor have any
larger portion of thy benevolence, nor follow the counsels which thou givest me to make
progress in perfection.
We may indeed without sin not follow the counsels, on account of the affection we may
have to other things: as for example, it is lawful for a man not to sell what he possesseth to
give to the poor, because he has not the courage to make so entire a renunciation. It is also
lawful to marry, because one loves, or because one has not strength of mind necessary to
undertake the war which must be waged against the flesh. But to profess not to wish to follow
the counsels, nor any one of them, cannot be done without contempt of him who gives
them. Not to follow the counsel of virginity, and so to marry, is not wrong, but marrying
as if putting marriage higher than chastity, as heretics do, that is a great contempt either of
the counsellor or of his counsel. To drink wine against the doctor's advice when overcome
with thirst or with a desire to drink, is not precisely to contemn the doctor nor his advice:
but to say—I will not follow the doctor's advice—must necessarily proceed from some bad
opinion one harbours of him. Now as regards men, one may often contemn their counsel,
without contemning those who give it, because to think that a man may have erred is not
to contemn him. But to reject and contemn God's counsel, can only spring from an idea
that he has not counselled us well; which cannot be thought but by a spirit of blasphemy,
as though God were not wise enough to be able, or good enough to will, to give good advice.
We may say the same of the counsels of the Church, which by reason of the continued as-
sistance of the Holy Ghost, who instructs and conducts her in all truth, can never give evil
advice.
378 Job xxi. 14.
337

36 Pages 351-360

▲back to top


36.1 Page 351

▲back to top


Chapter IX. A Continuation of the Preceding Discourse. How Every One, While…
CHAPTER IX.
A CONTINUATION OF THE PRECEDING DISCOURSE. HOW EVERY ONE, WHILE
BOUND TO LOVE, IS NOT BOUND TO PRACTISE, ALL THE EVANGELICAL
COUNSELS, AND YET HOW EVERY ONE SHOULD PRACTISE WHAT HE IS ABLE.
346
Although all the Evangelical Counsels cannot and should not be practised by every Christian
in particular, yet every one is obliged to love them all, because they are all very good. If you
have a sick headache, and the smell of musk annoys you, will you therefore deny that this
smell is good and delightsome? If a robe of gold does not suit you, will you say that therefore
it is worth nothing? Or will you throw a ring into the dirt because it fits not your finger?
Praise therefore, Theotimus, and dearly love, all the counsels that God has given unto men.
Oh! blessed be the Angel of Great Counsel for ever, together with all the counsels he
gives and exhortations he makes to men! Ointment and perfumes rejoice the heart, says So-
lomon, and the good counsels of a friend are sweet to the soul!379 But of what friend, and of
what counsels, do we speak? O God! it is of the friend of friends; and his counsels are more
delightful than honey: our friend is our Saviour, his counsels are to save us. Let us rejoice,
Theotimus, when we see others undertake to follow those counsels, which we either cannot
or must not observe; let us pray for them, bless, favour and assist them: for charity obliges
us not only to love what is good for ourselves, but that also which is good for our neighbour.
We shall sufficiently testify our love for all the counsels, when we devoutly observe such
as are suitable to our calling. For, as he that believes one article of faith because God has
revealed it by his Word (announced and declared by the Church), cannot disbelieve the
others: and as he who observes one commandment for the pure love of God is most ready
to observe the others when occasion offers:—so he that loves and prizes one evangelical
counsel because it came from God, must necessarily love all the others, because they are
also from God. Now we may with ease practise some of them, though not all of them together;
for God has given many, in order that every one may observe some of them, and not a day
passes without our having some opportunity of doing so.
If charity require that to assist your father or mother you must live with them, preserve
347
at the same time the love and affection for your seclusion; do not keep your heart in your
father's house more than is required for doing what charity orders to be done there. Is it
inexpedient for you, on account of your rank, to preserve perfect chastity? Keep it at least,
as much as you may without violating charity. Let him who cannot do all, at least do some
part. You are not obliged to seek out him who has offended you, for it is his place to return
to himself, and to come to you to give you satisfaction, since he began the injury and outrage:
yet go, Theotimus, follow our Saviour's counsel, prevent him in good, render him good for
evil, cast upon his head and heart the burning coals of signs of charity, that may wholly in-
379 Prov. xxvii. 9.
338

36.2 Page 352

▲back to top


Chapter IX. A Continuation of the Preceding Discourse. How Every One, While…
flame him and force him to a reconciliation. You are not bound by rigour of law to give
alms to all the poor you meet, but only to such as are in very great need of them: yet do not
therefore cease to give willingly, according to our Saviour's counsel, to every poor person
you find, so far as your condition and your real necessities may allow. You have no obligation
to make any vow at all, yet make some, such as shall be judged fit by your ghostly father for
your advancement in Divine love. You have liberty to use wine within the limits of propriety;
yet following S. Paul's counsel to Timothy, take only so much as is requisite for your stomach's
sake.
In counsels there are various degrees of perfection. To lend to such poor people as are
not in extreme want is the first degree of the counsel of alms-deeds; to give it them is a degree
higher; higher still to give all; but the highest is to give oneself, dedicating our person to
their service. Hospitality except in extreme necessity is a counsel. To entertain strangers is
the first degree of it; but to stay by the wayside to invite them as Abraham did, is a degree
higher; and yet higher than that is it to live in places of danger, in order to rescue, help and
wait upon travellers: in this excelled that great S. Bernard of Menthon, a native of this diocese,
who, being a scion of a most noble house, did for many years inhabit the precipices and
peaks of our Alps, and there got together many associates to wait for, lodge and rescue, and
to deliver from the danger of the storm, travellers and passers-by who would often perish
348
amidst the tempests, snow and colds, were it not for the hospices which this great friend of
God erected and founded upon the two mountains, which, taking their names from him,
are called the Great S. Bernard, in the diocese of Sion, and the Little S. Bernard, in the diocese
of Tarentaise. To visit the sick who are not in extreme necessity is a laudable charity, to serve
them is yet better, but to consecrate a man's self to their service is the excellence of that
counsel: this, by their institute, the Clerks of the Visitation of the Sick exercise; as do many
ladies in various places; in imitation of the great S. Samson, a gentleman and physician of
Rome, who at Constantinople, where he was made priest, with a wonderful charity devoted
himself to the service of the sick in a hospital which he began there, and which the Emperor
Justinian erected and finished: and in imitation of SS. Catharine of Siena and of Genoa, S.
Elizabeth of Hungary, and the glorious friends of God S. Francis and the Blessed (S.) Ignatius
of Loyola, who in the beginning of their Orders performed this exercise with an incomparable
fervour and spiritual profit.
Virtues have then a certain sphere of perfection, and commonly we are not obliged to
practise them to the height of their excellence. It is sufficient to go so far in the practice of
them as really to enter upon them. But to go farther, and to advance in perfection, is a
counsel, as the acts of heroic virtues are not ordinarily commanded, but counselled only.
And if upon some occasion we find ourselves obliged to exercise them, it is by reason of
some rare and extraordinary occurrence, which makes them necessary for the preservation
of God's grace. The blessed door-keeper of the prison of Sebaste, seeing one of the forty who
339

36.3 Page 353

▲back to top


Chapter IX. A Continuation of the Preceding Discourse. How Every One, While…
were then martyred lose courage and the crown of martyrdom, took his place without being
apprehended, and thus made up the forty of those glorious and triumphant soldiers of Our
Lord. S. Adauctus seeing S. Felix led to martyrdom,—I, quoth he (no one urging him), I
also am as much a Christian as he, worshipping the same Saviour; and with that, kissing S.
Felix, he walked with him to martyrdom and was beheaded. Thousands of the ancient
martyrs did the like, and having it equally in their power to avoid or undergo martyrdom
349
without sin, they chose rather generously to undergo it than lawfully to avoid it. In these,
martyrdom was an heroic act of the fortitude and constancy which a holy excess of love
gave them. But when it is necessary to endure martyrdom or else to renounce the faith, of
martyrdom does not cease to be martyrdom, and an excellent act love and valour, yet do I
scarcely think it is to be termed an heroic act, not being chosen by any excess of love but by
force of the law which in that case commands it. Now in the practice of the heroic acts of
virtue consists the perfect imitation of our Saviour, who, as the great S. Thomas says, had
all the virtues in an heroic degree from the first instant of his conception; yea I would willingly
say more than heroic, since he was not simply more than man but infinitely more than man,
that is, true God.
340

36.4 Page 354

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to God's Will Signfied unto Us…
CHAPTER X.
HOW WE ARE TO CONFORM OURSELVES TO GOD'S WILL SIGNIFIED UNTO
US BY INSPIRATIONS, AND FIRST, OF THE VARIETY OF THE MEANS BY WHICH
GOD INSPIRES US.
The rays of the sun enlighten while heating and heat while enlightening. Inspiration is a
heavenly ray which brings into our hearts a light full of heat, by which it makes us see the
good and inflames us with a desire to pursue it. All that lives upon the face of the earth is
dulled by the cold of winter, but, upon the return of the vital heat of spring, it all takes up
its movement again. The animals run more swiftly, birds fly more quickly and sing more
merrily, and plants put forth their leaves and flowers most gladsomely. Without inspiration
our souls would lead an idle, sluggish and fruitless life, but on receiving the divine rays of
inspiration we are sensible of a light mingled with a quickening heat, which illuminates our
understanding, and which excites and animates our will, giving it the strength to will and
effect the good which is necessary for eternal salvation. God having formed man's body of
the slime of the earth, as Moses says, breathed into his face the breath of life, and man became 350
a living soul, that is, a soul which gave life, motion and operation to the body; and the same
eternal God breathes and infuses into our souls the inspirations of the supernatural life, to
the end that, as says the great Apostle, they may become a quickening spirit,380 that is, a
spirit which makes us live, move, feel, and work according to the movements of grace, so
that he who gave us being gives us also operation. The breath of man warms the things it
enters into; witness the child of the Sunamitess,381 to whose mouth the prophet Eliseus
having laid his, and breathed upon him, his flesh grew warm; and experience makes it
evident. But with regard to the breath of God, it not only warms, but also gives a perfect
light, his Spirit being an infinite light, whose vital breath is called inspiration, because by it
the divine goodness breathes upon us and inspires us with the desires and intentions of his
heart.
Now it uses countless means of inspiring. S. Antony, S. Francis, S. Anselm, and a thou-
sand others, had frequent inspirations by the sight of creatures. The ordinary means is
preaching, but sometimes those whom the word does not help are taught by tribulation,
according to that of the Prophet: And vexation alone shall make you understand what you
hear:382 that is, such as by hearing the heavenly menaces against the wicked do not amend,
shall be taught the truth by the event and effects, and feeling affliction shall become wise.
S. Mary of Egypt was inspired by the sight of a picture of Our Lady; S. Anthony, by hearing
the Gospel read at Mass; S. Augustine, by hearing the history of S. Anthony's life; the Duke
380 1 Cor. xv. 45
381 4 Kings iv. 34.
382 Is. xxviii. 19.
341

36.5 Page 355

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to God's Will Signfied unto Us…
of Gandia (S. Francis Borgia), by looking upon the dead empress; S. Pachomius, by seeing
an example of charity; the Blessed (S.) Ignatius of Loyola, by reading the lives of the Saints;
S. Cyprian (not the great Bishop of Carthage but a layman, yet a glorious martyr) was moved
by hearing the devil confess his impotence against those that trust in God. When I was a
youth at Paris, two scholars, one of whom was a heretic, passing the night in the Faubourg
S. Jacques in debauchery, heard the Carthusians ring to Matins, and the heretic asking the
351
other why they rang, he described to him with what devotion they celebrated the Divine
office in that holy monastery: O God, quoth he, how different is the practice of those religious
from ours! They perform the office of angels, and we that of brute beasts: and desiring the
day after to see by experience what he had learnt by his companion's relation, he found the
fathers in their stalls, standing like a row of marble statues in their niches, motionless except
for the chanting of the Psalms, which they performed with a truly angelic attention and
devotion, according to the custom of this holy Order; so that this poor youth, wholly ravished
with admiration, was taken with the exceeding consolation which he found in seeing God
so well worshipped amongst Catholics, and resolved, what afterwards he effected, to put
himself into the bosom of the Church, the true and only spouse of him who had visited him
with his inspiration, in the infamous litter of abomination in which he had been.
Oh how happy are they who keep their hearts open to holy inspirations! For these are
never wanting to any, in so far as they are necessary for living well and devoutly, according
to each one's condition of life, or for fulfilling holily the duties of his profession. For as God,
by the ministry of nature, furnishes every animal with the instincts which are necessary for
its preservation and the exercise of its natural powers, so if we resist not God's grace, he
bestows on every one of us the inspirations necessary to live, to work, and to preserve our
spiritual life. O Lord, said the faithful Eliezer, the God of my master, Abraham, meet me to-
day, I beseech thee, and shew kindness to my master, Abraham! Behold, I stand nigh the spring
of water, and the daughters of the inhabitants of this city will come out to draw water: now,
therefore, the maid to whom I shall say: let down thy pitcher that I may drink: and she shall
answer, drink, and I will give thy camels drink also: let it be the same whom thou hast provided
for thy servant Isaac.383 Theotimus Eliezer does not express any desire of water except for
himself, but the fair Rebecca, obeying the inspiration which God and her kindness gave her,
offers withal to water his camels; whence she became holy Isaac's wife, daughter-in-law to
352
the great Abraham, and a grandmother to our Saviour. Truly, the souls which are not con-
tented with doing what the heavenly beloved requires at their hands by his commandments
and counsels, but also promptly comply with sacred inspirations, are they whom the
Eternal Father has destined to be the spouses of his well-beloved son. And, as regards
Eliezer, since he cannot otherwise distinguish amongst the daughters of Haran (the town
383 Gen. xxiv. 12, 13, 14.
342

36.6 Page 356

▲back to top


Chapter X. How We Are to Conform Ourselves to God's Will Signfied unto Us…
of Nachor) which of them was destined for his master's son, God reveals it unto him by in-
spiration. When we are at a loss, and human help fails us in our perplexities, God then in-
spires us, nor will he permit us to err, as long as we are humbly obedient. But I will say no
more of these necessary inspirations, having often spoken of them in this work, as also in
the Introduction to the Devout Life.
343

36.7 Page 357

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Union of Our Will with God's in the Inspirations Which…
CHAPTER XI.
OF THE UNION OF OUR WILL WITH GOD'S IN THE INSPIRATIONS WHICH
ARE GIVEN FOR THE EXTRAORDINARY PRACTICE OF VIRTUES; AND OF PER-
SEVERANCE IN ONE'S VOCATION, THE FIRST MARK OF INSPIRATION.
There are certain inspirations which tend only to an extraordinary perfection of the ordinary
exercises of the Christian life. Charity towards the sick poor is an ordinary exercise of true
Christians; but an ordinary exercise which was practised by S. Francis and S. Catharine with
an extraordinary perfection, when they licked and sucked the ulcers of the leprous and the
cancerous; and by the glorious S. Louis, when bare-head and upon his knees he served the
sick;—at which a Cistercian abbot was lost in admiration, seeing him in this posture handle
and dress the horrible and cancerous sores of a poor wretch. And it was also a very extraordin-
ary exercise of this holy monarch to serve the most abject and vile of the poor at his table,
and to eat their leavings. S. Jerome entertaining in his hospital at Bethlehem the pilgrims 353
of Europe who fled from the persecution of the Goths, did not only wash their feet, but
descended even so low as to wash and rub the legs of their camels, imitating Rebecca whom
we just mentioned, who not only drew water for Eliezer, but for his camels also. S. Francis
was not only extreme in the practice of poverty, as is known to all, but was equally so in the
practice of simplicity. He redeemed a lamb which he feared was going to be slaughtered,
because it represented our Saviour. He showed respect to almost all creatures, contemplating
in them their Creator, by an unusual yet most wise simplicity. Sometimes he would busy
himself with removing worms from the road, lest passers by should trample them under
their feet, remembering that our Saviour had compared himself to the worm. He called
creatures his brothers and sisters, by a certain admirable consideration which love suggested
unto him. S. Alexius, a gentleman of very noble descent, practised in an excellent manner
the abjection of himself, living unknown for the space of seventeen years in his father's house
at Rome as a poor pilgrim. All these inspirations were for ordinary exercises, practised,
however, with extraordinary perfection. Now, in this kind of inspiration we are to observe
the rules which we gave for desires in our Introduction.384 We must not strive to practise
many exercises at once, and upon a sudden, for the enemy often tries to make us undertake
and begin many designs, to the end that overwhelmed with the multiplicity of business we
may accomplish nothing, but leave all unfinished: yea, sometimes he suggests the desire of
undertaking some excellent work which he foresees we shall not accomplish, in order to
turn us from prosecuting a work less excellent which we should have performed; for he
cares not how many purposes, plans and beginnings be made, so long as nothing is done.
384 III. 37.
344

36.8 Page 358

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Union of Our Will with God's in the Inspirations Which…
He will not hinder the bringing forth of male children, any more than Pharao did, provided
that before they grow they are slain. On the contrary, says the great S. Jerome, amongst
Christians it is not so much the beginning as the end that is regarded. We must not swallow
so much food as to be unable to digest what we take. The deceiving spirit makes us stay in
beginnings, and content ourselves with the flowery spring-time, but the Divine Spirit makes
us regard beginnings only in order to attain the end, and only makes us rejoice in the flowers
of spring in the expectation of enjoying the ripe fruits of summer and autumn.
The great S. Thomas is of opinion that it is not expedient to consult and deliberate much
concerning an inclination to enter a good and well-regulated religious Order; for the religious
life being counselled by our Saviour in the Gospel, what need is there of many consultations?
It is sufficient to make one good one, with a few persons who are thoroughly prudent and
capable in such an affair, and who can assist us to make a speedy and solid resolution; but
as soon as we have once deliberated and resolved, whether in this matter or in any other
that appertains to God's service, we must be constant and immovable, not permitting
ourselves to be shaken by any appearances of a greater good: for very often, says the glorious
S. Bernard, the devil deludes us, and to draw us from the effecting of one good he proposes
unto us some other good, that seems better; and after we have started this, he, in order to
divert us from effecting it, presents a third, ready to let us make plenty of beginnings if only
we do not make an end. We should not even go from one Order to another without very
weighty motives, says S. Thomas, following the Abbot Nestorius cited by Cassian.
I borrow from the great S. Anselm (writing to Lanzo) a beautiful similitude. As a plant
often transplanted can never take root, nor, consequently, come to perfection and return
the expected fruit; so the soul that transplants her heart from design to design cannot do
well, nor come to the true growth of her perfection, since perfection does not consist in be-
ginnings but in accomplishments. The sacred living creatures of Ezechiel went whither the
impulse of the spirit was to go, and they turned not when they went, and every one of them
went straight forward:385 we are to go whither the inspiration moves us, not turning about,
nor returning back, but tending thither, whither God has turned our face, without changing
our gaze. He that is in a good way, let him step out and get on. It happens sometimes that
we forsake the good to seek the better, and that having forsaken the one we find not the
other: better is the possession of a small treasure found, than the expectation of a greater
which is to find. The inspiration which moves us to quit a real good which we enjoy in order
to gain a better in the future, is to be suspected. A young Portuguese, called Francis Bassus,
was admirable, not only in divine eloquence but also in the practice of virtue, under the
discipline of the Blessed (S.) Philip Neri in the Congregation of the Oratory at Rome. Now
he persuaded himself that he was inspired to leave this holy society, to place himself in an
354
355
385 Ezech. i. 12.
345

36.9 Page 359

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Union of Our Will with God's in the Inspirations Which…
Order, strictly so called, and at last he resolved to do so. But the B. Philip, assisting at his
reception into the Order of S. Dominic, wept bitterly; whereupon being asked by Francis
Marie Tauruse, afterwards Archbishop of Siena and Cardinal, why he shed tears: I deplore,
said he, the loss of so many virtues. And in fact this young man, who was so excellently good
and devout in the Congregation, after he became a religious was so inconstant and fickle,
that agitated with various desires of novelties and changes, he gave afterwards great and
grievous scandal.
If the fowler go straight to the partridge's nest, she will show herself, and counterfeit
weakness and lameness, and, raising herself up as though she would take a great flight, will
immediately tumble down, as if she were able to do no more, in order that the fowler being
busied in looking after her, and expecting easily to take her, may not light on her little ones
in the nest; but when he has pursued her a while, and fancies he has her, she rises into the
air and escapes. So our enemy, seeing a man by God's inspiration undertake a profession
and manner of life fitted for his advancement in heavenly love, persuades him to enter into
some other way, more perfect in appearance; but having put him out of his first way, he
makes him by little and little apprehend the second way impossible, proposing a third; that
so keeping him occupied in the continual inquiry for various and new means of perfecting
himself, he may hinder him from making use of any, and consequently from attaining the
end he seeks, which is perfection. Young hounds leave the pack at every new scent, and
356
make after the fresh quarry; the old and well-scented hounds never change, but keep the
scent they are on. Let every one then, having once found out God's holy will touching his
vocation, keep to it holily and lovingly, practising therein its proper exercises, according to
the order of discretion and with the zeal of perfection.
346

36.10 Page 360

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Union of Man's Will with God's in Those Inspirations…
CHAPTER XII.
OF THE UNION OF MAN'S WILL WITH GOD'S IN THOSE INSPIRATIONS WHICH
ARE CONTRARY TO ORDINARY LAWS; AND OF PEACE AND TRANQUILLITY OF
HEART, SECOND MARK OF INSPIRATION.
Thus then, Theotimus, we are to behave ourselves in those inspirations which are only ex-
traordinary in the sense that they move us to practise ordinary Christian exercises with an
extraordinary fervour and perfection. But there are other inspirations which are called ex-
traordinary, not only because they make the soul pass the bounds of ordinary actions, but
also because they move it to actions contrary to the common laws, rules and customs of the
most holy Church and therefore are more admirable than imitable. The holy maiden named
by historians Eusebia the Stranger, left Rome, her native city, with two other maidens, and
taking male attire embarked on a sea-voyage, went to Alexandria, and thence to the Isle of
Cos; there, finding herself safe, she put on again her woman's dress, and again taking ship
went into Caria to the town of Mylassa, whither the great Paul, who had found her in Cos
and had taken her under his spiritual direction, led her, and where afterwards being made
Bishop, he so holily directed her that she established a monastery and dedicated herself to
serve the Church in the office of deaconess (as in those days it was called), with such fervour
of charity that in the end she died a Saint, and by a number of miracles which God did by
her relics and intercession, was recognized as such. To put on the attire belonging to the
other sex, and thus disguised to expose oneself to a journey with men, does not only pass 357
the ordinary rules of Christian modesty, but is even contrary to them. A certain young man,
having given his mother a kick, touched with a lively repentance, confessed it to S. Anthony
of Padua; who, to imprint the horror of his sin more deeply in his heart, said to him, amongst
other things: My child, the foot which was the instrument of your wickedness would deserve
to be cut off for so great a trespass; which the youth took in such good earnest, that having
returned home to his mother, transported with the feeling of contrition, he cut off his foot.
The words of the Saint would not have had such force, according to their ordinary meaning,
unless God had added his inspiration thereunto; but it was so extraordinary an inspiration
that it must rather have been considered a temptation, if the miraculous restoration of his
foot, effected by the Saint's benediction, had not warranted it. S. Paul the first hermit, S.
Anthony, S. Mary of Egypt, did not bury themselves in those vast wildernesses—deprived
of hearing Mass, of Communion, of Confession, and deprived, young as they were, of all
direction and assistance,—without a strong inspiration. The great Simeon Stylites led a life
that never mortal creature would have dreamt of or undertaken without heavenly instinct
and assistance. S. John, bishop, surnamed the Silent, forsaking his diocese without the
knowledge of any of his clergy, passed the rest of his days in the Monastery of Laura, nor
was there afterwards any news heard of him. Was not this contrary to the rule of keeping
holy residence? And the great S. Paulinus, who sold himself to ransom a poor widow's son,
347

37 Pages 361-370

▲back to top


37.1 Page 361

▲back to top


Chapter XII. Of the Union of Man's Will with God's in Those Inspirations…
how could he do it according to ordinary laws, since he was not his own, but, by his episcopal
consecration, belonged to the Church and his people? Those virgins and married women
who, being pursued for their beauty, with voluntary wounds disfigured their faces, that
under the mask of a holy deformity they might preserve their chastity, did they not do a
thing, apparently, forbidden?
Now one of the best marks of the goodness of all inspirations in general, and particularly
of extraordinary ones, is the peace and tranquillity of the heart that receives them: for though
358
indeed the Holy Ghost is violent, yet his violence is gentle, sweet and peaceful. He comes
as a mighty wind,386 and as a heavenly thunder, but he does not overthrow the Apostles, he
troubles them not; the fear which they had in hearing the sound was of no continuance, but
was immediately followed by a sweet assurance. That is why this fire sits upon each of them,
taking and causing a sacred repose; and as our Saviour is called a peaceful or pacific Solomon,
so is his spouse called Sulamitess, calm and daughter of peace: and the voice, that is, the in-
spiration, of the bridegroom does not in any sort disquiet or trouble her, but draws her so
sweetly that he makes her soul deliciously melt and, as it were, flow out into him: My soul,
says she, melted when my beloved spoke:387 and though she be warlike and martial, yet is
she withal so peaceable, that amidst armies and battles she maintains the concord of an
unequalled melody. What shalt thou see, saith she, in the Sulamitess but the choirs of
armies?388 Her armies are choirs, that is, harmonies of singers; and her choirs are armies,
because the weapons of the Church and of the devout soul, are only prayers, hymns, canticles
and psalms. Thus it is that those servants of God who had the highest and sublimest inspir-
ations were the most mild and peaceable men in the world, as Abraham, Isaac, Jacob: Moses
is styled the meekest of men; David is lauded for his mildness. On the contrary, the evil
spirit is turbulent, rough, disturbing; and those who follow infernal suggestions, taking them
to be heavenly inspirations, are as a rule easily known, because they are unquiet, headstrong,
haughty, ready to undertake or meddle with all affairs, men who under the cloak of zeal
turn everything upside down, censure every one, chide every one, find fault with everything;
they are persons who will not be directed, will not give in to any one, will bear nothing, but
gratify the passions of self-love under the name of jealousy for God's honour.
386 Acts ii. 2.
387 Cant. v. 6.
388 Cant. vii. 1.
348

37.2 Page 362

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Third Mark of Inspiration, Which Is Holy Obedience to the…
CHAPTER XIII.
THIRD MARK OF INSPIRATION, WHICH IS HOLY OBEDIENCE TO THE CHURCH
AND SUPERIORS.
To peace and sweetness of heart is inseparably joined most holy humility. But I do not term
359
humility, that ceremonious profusion of words, gestures, and kissings of the ground,
obeisances, inclinations,—when they are made, as often happens, without any inward sense
of our own abjection and of just esteem of our neighbour: for all this is but a vain occupation
of weak brains, and is rather to be termed a phantom of humility, than humility.
I speak of a noble, real, productive and solid humility, which makes us supple to correc-
tion, pliable and prompt to obedience. While the incomparable Simeon Stylites was yet a
novice at Teleda, he made himself indocile to the advice of his superiors, who wished to
hinder him from practising so many strange austerities, which he did with an inordinate
cruelty to himself; so that at length he was on this account turned out of the monastery, as
being too little capable of the mortification of the heart, and too much addicted to that of
the body. But having entered into himself and become more devout, and more prudent in
the spiritual life, he behaved quite differently, as he showed in the following action. When
the hermits who were dispersed through the deserts near Antioch knew the extraordinary
life which he led upon the pillar, in which he seemed to be either an earthly angel or a
heavenly man, they despatched a messenger whom they ordered to speak thus to him from
them: Why dost thou, Simeon, leaving the highway trodden by so many great and holy
predecessors, follow another, unknown of men, and so different from all that has been seen
or heard to this day? Simeon, quit this pillar, and come amongst other men to live, after the
manner of life and way of serving God used by the good Fathers who have gone before us.
In case Simeon, yielding to their advice and giving in to their will, should show himself
ready to descend, they had charged the deputy to leave him free to persevere in the manner
of life he had begun, because by his obedience, said those good Fathers, it could well be
known that he had undertaken this kind of life by the divine inspiration: but in case he
should resist, and, despising their exhortations, follow his own will, it would be necessary
360
to withdraw him thence by violence, and force him to forsake his pillar. The deputy then,
being come to the pillar, had no sooner delivered his message, than the great Simeon, without
delay, without reservation, without any reply, began to descend with an obedience and hu-
mility worthy of his rare sanctity. Which when the deputy saw: stay, said he, O Simeon! re-
main there, persevere with constancy, take courage, pursue thy enterprise valiantly; thy
abiding upon this pillar is from God.
But mark, I pray you, Theotimus, how these ancient and holy anchorites in their general
meeting, found no surer mark of a heavenly inspiration in so extraordinary a matter as was
the life of this holy Stylite, than to find him simple, gentle, and tractable, under the laws of
holy obedience; and God, blessing the submission of this great man, gave him the grace to
349

37.3 Page 363

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Third Mark of Inspiration, Which Is Holy Obedience to the…
persevere thirty whole years upon the top of a pillar thirty-six cubits high, having previously
passed seven years upon others of six, twelve, and twenty feet, and having before that been
ten years on the peak of a little rock in the place called the Mandra. Thus this bird of paradise,
living above in air, and not touching earth, was a spectacle of love to the angels, and of ad-
miration to mortals. In obedience all is secure, out of it all is to be suspected.
When God puts inspirations into a heart, the first he gives is obedience. Was there ever
a more illustrious and unmistakable inspiration than that which was given to the glorious
S. Paul? And the principal point of it was, that he should repair to the city, where he should
learn from the mouth of Ananias what he was to do, and this Ananias, a very famous man,
was, as S. Dorotheus says, the Bishop of Damascus. Whosoever says he is inspired, and yet
refuses to obey his superiors and follow their counsel, is an impostor. All the Prophets and
Preachers that ever were inspired by God, always loved the Church, always adhered to her
doctrine, always were approved by her, nor did they ever announce anything so distinctly
as this truth, that the lips of the priest shall keep wisdom, and they shall seek the law at his
mouth.389 So that extraordinary missions are diabolical illusions, not heavenly inspirations,
361
unless they be acknowledged and approved by the pastors who have the ordinary mission.
For thus Moses and the prophets are reconciled. S. Francis, S. Dominic, and the other
Fathers of Religious Orders, were called to the service of souls by an extraordinary inspiration,
but they did so much the more humbly and heartily submit themselves to the sacred Hier-
archy of the Church. In conclusion, the three best and most assured marks of lawful inspir-
ations, are perseverance, against inconstancy and levity; peace and gentleness of heart,
against disquiet and solicitude; humble obedience, against obstinacy and extravagance.
And to conclude all that we have said touching the union of our will with that will of
God which is called signified;—almost all the herbs which bear yellow flowers, yea, the
chicory also which bears blue ones, ever turn them towards the sun, and thus follow its
course: but the sunflower turns not only its flowers but also all its leaves, after the movements
of this great luminary. In the same way all the elect turn the flower of their heart, which is
obedience to the commandments, towards the Divine will, but souls entirely taken with
holy love not only look towards this Divine goodness by obedience to the commandments,
but also by the union of all their affections, following this heavenly sun in his round, in all
that he commands, counsels and inspires, without reserve or exception whatever; whence
they can say with the sacred Psalmist: Lord, I am become as a beast before thee: and I am
always with thee. Thou hast held me by my right hand; and by thy will thou hast conducted
me, and with thy glory thou hast received me.390 For as a well-broken horse is easily, gently
389 Mal. ii. 7.
390 Ps. lxxii. 24, 23
350

37.4 Page 364

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. Third Mark of Inspiration, Which Is Holy Obedience to the…
and exactly managed by his rider, in any way that is required, so the loving soul is so pliable
to God's will that he does with her what he pleases.
351

37.5 Page 365

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. A Short Method to Know God's Will.
CHAPTER XIV.
A SHORT METHOD TO KNOW GOD'S WILL.
S. Basil says that God's will is made clear unto us by his ordinances or commandments, and
that then there is no deliberation to be made, for we are simply to do what is ordained; but
362
that for the rest we have freedom to choose what seems good according to our liking; though
we are not to do all that is lawful but only what is expedient, and to clearly discern what is
expedient we are to follow the advice of our spiritual father.
But, Theotimus, I am to warn you of a troublesome temptation which often crosses the
way of such souls as have a great desire to do what is most according to God's will. For the
enemy at every turn puts them in doubt whether it is God's will for them to do one thing
rather than another; as for example, whether they should eat with a friend or no, whether
they should wear grey or black clothes, whether they should fast Friday or Saturday,
whether they should take recreation or abstain from it; and in this they lose much time, and
while they are busy and anxious to find out what is the better, they unprofitably let slip the
time for doing many good things, the effecting of which would be far more to God's glory,
than this distinguishing between the good and the better, which has taken up their time,
could possibly be.
We are not accustomed to weigh little money, but only valuable pieces: trading would
be too troublesome and would devour too much time, if we were to weigh pence, halfpence,
farthings and half-farthings. So we are not to weigh every petty action to know whether it
be of more value than others; yea there is often a kind of superstition in trying to make this
examination; for to what end should we puzzle to know whether it were better to hear Mass
in one church than in another, to spin than to sew, to give alms to a man rather than a wo-
man? It is not good service to a master to spend as much time in considering what is to be
done, as in doing the things which are to be done. We are to proportion our attention to
the importance of what we undertake. It would be an ill-regulated carefulness to take as
much trouble in deliberating over a journey of one day as over one of three or four hundred
leagues.
The choice of one's vocation, the plan of some business of great consequence, of some
363
work occupying much time, of some very great expenditure, the change of abode, the choice
of society, and the like, deserve to be seriously pondered, in order to see what is most accord-
ing to the will of God. But in little daily matters, in which even a mistake is neither of moment
nor irreparable, what need is there to make a business of them, to scrutinize them, or to
importunately ask advice about them? To what end should I put myself upon the rack to
learn whether God would rather that I should say the Rosary or Our Lady's Office, since
there can be no such difference between them, that a great examination need be held; that
I should rather go to visit the sick in the hospital than to Vespers, that I should rather go to
a sermon than to a church where there is an Indulgence? Commonly there is no such im-
352

37.6 Page 366

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. A Short Method to Know God's Will.
portance in the one more than the other that it is worth while to make any great deliberation.
We must walk in good faith and without minute consideration in such matters, and, as S.
Basil says, freely choose as we like, so as not to weary our spirit, lose our time, or put ourselves
in danger of disquiet, scruples, and superstition. But I mean always where there is no great
disproportion between the two works, and where there is nothing of consideration on one
side more than on the other.
And even in matters of moment we are to use a great humility, and not to think we can
find out God's will by force of examination and subtlety of discourse; but having implored
the light of the Holy Ghost, applied our consideration to the seeking of his good-pleasure,
taken the counsel of our director, and, perhaps, of two or three other spiritual persons, we
must resolve and determine in the name of God, and must not afterwards question our
choice, but devoutly, peacefully, and firmly keep and pursue it. And although the difficulties,
temptations and the variety of circumstances which occur in the course of executing our
design, might cause us some doubt as to whether we had made a good choice, yet we must
remain settled, and not regard all this, but consider that if we had made another choice we
had perhaps been a hundred times worse; to say nothing of our not knowing whether it be
God's will that we should be exercised in consolation or desolation, in peace or war. The
resolution being once holily taken, we are never to doubt of the holiness of the execution;
364
for unless we fail it cannot fail. To act otherwise is a mark of great self-love, or of childishness,
weakness and silliness of spirit.
353

37.7 Page 367

▲back to top


Book IX. Love of Submission, Whereby our Will is United to God's Good-P…
BOOK IX.
OF THE
365
LOVE OF SUBMISSION, WHEREBY OUR WILL IS UNITED TO
GOD'S GOOD-PLEASURE.
354

37.8 Page 368

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Union of Our Will to That Divine Will Which Is Called…
CHAPTER I.
OF THE UNION OF OUR WILL TO THAT DIVINE WILL WHICH IS CALLED THE
WILL OF GOOD-PLEASURE.
Nothing, except sin, is done without that will of God which is called absolute, or will of
good-pleasure, which no one can hinder, and which is only known to us by events: these
show us, by their very happening, that God has willed and intended them.
Let us consider, in one view, Theotimus, all that has been, is, and shall be, and ravished
with amazement, we shall be forced to cry out with the Psalmist: I will praise thee, for thou
art fearfully magnified; wonderful are thy works, and my soul knoweth right well. Thy know-
ledge is become wonderful to me; it is high, and I cannot reach to it.391 And from thence we
pass on to most holy complacency, rejoicing that God is so infinite in wisdom, power and
goodness, which are the three divine attributes, of which the world is but a small evidence,
or, as it were, sample.
Let us behold men and angels and all the variety of nature, of qualities, conditions, fac-
ulties, affections, passions, graces and privileges, which the Divine Providence has established
in the innumerable multitude of those heavenly intelligences and human creatures in whom
God's justice and mercy are so admirably exercised, and we shall be unable to contain
ourselves from singing, with a joy full of respect and loving dread; Mercy and judgment I
will sing to thee, O Lord.392
366
Theotimus, we are to take an exceeding complacency in seeing how God exercises his
mercy in so many different benefits which he distributes amongst men and angels in heaven
and on earth, and how he exerts his justice by an infinite, variety of pains and chastisements:
for his justice and mercy are equally amiable and admirable in themselves, since both of
them are no other thing than one same most singular goodness and divinity. But the effects
of his justice being sharp and full of bitterness to us, he always sweetens them with the
mingling of his mercies, preserving the green olive amidst the waters of the deluge of his
just indignation, and giving power to the devout soul, as to a chaste dove, to find it at last,
provided always that after the fashion of doves she very lovingly ruminate in her mind. So
death, afflictions, anguish, labours, whereof our life is full, and which by God's just ordinance
are the punishments of sin, are also, by his sweet mercy, ladders to ascend to heaven, means
to increase grace, and merits to obtain glory. Blessed are poverty, hunger, thirst, sorrow,
sickness, death, persecution: for they are indeed the just punishments of our faults, yet
punishments so steeped in, or, to use the physician's term, so aromatized with the Divine
sweetness, benignity and clemency, that their bitterness is most delicious. It is a strange yet
a true thing, Theotimus; if the damned were not blinded by their obstinacy, and by their
391 Ps. cxxxviii. 14, 6
392 Ps. c. 1.
355

37.9 Page 369

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Union of Our Will to That Divine Will Which Is Called…
hatred for God, they would find consolation in their torments, and see the divine mercy
admirably mingled with their eternally tormenting flames. Hence the Saints, considering
on the one side the horrible and dreadful torments of the damned, praise the Divine justice
therein, and cry out: Thou art just, O Lord, and thy judgment is right.393 but seeing on the
other side that these pains, though eternal and incomprehensible, come yet far short of the
faults and crimes for which they were inflicted—ravished with God's infinite mercy, they
cry out: O Lord, how good thou art, since in the very heat of thy wrath thou canst not keep
the torrent of thy mercies from pouring out its waters on the pitiless flames of hell!
Mercy, O Lord, hath not thy soul forsaken,
367
E’en while thy justice hath its vengeance taken
In flames of hell; nor could thine ire repress
The torrent of thy wonted graciousness:
In fiercest wrath thou still dost interlace
Thy sternest justice with thine acts of grace.
Let us come, next, to ourselves in particular, and behold the multitude of interior and exter-
ior goods, as also the very great number of interior and exterior pains, which the Divine
Providence has prepared for us: and, as if opening the arms of our consent, let us most lov-
ingly embrace all this, acquiescing in God's most holy will, and singing unto him as it were
a hymn of eternal acquiescence: Thy will be done on earth as it is in heaven: yea, Lord, thy
will be done on earth,—where we have no pleasure which is not mixed with some pain, no
roses without thorns, no day without following night, no spring without preceding winter;
on earth, O Lord! where consolations are thinly, and labours thickly, sown: yet, O God! thy
will be done, not only in carrying out thy commandments, counsels and inspirations, which
are things to be done by us, but also in suffering the afflictions and pains which have to be
borne by us; so that thy will may do by us, for us, in us, and with us, all that it pleases.
393 Ps. cxviii. 137.
356

37.10 Page 370

▲back to top


Chapter II. That the Union of Our Will with the Good-Pleasure of God Takes…
CHAPTER II.
THAT THE UNION OF OUR WILL WITH THE GOOD-PLEASURE OF GOD TAKES
PLACE PRINCIPALLY IN TRIBULATIONS.
Painful things cannot indeed be loved when considered in themselves, but viewed in their
source, that is, in the Divine Will and Providence which ordains them, they are supremely
delightful. Look at the rod of Moses upon the ground, and it is a hideous serpent; look upon
it in Moses's hand, and it is a wand of miracles. Look at tribulations in themselves, and they
are dreadful; behold them in the will of God, and they are love and delights. How often have
we turned in disgust from remedies and medicines when the doctor or apothecary offered
them, which, being offered by some well-beloved hand (love surmounting our loathing),
we receive with delight. In truth, love either takes away the hardship of labour, or makes it
dear to us while we feel it. It is said that there is a river in Bœotia wherein the fish appear
golden, but taken out of those their native waters, they have the natural colour of other
fishes: afflictions are so; if we look at them outside God's will, they have their natural bitter-
ness, but he who considers them in that eternal good-pleasure, finds them all golden, un-
speakably lovely and precious.
If Abraham had seen outside God's will the necessity of slaying his son, think, Theotimus,
what pangs and convulsions of heart he would have felt, but seeing it in God's good-pleasure,
it appears all golden, and he tenderly embraces it. If the martyrs had looked upon their
torments outside this good-pleasure, how could they have sung, in chains and flames? The
truly loving heart loves God's good-pleasure not in consolations only but in afflictions also;
yea, it loves it better upon the cross in pains and difficulties, because the principal effect of
love is to make the lover suffer for the thing beloved.
The Stoics, especially good Epictetus, placed all their philosophy in abstaining and sus-
taining, bearing and forbearing; in abstaining from and forbearing earthly delights, pleasures
and honours; in sustaining and bearing wrongs, labours and trials: but Christian doctrine,
which is the only true philosophy, has three principles upon which it grounds all its exer-
cises,—abnegation of self, which is far more than to abstain from pleasures, carrying the
cross, which is far more than tolerating or sustaining it, following Our Lord, not only in re-
nouncing our self and bearing our cross, but also in the practice of all sorts of good works.
But at the same time there is not so much love shown in abnegation or in action, as in suf-
fering. The Holy Ghost in Holy Scripture certainly signifies the death and passion which
our Saviour suffered for us, to be the highest point of his love towards us.
1. To love God's will in consolations is a good love when it is indeed God's will that is
loved, and not the consolation which is the form it takes: however, this is a love without
contradiction, repugnance and effort: for who would not love so worthy a will in so agreeable
a form? 2. To love the will of God in his commandments, counsels and inspirations is a
second degree of love, and much more perfect, for it leads us to the renouncing and quitting
368
369
357

38 Pages 371-380

▲back to top


38.1 Page 371

▲back to top


Chapter II. That the Union of Our Will with the Good-Pleasure of God Takes…
of our own will, and makes us abstain from and forbear some pleasures, though not all. 3.
To love sufferings and afflictions for the love of God is the supreme point of most holy
charity, for there is nothing therein to receive our affection save the will of God only; there
is great contradiction on the part of nature; and we not only forsake pleasures, but embrace
torments and labours.
Our mortal enemy knew well what was love's furthest and finest act, when having heard
from the mouth of God that Job was just, righteous, fearing God, hating sin, and firm in
innocence, he made no account of this, in comparison with bearing afflictions, by which he
made the last and surest trial of the love of this great servant of God. To make these afflictions
extreme, he formed them out of the loss of all his goods and of all his children, abandonment
by all his friends, an arrogant contradiction by his most intimate associates and his wife, a
contradiction full of contempt, mockery and reproach; to which be added the collection of
almost all human diseases, and particularly a universal, cruel, offensive, horrible ulcer over
all his body.
And yet behold the great Job, king as it were of all the miserable creatures of the world,
seated upon a dunghill, as upon the throne of misery, adorned with sores, ulcers, and cor-
ruption, as with royal robes suitable to the quality of his kingship, with so great an abjection
and annihilation, that if he had not spoken, one could not have discerned whether Job was
a man reduced to a dunghill, or the dunghill a corruption in form of a man. Now, I say, hear
the great Job crying out: If we have received good things from the hand of the Lord, why shall
we not receive also evil?394 O God! How this word is great with love! He ponders, Theotimus,
that it was from the hand of God that he had received the good, testifying that he had not
so much loved goods because they were good, as because they came from the hand of the
Lord; whence he concludes that he is lovingly to support adversities, since they proceed
370
from the hand of the same Lord, which is equally to be loved when it distributes afflictions
and when it bestows consolations. Every one easily receives good things, but to receive evil
is a work of perfect love, which loves them so much the more, inasmuch as they are only
lovable in respect of the hand that gives them.
The traveller who is in fear whether he has the right way, walks in doubt, viewing the
country over, and stands in a muse at the end of almost every field to think whether he goes
not astray, but he who is sure of his way walks on gaily, boldly, and swiftly: even so the love
that desires to walk to God's will through consolations, walks ever in fear of taking the wrong
path, and of loving (in lieu of God's good-pleasure) the pleasure which is in the consolation;
but the love that strikes straight through afflictions towards the will of God walks in assur-
ance, for affliction being in no wise lovable in itself, it is an easy thing only to love it for the
sake of him that sends it. The hounds in spring-time are at fault at every step, finding hardly
394 Job ii. 10.
358

38.2 Page 372

▲back to top


Chapter II. That the Union of Our Will with the Good-Pleasure of God Takes…
any scent at all, because the herbs and flowers then smell so freshly that their odour puts
down that of the hart or hare: in the spring-time of consolations love scarcely recognizes
God's good-pleasure, because the sensible pleasure of consolation so allures the heart, that
it troubles the attention which the heart should pay to the will of God. S. Catharine of Siena,
having from our Saviour her choice of a crown of gold or a crown of thorns, chose this latter,
as better suiting with love: a desire of suffering, says the Blessed (S.) Angela of Foligno, is
an infallible mark of love: and the great Apostle cries out that he glories only in the cross,395
in infirmity, in persecution.
395 Gal. vi. 14.
359

38.3 Page 373

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Union of Our Will to the Divine Good-Pleasure in Spiritual…
CHAPTER III.
OF THE UNION OF OUR WILL TO THE DIVINE GOOD-PLEASURE IN SPIRITUAL
AFFLICTIONS, BY RESIGNATION.
The love of the cross makes us undertake voluntary afflictions, as for example, fasting,
371
watching, hair-shirts and other macerations of the flesh, and makes us renounce pleasures,
honours and riches: and the love in these exercises is very delightful to the beloved. Yet it
is still more so when we receive sweetly and contentedly pains, torments and tribulations,
by reason of the Divine will which sends us them. But love is then at its height when we not
only receive afflictions with patience and sweetness, but cherish, love, and embrace them
for the sake of the Divine good-pleasure, whence they proceed.
Now of all the efforts of perfect love, that which is made by acquiescence of spirit in
spiritual tribulations, is doubtless the purest and noblest. The Blessed (S.) Angela of Foligno
makes an admirable description of the interior pangs which she sometimes felt, saying that
her soul was tortured like to a man who being tied hand and foot, should be hung by the
neck without being strangled, and should hang in this state betwixt life and death, without
hope of help, and unable to support himself by his feet or assist himself with his hands, or
to cry out, or even to sigh or moan. It is thus, Theotimus: the soul is sometimes so over-
charged with interior afflictions, that all her faculties and powers are oppressed by the
privation of all that might relieve her, and by the apprehension and feeling of all that can
be grievous to her. So that in imitation of her Saviour she begins to be troubled, to fear, and
to be dismayed, and at length to sadden with a sadness like to that of the dying. Whence
she may rightly say: My soul is sorrowful even unto death; and with the consent of her whole
interior, she desires, petitions, supplicates, that, if it be possible, this chalice may pass, having
nothing left her save the very supreme point of her spirit, which cleaving hard to the divine
will and good-pleasure, says in a most sincere submission: O eternal Father, Ah! not mine
but thy will be done. And the main point is that the soul makes this resignation amidst such
a world of troubles, contradictions, repugnances that she hardly even perceives that she
makes it; at least it seems done so coldly as not to be done from her heart nor properly, since
what then goes on for the divine good-pleasure is not only done without delight and con-
372
tentment, but even against the pleasure and liking of all the rest of the heart, which is per-
mitted by love to bemoan itself (if only for the reason that it may not bemoan itself) and to
sigh out all the lamentations of Job and Jeremias, yet with the condition that a sacred peace
be still preserved in the depths of the heart, in the highest and most delicate point of the
spirit. But this submissive peace is not tender or sweet, it is scarcely sensible, though sincere,
strong, unchangeable and full of love, and it seems to have betaken itself to the very end of
the spirit as into the donjon-keep of the fort, where it remains in its high courage, though
all the rest be taken and oppressed with sorrow: and in this case, the more love is deprived
360

38.4 Page 374

▲back to top


Chapter III. Of the Union of Our Will to the Divine Good-Pleasure in Spiritual…
of all helps, and cut off from the aid of the powers and faculties of the soul, the more it is to
be esteemed for preserving its fidelity so constantly.
This union or conformity with the divine good-pleasure is made either by holy Resigna-
tion or by most holy Indifference. Now resignation is practised with a certain effort of sub-
mission: one would willingly live instead of dying, yet since it is God's pleasure that die we
must, we yield to it. We would willingly live, if it pleased God, yea, further, we wish that it
was his pleasure to let us live: we die submissively, yet more willingly would we live; we depart
with a reasonably good will, yet we have a still stronger inclination to stay. Job in his afflic-
tions made the act of resignation: If we have received good things at the hand of God, said
he, why should we not receive the evil,396 why not sustain the pains and toils he sends us?
Mark, Theotimus, how he speaks of sustaining, supporting, enduring; As it hath pleased the
Lord so is it done: blessed be the name of the Lord.397 These are words of resignation and
acceptance, by way of suffering and patience.
396 Job ii. 10.
397 Job i. 21.
361

38.5 Page 375

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Union of Our Will to the Good-Pleasure of God by Ind…
CHAPTER IV.
OF THE UNION OF OUR WILL TO THE GOOD-PLEASURE OF GOD BY INDIF-
FERENCE.
Resignation prefers God's will before all things, yet it loves many other things besides the
373
will of God. Indifference goes beyond resignation: for it loves nothing except for the love
of God's will: insomuch that nothing can stir the indifferent heart, in the presence of the
will of God. It is true that the most indifferent heart in the world may be touched with some
affection, so long as it does not know where the will of God is. Eliezer being come to the
fountain of Haran, saw the virgin Rebecca, and found her lovely and amiable beyond his
expectation; but yet he stayed in Indifference, till he knew by a sign from God, that the Divine
will had prepared her for his master's son; then he presented her with the earrings and
bracelets of gold. On the contrary, if Jacob had only loved in Rachel the alliance with Laban,
to which his father Isaac had obliged him, Lia would have been as dear unto him as Rachel,
they being both Laban's daughters; and consequently his father's will would have been as
well fulfilled in the one as in the other. But because, besides his father's will, he desired to
satisfy his own liking, charmed with the beauty and grace of Rachel, he disliked marrying
Lia, and took her against his inclination, resignedly.
But the indifferent heart is not such; for knowing that tribulation, though hard-favoured
as another Lia, ceases not on that account to be daughter and well-beloved daughter to the
Divine pleasure, it loves her as much as consolation, though the latter be in herself more
amiable;—yea, it loves tribulation more, because it sees nothing amiable in her save the
mark of God's will. If I desire pure water only, what care I whether it be served in a golden
vessel or in a glass, as in either case I take only the water: yea, I would rather have it in a
glass, because this has no other colour than water itself, which thus I also see better. What
matter whether God's will be presented to us in tribulation or in consolation, since I seek
nothing in either of them but God's will, which is so much the better seen when there is no
other beauty present save that of this most holy, eternal, good-pleasure.
Heroic, yea more than heroic, was the Indifference of the incomparable S. Paul. I am
374
straitened, said he, between two, having a desire to be dissolved and to be with Christ, a thing
by far the better. But to abide still in the flesh is needful for you.398 Wherein he was followed
by the great Bishop S. Martin, who having come to the end of his life, pressed with an extreme
desire to go to his God, did yet testify that he would most willingly remain amongst the la-
bours of his charge, for the good of his flock, as if after having sung this canticle: How lovely
are thy tabernacles, O Lord of hosts! My soul longeth and fainteth for the courts of the Lord.
My heart and my flesh have rejoiced in the living God:399—went on to make this exclamation:
398 Phil. i. 23.
399 Ps. lxxxiii. 1.
362

38.6 Page 376

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of the Union of Our Will to the Good-Pleasure of God by Ind…
"Yet O Lord, if I am still necessary for the salvation of your people, I refuse not the la-
bour,—your will be done." Admirable the Indifference of the Apostle, admirable that of this
Apostolic man! They see heaven open for them, they see a thousand labours on earth, they
are indifferent in the choice of either: nothing but the will of God can set their hearts at rest;
heaven appears no more pleasant than worldly miseries, if God's good-pleasure be equally
in them both: labours are a heaven if God's will be found in them, and heaven is unhappiness
if it be not found therein; for as David said, they desire nothing in heaven or earth except
to see God's good-pleasure accomplished. What have I in heaven, and besides thee what do
I desire upon earth?400
The indifferent heart is as a ball of wax in the hands of its God, receiving with equal
readiness all the impressions of the Divine pleasure; it is a heart without choice, equally
disposed for everything, having no other object of its will than the will of its God, and placing
its affection not upon the things that God wills, but upon the will of God who wills them.
Wherefore, when God's will is in various things, it chooses, at any cost, that in which it ap-
pears most. God's will is found in marriage and in virginity, but because it is more in virginity,
the indifferent heart makes choice of virginity though this cost it its life, as with S. Paul's
dear spiritual daughter S. Thecla, with S. Cecily, S. Agatha, and a thousand others. God's
375
will is found in the service of the poor and of the rich, but yet somewhat more in serving
the poor; the indifferent heart will choose that side. God's will lies in moderation amid
consolations, and in patience amid tribulations: the indifferent heart prefers the latter, as
having more of God's will in it. To conclude, God's will is the sovereign object of the indif-
ferent soul; wheresoever she sees it she runs after the odour of its perfumes, directing her
course ever thither where it most appears, without considering anything else. She is conducted
by the Divine will, as by a beloved chain; which way soever it goes, she follows it: she would
prize hell more with God's will than heaven without it; nay she would even prefer hell before
heaven if she perceived only a little more of God's good-pleasure in that than in this, so that
if by supposition of an impossible thing she should know that her damnation would be more
agreeable to God than her salvation, she would quit her salvation and run to her damnation.
400 Ps. lxxii. 25.
363

38.7 Page 377

▲back to top


Chapter V. That Holy Indifference Extends to All Things.
CHAPTER V.
THAT HOLY INDIFFERENCE EXTENDS TO ALL THINGS.
Indifference is to be practised in things belonging to the natural life, as in health, sickness,
beauty, deformity, weakness, strength: in the affairs of the spiritual life, as in dryness, con-
solations, relish, aridity; in actions, in sufferings,—briefly, in all sorts of events. Job, in his
natural life was struck with the most horrible sores that ever eye beheld, in his civil life he
was scorned, reviled, contemned, and that by his nearest friends; in his spiritual life he was
oppressed with languors, oppression, convulsions, anguish, darkness, and with all kinds of
intolerable interior griefs, as his complaints and lamentations bear witness. The great Apostle
proclaims to us a general Indifference; to show ourselves the true servants of God, in much
patience, in tribulation, in necessities, an distresses, in stripes, in prisons, in seditions, in labours,
in watchings, in fastings; in chastity; in knowledge, in long-suffering, in sweetness, in the Holy 376
Ghost, in charity unfeigned, in the word of truth, in the power of God; by the armour of justice
on the right hand and on the left, through honour and dishonour, by evil report and good report:
as deceivers, and yet true; as unknown and yet known; as dying, and behold we live; as chastised
and not killed; as sorrowful, yet always rejoicing: as needy, yet enriching many; as having
nothing, and possessing all things.401
Take notice, I pray you, Theotimus, how the life of the Apostles was filled with afflictions:
in the body by wounds, in the heart by anguish, according to the world by infamy and
prisons, and in all these,—O God! what Indifference they had! Their sorrow is joyous, their
poverty rich, their death life-giving, their dishonour honourable, that is, they are joyful for
being sad, content to be poor, strengthened with life amid the dangers of death, and glorious
in being made vile, because—such was the will of God. And whereas the will of God was
more recognized in sufferings than in the actions of virtues, he ranks the exercise of patience
first, saying: But in all things let us exhibit ourselves as the ministers of God, in much patience,
in tribulation, in necessities, in distresses: and then, towards the end, in chastity, in knowledge,
in long-suffering.
In like manner our divine Saviour was incomparably afflicted in his civil life, being
condemned as guilty of treason against God and man; beaten, scourged, reviled, and tormen-
ted with extraordinary ignominy; in his natural life, dying in the most cruel and sensible
torments that heart could conceive; in his spiritual life enduring sorrows, fears, terrors, an-
guish, abandonment, interior oppressions, such as never had, nor shall have, their like. For
though the supreme portion of his soul did sovereignly enjoy eternal glory, yet love hindered
401 2 Cor. vi. 4-10
364

38.8 Page 378

▲back to top


Chapter V. That Holy Indifference Extends to All Things.
this glory from spreading its delicious influence into the feelings, or the imagination, or the
inferior reason, leaving thus his whole heart at the mercy of sorrow and distress.
Ezechiel saw the likeness of a hand, which took him by a single lock of the hairs of his
head, lifting him up between heaven and earth;402 in like manner our Saviour, lifted up on
377
the cross between heaven and earth, seemed to be held in his Father's hand only by the very
extremity of the spirit, and, as it were, by one hair of his head, which, touching the sweet
hand of his eternal Father, received a sovereign affluence of felicity, all the rest being swal-
lowed up in sorrow and grief: whereupon he cries out: My God, why hast thou forsaken me?
They say that the fish termed lantern-of-the-sea in the midst of the tempest thrusts out
of the water her tongue, which is so luminous, resplendent and clear, that it serves as a light
or beacon for mariners. So in the sea of passions by which Our Lord was overwhelmed, all
the faculties of his soul were, so to say, swallowed up and buried in the whirlpool of so many
pains, excepting only the point of his spirit, which, exempt from all trouble, remained bright
and resplendent with glory and felicity. Oh how blessed is the love which reigns in the
heights of the spirit of faithful souls, while they are tossed upon the billows and waves of
interior tribulations!
402 Ezech. viii. 3.
365

38.9 Page 379

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Practice of Loving Indifference, in Things Belonging…
CHAPTER VI.
OF THE PRACTICE OF LOVING INDIFFERENCE, IN THINGS BELONGING TO
THE SERVICE OF GOD.
The divine good-pleasure is scarcely known otherwise than by events, and as long as it is
unknown to us, we must keep as close as possible to the will of God which is already declared
or signified to us: but as soon as the Divine Majesty's pleasure appears, we must at once
lovingly yield ourselves to its obedience.
My mother (or it would be the same of myself) is ill in bed how do I know whether God
intends death to follow or not? Of course I cannot know; but I know well that while awaiting
378
the event from his good-pleasure, he wills, by his declared will, that I use remedies proper
to effect a cure. But if it be the Divine pleasure that the disease, victorious over the remedies,
should at last bring death—as soon as ever I am certain of this by the actual event, I will
amorously acquiesce, in the point of my spirit, in spite of all the opposition of the inferior
powers of my soul. Yes, Lord, I will say, it is my will because thy good-pleasure is such; thus
it has pleased thee, and so it shall please me, who am the most humble servant of thy will.
But if the Divine pleasure were declared to me before the event took place, as was to the
great S. Peter the manner of his death, to the great S. Paul his chains and prisons, to
Jeremias the destruction of his dear Jerusalem, to David the death of his son,—then we
should have at the same instant to unite our will to God's in imitation of the great Abraham,
and, like him, if we had such a command, we should have to undertake the execution of the
eternal decree even in the slaying of our children: Oh admirable union of this patriarch's
will to the will of God, when, believing that it was the Divine pleasure that he should sacrifice
his child, he willed and undertook it so courageously! admirable that of the child, who so
meekly submitted himself to his father's sword, to have God's good-pleasure performed at
the price of his own death!
But note here, Theotimus, a mark of the perfect union of an indifferent heart with the
Divine pleasure. Behold Abraham with the sword in his hand, his arm extended ready to
give the deathblow to his dear only son: he is doing this to please the Divine will; and see at
the same time an angel, who, on the part of this same will, suddenly stops him, and imme-
diately he holds his stroke, equally ready to sacrifice or not to sacrifice his son; whose life
and whose death are indifferent to him in the presence of God's will. When God gives him
an order to sacrifice his son he does not grow sad, when God dispenses with the order given
he does not rejoice, all is one to this great heart, so that God's will be fulfilled.
Yes, Theotimus, for God oftentimes to exercise us in this holy Indifference, inspires us
with very high designs, which yet he will not have accomplished, and as then we are boldly,
379
courageously and constantly to commence and to pursue the work as far as we can, so are
we sweetly and quietly to acquiesce in such result of our enterprise as it pleases God to send
us. S. Louis by inspiration passed the sea to conquer the Holy Land; the event answered not
366

38.10 Page 380

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Practice of Loving Indifference, in Things Belonging…
his expectation, he sweetly acquiesces. I more esteem the tranquillity of this submission
than the magnanimity of his enterprise. S. Francis went into Egypt to convert the infidels,
or amongst the infidels to die a martyr; such was the will of God: yet he returned without
performing either, and that was also God's will. It was equally the will of God that S. Anthony
of Padua desired martyrdom and that he obtained it not. Blessed (S.) Ignatius of Loyola
having with such pains put on foot the Company of the name of Jesus, from which he saw
so many fair fruits and foresaw many more in the time to come, had yet the nobility of soul
to promise himself that though he should see it dissolved (which would be the bitterest pain
that could befal him), within half an hour afterwards he would be stayed and tranquil in the
will of God. John of Avila, that holy and learned preacher of Andalusia, having a design to
form a company of reformed priests for the advancement of God's glory, and having already
made good progress in the matter, as soon as he saw the Jesuits in the field, thinking they
were enough for that time, immediately stopped his own undertaking, with an incomparable
meekness and humility. Oh how blessed are such souls, bold and strong in the undertakings
God proposes to them, and withal tractable and facile in giving them over when God so
disposes! These are marks of a most perfect Indifference, to leave off doing a good when
God pleases, and to return from half way when God's will, which is our guide, ordains it.
Jonas was much to blame in being angry because God, as he considered, did not fulfil his
prophecy upon Ninive. Jonas did God's will in announcing the destruction of Ninive; but
he mingled his own interest and will with that of God; whence, seeing that God did not
fulfil his prediction according to the rigour of the words he had used in announcing it, he
was offended and shamefully murmured. Whereas if God's will had been the only motive
of his actions, he would have been as well content to have seen it accomplished in remission
of the penalty which Ninive had merited, as in punishment of the fault which Ninive had
committed. We desire that what we undertake or manage should succeed, but it is not
380
reasonable that God should do all after our liking. If God wills Ninive to be threatened, and
yet not overthrown (since the threat is sufficient to correct it), why should Jonas think
himself aggrieved?
But if this be so, we are then to care for (affectionner) nothing, but abandon our affairs
to the mercy of events? Pardon me, Theotimus, we are to omit nothing which is requisite
to bring the work which God has put into our hands to a happy issue, yet upon condition
that, if the event be contrary, we should lovingly and peaceably embrace it. For we are
commanded to have great care in what appertains to God's glory and to our charge, but we
are not bound to, or responsible for, the event, because it is not in our power. Take care of
him, was it said to the innkeeper, in the parable of the poor man who lay half-dead between
Jerusalem and Jericho. It is not said, as St. Bernard remarks, cure him, but, take care of him.
So the Apostles with most earnest affection preached first to the Jews, though they foresaw
that in the end they would be forced to leave them as an unfruitful soil, and betake themselves
367

39 Pages 381-390

▲back to top


39.1 Page 381

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Practice of Loving Indifference, in Things Belonging…
to the Gentiles. It is our part to plant and water carefully, but to give increase—that belongs
only to God.
The great Psalmist makes this prayer to our Saviour as by an exclamation of joy and
with presage of victory: O Lord in thy comeliness and thy beauty, bend thy bow, proceed
prosperously and mount thy horse.403 As though he would say that by the arrows of his
heavenly love shot into human hearts, he made himself master of men, and then handled
them at his pleasure, not unlike to a horse well trained. O Lord thou art the royal rider, who
turnest the hearts of thy faithful lovers every way about: sometimes thou givest them the
rein, and they run at full speed in the courses to which thou impellest them: and then, when
it seems good to thee, thou makest them stop in the midst of their career and at the height
of their speed.
But further, if the enterprise begun by inspiration fail by the fault of those to whom it
was committed, how can it then be said that a man is to acquiesce in God's will? For, some
381
one will say to me, it is not God's will that hinders the success, but my fault. This is not
caused by God's will, for God is not author of sin; but yet for all that, it is God's will that
your fault should be followed by the overthrow and failure of your design, in punishment
of your fault; for though his goodness cannot permit him to will your fault, yet does his
justice make him will the punishment you suffer for it. So God was not the cause that David
offended, yet it was God that inflicted upon him the pain due to his sin. He was not the
cause of Saul's sin, but he was the cause that in punishment of it the victory fell from his
hands.
When therefore it happens that in punishment of our fault our holy designs have not
good success, we must equally detest the fault by a solid repentance, and accept its punish-
ment; for as the sin is against the will of God, so the punishment is according to his will.
403 Ps. xliv. 6. According to the Septuagint and the Hebrew (Tr.)
368

39.2 Page 382

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Indifference Which We Are to Have As to Our Advancement…
CHAPTER VII.
OF THE INDIFFERENCE WHICH WE ARE TO HAVE AS TO OUR ADVANCEMENT
IN VIRTUES.
God has ordained that we should employ our whole endeavours to obtain holy virtues, let
us then forget nothing which might help our good success in this pious enterprise. But after
we have planted and watered, let us then know for certain that it is God who must give in-
crease to the trees of our good inclinations and habits, and therefore from his Divine
Providence we are to expect the fruits of our desires and labours, and if we find the progress
and advancement of our hearts in devotion not such as we would desire, let us not be
troubled, let us live in peace, let tranquillity always reign in our hearts. It belongs to us dili-
gently to cultivate our heart, and therefore we must faithfully attend to it, but as for the
plenty of the crop or harvest, let us leave the care thereof to our Lord and Master. The hus- 382
bandman will never be reprehended for not having a good harvest, but only if he did not
carefully till and sow his ground. Let us not be troubled at finding ourselves always novices
in the exercise of virtues, for in the monastery of a devout life every one considers himself
always a novice, and there the whole of life is meant as a probation; the most evident argu-
ment, not only that we are novices, but also that we are worthy of expulsion and reprobation,
being, to esteem and hold ourselves professed. For according to the rule of this Order not
the solemnity but the accomplishment of the vows makes the novices professed, nor are the
vows ever fulfilled while there remains yet something to be done for their observance, and
the obligation of serving God and making progress in his love lasts always until death. But
after all, will some one say, if I know that it is by my own fault my progress in virtue is so
slow, how can I help being grieved and disquieted? I have said this in the Introduction to a
Devout Life,404 but I willingly say it again, because it can never be said sufficiently. We must
be sorry for faults with a repentance which is strong, settled, constant, tranquil, but not
troubled, unquiet or fainthearted. Are you sure that your backwardness in virtue has come
from your fault? Well then, humble yourself before God, implore his mercy, fall prostrate
before the face of his goodness and demand pardon, confess your fault, cry him mercy in
the very ear of your confessor, so as to obtain absolution; but this being done remain in
peace, and having detested the offence, embrace lovingly the abjection which you feel in
yourself by reason of delaying your advancement in good.
Ah! my Theotimus, the souls in Purgatory are there doubtless for their sins, and for sins
which they have detested and do supremely detest, but as for the abjection and pain which
404 IV. 11.
369

39.3 Page 383

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Indifference Which We Are to Have As to Our Advancement…
remain from being detained in that place, and from being deprived for a space of the enjoy-
ment of the blessed love which is in Paradise, they endure this lovingly, and they devoutly
pronounce the canticle of the Divine justice; Thou art just, O Lord, and thy judgment is
right.405 Let us therefore await our advancement with patience, and instead of disquieting
383
ourselves because we have so little profited in the time past, let us diligently endeavour to
do better in the time to come.
Behold, I beseech you, this good soul. She has greatly desired and endeavoured to throw
off the slavery of anger; and God has assisted her, for he has quite delivered her from all the
sins which proceed from anger. She would die rather than utter a single injurious word, or
let any sign of hatred escape her, and yet she is subject to the assaults and first motions of
this passion, that is, to certain startings, strong movements and sallies of an angry heart,
which the Chaldaic paraphrase calls stirrings (tremoussements), saying: Be stirred and sin
not;—where our sacred version says: Be angry and sin not.406 In effect it is the same thing,
for the prophet would only say that if anger surprise us, exciting in our hearts the first stir-
rings of sin, we should be careful not to let ourselves be carried further into this passion,
for so we should offend. Now, although these first movements and stirrings be no sin, yet
the poor soul that is often attacked by them, troubles, afflicts and disquiets herself, and
thinks she does well in being sad, as if it were the love of God that provoked her to this
sadness. And yet, Theotimus, it is not heavenly love that causes this trouble, for that is
never offended except by sin; it is our self-love that desires to be exempt from the pains and
toils which the assaults of anger draw on us. It is not the offence that displeases us in these
stirrings of anger, there being none at all committed, it is the pain we are put to in resisting
which disquiets us.
These rebellions of the sensual appetite, as well in anger as in concupiscence, are left in
us for our exercise, to the end that we may practise spiritual valour in resisting them. This
is that Philistine, whom the true Israelites are ever to fight against but never to put down;
they may weaken him, but never annihilate him. He only dies with us, and always lives with
us. He is truly accursed, and detestable, as springing from sin, and tending towards sin:
wherefore, as we are termed earth, because we are formed of earth and shall return to earth,
384
so this rebellion is named sin by the great Apostle, as having sprung from sin and tending
to sin, though it never makes us guilty unless we second and obey it. Whereupon he exhorts
us that we permit it not to reign in our mortal body to obey the concupiscence thereof.407 He
prohibits not the sentiment of sin, but the consenting to it. He does not order us to hinder
sin from coming into us and being in us, but he commands that it should not reign in us.
405 Ps. cxviii. 137.
406 Ps. iv. 5.
407 Rom. vi. 12.
370

39.4 Page 384

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Of the Indifference Which We Are to Have As to Our Advancement…
It is in us when we feel the rebellion of the sensual appetite, but it does not reign in us unless
we give consent unto it. The physician will never order his feverish patient not to be athirst,
for that would be too great a folly; but he will tell him that though he be thirsty he must
abstain from drinking. No one will tell a woman with child not to have a longing for extra-
vagant things, for this is not under her control, but she may well be told to discover her
longings, to the end that if she longs for hurtful things one may divert her imagination, and
not let such a fancy get a hold on her brain.
The sting of the flesh, an angel of Satan, roughly attacked the great S. Paul, in order to
make him fall into sin. The poor Apostle endured this as a shameful and infamous wrong,
and on this account called it a buffeting and ignominious treatment, and petitioned God to
deliver him from it, but God answered him: Paul, my grace is sufficient for thee, for virtue is
made perfect in infirmity.408 Thereupon this great holy man said in acquiescence:—Gladly
will I glory in my infirmities that the power of Christ may dwell in me. But take notice, I be-
seech you, that there is sensual rebellion even in this admirable vessel of election, who in
running to the remedy of prayer teaches us that we are to use the same arms against the
temptations we feel. Note further that Our Lord does not always permit these terrible revolts
in man for the punishment of sin, but to manifest the strength and virtue of the Divine as-
sistance and grace. Finally, note that we are not only not to be disquieted in our temptations
and infirmities, but we are even to glory in our infirmity that thereby God's virtue may appear
in us, sustaining our weakness against the force of the suggestion and temptation: for the
385
glorious Apostle calls the stings and attacks of impurity which he endured his infirmities,
and says that he glories in them, because, though he had the sense of them by his misery,
yet through God's mercy he did not give consent to them.
Indeed, as I have said above, the church condemned the error of certain solitaries, who
held that we might be perfectly delivered even in this world from the passions of anger,
concupiscence, fear, and the like. God wills us to have enemies, and it is also his will that
we should repulse them. Let us then behave ourselves courageously between the one and
the other will of God, enduring with patience to be assaulted, and endeavouring with courage
by resistance to make head against, and resist our assailants.
408 2 Cor. xii. 9.
371

39.5 Page 385

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How We Are to Unite Our Will with God's in the Permission…
CHAPTER VIII.
HOW WE ARE TO UNITE OUR WILL WITH GOD'S IN THE PERMISSION OF
SINS.
God sovereignly hates sin, and yet he most wisely permits it, in order to let the reasonable
creature act according to the condition of its nature; and to make the good more worthy of
commendation, when having power to transgress the law they do not transgress it. Let us
therefore adore and bless this holy permission, but since the Providence which permits sin
infinitely hates it, let us also detest and hate it, desiring with all our power that sin permitted
may not be committed, and according to this desire let us make use of all means possible
to hinder the birth, growth and reign of sin. Let us in this imitate our Saviour, who never
ceases to exhort, promise, threaten, prohibit, command and inspire us, in order to turn our
will from sin, so far forth as is possible without depriving us of liberty: and when the sin is
once committed let us endeavour what we are able to have it blotted out, like our Saviour,
who assured Carpus, as was said above, that, if it were requisite, he was ready to suffer death 386
again to deliver a single soul from sin. But if the sinner grow obstinate, let us weep, Theo-
timus, groan, pray for him, before the Saviour of our souls, who having all his lifetime shed
an abundance of tears over sinners and over those who represented all sinners, died in the
end—his eyes full of tears, his body all steeped in blood—lamenting the ruin of sinners. This
affection touched David so to the quick that he fell into a swoon over it: A fainting, said he,
hath seized me for sinners abandoning thy law.409 And the great Apostle protests that he has
a continual sorrow in his heart,410 for the obstinacy of the Jews.
Meanwhile, however obstinate sinners may be, let us never desist from aiding and assist-
ing them. How do we know but that they may do penance and be saved? Happy is he that
can say to his neighbour as did S. Paul: For three years I ceased not with tears to admonish
every one of you night and day. Wherefore I take you to witness this day that I am clear from
the blood of all men. For I have not spared to declare unto you all the counsel of God.411 So
long as we are within the limits of hope that the sinner will amend (which limits are always
of the same extent as those of his life), we must never reject him, but pray for him and assist
him as far as his misery will permit.
But, at last, after we have wept over the obstinate, and performed towards them the
good offices of charity in trying to reclaim them from perdition, we must imitate our Saviour
and the Apostles; that is, we must divert our spirit from thence and place it upon other objects
and employments which are more to the advancement of God's glory. To you it behoved us
first (said the Apostles to the Jews) to speak the word of God: but because you reject it, and
409 Ps. cxviii. 53.
410 Rom. ix. 2.
411 Acts xx. 31, 26, 27.
372

39.6 Page 386

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How We Are to Unite Our Will with God's in the Permission…
judge yourselves unworthy of eternal life, behold we turn to the Gentiles.412 The kingdom of
God (said our Saviour) shall be taken from you, and shall be given to a nation yielding the
fruits thereof.413 For we cannot spend too long time in bewailing some, without losing time
fit and necessary for procuring the salvation of others. The Apostle indeed says that the loss
of the Jews is a continual sorrow to him, but this is said in the same sense that we say we
387
praise God always; for we mean no other thing thereby than that we praise him very fre-
quently, and on every occasion; and in the same manner the glorious St. Paul felt a continual
grief in his heart on account of the reprobation of the Jews, in the sense that on every occasion
he bemoaned their misfortune.
For the rest we must ever adore, love and praise God avenging and punishing justice as
we love his mercy, being both daughters of his goodness; for by his grace he makes us good,
being good, yea, sovereignly good, himself; by his justice he punishes sin because he hates
it, and he hates it because, being sovereignly good, he hates the sovereign evil which is
iniquity: and, in conclusion, note, that God never withdraws his mercy from us save by the
just vengeance of his punishing justice, nor do we ever escape the rigour of his justice but
by his justifying mercy: and always, whether punishing or favouring us, his good-pleasure
is worthy of adoration, love and everlasting praise. So the just man who sings the praises of
the mercy of God over such as shall be saved, will also rejoice when he shall see his vengeance.
The blessed shall with joy approve the sentence of the damnation of the reprobate, as well
as that of the salvation of the elect: and the angels, having exercised their charity towards
those that they had in keeping, shall remain in peace, when they see them obstinate, yea
even damned. We are therefore to submit ourselves to the Divine will, and kiss the right
hand of his mercy and the left hand of his justice, with an equal love and reverence.
412 Acts xiii. 46.
413 Matt. xxi. 43.
373

39.7 Page 387

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How the Purity of Indifference is to Be Practised in the Actions…
CHAPTER IX.
HOW THE PURITY OF INDIFFERENCE IS TO BE PRACTISED IN THE ACTIONS
OF SACRED LOVE.
One of the most excellent musicians in the world, who played perfectly upon the lute, became
388
in time so extremely deaf that he entirely lost the use of his hearing, yet ceased he not for
all that to sing and to handle his lute marvellous delicately, by reason of the great skill he
had acquired, of which his deafness did not deprive him. But because he had no pleasure
in his song, nor yet in the sound of his lute, inasmuch as, being deprived of his hearing he
could not perceive its sweetness and beauty,—he no longer sang or played save only to
content a prince whose native subject he was, and whom he had an extreme inclination, as
well as an infinite obligation, to please, because brought up in his palace from childhood.
Hence he took an incomparable delight in pleasing him, and when his prince showed that
he was pleased with his music he was ravished with delight. But it happened sometimes that
the prince, to make trial of this loving musician's love, gave him an order to sing, and then
immediately leaving him there in his chamber, went to the chase. The desire which this
singer had to accomplish his master's will, made him continue his music as attentively as
though his prince had been present, though in very deed he had no content in singing. For
he neither had the pleasure of the melody, whereof his deafness deprived him, nor the content
of pleasing his prince, who being absent could not enjoy the sweetness of the beautiful airs
he sang.
My heart is ready, O God, my heart is ready: I will sing and rehearse a psalm. Arise, O
my glory! Arise psaltery and harp: I will arise early.414 Man's heart is the true chaunter of
the canticle of sacred love, himself the harp and the psaltery. Now ordinarily this chaunter
hears his own voice, and takes a great pleasure in the melody of his song. I mean that our
heart, loving God, relishes the delights of this love, and takes an incomparable contentment
in loving so lovely an object. Notice, I pray you, Theotimus, what I mean. The young
nightingales do first essay a beginning of song to imitate the old ones; but having got skill
and become masters, they sing for the pleasure which they take in warbling, and they so
passionately addict themselves to this delight, as I have said in another place, that by force
389
of straining their voice, their throat bursts and they die. So our hearts in the beginning of
their devotion love God that they may be united and become agreeable unto him, and imitate
him in that he hath loved us for all eternity; but by little and little being formed and exercised
in holy love, they are imperceptibly changed. In lieu of loving God in order to please God,
they begin to love him for the pleasure they take in the exercises of holy love; and instead
of falling in love with God they fall in love with the love they bear him, and stand affected
to their own affections. They no longer take pleasure in God, but in the pleasure they find
414 Ps. lvi. 8, 9.
374

39.8 Page 388

▲back to top


Chapter IX. How the Purity of Indifference is to Be Practised in the Actions…
in his love. They content themselves with this love as being their own, in their spirit and
proceeding from it; for though this sacred love be called the love of God because God is
loved by it, yet it is also ours, because we are the lovers that love. And it is thus we make the
change; for instead of loving this holy love because it tends to God who is the beloved, we
love it because it proceeds from us who are the lovers. Now who does not see that in so doing
we do not seek God, but turn home to ourselves, loving the love instead of loving the beloved?
Loving, I say, the love, not by reason of God's good-pleasure and liking, but for the pleasure
and content we draw from it. This chaunter who in the beginning sang to God and for God,
now rather sings to himself and for himself than for God; and the pleasure he takes in singing
is not so much to please God's ear as his own. And forasmuch as the canticle of Divine love
is of all the most excellent, he also loves it better, not by reason of the Divine excellence
which is exalted therein, but because its music is more delicious and agreeable.
375

39.9 Page 389

▲back to top


Chapter X. Means to Discover When We Change in the Matter of This Holy …
CHAPTER X.
MEANS TO DISCOVER WHEN WE CHANGE IN THE MATTER OF THIS HOLY
LOVE.
You may easily discover this, Theotimus; for if this mystical nightingale sing to please God,
390
she will sing the song which she knows to be most grateful to the Divine Providence, but if
she sing for the delight which she herself takes in her melodious song, she will not sing the
canticle which is most agreeable to the heavenly goodness, but that which she herself likes
best, and from which she expects to draw the most contentment. Of two canticles which
are both divine, it may well be that one may be sung because it is divine, and the other because
it is pleasing. Rachel and Lia are equally wife of Jacob, but he loves one only in the quality
of wife, the other in quality of beautiful. The canticle is divine, but the motive which moves
us to sing it is the spiritual delectation which we expect from it.
Do you not see, we may say to a bishop, that God wills you to sing the pastoral song of
his love among your flock, which, in virtue of holy love, he thrice commands you (in the
person of S. Peter, the first of pastors) to feed? What is your answer? That at Rome or Paris
there are more spiritual pleasures, and that there one may practise Divine love with more
sweetness. O God! it is not then to please thee that this man desires to sing, it is for the
pleasure he takes in it; it is not thou he seeks in his love, but the contentment which he re-
ceives in the exercises of this holy love. Religious men would sing the pastors' song, and
married people that of religious, in order, as they say, to be able to love and serve God better.
Ah! you deceive yourselves my dear friends: do not say that it is to love and serve God better:
Oh no, no, indeed! It is to serve your own satisfaction better, you prefer this before God's.
God's will is as much in sickness as in health, and ordinarily almost more so; wherefore if
we love health better, let us never say that this is in order to serve God the better, for who
sees not that it is health that we look for in God's will, not God's will in health.
It is hard, I confess, to behold long together and with delight the beauty of a mirror
without casting an eye upon ourself, yea, without taking a complacency in ourself; yet there
391
is a difference between the pleasure which we take in beholding the beauty of the mirror,
and the complacency we take in seeing ourself in it. It is also without doubt very hard to
love God and not withal love the pleasure which we take in his love, yet there is a notable
difference between the pleasure which we take in loving God because he is beautiful, and
that which we take in loving him because his love is agreeable to us. Now our task must be
to seek in God only the love of his beauty, not the pleasure which is in the beauty of his love.
He who in praying to God notices that he is praying, is not perfectly attentive to his prayer,
for he diverts his attention from God to whom he prays, and turns it upon the prayer by
which he prays. The very solicitude we have not to be distracted causes oftentimes a very
great distraction; simplicity in spiritual actions is most to be commended. If you wish to
contemplate God, contemplate him then, and that attentively: if you reflect and bring your
376

39.10 Page 390

▲back to top


Chapter X. Means to Discover When We Change in the Matter of This Holy …
eyes backwards upon yourself, to see how you look when you look upon him, it is not now
he that you behold but your own behaviour—your self. He who prays fervently knows not
whether he prays or not, for he is not thinking of the prayer which he makes but of God to
whom he makes it. He that is in the heat of sacred love, does not turn his heart back upon
himself to see what he is doing, but keeps it set and bent upon God to whom he applies his
love. The heavenly chaunter takes such pleasure in pleasing God, that he has no pleasure in
the melody of his voice, except in so far as God is pleased by it.
Why, Theotimus, did Amnon the son of David love Thamar so desperately that he even
thought he should die of love? Do you think that it was she herself that he loved? You soon
see it was not. Look at this man who prays, apparently, with such great devotion, and is so
ardent in the practice of heavenly love. But stay a little, and you will discover whether it be
God indeed whom he loves. Alas! as soon as the delight and satisfaction which he took in
love departs, and dryness comes, he will stop short, and only casually pray. If it had been
God indeed whom he loved, why should he cease loving him, since God is ever God? It was
therefore the consolations of God that he loved, not the God of consolation. In truth there
are many who take no delight in divine love unless it be candied in the sugar of some sensible
sweetness, and they would willingly act like children, who, if they have a little honey spread
392
upon their bread, lick and suck off the honey, casting the bread away; for if the delight could
be separated from the love, they would reject love and take the sweetness only. Wherefore
as they follow love for the sake of its sweetness, when they find not this they make no account
of love. But such persons are exposed to a great danger of either turning back as soon as
they miss their relish and consolations, or else of occupying themselves in vain sweetnesses,
far remote from true love, and of mistaking the honey of Heraclea for that of Narbonne.
377

40 Pages 391-400

▲back to top


40.1 Page 391

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Perplexity of a Heart Which Loves Without Knowing Whether…
CHAPTER XI.
OF THE PERPLEXITY OF A HEART WHICH LOVES WITHOUT KNOWING
WHETHER IT PLEASES THE BELOVED.
The musician of whom I have spoken having become deaf, had no delight in his singing,
save only that now and then he perceived his prince attentive to it and enjoying it. O how
happy is the heart that loves God without pretence of any other pleasure than what it takes
in pleasing God! For what more pure and perfect pleasure can a soul ever take than that
which is taken in pleasing the Divinity? Yet this pleasure of pleasing God is not properly
Divine love, but the fruit thereof; which may be separated from it as the lemon from the
lemon-tree. For, as I have said, our musician always sang without reaping any contentment
from his song, because his deafness made him incapable of it: and often also did he sing
without having the pleasure of pleasing his prince, who, after he had given him order to
begin, would withdraw, or go hunting, neither taking leisure nor pleasure to hear him.
While, O God, I see thy sweet face, which testifies unto me that thou art pleased in the
song of my love, ah! how am I comforted. For is there any pleasure comparable to the
pleasure of truly pleasing our God? But when thou turnest thine eyes from me, and I no 393
longer perceive the sweet savour of the complacency which thou takest in my song—good
God! what pangs my soul endures! But it ceases not, for all that, to love thee faithfully, or
continually to sing the hymn of its dilection, not for any delight it finds therein, for it finds
none at all, but for the pure love of thy will.
One may have seen a sick child bravely eat what his mother presents him (though with
an incredible loathing) from the pure desire of giving her content. In this case he eats without
taking any pleasure in his food, yet not without a pleasure of a higher order and value, which
is the pleasure of pleasing his mother and of perceiving her content. But another who,
without seeing his mother, from the mere knowledge he has of her desire, takes all that is
sent him by her, eats without any pleasure at all. For he has neither the pleasure of eating,
nor yet the contentment of seeing his mother pleased, but he eats purely and simply to do
her will. The contentment of our prince present with us, or of any one whom we love tenderly,
makes watchings, pains and labours delicious, and begets in us a love of peril: but nothing
is so grievous as to serve a master who knows it not, or, if he know it, yet gives no sign that
he is satisfied: love must be strong in such case, because it stands of itself, unsupported by
any pleasure or any expectation.
So it comes to pass sometimes that we have no consolation in the exercises of holy love,
because, like deaf singers, we hear not our own voices, nor enjoy the sweetness of our song;
but on the contrary, besides this privation, are oppressed with a thousand fears, and
frightened with a thousand false alarms which the enemy raises round about our heart;
suggesting that perhaps we are not in grace with our master, and that our love is fruitless,
yea, that it is false and vain, since it brings forth no comfort. And then, Theotimus, we labour
378

40.2 Page 392

▲back to top


Chapter XI. Of the Perplexity of a Heart Which Loves Without Knowing Whether…
not only without pleasure but with an exceeding distress, being neither able to discover the
profit of our labours, nor the contentment of him for whom we labour.
But what in this case augments our trouble is that even the spirit and highest point of
the reason cannot give any assuagement at all; for this poor superior portion of reason being
394
beset round about with the suggestions of the enemy, is herself all troubled, and is fully en-
gaged in keeping the guard, lest sin by surprise might get consent, so that she can make no
sally to disengage the inferior part of her spirit, and although she has not lost heart, yet is
she so desperately set at, that though she be free from fault yet is she not free from pain.
Because, that her distress may be complete, she is deprived of the general consolation which
ordinarily accompanies us through all the other calamities of this life, namely, the hope that
they will not be of long continuance, but will have an end:—so that the heart in these spir-
itual distresses falls into a certain inability of thinking of their end, and consequently of being
eased by hope. Faith indeed which resides in the supreme point of the spirit assures us that
this trouble will have an end, and that one day we shall enjoy a true repose: but the loudness
of the shouts and outcries which the enemy makes in the rest of the soul in the inferior
reason, will scarcely permit the advice and remonstrances of faith to be heard; and there
remains in the imagination only this sorrowful presage: Alas! joy I shall never have.
O God! my dear Theotimus, now it is that we are to show an invincible courage towards
our Saviour, serving him purely for the love of his will, not only without pleasure, but amid
this deluge of sorrows, horrors, distresses and assaults, as did his glorious Mother and St.
John upon the day of his Passion. Amongst so many blasphemies, sorrows and deadly dis-
tresses, they remained constant in love, yea, even in that instant in which our Saviour, having
withdrawn all his holy joy into the very summit of his spirit, left no joy or consolation at all
in his Divine countenance, and when his eyes, languishing and covered with the dark veil
of death, did only cast looks of sorrow, as the sun also shot forth rays of horror and frightful
darkness.
379

40.3 Page 393

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How the Soul amidst These Interior Anguishes Knows Not the…
CHAPTER XII.
HOW THE SOUL AMIDST THESE INTERIOR ANGUISHES KNOWS NOT THE
LOVE SHE BEARS TO GOD: AND OF THE MOST LOVE-FULL DEATH OF THE WILL.
The night before the great S. Peter was to suffer martyrdom, an angel came to the prison
395
and filled it with splendour, awoke S. Peter, made him arise, made him gird himself, and
put on his shoes and clothes, freed him from his bonds and shackles, drew him out of prison,
and led him through the first and second guard, till he came to the iron gate which gave on
the town; this of itself flew open before them, and having passed through one street, the
angel left the glorious S. Peter there in full liberty. Behold a great variety of very corporeal
actions, and yet S. Peter, who was awake from the beginning, did not apprehend that what
was done by the angel was done in deed, but esteemed it a vision of the imagination. He
was awake and yet did not think so, he put on his clothes and shoes not knowing that he
had done it, he walked and yet thought he walked not, he was delivered and believed it not,
and all this because the wonder of his deliverance was so great, and it engaged his heart in
such sort, that though he had sense and knowledge enough to do what he did, yet had he
not enough to discover that he did it really and in good earnest. He saw indeed the angel,
but he did not discern that it was with a true and natural vision, wherefore he took no con-
solation in his delivery till such time as, coming to himself: Now, said he, I know in very
deed that the Lord hath sent his Angel, and hath delivered me out of the hand of Herod, and
from all the expectation of the people of the Jews.415
Now, Theotimus, after the same manner it fares with a soul which is overcharged with
interior anguishes; for although she has the power to believe, to trust, and to love her God,
and in reality does so, yet she has not the strength to see properly whether she believes,
hopes and loves, because her distress so engages her, and makes head against her so desper-
ately, that she can get no time to return into her interior and see what is going on there.
And hence she thinks that she has no faith, nor hope, nor charity, but only the shadows and
fruitless impressions of those virtues, which she feels in a manner without feeling them, and
396
as if foreign, instead of natural, to her soul. And, if you notice, you will find our souls always
in this state when they are strongly occupied by some violent passion, for they perform
many actions as though they were in a dream, with so little sense of what they do that they
can scarcely believe the things actually happen. Hence the sacred Psalmist expresses the
greatness of the consolation of the Israelites on their return from the captivity of Babylon
in these words: When the Lord brought back the captivity of Sion, we became like men com-
forted.416 And as the holy Latin version, following the Septuagint, has it: facti semis "sicut"
consolati: that is our wonder at the greatness of the good which came to us was so excessive,
415 Acts xii. 11.
416 Ps. cxxv. 1.
380

40.4 Page 394

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How the Soul amidst These Interior Anguishes Knows Not the…
that it hindered us from properly feeling the consolation which we received, and it seemed
to us that we were not truly comforted, nor had consolation in real truth, but only in a figure
and a dream.
Such then are the feelings of the soul which is in the midst of spiritual anguishes. These
do exceedingly purify and refine love, for being deprived of all pleasure by which its love
might be attached to God, it joins and unites us to God immediately, will to will, heart to
heart, without any intervention of satisfaction or desire. Alas! Theotimus, how the poor
heart is afflicted when being as it were abandoned by love, she seeks everywhere, and yet
seems not to find it. She finds it not in the exterior senses, they not being capable of it; nor
in the imagination, which is cruelly tortured by conflicting impressions; nor in the under-
standing, distracted with a thousand obscurities of strange reasonings and fears; and though
at length she finds it in the top and supreme region of the spirit where it resides, yet the soul
does not recognize it, and thinks it is not love, because the greatness of the distress and
darkness hinders her from perceiving its sweetness. She sees it without seeing it, meets it
but does not know it, as though all passed in a dream only, or in a type. In this way Magdalen,
having met with her dear Master, received no comfort from him, because she thought that
it was not he indeed, but the gardener only.
397
But what is the soul to do that finds herself in this case? Theotimus, she knows not how
to behave herself amidst so much anguish; nor has she any power save to let her will die in
the hands of God's will; imitating her sweet Jesus, who being arrived at the height of the
pains of the cross which his Father had ordained, and not being able any further to resist
the extremity of his torments, did as the hart does, which when it is run out of breath, and
oppressed by the hounds, yielding itself up into the huntsman's hands, its eyes filled with
tears, utters its last cries. For so this Divine Saviour, near unto his death, and giving up his
last breath with a loud voice and abundance of tears—Alas! said he, O Father, into thy hands
I commit my spirit:—a word, Theotimus, which was his very last, and the one by which the
well-beloved Son gave the sovereign testimony of his love towards his Father. When therefore
all fails us, when our troubles have come to their extremity, this word, this disposition, this
rendering up of our soul into our Saviour's hands, can never fail us. The Son commended
his spirit to his Father in this his last and incomparable anguish, and we, when the convul-
sions of spiritual pains shall bereave us of all other sort of solace and means of resistance,
let us commend our spirit into the hands of this eternal Son who is our true Father, and
bowing the head of our acquiescence in his good pleasure, let us make over our whole will
unto him.
381

40.5 Page 395

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How the Will Being Dead to Itself Lives Entirely in God's…
CHAPTER XIII.
HOW THE WILL BEING DEAD TO ITSELF LIVES ENTIRELY IN GOD'S WILL.
We speak with a singular propriety of a man's death in our French tongue, for we call it an
overpassing (trespas) and the dead the overpassers, intimating that death amongst men is
398
but a passing over from one life to another, and that to die is no other thing but to overpass
the confines of this mortal life, to enter the immortal. True it is, our will can no more die
than our soul, yet does it sometimes go out of the limits of its ordinary life, to live wholly
in the Divine will. This is when it neither wills nor cares to desire any thing at all, but gives
itself over totally and without reserve to the good pleasure of the Divine Providence, so
mingling and saturating itself with this good pleasure, that itself is seen no more, but is all
hidden with Jesus Christ in God, where it lives, not it, but the will of God lives in it.
What becomes of the light of the stars when the sun appears on our horizon? Certainly
it perishes not, but it is ravished into and absorbed in the sun's sovereign light, with which
it is happily mingled and allied; and what becomes of man's will when it is entirely delivered
up to God's pleasure? It does not altogether perish, yet is it so lost and dispersed in the will
of God that it appears not, and has no other will than the will of God. Consider, Theotimus,
the glorious and never sufficiently praised S. Louis, embarking and setting sail for beyond
seas: and see the queen, his dear wife, embarking with his majesty. Now if any one had asked
of this brave princess: Madam, whither are you going? She would without doubt have replied,
I go whither the king goes.—And if further asked: But do you know, Madam, whither the
king goes? She would also have made answer: He told me in general; however, I care not
for knowing, I only desire to accompany him.—And if one had replied: Why then, Madam,
you have no design in this journey? No, would she have said, I have none, except to be with
my dear sovereign and husband.—Well then, it might have been said to her, he goes into
Egypt to pass into Palestine; he will stay at Damietta, Acre, and many places besides,—do
not you intend, Madam, to go thither also? To this she would have made answer: No, in
truth, I have no intention save only to keep myself near my king; as for the places whither
399
he goes, they are all indifferent to me, and of no consideration whatever, except so far as he
will be in them; for I have no affection for anything but the king's presence: it is therefore
the king that goes, it is he that designs the journey, but, as for me, I do not go, I only follow:
I desire not the journey, but solely the presence of the king; the staying, the journeying, and
all their circumstances being utterly indifferent to me.
Surely if we ask some servant who is in his master's train whither he is going, he ought
not to answer that he is going to such a place, but simply that he follows his master, for he
goes nowhere of his own accord, but at his master's pleasure only. In like manner, Theotimus,
a will perfectly resigned to God's should have no will of its own, but simply follow that of
God. And as he who is on ship does not move by his own motion, but leaves himself to be
moved by the motion of the vessel in which he is, so the heart that is embarked in the Divine
382

40.6 Page 396

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How the Will Being Dead to Itself Lives Entirely in God's…
pleasure, ought to have no other will than that of permitting itself to be conducted by the
Divine will. And then the heart does not as before say: Thy will be done, not mine:—for there
is now no will to be renounced; but it utters these words: Lord I commend my will into thy
hands,—even as though it had not its will at its own disposition, but at the disposition of
the Divine Providence. So that it is not exactly as with servants who follow their masters,
for, in their case, although the journey be undertaken at their master's pleasure, yet their
following comes from their own particular will, though a will following and serving, submit-
ted and subjected to, that of their master: so that as the master and servant are two, the will
of the master and the will of the servant are also two. But the will which is dead to herself
that she may live in that of God, is without any particular will, remaining not only in con-
formity and subjection, but quite annihilated in herself, and cemented into God's, as one
might speak of a little child who has not yet got the use of his will to love or desire anything
save the bosom and face of his dear mother. For he does not think of willing to be on one
side or on the other, or of anything else, except only to be in the arms of his mother, with
whom he thinks himself to be one thing. He never troubles himself as to how he shall conform
400
his will to his mother's, for he perceives not his own, nor does he think he has any, leaving
all the care to his mother, to go, to do, and to will, what she judges profitable for him.
It is truly the highest perfection of our will to be thus united to that of our sovereign
good, as was that saint's who said: O Lord, thou hast conducted and led me at thy will.417
For what did he mean but that he had made no use of his will to conduct himself, letting
himself simply be led and guided by that of God.
417 Ps. lxxii. 24.
383

40.7 Page 397

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. An Explanation of What Has Been Said Touching the Decease of…
CHAPTER XIV.
AN EXPLANATION OF WHAT HAS BEEN SAID TOUCHING THE DECEASE OF
OUR WILL.
We may well believe that the most sacred Virgin Our Lady received so much pleasure in
carrying her little Jesus in her arms, that delight beguiled weariness, or at least made it
agreeable; for if a branch of agnus castus can solace and unweary travellers, what solace did
not the glorious Mother receive in carrying the immaculate Lamb of God? And though she
permitted him now and then to run on foot by her, she holding him by the hand, yet this
was not because she would not rather have had him hanging about her neck and on her
breast, but it was to teach him to form his steps and walk alone. And we ourselves, Theotimus,
as little children of the heavenly Father, may walk with him in two ways. For we may, in the
first place, walk with the steps of our own will which we conform to his, holding always with
the hand of our obedience the hand of his divine intention, and following it wheresoever it
leads,—which is what God requires from us by the signification of his will; for since he wills
me to do what he ordains, he wills me to have the will to do it: God has signified that he 401
wills me to keep holy the day of rest; since he wills me to do it, he wills then that I will to do
it, and that for this end I should have a will of my own, by which I follow his, conforming
myself and corresponding to his. But we may on other occasions walk with our Saviour
without any will of our own, letting ourselves simply be carried at his divine good pleasure,
as a little child in its mother's arms, by a certain kind of consent which may be termed union
or rather unity of our heart with God's;—and this is the way that we are to endeavour to
comport ourselves in God's will of good-pleasure, since the effects of this will of good-
pleasure proceed purely from his Providence, and we do not effect them, but they happen
to us. True it is we may will them to come according to God's will, and this willing is excellent;
yet we may also receive the events of heaven's good pleasure by a most simple tranquillity
of our will, which, willing nothing whatever, simply acquiesces in all that God would have
done in us, on us, or by us.
If one had asked the sweet Jesus when he was carried in his mother's arms, whither he
was going, might he not with good reason have answered: I go not, 'tis my mother that goes
for me: And if one had said to him: But at least do you not go with your mother? might he
not reasonably have replied: No, I do not go, or if I go whither my mother carries me, I do
not myself walk with her nor by my own steps, but by my mother's, by her, and in her: But
if one had persisted with him, saying: But at least, O most dear divine child, you really will
to let yourself be carried by your sweet mother? No verily, might he have said, I will nothing
of all this, but as my entirely good mother walks for me so she wills for me; I leave her the
care as well to go as to will to go for me where she likes best; and as I go not but by her steps,
so I will not but by her will; and from the instant I find myself in her arms, I give no attention
384

40.8 Page 398

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. An Explanation of What Has Been Said Touching the Decease of…
either to willing or not willing, turning all other cares over to my mother, save only the care
to be on her bosom, to suck her sacred breast, and to keep myself close clasped to her most
beloved neck, that I may most lovingly kiss her with the kisses of my mouth. And be it
known to you that while I am amidst the delights of these holy caresses which surpass all
402
sweetness, I consider that my mother is a tree of life, and myself on her as its fruit; that I am
her own heart in her breast, or her soul in the midst of her heart, so that as her going serves
both her and me without my troubling myself to take a single step, so her will serves us both
without my producing any act of my will about going or coming. Nor do I ever take notice
whether she goes fast or slow, hither or thither, nor do I inquire whither she means to go,
contenting myself with this, that go whither she please I go still locked in her arms, close
laid at her beloved breasts, where I feed as amongst lilies. O divine child of Mary! Permit
my poor soul these outbursts of love: Go then so, O most amiable dear little babe, or rather
go not but stay, thus holily fastened to your sweet mother's breast; go always in her and
never without her, while thou remainest a child! O how blessed is the womb that bore thee,
and the breasts that gave thee suck!418 The Saviour of our souls had the use of reason from
the instant of his conception in his Mother's womb, and could make all this discourse; so
could even the glorious S. John his forerunner, from the day of the holy visitation, and
though both of them, as well in that time as all through their infancy, were possessed of
liberty to will or not to will, yet, in what concerned their external conduct, they left to their
mothers the care of doing and willing for them what was requisite.
Thus should we be, Theotimus, pliable and tractable to God's good-pleasure, as though
we were of wax, not giving our thoughts leave to wander in wishing and willing things, but
leaving God to will and do them for us as he pleases, throwing upon him all our solicitude,
because he hath care of us,419 as the holy Apostle says: and note that he says all our solicitude,
that is, as well that which concerns the events, as that which pertains to willing or not willing,
for he will have a care of the issue of our affairs, and of willing that which is best for us.
Meanwhile let us affectionately give our attention to blessing God in all his works, after
the example of Job, saying: The Lord gave and the Lord hath taken away, the name of the
403
Lord be blessed!420 No, Lord; I will no events, for I leave you to will them for me at your
pleasure, but instead of willing the events I will bless you because you have willed them. O
Theotimus! what an excellent employment of our will is this, when it gives up the care of
willing and choosing the effects of God's good-pleasure in order to praise and thank this
good pleasure for such effects.
418 Luke xi. 27.
419 1 Pet. v. 7.
420 Job i. 21.
385

40.9 Page 399

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Most Excellent Exercise We Can Make in the Interior and…
CHAPTER XV.
OF THE MOST EXCELLENT EXERCISE WE CAN MAKE IN THE INTERIOR AND
EXTERIOR TROUBLES OF THIS LIFE, AFTER ATTAINING THE INDIFFERENCE AND
DEATH OF THE WILL.
To bless and thank God in all the events that his providence ordains, is in very deed a most
holy exercise, yet if, while we leave the care to God of willing and doing in us, on us, and
with us, what pleases him, without attending to what passes—though fully feeling it—we
could divert our heart, and apply our attention to the divine goodness and sweetness—bless-
ing it not in the effects or events it ordains, but in itself and in its own excellence—we should
certainly practise a far more eminent exercise. In the time that Demetrius was laying siege
to Rhodes, Protogenes, who was in a little house in the suburbs, ceased not to work, and
that with such assurance and repose of mind that though the enemies' sword was in a
manner always at his throat, yet he executed the grand masterpiece and admirable repres-
entation of a Satyr amusing himself with playing upon a pipe. O God! how great are those
souls who in all kinds of accidents keep their affections and attention ever upon the eternal
goodness, honouring and loving it at all times.
The daughter of an excellent physician and surgeon, being in a continual fever, and
knowing that her father loved her entirely, said to one of her friends: I feel very great pain,
404
but I do not think of remedies, for I do not know what might serve for my cure; I might
desire one thing, and another be necessary for me. Do I not then gain more by leaving this
care to my father, who knows, who can do, and who wills for me, all that is required for my
health? I should do wrong by willing anything, for he wills all that could be profitable to
me. I will only wait to let him will to do what is expedient, and when he comes to me I will
only look at him, testify my filial love for him, and show my perfect confidence. And on
these words she fell asleep. Meanwhile her father, judging that it was fit to bleed her, disposed
all that was necessary, and waking her up asked her if she were willing to suffer the operation.
My father, she said, I am yours; I know not what to will for my cure; it is yours to will and
do for me what seems good to you; it is enough for me to love and honour you with all my
heart, as I do. So her arm is tied, and her father himself opens the vein. And while the blood
flows, this loving daughter looks not at her arm nor at the spurting blood, but keeping her
eyes fixed on her father's face, she says only, from time to time: My father loves me, and I,
I am entirely his. And when all was done she did not thank him, but only repeated her words
of filial confidence and love.
Now tell me, my friend Theotimus, did not this daughter show a more attentive and
solid love for her father, than if she had taken great care to ask remedies for her malady, to
watch the vein being opened, and the blood coming, and to say many words of thanks?
There is no doubt whatever about it. What could she have gained save useless solicitude by
thinking for herself, since her father had care enough of her; what but fear by looking at her
386

40.10 Page 400

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Most Excellent Exercise We Can Make in the Interior and…
arm; and what virtue but gratitude would she have shown in thanking her father? Did she
not do best then in occupying herself entirely in the demonstration of her filial love, infinitely
more agreeable to her father than every other virtue?
My eyes are ever towards the Lord; for he shall pluck my feet out of the snare and the
nets.421 Have you fallen into the net of adversity? Ah! look not upon your mishap, nor upon
the snare in which you are taken: look upon God and leave all to him, he will have care of
you: Cast thy care upon the Lord and he shall sustain thee.422 Why do you trouble yourself
405
with willing or not willing the events and accidents of this world, since you are ignorant
what were best for you to will, and since God will always will for you, without your putting
yourself in trouble, all you could will for yourself? Await therefore in peace of mind the effects
of the divine pleasure, and let his willing suffice you, since it is always most good: for so he
gave order to his well-beloved S. Catharine of Siena: Think in me, said he to her, and I will
think for you.
It is very difficult to express exactly this extreme indifference of the human will, thus
absorbed and dead in the will of God. For, meseems, we must not say it acquiesces in that
of God, because acquiescence is an act of the soul which declares its consent. We must not
say it accepts or receives, because accepting and receiving are a sort of actions, which we
might call in a certain sense passive actions, by which we embrace and take what happens:
we must not say that it permits, as even permission is an act of the will, and hence is a certain
inactive willing, which does not do and yet lets be done. It seems to me the soul which is in
this indifference, and which wills nothing, but lets God will what pleases him, should be
said to have its will in a simple and general state of waiting (attente): since waiting is not a
doing or acting, but only the remaining prepared for some event. And, if you take notice,
this waiting of the soul is indeed voluntary, and yet it is not an action, but a simple disposition
to receive whatsoever shall happen; and as soon as the events come and are received, the
waiting changes into consent or acquiescence, but, before they happen, the soul is truly in
a state of simple waiting, indifferent to all that it shall please the divine will to ordain.
Our Saviour thus expresses the extreme submission of his human will to the will of his
Eternal Father. The Lord God, he says, hath opened my ear, that is, he hath declared unto
me his pleasure touching the multitude of the pains which I am to endure, and I, says he
afterwards, do not resist: I have not gone back.423 What does this mean: I do not resist: I have
not gone back, except this? My will is in a simply waiting state, and is ready for all that God
406
shall send; wherefore I have given my body to the strikers, and my cheeks to them that plucked
them: I have not turned away my face from them that rebuked me and spit upon me; being
421 Ps. xxiv. 15.
422 Ps. liv. 23.
423 Is. l. 5, 6.
387

41 Pages 401-410

▲back to top


41.1 Page 401

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Of the Most Excellent Exercise We Can Make in the Interior and…
prepared to let them exercise their pleasure upon me. But mark, I pray you, Theotimus, that
even as our Saviour, after he had made his prayer of resignation in the garden of Olives, and
after he was taken, left himself to be handled and dragged about at the will of them that
crucified him, by an admirable surrender made of his body and life into their hands, so did
he resign up his soul and will by a most perfect indifference into his Eternal Father's hands.
For though he cries out: My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?—yet this was to let
us understand the reality of the anguish and bitternesses of his soul, and not to detract from
the most holy indifference in which it was; as he showed very soon afterwards, concluding
all his life and his passion with those incomparable words: Father, into Thy hands I commend
my spirit.
388

41.2 Page 402

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. Of the Perfect Stripping of the Soul Which Is United to God's…
CHAPTER XVI.
OF THE PERFECT STRIPPING OF THE SOUL WHICH IS UNITED TO GOD'S WILL.
Let us represent to ourselves, Theotimus, the sweet Jesus in Pilate's house, where for love
of us he was divested of all his garments one after the other, by the soldiers, the ministers
of death. And not content with that, they took his skin from him, tearing it with the blows
of rods and whips; then afterwards his soul was bereft of his body, and his body of life, by
the death which he endured upon the cross. But three days being run out, his soul, by the
most holy Resurrection, put on again its glorious body, and his body its immortal skin,
wearing sundry garments, now those of a gardener, now of a pilgrim, or other guise according
as the salvation of man and the glory of God required. Love did all this, Theotimus, and it
is love also which, entering into a soul to make it happily die to itself and live to God, bereaves
it of all human desires, and of self-esteem which is as closely fixed to the spirit as the skin
to the flesh, and strips her at length of her best beloved affections, such as those which she
had to spiritual consolations, exercises of piety and the perfection of virtues, which seemed
to be the very life of the soul.
Then, Theotimus, the soul may by good right cry out: I have put off my garment, how
shall I find in my heart to put it on? I have washed my feet, from all sorts of affections, how
shall I defile them?424 Naked came I out of the hand of God, and naked shall I return thither:
God gave me many desires and God hath taken them away: As it hath pleased the Lord, so
is it done: blessed be the name of the Lord.425 Yes, Theotimus, the same God who made us
desire virtues in our beginning, and who makes us practise them on all occurrences, he it
is that takes from us the affection to virtues and all spiritual exercises, that with more tran-
quillity, purity and simplicity, we should care for nothing but the divine Majesty's good
pleasure. For as the fair and chaste Judith reserved indeed her costly festal robes in her
cabinet, and yet placed not her affection upon them, nor yet ever wore them in the time of
her widowhood, save only when by God's inspiration she went to overthrow Holofernes,
so, though we have learnt the practice of virtue and the exercises of devotion, yet are we not
to give our affection to them nor clothe our heart again with them, save only as far as we
know that such is the good pleasure of God. Judith always wore mourning weeds except
only on this occasion when God's will was that she should be in pomp; so are we peaceably
to remain vested with our misery and abjection amidst our imperfections and infirmities,
till God shall exalt us to the practice of excellent actions.
We cannot long remain in this nakedness, despoiled of all sorts of affections. Wherefore,
following the advice of the holy Apostle, as soon as we have put off the garments of the old
Adam, we are to put on the habits of the new man, that is to say of Jesus Christ, for having
407
408
424 Cant. v. 3.
425 Job i. 21.
389

41.3 Page 403

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. Of the Perfect Stripping of the Soul Which Is United to God's…
renounced all,—yes, even the affection to virtues, neither desiring of these nor of other
things a larger portion than God's will intends,—we must put on again divers affections,
and perhaps the very same which we have renounced and resigned: but we must now put
them on again not because they are agreeable, profitable, honourable to us, and proper to
content the love we have for ourselves, but because they are agreeable to God, profitable to
his honour, and destined to his glory.
Eliezer carried ear jewels, bracelets and new attire for the maid whom God had provided
for his master's son, and in effect he presented them to the virgin Rebecca, as soon as he
knew it was she. New garments are required for our Saviour's spouse. If for the love of God
she has stript herself of the ancient affection which she had to parents, country, home,
friends, she must take quite new affections, loving all this in its order, not now according
to human considerations, but because the heavenly spouse wills, commands, and intends
it so, and has established this order in charity. If we have once put off our old affection to
spiritual consolations, to exercises of devotion, to the practice of virtues, yea to our own
advancement in perfection, we must put on another affection quite new, by loving all these
graces and heavenly favours, not because they perfect and adorn our spirit, but because our
Saviour's name is sanctified in them, his kingdom advanced, his good-pleasure glorified.
So did S. Peter vest himself in the prison, not at his own choice but at the angel's com-
mand. He puts on his girdle, then his sandals, and afterwards the rest of his garments. And
the glorious S. Paul, stripped in a moment of all affections: Lord, said he, what wilt thou
have me do? that is, what is it thy pleasure for me to love, now that throwing me to the
ground thou hast made my own will to die? Ah! Lord, plant thy good-pleasure in the place
of it, and, teach me to do thy will, for thou art my God.426 Theotimus, he who has forsaken
all for God ought to resume nothing but according to God's good-pleasure. He feeds not
his body but according to God's ordinance that it may be serviceable to the spirit; he only
engages in studies in order to assist his neighbour and his own soul, according to the divine
409
intention; he practises virtues not as being his own choice, but according to God's desire.
God commanded the prophet Isaias to strip himself naked; and he did so,427 going and
preaching in this way, for three days together as some hold, or for three years as others think,
and then, the time prefixed by God having expired, he resumed his clothes. Even so are we
to strip ourselves of all affections little and great, as also to make a frequent examination of
our hearts to discover whether it be willing to divest itself, as Isaias did, of all its garments:
then we must take up again, at proper times, the affections suitable to the service of charity,
to the end that we may die with Our Saviour naked upon the cross, and rise again with him
426 Ps. cxlii. 10
427 Is. xx. 2.
390

41.4 Page 404

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. Of the Perfect Stripping of the Soul Which Is United to God's…
in newness of life. Love is strong as death428 to make us quit all, it is magnificent as the Re-
surrection, to adorn us with honour and glory.
428 Cant. viii. 6.
391

41.5 Page 405

▲back to top


Book X. Commandment of Loving God Above All Things.
BOOK X.
OF THE
410
COMMANDMENT OF LOVING GOD ABOVE ALL THINGS.
392

41.6 Page 406

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Sweetness of the Commandment Which God Has Given Us of…
CHAPTER I.
OF THE SWEETNESS OF THE COMMANDMENT WHICH GOD HAS GIVEN US
OF LOVING HIM ABOVE ALL THINGS.
Man is the perfection of the universe; the spirit is the perfection of man; love, that of the
spirit; and charity, that of love. Wherefore the love of God is the end, the perfection and the
excellence of the universe. In this, Theotimus, consists the greatness and the primacy of the
commandment of divine love, which the Saviour calls the first and greatest commandment.
This commandment is as a sun which gives lustre and dignity to all the sacred laws, to all
the divine ordinances, and to all the Holy Scriptures. All is done for this heavenly love, and
all has reference to it. From the sacred tree of this commandment grow all the counsels,
exhortations, inspirations, and the other commandments, as its flowers, and eternal life as
its fruit; and all that does not tend to eternal love tends to eternal death. Grand Command-
ment, the perfect fulfilment of which lasts through eternal life, yea, is no other thing but
eternal life!
But look, Theotimus, how amiable is this law of love. Ah! Lord God, was it not enough
for thee to permit us this divine love, as Laban permitted Jacob that of Rachel, without the
necessity of inviting us to it by exhortations, or driving us to it by commandments? But no,
divine goodness, in order that neither thy greatness, nor our vileness, nor any pretext
whatever should keep us from loving thee, thou dost command it to us. The poor Apelles,
not able to keep from loving the beautiful Campaspe, yet dared not love her because she
411
belonged to the great Alexander; but when he had leave to love her, how greatly obliged did
he consider himself to him who gave this leave to him! He knew not whether he should
more love that beautiful Campaspe whom so great an emperor had given up to him, or that
great emperor who had given him so beautiful a Campaspe. Oh! if we were able to compre-
hend it, my dear Theotimus, what obligation should we have to this sovereign good, who
not only permits but even commands us to love him! Ah! my God, I know not whether I
ought more to love thine infinite beauty which so great a goodness orders me to love, or thy
divine goodness which orders me to love so infinite a beauty! O beauty, how amiable thou
art, being bestowed upon me by a goodness so immense! O goodness, how amiable thou
art, in communicating unto me so eminent a beauty!
God at the Day of Judgment will imprint in the souls of the damned the knowledge of
their loss, in a wondrous manner: for the divine majesty will make them clearly see the
sovereign beauty of his face, and the treasures of his goodness; and at the sight of this abyss
of infinite delights, the will with an extreme effort will desire to cast itself upon him, to be
united unto him and enjoy his love. But all in vain, for it shall be as a woman, who in the
pangs of childbirth, after having endured violent pains, cruel convulsions, and intolerable
pangs, dies in the end without being delivered. For as soon as the clear and fair knowledge
of the divine beauty shall have penetrated the understandings of those unhappy spirits, the
393

41.7 Page 407

▲back to top


Chapter I. Of the Sweetness of the Commandment Which God Has Given Us of…
divine justice shall in such sort deprive the will of its strength that it will be in no wise able
to love this object which the understanding purposes to it, and represents to be so amiable;
and the sight which should beget in the will so great a love, instead thereof shall engender
an infinite sadness. This shall be made eternal by the memory of the sovereign beauty they
saw, which shall for ever live in these lost souls; a memory void of all good, yea full of trouble,
pains, torments and undying despair, because at the same time there shall be found in the
will an impossibility of loving, yea a frightful and everlasting aversion and repugnance to
loving this excellence so desirable. Thus the miserable damned shall live for ever in despairing
412
rage—to know so sovereignly amiable a perfection, without being able ever to have the en-
joyment or the love of it, because while they might have loved it they would not: they shall
burn with a thirst so much the more violent as the remembrance of this fountain of waters
of eternal life shall more inflame their ardour: they shall die immortally, as dogs,429 of a
famine as much more vehement, as their memory shall more sharpen its insatiable cruelty
by the remembrance of the banquet of which they are deprived. The wicked shall see, and
shall be angry, he shall gnash with his teeth and pine away: the desire of the wicked shall per-
ish.430 I would not indeed affirm for certain, that the view of God's beauty which the damned
shall have, like a flash of lightning, will be as bright as that of the Blessed; but still it will be
clear enough to let them see the Son of man in his majesty.431 They shall look on him whom
they pierced;432 and by the view of this glory shall learn the greatness of their loss. Ah! if
God had forbidden man to love him, what a torment would that have been to generous
hearts! What efforts would they not make to obtain permission to love him? David braved
the hazard of a most severe combat to gain the King's daughter,—and what did not Jacob
do to espouse Rachel, and the Prince of Sichem to have Dina in marriage? The damned
would repute themselves blessed if they could entertain a hope of ever loving God: and the
Blessed would esteem themselves damned, if they thought they could ever be deprived of
this sacred love.
O good God! Theotimus, how delicious is the sweetness of this commandment, seeing
that if it pleased the divine will to give it to the damned, they would in a moment be delivered
from their greatest misery, and seeing that the Blessed are only blessed by the practice of it!
O heavenly love, how lovely art thou to our souls! And blessed be the goodness of God for
ever, who so earnestly commands us to love him, though this love is so desirable and so
necessary to our happiness that without it we can but be miserable!
413
429 Ps. lviii.7.
430 Ps. cxi. 10.
431 Matt. xxiv. 30.
432 John xix. 37.
394

41.8 Page 408

▲back to top


Chapter II. That This Divine Commandment of Love Tends to Heaven, Yet Is…
CHAPTER II.
THAT THIS DIVINE COMMANDMENT OF LOVE TENDS TO HEAVEN, YET IS
GIVEN TO THE FAITHFUL IN THIS WORLD.
If the law is not made for the just man,433 because, preventing the law and without the
pressure of the law, he performs God's will by the instinct of charity which reigns in his soul;
how free and exempt from all commandments must we consider the Blessed in Paradise to
be, since from their enjoyment of the sovereign beauty and goodness of the well-beloved, a
most sweet yet inevitable necessity in their spirits of loving eternally the most holy divinity,
flows and proceeds. We shall love God in heaven, Theotimus, not as being tied and obliged
by the law, but as being allured and ravished by the joy which this object, so perfectly worthy
of love, shall yield to our hearts. Then the force of the commandment will cease, in order
to give place to the force of contentment, which shall be the fruit and crown of the observance
of the commandment. We are therefore destined to the contentment which is promised us
in the immortal life, by this commandment which is given unto us in this mortal life, in
which truly we are strictly bound to observe it, because it is the fundamental law which the
King Jesus has given to the citizens of the militant Jerusalem, to make them merit the cit-
izenship and joy of the triumphant Jerusalem.
There above in heaven we shall indeed have a heart quite free from passions, a soul
purified from all distractions, a spirit liberated from contradictions, and powers exempt
from opposition, and therefore we shall love God with a perpetual and never interrupted
affection, as it is said of those four living creatures, which, representing the Evangelists,
continually praised the divinity, not resting day or night.434 O God! what joy, when, estab-
lished in those eternal tabernacles, our spirits shall be in this perpetual movement, in which
414
they shall enjoy the so much desired repose of their eternal loving. Blessed are they that dwell
in thy house, O Lord: they shall praise thee for ever and ever.435
But we are not to expect this love so exceedingly perfect in this mortal life: for as yet we
have neither the heart, nor the soul, nor the spirit, nor the forces of the Blessed. It is sufficient
for us to love with all the heart and all the powers we have. While we are little children, we
are wise like little children, we speak like little children, we love like little children, but when
we shall come to our perfect growth, there above in heaven, we shall be freed from our state
of infancy, and love God perfectly. Yet are we not for all this, Theotimus, during this infancy
of our mortal life, to omit to do what in us lies according as we are commanded, since this
is not only in our power, but is also very easy; the whole commandment being of love, and
of the love of God, who as he is sovereignly good, so is he sovereignly amiable.
433 1 Tim. i. 9.
434 Apoc. iv.
435 Ps. lxxxiii. 5.
395

41.9 Page 409

▲back to top


Chapter II. That This Divine Commandment of Love Tends to Heaven, Yet Is…
396

41.10 Page 410

▲back to top


Chapter III. How, While the Whole Heart Is Employed in Sacred Love, Yet…
CHAPTER III.
HOW, WHILE THE WHOLE HEART IS EMPLOYED IN SACRED LOVE, YET ONE
MAY LOVE GOD IN VARIOUS WAYS, AND ALSO MANY OTHER THINGS TOGETHER
WITH HIM.
He who says all, excludes nothing, and yet a man may be wholly God's, wholly his father's,
wholly his mother's, wholly his prince's, wholly his commonwealth's, his children's, his
friends' so that being all to each, yet he is all to all. This so happens because the duty by
which a man is all to one, is not contrary to the duty by which a man is all to another.
Man gives himself wholly by love, and gives himself as much as he loves. He is therefore
in a sovereign manner given to God when he loves the divine goodness sovereignly. And
415
having once made this donation of himself, he is to love nothing that can remove his heart
from God. Now never does any love take our hearts from God, save that which is contrary
unto him.
Sara is not offended when she sees Ismael about her dear Isaac, so long as his play does
not go on to striking and hurting the boy: and the divine goodness is not offended by seeing
in us other loves besides his, so long as we preserve for him the reverence and submission
due to him.
In heaven, Theotimus, God will truly give himself to us wholly, and not in part, since
he is a whole that has no parts, yet will he give himself in different ways, and in as many
different ways as there are blessed souls. This will so happen because, while giving himself
all to all and all to each, he will never give himself wholly either to one in particular or to
all in general. Now we shall give ourselves to him, according to the measure in which he
gives himself to us: for we shall see him indeed face to face, as he is in his beauty; and shall
love him heart to heart, as he is in his goodness: yet all will not see him with an equal clear-
ness, nor love him with an equal sweetness: but every one will see and love him, according
to the particular measure of glory which the divine Providence has prepared for him. We
shall all equally have the fulness of divine love, but still the fulnesses will be unequal in
perfection. The honey of Narbonne is sweet, and so also is that of Paris: both of them are
full of sweetness, but the one of a better, more delicate and richer sweetness: and though
both of them are entirely sweet, yet neither contains all sweetness. I do homage to my sov-
ereign prince, as also to my immediate superior: I engage then to each of them all my fealty,
and I do not engage it to either of them totally: for in that which I give to the sovereign, I
do not exclude that which I pay to the subaltern, and in that of the subaltern, I do not include
that of the sovereign. Wherefore it is no wonder that, if in heaven (where these words, Thou
shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, shall be so excellently practised) there are great
differences in love, in this mortal life there should be many.
Theotimus, among those who love God with all their heart not only do some love him
more and some less, but even one and the same person often exceeds himself in this sovereign
416
397

42 Pages 411-420

▲back to top


42.1 Page 411

▲back to top


Chapter III. How, While the Whole Heart Is Employed in Sacred Love, Yet…
exercise of loving God above all things. Apelles did better one time than another, sometimes
he surpassed himself; for though commonly he gave all his art and all his attention to
painting Alexander the Great, yet he did not always give them so totally and entirely but
that there remained other efforts to make, in which he used not a greater art or a greater
affection but used them more actively and perfectly. He always employed all his genius to
paint these pictures of Alexander well, because he used it without reserve, yet sometimes
he employed it more effectively and happily. Who knows not that in this holy love progress
is possible, and that the end of the Saints is crowned with a more perfect love than their
beginning?
Now according to the expression of the holy Scriptures, to do a thing with all one's heart
means simply to do it with good heart and without reserve. O Lord, says David, I have sought
thee with my whole heart. I have cried with all my heart, O Lord, hear me,436 and the holy
Word testifies that he had truly followed God with his whole heart; and yet, notwithstanding
this, it affirms also of Ezechias, that after him there was none like him among all the kings of
Judah,437 neither before nor after him, that he was united to God and strayed not from him.
Afterwards treating of Josias it says that there was no king before him like unto him that re-
turned to the Lord with all his heart, and with all his soul, and with all his strength, according
to all the law of Moses, neither after him did there arise any like him.438 Mark then, I pray
you, Theotimus, mark how David, Ezechias and Josias, loved God with all their hearts, and
yet not all three equally, because no one of them had his like in this love, as the sacred text
says. All three loved him, each of them with all his heart; yet, not one nor all together loved
him totally, but each one in his particular way; so that as all the three were alike in this, that
they gave each his whole heart, so were they unlike in their manner of giving it; yea, there
is no doubt that David, to take him by himself, was far different from himself in this love;
and that with his second heart which God created pure and clean in him, and with his right
417
spirit which God renewed in his bowels by most holy penitence, he sang the canticle of his
love far more melodiously than ever he had done with his first heart and his first spirit.
All true lovers are equal in this, that all give all their heart to God, and with all their
strength, but they are unequal in this, that they give it diversely and in different manners,
whence some give all their heart, with all their strength, less perfectly than others. This one
gives it all by martyrdom, this, all by virginity, this, all by poverty, this, all by action, this,
all by contemplation, this, all by the pastoral office; and whilst all give it all by the observance
of the commandments, yet some give it with less perfection than others.
436 Ps. cxviii.
437 Kings xviii. 5.
438 Kings xxiii. 25.
398

42.2 Page 412

▲back to top


Chapter III. How, While the Whole Heart Is Employed in Sacred Love, Yet…
Yea, even Jacob who was called in Daniel the holy one of God,439 and whom God declares
himself to have loved, protests that he had served Laban with all his strength, and why did
he serve Laban, but to obtain Rachel, whom he loved with all his strength? He serves Laban
with all his strength, he serves God with all his strength; he loves Rachel with all his strength,
he loves God with all his strength: yet withal he loves not Rachel as God, nor God as Rachel;
he loves God as his God, above all things and more than himself; he loves Rachel as his wife,
above all other women, and as himself. He loves God with an absolutely and sovereignly
supreme love; and Rachel with a supreme nuptial love. Nor is the one love contrary to the
other, since that of Rachel does not violate the privileges and sovereign prerogatives of the
love of God.
So that our love to God, Theotimus, takes its worth from the eminence and excellence
of the motive for which, and according to which, we love him; in that we love him for his
sovereign infinite goodness, as God, and because he is God. Now one drop of this love is
worth more, has more power, and deserves more esteem, than all the other loves that can
ever enter into the hearts of men or amongst the choirs of angels. For while this love lives,
it reigns and bears the sceptre over all the affections, making God to be preferred in its will
before all things, indifferently, universally, and without reserve.
418
439 Dan. iii. 35.
399

42.3 Page 413

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Two Degrees of Perfection with Which This Commandment May…
CHAPTER IV.
OF TWO DEGREES OF PERFECTION WITH WHICH THIS COMMANDMENT
MAY BE KEPT IN THIS MORTAL LIFE.
While the great King Solomon, possessing as yet the Spirit of God, was composing the sacred
Canticle of Canticles, he had, according to the permission of those ages, a great variety of
ladies and maidens attached to his service in different conditions and qualities. For 1°.
There was one, his singularly dear and wholly perfect one, most rare, as a singular dove,
with whom the others entered not into comparison, and for this reason she was called by
his own name, Sulamitess.440 2°. There were sixty, who, next to her, had the first rank of
honour and estimation, and were called queens. 3°. There were, further, eighty ladies who
were not indeed queens, but were in a recognized and honourable relation to him. 4°. There
were young maidens without number, kept ready to be put in the place of the foregoing as
was required. Now under the figure of what passed in his palace, he described the various
perfections of souls who in time to come were to adore, love and serve the great Pacific King
Jesus Christ, our Saviour; amongst whom there are some, who being newly freed from their
sins, and quite resolved to love God, are yet novices, apprentices, tender and feeble: so that
they love indeed the divine sweetness, yet with such mixture of other affections that their
sacred love being still as it were in its infancy; they love together with our Saviour, many
superfluous, vain and dangerous things. And as a phœnix newly hatched from out its ashes,
having as yet but little, tender feathers and its first down, can only essay short flights, in
which it should be said rather to leap than to fly; so these tender young souls, newly born
from the ashes of their penance, cannot as yet soar on high, or fly in the broad air of sacred
love, being held captives by the multitude of bad inclinations and evil habits which the sins 419
of their past life have left them. Still they are living, they are animated with and possessed
of love, yea and with true love too, else had they never forsaken sin; yet with a love still feeble
and young, which, environed with a number of other loves, cannot produce fruit in such
abundance as it would do if it had the full possession of the heart.
Such was the prodigal son, when, quitting the infamous company or the swine, amongst
which he had lived, he returned into his father's arms, half-naked, unclean and bemired,
and smelling most offensively of the filth which he had contracted in the company of those
vile beasts. For what is it to forsake the swine, but to withdraw from sins? And what is it to
return all ragged, tattered and unclean, but to have our affections engaged in the habits and
inclinations which tend to sin? Yet still was he possessed of the life of the soul which is love;
and as a phœnix rising out of its ashes, he found himself newly raised to life. He was dead,
said his father, and is come to life again,441 he has revived. And these souls are called young
440 Spouse of Solomon [Tr.]
441 Luke xv. 32.
400

42.4 Page 414

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Two Degrees of Perfection with Which This Commandment May…
maidens in the Canticles, forasmuch as, having perceived the odour of the name of the be-
loved who breathes nothing but salvation and mercy, they love him with a true love, but a
love, which is as themselves, in its tender youth. For even as young girls love their husbands
properly if they have one, yet do not cease to greatly love rings and trifles, or their compan-
ions, with whom they amuse themselves extravagantly in playing, dancing and silliness,
busying themselves with little birds, little dogs, squirrels and other such playthings;—so
these young and novice-souls have truly an affection for the sacred lover, yet admit they
with it a number of voluntary distractions and diversions: so that loving him above all things,
they yet busy themselves in many things, which they love, not according to him but besides
him, out of him, and without him. In truth, though little irregularities in words, in gestures,
in apparel, in pastimes and follies, are not, properly speaking, against the will of God; yet
are they not according to it, but out of it and without it.
But there are souls who, having already made some progress in the love of God, have
420
also cut off all the love they had to dangerous things, and yet entertain dangerous and super-
fluous loves: because they love with excess, and with a love too tender and passionate, what
God ordains they should love. It stood with God's pleasure that Adam should love Eve ten-
derly, yet not with such tenderness that, to content her, he should violate the order given
him by his divine majesty. He loved not then a superfluous thing, nor a thing in itself dan-
gerous, but he loved it superfluously and with danger. The love of our parents, friends and
benefactors, is in itself according to God, yet we may love them with excess; as also our vo-
cations, be they never so spiritual: our exercises also of devotion (which yet we ought so
greatly to love) may be loved inordinately, as when we prefer them before obedience, or
before a more general good; or when we love them as if they were our last end, while they
are only means and furtherances to our final intention, which is the divine love. And these
souls, who love nothing but what God would have them to love, and yet exceed in the
manner of loving, love indeed the divine goodness above all things, yet not in all things: for
the things, which, not only by permission but even by command, they are to love according
to God, they love not only according to God, but for other causes and motives, which though
indeed not contrary to God, yet are out of him. So that these souls resemble the phœnix,
when, having got its first feathers and beginning to grow strong it already soars at large in
the air, but has not yet strength enough to remain long on the wing, and often descends to
earth to rest there. Such was the poor young man, who having from his tender age observed
God's commandments, desired not his neighbour's goods, yet clung to his own over tenderly:
so that when our Saviour counselled him to give them to the poor, he became sad and mel-
ancholy. He loved nothing but what he might lawfully love, yet he loved it with a superfluous
401

42.5 Page 415

▲back to top


Chapter IV. Of Two Degrees of Perfection with Which This Commandment May…
and too attached a love. It is plain, Theotimus, that these souls love too ardently and with
superfluity; still, as they love not the superfluities, but only the thing, which may be loved,
therefore they are entitled to the favours of the heavenly Solomon, namely, unions, recollec-
tions, and the repose of love, whereof we spoke in Books V. and VI.: but they do not enjoy
421
them in quality of spouses, because the superfluity with which they love good things, hinders
them from a frequent entry into these divine unions with the spouse; they are engaged in,
and distracted by, loving that out of him and without him, which they ought not to love but
in him and for him.
402

42.6 Page 416

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of Two Other Degrees of Greater Perfection, by Which We May Love…
CHAPTER V.
OF TWO OTHER DEGREES OF GREATER PERFECTION, BY WHICH WE MAY
LOVE GOD ABOVE ALL THINGS.
Now there are other souls who neither love superfluities, nor yet with superfluity, but love
only that which God wills and as he wills:—blessed souls, who love God, their friends in
God, and their enemies for God; they love many things together with God, but none at all,
save in God and for God: it is God that they love, not only above all things, but even in all
things, and all things in God, resembling the phœnix when perfectly renewed in youth and
strength, which is never seen but in the air, or upon the tops of mountains that are in high
air: for so these souls love nothing but in God; though indeed they love many things with
God, and God with many things. S. Luke recounts that our Saviour invited a young man to
follow him, who indeed loved him dearly, but who had also a great affection for his father,
and thereupon had a mind to return home to him. But our Saviour cuts off this superfluity
of love, and excites him to a love more pure, that he may not only love our Saviour more
than his father, but not even love his father at all, but in our Saviour. Let the dead bury their
dead: but as for thee (who hast met with life), go thou, and preach the kingdom of God.442
And these souls, as you see, Theotimus, having so great a union with the spouse, merit to
share his rank, and to be queens, as he is king; since they are entirely dedicated to him
without any division or separation, having no affections out of him, or without him, but 422
only in him and for him.
But, at last, above all these souls, there is yet one most only one, who is the queen of
queens, the most loving, the most lovely, and the most beloved, of all the friends of the divine
beloved, who not only loves God above all things and in all things, but also loves only God
in all things, so that she loves not many things, but one only thing, which is God himself.
And whereas it is God alone whom she loves in all that she loves, she loves him indifferently
in all things, according as his good-pleasure may require, outside all things and without all
things. If it be only Esther that Assuerus loves, why should he love her more when perfumed
and adorned, than in her ordinary attire? If it be my Saviour only that I love, why shall I not
as much love Mount Calvary as Mount Thabor, since he is as truly on the one, as on the
other? And why shall I not as affectionately in one as in the other say: It is good for us to be
here.443 I love my Saviour in Egypt, without loving Egypt; why shall I not love him at the
banquet of Simon the leper, without loving the banquet? And if I love him amidst the blas-
phemies which are poured upon him, not loving the blasphemies, why shall I not love him
perfumed with Magdalen's ointment, without loving either the ointment or its scent? It is
the true sign that we love only God in all things, when we love him equally in all things,
442 Luke ix. 60.
443 Matt. xvii. 4.
403

42.7 Page 417

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of Two Other Degrees of Greater Perfection, by Which We May Love…
because he being always equal to himself, the inequality of our love towards him must needs
proceed from the consideration of something that is not himself. Now this sacred loving
one loves no more her God with all the world, than if he were alone without the world: be-
cause all that is out of God, and is not God, is nothing to her. She is an all-pure soul who
loves not even Paradise but because her beloved is loved there: and he is so sovereignly be-
loved in his Paradise that if yet he had no Paradise to bestow, he would neither appear less
amiable, nor be less beloved of this generous loving heart, who cannot love the Paradise of
her spouse but only her spouse of Paradise, and who puts no less price on Calvary while her
spouse is there crucified, than upon Paradise where he is glorified. He that weighs one of
423
the little balls of the heart of S. Clare of Montefalco, finds it as heavy as all the three together.
So does perfect love find God as amiable all alone, as it finds all creatures together with him,
since it loves all creatures only in God and for God.
Souls in this degree of perfection are so rare that each one is called the only one of her
mother, who is divine Providence; she is called the one dove, for whom the love of her mate
is all; she is termed perfect, because by love she is made the same thing with the sovereign
Perfection, whence she may say with a most humble truth: I to my beloved and his turning
towards me.444 Now there is no one save the most blessed Virgin our Lady, who has perfectly
arrived at this height of excellence in the love of her dearly beloved: for she is a dove so
singularly singular in love, that all the rest being compared to her are rather to be termed
daws than doves. But leaving this peerless queen in her matchless eminence,—there have
yet been other souls who have been in such estate of pure love that in comparison with
others they might take the rank of queens, of only doves, of perfect friends of the spouse.
For I pray you, Theotimus, what must he needs have been, who with all his heart sang to
God: What have I in heaven, and besides thee what do I desire upon earth?445 And he that
cried out: I count all things but as dung that I may gain Christ;446—did he not testify that
he loved nothing out of his master, and that he loved his master without any other things?
And what must have been the feelings of that great lover, who sighed all the night: "My God
is to me all things." Such were S. Augustine, S. Bernard, the two SS. Catharine, of Siena and
of Genoa, and many others, in imitation of whom every one may aspire to this divine degree
of love: rare and singular souls, who resemble no longer the birds of this world, no not the
very phœnix itself, though so singularly rare; but are only represented by that bird which,
for its excellent beauty and nobleness is said not to be of this world, but of Paradise, of which
it bears the name. For this fair bird disdaining the earth, never touches it, but lives above in
the air; yea even when it desires to unweary itself, it will only cleave to the trees by little
424
444 Cant. vii. 10.
445 Ps. lxxii. 25.
446 Phil. iii. 8.
404

42.8 Page 418

▲back to top


Chapter V. Of Two Other Degrees of Greater Perfection, by Which We May Love…
threads, hanging by them suspended in the air, out of which, or without which, it can neither
fly nor repose. Even so these great souls do not, properly speaking, love creatures in them-
selves, but in their Creator, and their Creator in them. But if they cleave to any creature by
the law of charity, it is only to repose in God, the single and final aim of their love. So that
finding God in creatures, and creatures in God, they love God, not the creatures; as pearl-
fishers, though they find the pearls in oysters, consider that they are simply fishing for pearls.
At the same time no mortal creature, as I think, ever loved the heavenly lover solely
with this perfectly pure love, except that Virgin who was his spouse and mother both together;
on the contrary, as regards the practice of these four differences of love, one can hardly live
without passing from one of them to another. The souls which like young maidens are still
entangled in some vain and dangerous affections are not, at times, without feelings of a
purer and supreme love; but as these are but momentary and passing flashes, we cannot say
that they raise them from the state of young novice, or apprentice, maidens. It happens also
sometimes, to the souls who are in the degree of singular and perfect lovers, that they forget
themselves and fail very sadly, even as far as to the committing great imperfections and
grievous venial sins, as we see in various somewhat bitter dissensions which have occurred
between great servants of God, yea even amongst some of the divine Apostles, who, as we
cannot deny, fell into some imperfections; certainly charity was not violated by them, but
the fervour of it was. Nevertheless, as these great souls ordinarily loved God with the perfectly
pure love, we are not to say that they were not in the state of perfect love. For as we see that
good trees never produce any hurtful fruit, yet sometimes bear green or defective and worm-
eaten fruit, or mistletoe and moss; so great saints never produce any mortal sin, but still
they produce some useless, immature, harsh, rough and ill-flavoured actions. In such cases
we must allow that these trees are fruitful, otherwise they would not be good trees; but still
we must not deny that some of their fruits are fruitless. For who will deny that catkins and
425
the mistletoe of trees are fruitless fruits? And who also will deny that slight angers and little
excesses of joy, of laughter, of vanity and of other similar passions, are unprofitable and
unlawful movements? Yet the just man brings them forth seven times a day, that is, very
often.
405

42.9 Page 419

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That the Love of God Above All Things Is Common to All Love…
CHAPTER VI.
THAT THE LOVE OF GOD ABOVE ALL THINGS IS COMMON TO ALL LOVERS.
Though there are so many degrees of love amongst true lovers, yet is there but one com-
mandment of love, which universally and equally obliges every one, with an exactly like and
entirely equal obligation, though it be observed differently and with an infinite variety of
perfections; there being perhaps no souls on earth, as there are no angels in heaven, who
are perfectly equal to one another in their love. As one star differs from another in brightness,
so shall it be with the Blessed in their resurrection, when each one sings a canticle of glory,
and receives a name which no man knoweth but he that receiveth it.447 But what degree of
love is it then, to which the divine commandment equally, universally and continually obliges
all?
It is an action of the providence of the Holy Ghost, that in our ordinary version, which
his divine majesty has canonized and sanctified by the Council of Trent, the heavenly
commandment of love is expressed by the word dilection rather than by the word love; for
although dilection is a kind of love, yet is it not a simple love, but a love of choice and election,
which sense the word itself conveys, as the glorious S. Thomas notes: for this commandment
enjoins us a love chosen out of thousands, the well-beloved object of this love being chosen
out of thousands, according to that of the beloved Sulamitess in the Canticles.448 It is a love
which must prevail over all our loves, and reign over all our passions. And this is what God
426
requires of us—that among all our loves his be the dearest, holding the first place in our
hearts; the warmest, occupying our whole soul; the most general, employing all our powers;
the highest, filling our whole spirit; and the strongest, exercising all our strength and vigour.
And inasmuch as by this we choose and elect God for the sovereign object of our soul, it is
a love of sovereign election, or an election of sovereign love. You are not ignorant, Theotimus,
that there are various species of love, as for example, there is a fatherly love, a brotherly love,
a filial love and a nuptial love; a love of society, of obligation, of dependence,—and a hundred
more, which are all different in excellence, and are so proportioned to their objects that
scarcely can they be applied or appropriated to any other. He who should love his father
with the love of a brother only, would certainly not love him enough. He who should love
his wife only like his father, would not love her properly; he who should love his servant
with a filial love, would commit an impropriety. Love is like honour; for as honour is diver-
sified according to the diversity of the excellences to which the honour is given, so loves are
different according to the difference of the goodnesses for which we love. Sovereign honour
is due to sovereign excellence, and sovereign love to sovereign goodness. The love of God
is a love without peer, because the goodness of God is a peerless goodness. Hear, O Israel,
447 Apoc. ii. 17.
448 Cant. v. 10.
406

42.10 Page 420

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That the Love of God Above All Things Is Common to All Love…
the Lord our God is one Lord, and therefore, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole
heart, and with thy whole soul, and with thy whole strength.449 For as God is the only Lord,
his goodness is infinitely above all goodness, and he is to be loved with a love which is em-
inent, excellent, and mighty beyond all comparison. It is this supreme love which places
God in such esteem in our souls, and makes us repute it so great a happiness to be agreeable
in his sight, that we prefer him and love him above all things. Now, Theotimus, do you not
plainly see, that he who loves God in this sort has dedicated his whole soul and strength to
God, since ever, and for ever, and in all occurrences, he will prefer the good grace of God
to all things, and will be ever ready to forsake the whole world, in order to preserve the love
427
which is due to the divine goodness. And, in a word, it is the love of excellence, or the excel-
lence of love, which is commanded to all mortals in general, and to each one of them in
particular as soon as they have the free use of reason: a love sufficient for each one, and ne-
cessary for salvation to all.
449 Deut. vi. 4, 5.
407

43 Pages 421-430

▲back to top


43.1 Page 421

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Explanation of the Preceding Chapter.
CHAPTER VII.
EXPLANATION OF THE PRECEDING CHAPTER.
We do not always know, nor ever with perfect certainty (at least with certainty of faith),
whether we have the true love of God which is required for salvation; still we have many
marks of it, amongst which the most assured and almost infallible appears when some great
love of creatures opposes itself to the designs of God's love; for then, if divine love is in the
soul, it displays the greatness of the credit and authority which it has over the will, showing
effectively, not only that it has no master, but that it has not even a companion, repressing
and overthrowing all opposition, and making its intentions obeyed. When the unhappy
troop of diabolic spirits, revolting from their Creator, essayed to draw to their faction the
holy company of the blessed spirits, the glorious S. Michael, animating his comrades to the
fidelity which they owed to their God, cried with loud voice (but in angelic sort) through
the heavenly Jerusalem: "Who is like to God?" And by this word he overthrew that traitor
Lucifer with his rout, who would have equalled themselves with the divine majesty; and
thence, as it is said, the name was given to S. Michael, since Michael simply means Who is
like to God? And when the loves of created things would draw our hearts to their party, to
make us disobedient to the divine majesty, if the great divine love be found in the soul, it
makes head against it, as another S. Michael, and establishes the powers and forces of the
soul in God's service by this word of steadfastness: Who is like to God? What goodness is 428
there in creatures which ought to draw the human heart into rebellion against the sovereign
goodness of its God?
When the holy and noble Joseph perceived that the love of his mistress tended to the
ruin of that which was due to his master: Ah! said he, be it far from me that I should violate
the respect which I owe to my master, who reposes so much trust in me? How then can I do
this wicked thing, and sin against my God?450 Mark, Theotimus, how there are three loves
in the heart of this admirable Joseph, for he loves his mistress, his master, and God; but as
soon as his mistress's love rises up against his master's, he suddenly forsakes it and flies, as
he would also have forsaken his master's, if he had found it contrary to God's. Amongst all
loves, God's is so to be preferred that we must always stand prepared in mind to forsake
them all for that alone.
Abraham loved Sarai and Agar, and until Agar began to despise her mistress it could
not well have been discerned which he loved the better. But when these two loves came into
comparison with one another, the good Abraham made quite clear which was the stronger.
For no sooner had Sarai complained that she was contemned by Agar, than he told her:
Behold thy handmaid is in thy own hand, use her as it pleaseth thee.451 Wherefore Sarai so
450 Gen. xxxix. 8.
451 Gen. xvi. 6.
408

43.2 Page 422

▲back to top


Chapter VII. Explanation of the Preceding Chapter.
afflicted the poor Agar that she was driven to run away. Divine love is willing for us to have
other loves; nor can we easily discover which is the chief love of our heart: for this human
heart often draws most affectionately into its complacency the love of creatures; yea, on
many occasions it makes the acts of its affection for the creature far more numerous than
that of its dilection for its Creator. Yet all the time sacred dilection ceases not to excel all
the other loves, as the events show when the creature is opposed to the Creator; for then we
take the part of sacred dilection, submitting unto it all our other affections.
There is often a difference, among created things, between greatness and goodness. One
of Cleopatra's pearls was worth more than our highest mountain; but the latter is much
429
greater: the one has more bulk, the other more worth. It is made a question whether the
honour which a prince achieves in war by feats of arms, or that which he merits by justice
in time of peace be greater; and it seems to me that military glory is grander, and the other
better; as, among instruments, drums and trumpets make more noise, lutes and virginals
more melody; the sound of the one is stronger, of the other sweeter and more spiritual. An
ounce of balm gives not so strong an odour as a pound of oil of lavender, but at the same
time the smell of balm is better and more agreeable.
Truly, Theotimus, you will see a mother so busy about her child that she might seem
to have no other love but that, having eyes only to see it, mouth to kiss it, breast to give it
suck, care to bring it up; and one would think that her husband was nothing to her, in respect
of her child; but if she had to make choice which she would lose, then would be plainly seen
that she more values her husband, and that though the love of her child was more tender,
more pressing and passionate, yet that other was the more excellent, stronger and better.
So when a heart loves God in respect of his infinite goodness, with however little a portion
of this excellent love, it will prefer God's will before all things, and in all the occasions that
present themselves it will forsake everything, to preserve itself in grace with the sovereign
goodness, and nothing whatever will divert it from this. So that, though this divine love
does not always so sensibly affect and melt the heart as do the other loves; yet, on occasions,
it performs actions so noble and excellent, that one of them only is better than ten millions
of the others. Rabbits are incomparably fertile, elephants never have more than one calf;
but this little elephant alone is of greater price than all the rabbits in the world. Our love
towards creatures often abounds in the multitude of productions; but when sacred love acts
its work is so eminent that it surpasses all: for it causes God to be preferred before all things,
without reserve.
409

43.3 Page 423

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A Memorable History to Make Clearly Understood in What the…
CHAPTER VIII.
A MEMORABLE HISTORY TO MAKE CLEARLY UNDERSTOOD IN WHAT THE
FORCE AND EXCELLENCE OF HOLY LOVE CONSIST.
How great an extent then, O my dear Theotimus, ought the force of this sacred love of God
430
above all things to have? It must surpass all affections, vanquish all difficulties, and prefer
the honour of God's good-will before all things; yea I say, before all things absolutely, without
any exception or reservation; and I speak thus with such great distinctness, because there
are men who would courageously forsake their goods, honour, and their own life for our
Lord, who yet will not leave for his sake things of much less consideration.
In the reign of the Emperors Valerianus and Gallus, there lived in Antioch a priest
named Sapricius, and a layman named Nicephorus, who by reason of their long and exceeding
great friendship were considered as brothers: and yet it happened in the end, I know not
upon what occasion, that this friendship failed, and according to custom was followed with
a yet deeper hatred, which reigned for a time between them, till at length Nicephorus, ac-
knowledging his fault, made three different attempts to be reconciled with Sapricius, to
whom, now by one of their common friends, now by another, he sent words signifying all
the satisfaction and submission that heart could have wished. But Sapricius, in no wise an-
swering to his invitations, ever repulsed the reconciliation with as much contempt as Nice-
phorus besought it with humility; insomuch that the poor Nicephorus, thinking that if Sap-
ricius saw him prostrate at his feet begging pardon he would be more touched to the heart
with it, goes and finds him out and courageously casting himself down at his feet:—Reverend
Father, says he, Ah! pardon me, I beseech thee by the bowels of our Saviour Jesus; but even
this humility was disdained and rejected, together with his former endeavours.
Meanwhile, behold a hot persecution arose against the Christians, in which Sapricius
with others being apprehended did wonders in suffering a thousand thousand torments for
the confession of his faith—especially when he was most roughly shaken and rolled in an
instrument made purposely, after the manner of a wine-press—without ever losing his
constancy. At this the Governor of Antioch being extremely irritated condemned him to
death; whereupon he was publicly led out of prison towards the place where he was to receive
431
the glorious crown of martyrdom. No sooner had Nicephorus learnt this, than immediately
he ran, and having met Sapricius, throwing himself upon the ground: Alas! cried he, with
a loud voice, O martyr of Jesus Christ, pardon me, for I have offended thee! But Sapricius
taking no notice, the poor Nicephorus, getting again before him by a shorter way, came to
him anew with the like humility, conjuring him to pardon him in these words: O martyr of
Jesus Christ, pardon the offence which I have committed against thee, I who am but a man
and subject to offend: for lo! a crown is already bestowed upon thee by our Saviour whom
thou has not denied, yea thou hast confessed his holy name before many witnesses. But Sa-
pricius continuing in his pride gave him not one word in answer; until the very executioners,
410

43.4 Page 424

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A Memorable History to Make Clearly Understood in What the…
wondering at the perseverance of Nicephorus, said to him: We have never seen so foolish
a man as thee; this fellow is going even at this moment to die, what dost thou want with his
pardon? To whom Nicephorus answering: Thou knowest not, said he, what it is I demand
of this confessor of Jesus Christ, but God knows. Meantime Sapricius arrived at the place
of execution, where yet again Nicephorus, casting himself upon the ground before him: I
beseech thee, said he, O martyr of Jesus Christ, that it would please thee to pardon me, for
it is written: Ask and it shall be granted thee: words which could not in the least bend the
caitiff and rebellious heart of the miserable Sapricius, who, obstinately denying mercy to
his neighbour, was himself deprived by the just judgment of God of the most glorious palm
of martrydom. For the executioners commanding him to put himself on his knees, in order
to behead him, he began to be daunted, and to parley with them, making in the end this
deplorable and shameful submission: Oh! I pray you, behead me not: I will do what the
Emperors order, and sacrifice to idols. Which the poor good Nicephorus hearing, with tears
in his eyes began to cry: Ah! do not, I beseech thee, transgress the law and deny Jesus Christ;
forsake him not, I beseech thee, lose not the crown of glory which with so great labours and
torments thou hast obtained! But alas! this miserable priest coming to the altar of martyrdom
432
there to consecrate his life to the eternal God, had not called to mind what the Prince of
Martyrs had said: If therefore thou offer thy gift at the altar, and there thou remember that
thy brother hath anything against thee; leave there thy offering before the altar, and go first
to be reconciled to thy brother: and then coming thou shalt offer thy gift.452 Wherefore God
rejected his offering; and withdrawing his mercy from him, permitted him not only to lose
the sovereign happiness of martyrdom, but even to fall headlong into the misery of idolatry;
while the humble and meek Nicephorus, perceiving this crown of martyrdom vacant by the
apostasy of the obdurate Sapricius, touched with an excellent and extraordinary inspiration,
boldly presses forward to obtain it, saying to the officers and executioners: I am a Christian,
my friends, I am in truth a Christian, and believe in Jesus Christ, whom this man has denied:
put me, therefore, I beseech you, in his place, and cut off my head. At which the officers
being extremely astonished, carried the tidings to the governor, who gave orders that Sapricius
should be set at liberty, and that Nicephorus should be put to death, which happened on
the 9th of February, about the year of our salvation 260, as Metaphrastes and Surius relate.
A terrible history, and worthy of the gravest consideration in the subject we treat of! For
did you note, my dear Theotimus, this courageous Sapricius—how bold and fervent he was
in defence of his faith, how he was in the confession of our Saviour's name, while he was
rolled and crushed in that press-like machine, how ready he was to receive the death-blow
to fulfil the highest point of the divine law, preferring God's honour before his own life?
And yet, because on the other side he prefers to the divine will the satisfaction which his
452 Matt. v. 23, 24.
411

43.5 Page 425

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A Memorable History to Make Clearly Understood in What the…
cruel haughtiness takes in hating Nicephorus, he stops short in his course, and when he is
on the point of coming up to and attaining the prize of glory by martyrdom, he miserably
falls and breaks his neck, falling headlong into idolatry.
It is therefore true, my Theotimus, that it is not enough for us to love God more than
433
our own life, unless we also love him universally, absolutely, and without reserve, more than
all we love or can love. But you will say to me, did not our Saviour assign the furthest point
of our love towards him, when he said that greater love than this no man hath, that a man
lay down his life for his friends?453 It is true indeed, Theotimus, that amongst the particular
acts and testimonies of divine love there is none so great as to undergo death for God's glory,
yet it is also true that this is but one single act, and one single test; it is indeed the masterpiece
of charity, but besides it charity exacts many things at our hands, and so much more forcibly
and instantly as they are acts more easy, common and ordinary with all lovers, and more
generally necessary to the preservation of sacred love. O miserable Sapricius! Durst thou be
bold to affirm that thou didst love God as was fitting, whilst thou didst not prefer the will
of God before the passion of hatred and rancour entertained in thy heart against the poor
Nicephorus? To be willing to die for God is the greatest but not the only act of love which
we owe to God; and to will this act only, excluding the others,—this is not charity, it is
vanity. Charity is not fanciful, which she would be in the highest degree, if being resolved
to please the beloved in things of greatest difficulty, she would permit us to displease him
in easier matters. How can he will to die for God who will not live according to God?
A well-ordered mind that is resolved to die for a friend, would also without doubt un-
dergo all other things; for he that has once despised death ought to have despised everything.
But the human spirit is weak, inconstant and humoursome, whence men sometimes rather
choose to die than to undergo far slighter pains, and willingly give their life for extremely
frivolous, childish, and vain satisfactions. Agrippina having learnt that the child she was
bringing forth would be Emperor, indeed, but that he would put her to death: Let him kill
me, said she, provided that he reign. Mark, I pray you, the disorder of this foolishly loving
mother's heart; she preferred her son's dignity before her own life. Cato and Cleopatra chose
death rather than to see their enemies exult and glory in their capture; and Lucretia chose
434
to put herself cruelly to death rather than to be unjustly branded with the shame of a deed
in which, it would seem, she was not guilty. How many are there who would willingly embrace
death for their friends, and yet would not live in their service, or accomplish their other
desires? A man exposes his life, who would not open his purse. And though there may be
found many who engage their life for a friend's defence, yet scarcely is there one found in
a century who will imperil his liberty, or lose an ounce of the most vain and unprofitable
reputation or renown in the world, be it for never so dear a friend.
453 John xv. 13.
412

43.6 Page 426

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A Memorable History to Make Clearly Understood in What the…
413

43.7 Page 427

▲back to top


A Confirmation of What Has Been Said by a Noteworthy Comparison.
CHAPTER IX.
A CONFIRMATION OF WHAT HAS BEEN SAID BY A NOTEWORTHY COMPAR-
ISON.
You know, Theotimus, what was Jacob's love for his Rachel. And what did not he do to
testify its greatness, force and fidelity, from the hour he had saluted her at the well? For from
that time he never ceased to love her, and to gain her in marriage he served seven whole
years with incredible devotion; yet he considered that all this was nothing, so much did love
sweeten the pains which he supported for his beloved Rachel. And when he was, after all,
disappointed of her, he served yet other seven years to obtain her; so constant, loyal and
courageous was he in his affection; and having at length obtained her he neglected all other
affections, scarcely even taking any account of the duty he had to Lia, his first spouse, a
woman of great merit and very worthy to be cherished, whom God himself compassionated
for the contempt she suffered, so remarkable was it.
But after all this, which was enough to bring down the haughtiest woman in the world
to the love of so loyal a lover, it is verily a shame to see the weakness which Rachel showed
435
in her affection to Jacob. The poor Lia had no tie of love with Jacob except the fact that she
was the mother of his four sons. Reuben the first of these had gone into the fields at harvest-
time and found some mandrakes, which he brought as a present to his mother.454 Rachel
asked for some of them, and when poor Lia said: Dost thou think it a small matter that thou
hast taken my husband from me, unless thou take also my son's mandrakes,—Rachel sold,
as it were, the favours and love of her husband for the mandrakes. But Jacob was distressed,
and his heart sank, when he understood the weakness and inconstancy of Rachel, who for
so trifling a thing sacrificed for a time the honour and pleasure of his special love. For, tell
me truly, Theotimus—was it not a strange and most fickle levity in Rachel, to prefer a heap
of little apples to the chaste company of so amiable a husband? If it had been for kingdoms,
for monarchies!—but for a miserable handful of mandrakes!—Theotimus, what think you
of it?
And yet, returning to ourselves, good God! how often do we make elections infinitely
more shameful and wretched? The great S. Augustine upon a time took pleasure in leisurely
viewing and contemplating mandrakes, the better to discern the cause why Rachel had so
passionately coveted them, and he found that they were indeed pleasing to the sight, and of
a delightful smell, yet altogether insipid and without flavour. Now Pliny relates that when
the surgeons bring the juice of them to be drunk by those on whom they wish to make an
incision, that they may not feel the operation, it happens often that the very smell works the
effect and puts the patient sufficiently to sleep. Wherefore the mandrake is a bewitching
plant, which enchants the eyes, and charms away pains, sorrows, and all passions by sleep.
454 Gen. xxx.
414

43.8 Page 428

▲back to top


A Confirmation of What Has Been Said by a Noteworthy Comparison.
Besides, he who smells the scent of them too long turns mute, and he who drinks too much
of them dies without remedy.
Theotimus, could worldly pomps, riches and delights be better represented? They have
an attractive outside, but he who bites this apple, that is, he who sounds their nature, finds
neither taste nor contentment in them, nevertheless they enchant us and put us to sleep by
the vanity of their smell; and the renown which the children of the world attach to them,
436
benumbs and destroys those who give themselves up to them too intently, or take them too
abundantly. And it is for such mandrakes, chimeras and phantoms of content, that we cast
off the love of the heavenly beloved; and how then can we say that we love him above all
things, since we prefer such empty vanities before his grace?
Is it not a marvel, but one worthy of tears, to see David, so noble in surmounting hatred,
so generous in pardoning injuries, and yet so furiously unjust in love, that not content with
possessing justly a great multitude of wives, he iniquitously usurps and takes away the wife
of poor Urias, and by an insupportable cruelty causes the husband to be slain, that he may
the better enjoy the love of the wife? Who would not wonder at the heart of a S. Peter, which
was so bold amidst the armed soldiers that he alone of all his master's company takes sword
in hand and strikes; and yet a little afterwards he is so cowardly amongst the women, that
at the mere word of a maid he denies and forswears his master? And how can it seem so
strange to us that Rachel could sell the chaste favours of her Jacob for the apples of the
mandrake, since Adam and Eve actually forsook grace for an apple which a serpent offers
them to eat?
In fine, I say to you this word, worthy of note. Heretics are heretics and bear the name,
because out of the articles of faith they choose at their taste and pleasure those which it
seems good to them to believe, rejecting and denying the others. And Catholics are Catholics,
because without any choice or election they embrace, with an equal assurance and without
exception, all the faith of the Church. Now it is the same in the articles of charity. It is a
heresy in sacred love to make choice among God's commandments, which to observe, and
which to violate: he who said: Thou shalt not kill, said also: Thou shalt not commit adultery.
If then thou kill not, but commit adultery, it is not for love for God that thou killest not, but
it is from some other motive, which makes thee rather choose this commandment than the
other; a choice which makes heresy in matter of charity. If a man told me that he would not
cut off my arm on account of his love for me, and yet proceeded to pluck out my eye, to
break my head, to run me through:—Ah! should I cry, how do you say that it is for love you
437
do not cut off my arm, since you pluck out my eye which is no less precious to me, or run
my body through with your sword, which is still more dangerous to me? It is a maxim that
good comes from an entirely sound cause, evil from some defect. To make an act of true
charity, it must proceed from an entire, general and universal love, which extends to all the
divine commandments, and if we fail in any one commandment, love ceases to be entire
415

43.9 Page 429

▲back to top


A Confirmation of What Has Been Said by a Noteworthy Comparison.
and universal, and the heart wherein it is cannot be called truly loving, nor, consequently,
truly good.
416

43.10 Page 430

▲back to top


That We Are to Love the Divine Goodness Sovereignly Above Ourselves.
CHAPTER X.
THAT WE ARE TO LOVE THE DIVINE GOODNESS SOVEREIGNLY ABOVE
OURSELVES.
Aristotle was consistent in saying that good is indeed amiable, but to each one his own good
principally, so that the love which we have for others proceeds from the love of ourselves:—for
how could a philosopher say otherwise who not only did not love God, but hardly ever even
spoke of the love of God? As a fact, however, this love of God precedes all love of ourselves,
even according to the natural inclination of our will, as I have made clear in the first book.
In truth, the will is so dedicated, and, if we may say it, consecrated to goodness, that if
an infinite goodness be clearly proposed unto it, it must, unless by miracle, sovereignly love
this goodness: yea, the Blessed are carried away and necessitated, though not forced, to love
God whose sovereign beauty they clearly see; as the Scripture sufficiently shows in comparing
the contentment which fills the hearts of the glorious inhabitants of the heavenly Jerusalem
to a torrent and impetuous flood, whose waters cannot be kept from spreading over the
plains it meets with.
But in this mortal life, Theotimus, we are not necessitated to love him so sovereignly,
438
because we see him not so clearly. In heaven, where we shall see him face to face, we shall
love him heart to heart; that is, as we shall all see the infinity of his beauty, each in our
measure, with a sovereignly clear sight, so shall we be ravished, with the love of his infinite
goodness in a sovereignly strong rapture, to which we shall neither desire, nor be able to
desire, to make any resistance. But here below on earth, where we do not see this sovereign
goodness in its beauty, but only have a half-sight of it amid our obscurities, we are indeed
inclined and allured to love him more than ourselves;—yet we are not necessitated: on the
contrary, though we have this holy natural inclination to love the divinity above all things,
yet we have not the strength to put it in execution, unless the same divinity infuse its most
holy charity supernaturally into our hearts.
Yet true it is that as the clear view of the divinity infallibly produces the necessity of
loving it more than ourselves, so the half-view, that is, the natural knowledge, of the divinity,
infallibly produces the inclination and tendency to love it more than ourselves; for, I pray
you, Theotimus, since the will is wholly ordained unto the love of good, how can it know,
ever so little, a sovereign good without being so far inclined to love it sovereignly? Of all
goods which are not infinite, our will always prefers in its love that which is nearest to it,
and chiefly its own; but there is so little proportion between the infinite and the finite, that
our will having knowledge of an infinite good is without doubt moved, inclined and excited
to prefer the friendship of this abyss of infinite goodness before every other sort of love, yea
even the love of ourselves.
This inclination is strong principally because we are more in God than in ourselves, we
live more in him than in ourselves, and are in such sort from him, by him, for him and be-
417

44 Pages 431-440

▲back to top


44.1 Page 431

▲back to top


That We Are to Love the Divine Goodness Sovereignly Above Ourselves.
longing to him, that we cannot undistractedly consider what we are to him and he is to us,
without being forced to exclaim: I am thine, Lord, and must belong to none but thee; my
soul is thine, and ought not to live but by thee, my will is thine, and is only to tend to thee,
I must love thee as my first principle since I have my being from thee, I must love thee as
my end and centre since I am for thee, I must love thee more than my own being, since my
439
being subsists by thee, I must love thee more than myself, since I am wholly thine and in
thee.
And in case there were or could be some sovereign good whereof we were independent,
we should also, supposing that we could unite ourselves unto it by love, be excited to love
this more than ourselves, seeing that the infinity of its sweetness would be still sovereignly
more powerful to draw our will to its love than all other goods, yea, even than our own good.
But if, by imagination of a thing impossible, there were an infinite goodness on which
we had no dependence whatever, and with which we could have no kind of union or com-
munication, we should indeed esteem it more than ourselves, for we should know that being
infinite it would be more estimable and lovable than we; and consequently we should be
able to make simple desires of being able to love it; yet, properly speaking, we should not
love it, since love aims at union; and much less could we have charity towards it, since
charity is a friendship, and friendship cannot be unless it be reciprocal, having for its
groundwork communication, and for its end union: I speak thus for the benefit of certain
fantastic and empty spirits, who very often on baseless imaginations revolve morbid thoughts
to their own great affliction. But as for us, Theotimus, my dear friend, we see plainly that
we cannot be true men without putting this inclination into effect. Let us love him more
than ourselves who is to us more than all and more than ourselves. Amen, so it is.
418

44.2 Page 432

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Holy Charity Produces the Love of Our Neighbour.
CHAPTER XI.
HOW HOLY CHARITY PRODUCES THE LOVE OF OUR NEIGHBOUR.
As God created man to his own image and likeness, so did he appoint for man a love after
the image and resemblance of the love which is due to his own divinity. Thou shalt love the
Lord thy God, with thy whole heart, and with thy whole soul, and with thy whole mind. This
is the greatest, and the first commandment. And the second is like to this: Thou shalt love thy
neighbour as thyself.455 Why do we love God, Theotimus? "The cause for which we love
God," says S. Bernard, "is God Himself;" as though he had said: we love God because he is
the most sovereign and infinite goodness. And why do we love ourselves in charity? Surely
because we are the image and likeness of God; and whereas all men are endowed with the
same dignity, we love them also as ourselves, that is, as being holy and living images of the
divinity. For it is on that account that we belong to God by so strict an alliance and so sweet
a dependence of love, that he makes no difficulty to call himself our father, and to call us
his children; it is on that account that we are capable of being united to his divine essence
by the fruition of his sovereign goodness and felicity; it is on that account that we receive
his grace, that our spirits are associated to his most Holy Spirit, and made in a manner
participant of his divine nature, as S. Leo says. And therefore the same charity which produces
the acts of the love of God, produces at the same time those of the love of our neighbour.
And even as Jacob saw that one same ladder touched heaven and earth, serving the angels
both for descending and ascending, so we know that one same charity extends itself to both
the love of God and our neighbour, raising us to the union of our spirit with God, and
bringing us back again to a loving society with our neighbours; always, however, on the
understanding that we love our neighbour as being after the image and likeness of God,
created to have communication with the divine goodness, to participate in his grace, and
to enjoy his glory.
Theotimus, to love our neighbour in charity is to love God in man, or man in God; it
is to hold God alone dear for his own sake and the creature for the love of him. The young
Tobias, accompanied by the angel Raphael, having met with Raguel his relative, by whom,
however, he was unknown,—Raguel had no sooner set eyes upon him, says the Scripture,
but turning himself towards his wife: Anna, look, look, said he, how like is this young man
to my cousin? And when he had spoken these words, he said: whence are ye, young men our
brethren? But they said, we are of the tribe of Nephthali, of the captivity of Ninive. And Raguel
said to them: Do you know Tobias my brother? And they said, we know him. And when he
was speaking many good things of him, the angel said to Raguel: Tobias concerning whom
thou inquirest is this young man's father. And Raguel went to him, and kissed him with tears,
and weeping upon his neck, said: a blessing be upon thee, my son, because thou art the son of
440
441
455 Matt. xxii. 37.
419

44.3 Page 433

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Holy Charity Produces the Love of Our Neighbour.
a virtuous man. And Anna his wife and Sara their daughter wept,456 through tenderness of
affection. Do you not observe that Raguel, without knowing the younger Tobias, embraces,
caresses, kisses him, and weeps for joy over him. Whence proceeds this love but from that
which he had for the old Tobias, the father, whom this child did so much resemble? A
blessing be upon thee, said he; but why? certainly not because thou art a good youth, for that
as yet I know not, but because thou art son, and like, to thy father, a good and most virtuous
man.
Ah! then, Theotimus, when we see a neighbour who is created to the image and likeness
of God, ought we not to say one to another: Observe and see this creature, how he resembles
the Creator? Might we not cast ourselves upon his neck, to caress him and weep over him
with love? Should we not bless him a thousand and a thousand times? And why? For the
love of him? No verily: for we know not whether he be worthy of love or hatred in himself;
but wherefore then? O Theotimus! for the love of God, who has made him to his own image
and likeness, and consequently capable of participating in his goodness, in grace and in
glory. For the love of God, I say, from whom he is, whose he is, by whom he is, in whom he
is, for whom he is, and whom he resembles in a most particular manner. Wherefore the love
of God not only oftentimes commands the love of our neighbour, but itself produces this
442
love and pours it into man's heart, as its resemblance and image: for even as man is the image
of God, so the sacred love of man towards man, is the true image of the heavenly love of
man towards God. But this subject of the love of our neighbour requires a treatise apart,
which I beseech the sovereign lover of men to will to inspire into some one of his most ex-
cellent servants, since the supreme love of the divine goodness of the heavenly Father, consists
in the perfection of the love of our brothers and companions.
456 Tobias vii. 2-8
420

44.4 Page 434

▲back to top


How Love Produces Zeal.
CHAPTER XII.
HOW LOVE PRODUCES ZEAL.
As love tends towards the good of the thing beloved, either by taking delight in it if the be-
loved have it, or in desiring and procuring it for him if he have it not; so it produces hatred,
by which it flies the evil which is contrary to the thing beloved, either by desiring and seeking
to remove it if it be there, or by keeping it off and preventing its coming if it be not there.
But if evil can neither be hindered from approaching, nor be removed, love at least fails not
to have it hated and detested. When love therefore is fervent, and is come to that height that
it would take away, remove and divert, what is opposite to the thing beloved, it is termed
zeal. So that, to describe it properly, zeal is no other thing than love in its ardour, or rather
the ardour that is in love. And therefore, such as the love is, such is the zeal, which is its ar-
dour. If the love be good its zeal is good, if the love be bad its zeal is bad. Now when I speak
of zeal, I mean to speak of jealousy too: for jealousy is a species of zeal, and if I am not mis-
taken, there is but this difference between them, that zeal regards the whole good of the
thing beloved, with the intention of removing the contrary evil from it, and jealousy regards
the particular good of the friendship, that it may repulse all that opposes that.
443
When therefore we ardently love worldly and temporal things, beauty, honours, riches,
rank,—this zeal, that is the ardour of this love, ends ordinarily in envy: because these base
and vile things are so little, limited, particular, finite and imperfect, that being possessed by
one, another cannot entirely possess them. So that being communicated to many, each one
in particular has a less perfect communication of them. But when, in particular, we ardently
love to be beloved, the zeal or ardour of this love turns into jealousy; because human
friendship, though otherwise a virtue, has this imperfection by reason of our weakness, that
being divided amongst many, each one's part is less. Whereupon our ardour or zeal to be
beloved will not permit rivals or companions; and if we imagine we have any, we immediately
enter into the passion of jealousy, which indeed in some sort resembles envy, but in reality
is very different from it. 1°. Envy is always unjust, but jealousy is sometimes just, if it be
moderate: for have not married people good reason to hinder their friendship from being
diminished by being shared? 2°. Envy makes us sorry that our neighbour enjoys a greater
good than, or a like good with, ourselves; although he is taking from us nothing that we
have; and here envy is unreasonable, making us consider our neighbour's good to be our
ill. But jealousy is not grieved at our neighbour's having some good provided that it is not
our good: for the jealous man does not grieve at his fellow's being beloved by other women
so long as he is not loved by the jealous man's wife; indeed, properly speaking, one is not
jealous of a rival until one belives that one has gained the friendship of the person loved: if
there be any passion before that, it is not jealousy but envy. 3°. We do not presuppose any
imperfection in the person we envy, but on the contrary we consider that he has the good
which we envy in him: but we presuppose that the person of whom we are jealous is imperfect,
421

44.5 Page 435

▲back to top


How Love Produces Zeal.
fickle, changeable and easily led away. 4°. Jealousy proceeds from love, envy comes from
the defect of love. 5°. Jealousy never happens but in matter of love, but envy is extended to
all kinds of goods—honours, favours, beauty. And if at any time one be envious of the affec-
tion which is borne to another, it is not for love, but for the fruits that spring from it. The
444
envious man is little troubled to see his fellow in favour with his prince, so that he be not
on occasions graced and preferred by him.
422

44.6 Page 436

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How God Is Jealous of Us.
CHAPTER XIII.
HOW GOD IS JEALOUS OF US.
God speaks thus: I am the Lord thy God, a jealous God.457 The Lord his name is jealous.458
God is jealous then, Theotimus, but what is his jealousy? Truly it seems at first to be a jealousy
of cupidity such as is that of husbands for their wives: for he will have us so to be his, that
he will in no sort have us to be any other's but his. No man, saith he, can serve two masters.459
He demands all our heart, all our soul, all our mind, and all our strength; for this very reason
he calls himself our spouse, and our souls his spouses; and names all sorts of separations
from him, fornication, adultery. And high reason indeed has this great God, all singularly
good, to exact most rigorously our whole heart: for ours is a little heart, which cannot supply
love enough worthily to love the divine goodness. Is it not therefore meet, that since we
cannot give him such measure of love as were requisite, that at least we should love him all
we can? The good which is sovereignly lovable, ought it not to be sovereignly loved? Now
to love sovereignly, is to love totally.
However, God's jealousy of us is not truly a jealousy of cupidity, but of sovereign
friendship: for it is not his interest that we should love him, but ours. Our love is useless to
him, but to us a great gain; and if it be agreeable to him, it is because it is profitable to us:
for being the sovereign good, he takes pleasure in communicating himself by love, without
any kind of profit that can return to him thereby; whence he cries out making his complaint
of sinners by way of jealousy: They have forsaken me, the fountain of living water, and have
digged to themselves cisterns, broken cisterns, that can hold no water.460 Consider a little,
445
Theotimus, I pray you, how delicately this divine lover expresses the nobility and generosity
of his jealousy: They have left me, says he, who am the fountain of living water. As if he said:
I complain not that they have forsaken me because of any injury their forsaking can cause
me, for what the worse is a living spring if men do not draw water at it? Will it therefore
cease to run, or to flow out on the earth? But I grieve for their misfortune, that having left
me, they have chosen for themselves wells that have no water. And if, by supposition of an
impossible thing, they could have met with some other fountain of living water, I would
lightly bear their departure from me, since I aim at nothing in their love, but their own good.
But to forsake me to perish, to fly from me to fall headlong, is what astonishes and offends
me in their folly. It is then for the love of us that he desires we should love him, because we
cannot cease to love him without beginning to be lost, and whatever part of our affections
we take from him we lose.
457 Deut. v. 9.
458 Exod. xxxiv. 14.
459 Matt. vi. 24.
460 Jer. ii. 13.
423

44.7 Page 437

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How God Is Jealous of Us.
Put me, said the divine shepherd to the Sulamitess, as a seal upon thy heart, as a seal
upon thy arm.461 The Sulamitess had her heart quite full of the heavenly love of her dear
lover, who, though he possess all, yet is not content with it, but by a holy distrust of jealousy
will be set upon the heart which he possesses, and will seal it with himself, lest any of the
love due to him escape, or anything get entry which might mingle with it. For he is not sat-
isfied with the love with which the soul of his Sulamitess is filled, if it be not invariable, quite
pure, quite solely his. And that he may not only enjoy the affections of our heart, but also
the effects and operations of our hands, he will also be as a seal upon our right arm, that it
may not be stretched out or employed save in the works of his service. And the reason of
the divine lover's demand is, that as death is so strong that it separates the soul from all
things, yea even from her own body, so sacred love which is come to the degree of zeal, divides
and separates the soul from all other affections, and purifies her from all admixture; since
446
it is not only strong as death, but it is withal bitter, inexorable, hard and pitiless in punishing
the wrong done unto it, when rivals are entertained with it, as hell is hard in punishing the
damned. And even as hell, full of horror, rage and cruelty, admits no mingling of love, so
jealous love tolerates no mixture of another affection, willing that all be for the well-beloved.
Nothing is so gentle as the dove, yet nothing so merciless as he towards his mate, when he
has some feeling of jealousy. If ever you have taken notice, Theotimus, you will have seen
that this mild bird, returning from his flight, and finding his mate amongst his companions,
is not able to suppress in himself a certain sense of distrust, which makes him churlish and
ill-humoured, so that at their first accosting he circles about her, murmuring, fretting,
treading upon her, and beating her with his wings, although he knows well that she is
faithful, and that he sees her in the pure white of innocence.
One day S. Catharine of Siena was in a rapture which did not deprive her of the use of
her senses, and while God was showing her wondrous things, one of her brothers passed
by, and with the noise he made disturbed her attention, so that she turned and looked at
him for a single little moment. This little distraction, so unforeseen and sudden, was neither
sin, nor disloyalty, but only a shadow of sin and resemblance of disloyalty: and yet the most
holy Mother of the heavenly lover did so earnestly chide her and the glorious S. Paul so put
her to confusion for it, that she thought she should have melted away in tears. And David,
re-established in grace by a perfect love, how was he treated for the simply venial sin which
he had committed in numbering his people?
But, Theotimus, he who desires to see this jealousy delicately and excellently described,
must read the instructions which the seraphic S. Catharine of Genoa has made to declare
461 Cant. viii. 6.
424

44.8 Page 438

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How God Is Jealous of Us.
the properties of pure love, amongst which she inculcates and strongly urges this;—that
perfect love, namely, love which has gone as far as zeal, cannot suffer any mediation, inter-
position, or mingling of any other thing, not even of God's gifts, yea, up to this extreme,
that it permits not even the love of heaven, except with intention to love more perfectly
447
therein the goodness of him who gives it. So that the lamps of this pure love have neither
oil, wick, nor smoke, but are all fire and flame, which nothing in the world can extinguish.
And those who carry these burning lamps in their hands, possess the most holy fear of chaste
spouses, not the fear which belongs to adulterous women. Those have fear, and these also,
but differently, says S. Augustine; the chaste spouse fears the absence of her husband, the
adulterous, the presence of hers. The former fears his departure, the latter his stay: the one
is so deeply amorous that she is extremely jealous; the other is not jealous, because she is
not amorous: the one fears to be punished, and the other fears that she may not be loved
enough;—yet in sooth she does not precisely fear the not being loved enough, as other jealous
persons do, who love themselves and want to be loved, but her fear is that she loves not him
enough whom she sees so love-worthy that none can love him according to the greatness
of the love which he deserves, as I have but just said. Wherefore she is not jealous with a
jealousy of self-interest, but with a pure jealousy, which proceeds not from any cupidity,
but from a noble and simple friendship; a jealousy which, with the love whence it proceeds,
extends itself to our neighbour; for since we love our neighbour as ourselves for God's sake,
we are also jealous of him, as of ourselves, for God's sake, so that we would even die that he
may not perish.
Now as zeal is an inflamed ardour, or an ardent inflaming of love, it requires to be wisely
and prudently practised; otherwise, under the cloak of it, one would transgress the limits of
moderation or discretion, and it would be easy to pass from zeal into anger, and from a just
affection to an unjust passion; wherefore, this not being the proper place to put down the
conditions of zeal, my Theotimus, I tell you that for the practice of it you must always have
recourse to him whom God has given you for your direction in the devout life.
425

44.9 Page 439

▲back to top


Of the Zeal or Jealousy Which We Have for Our Lord.
CHAPTER XIV.
OF THE ZEAL OR JEALOUSY WHICH WE HAVE FOR OUR LORD.
A Gentleman desired a famous painter to paint him a horse running, and the painter having
presented the horse to him on its back, and as it were rolling in the mire, the gentleman
448
began to storm; whereupon the painter turning the picture upside down: Be not angry, sir,
said he; to change the position of a horse running into that of a horse rolling on its back, it
is only necessary to reverse the picture. Theotimus, he who would clearly see what zeal or
what jealousy we must have for God, has only to express properly the jealousy we have in
human things, and then to turn it upside down, for such will that be which God requires
from us for himself.
Imagine, Theotimus, what comparison there is between those who enjoy the brightness
of the sun, and those who have only the paltry light of a lamp; the former are not jealous of
one another, for they know well that that great light is abundantly sufficiently for all, that
the one's enjoyment does not hinder the other's, and that, although all possess it in general,
each one possesses it none the less than if he alone possessed it in particular. But as to the
light of a lamp, since it is little, limited, and insufficient for many, each one desires to have
it in his chamber, and he that has it is envied by the rest. The good of human things is so
trifling and beggarly, that when one has it, another must be deprived of it; and human
friendship is so limited and weak, that in proportion as it communicates itself to the one,
it is weakened for the others: this is why we are jealous and angry when we have rivals and
companions in it. The heart of God is so abounding in love, his good is so absolutely infinite,
that all men may possess him without lessening each one's possession; this infinity of
goodness can never be drained, though it fill all the hearts of the universe; for when everything
has been filled with it to the brim, his infinity ever remains to him quite entire, without any
diminution whatever. The sun shines no less upon a rose together with a thousand millions
of other flowers, than though it shone but upon that alone. And God pours his love no less
over one soul, though he loves with it an infinity of others, than if he loved that one only:
the force of his love not decreasing by the multitude of rays which it spreads, but remaining
449
ever quite full of his immensity.
But wherein consists the zeal or the jealousy which we ought to have for the divine
goodness? Theotimus, its office is, first, to hate, fly, hinder, detest, reject, combat and over-
throw, if one can, all that is opposed to God; that is, to his will, to his glory, and the sancti-
fication of his name. I have hated and abhorred iniquity,462 said David, and: Have I not
hated them, O Lord, that hated thee: and pined away because of thy enemies.463 My zeal
hath made me pine away because my enemies forgot thy words.464 In the morning I put to
462 Ps. cxviii. 163.
463 Ps. cxxxviii. 21.
464 Ps. cxviii. 139.
426

44.10 Page 440

▲back to top


Of the Zeal or Jealousy Which We Have for Our Lord.
death all the wicked of the land; that I might cut off all the workers of iniquity from the city
of the Lord.465 See, I pray you, Theotimus, with what zeal this great king is animated, and
how he employs the passions of his soul in the service of holy jealousy! He does not simply
hate iniquity but abhors it; upon the sight of it he pines away, he falls into a swoon and a
failing of heart, he persecutes it, overthrows it, and exterminates it. So Phinees transported
with a holy zeal ran his sword through that shameless Israelite and vile Madianite; so the
zeal which consumed our Saviour's heart, made him cast out and instantly take vengeance
on the irreverence and profanation which those buyers and sellers committed in the temple.
Secondly, zeal makes us ardently jealous of the purity of souls, which are the spouses
of Jesus Christ, according to the word of the holy Apostle to the Corinthians: I am jealous
of you with the jealousy of God, for I have espoused you to one husband, that I may present
you as a chaste virgin to Christ.466 Eliezer would have been stung with jealousy, if he had
perceived the chaste and fair Rebecca, whom he was conducting to be espoused to his master's
son, in any danger of being dishonoured; and doubtless he might have said to this holy
maiden: I am jealous of you with the jealousy I have for my master, for I have espoused you
to one man, that I may present you a chaste virgin to the son of my lord Abraham. So would
the great S. Paul say to his Corinthians: I was sent from God to your souls to arrange the
marriage of an eternal union between his Son our Saviour, and you, and I have promised
450
you to him to present you as a chaste virgin to this divine lover; behold why I am jealous,
not with my own jealousy, but with the jealousy of God, in whose behalf I have treated with
you. It was this jealousy, Theotimus, that caused this holy Apostle daily to die and swoon
away; I die daily, said he, I protest by your glory.467 Who is weak and I am not weak? Who
is scandalized and I am not on fire?468 Mark, say the ancients, mark what love, what care,
and what jealousy a mother-hen has for her chickens (for our Saviour esteemed not this
comparison unworthy of his Gospel). The hen is a very hen, that is, a creature without any
courage or nobility, while she is not yet a mother, but with her mothership she puts on a lion's
heart: ever the head up, the eyes on guard, and darting glances on every side, to espy the
smallest appearance of danger to her little ones. There is no enemy at whose eyes she will
not fly in defence of her dear brood, for which she has a continual solicitude, making her
ever run about clucking and plaining. And if any of her chickens come to die,—what grief,
what anger! This is the jealousy of parents for their children, of pastors for their flocks, of
brothers for their brethren. What was the zeal of the children of Jacob when they knew that
Dina had been insulted? What was the zeal of Job from the apprehension and fear he had
465 Ps. c. 8.
466 2 Cor. xi. 2.
467 1 Cor. xv. 31.
468 2 Cor. xi. 29.
427

45 Pages 441-450

▲back to top


45.1 Page 441

▲back to top


Of the Zeal or Jealousy Which We Have for Our Lord.
that his children might have offended God? What was the zeal of a S. Paul for his brethren
according to the flesh, and for his children according to God, for whose sake he desired to
be cast out as worthy of anathema and excommunication? What the zeal of Moses for his
people, for whom he is willing, in a certain manner to be struck out of the book of life?
Thirdly, in human jealousy we are afraid lest the thing beloved be possessed by some
other, but our zeal for God makes us on the contrary fear lest we should not be entirely
enough possessed by him. Human jealousy makes us fear not to be loved enough, Christian
jealousy troubles us with the fear of not loving enough; whence the sacred Sulamitess cried
out: Show me, O thou whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou liest in the midday,
lest I begin to wander after the flocks of thy companions.469 Her fear is that she is not her
451
sacred shepherd's own entirely, or that she may be led away, be it never so little, by those
who wished to make themselves his rivals. For she will by no means permit that worldly
pleasures, honours, or exterior goods shall take up a single particle of her love, which she
has wholly dedicated to her dear Saviour.
469 Cant. i. 6.
428

45.2 Page 442

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Advice for the Direction of Holy Zeal.
CHAPTER XV.
ADVICE FOR THE DIRECTION OF HOLY ZEAL.
As zeal is an ardour and vehemence of love it stands in need of guidance; otherwise it would
exceed the limits of moderation and discretion. Not indeed that divine love, however vehe-
ment, can be excessive in itself, or in the movements or inclinations which it gives to our
spirit, but, inasmuch as it makes use of the understanding in the execution of its designs,
ordering it to find out the means whereby they may be effected, and makes use of boldness
or anger to surmount the difficulties which it meets with, the understanding often comes
to propose and make us adopt courses too rough and violent, and anger or hardihood once
aroused, and unable to contain itself within the limits of reason, carries away the heart into
disorder, so that zeal is thus practised indiscreetly and inordinately; which makes it bad and
blameworthy. David sent Joab with his army, against his disloyal and rebellious child, Absa-
lom, whom he commanded them above all things not to injure, ordering that in all events
they should take care to save him. But Joab being engaged, and being hot in the pursuit of
the victory, with his own hand slew the poor Absalom, without regard to what the king had
said to him. Even so, zeal employs anger against the evil, yet ever with express order, that
in destroying wickedness and sin it should save, if possible, the sinner and the iniquitous:
but it, once in its fury, like a hard-mouthed and wilful horse, runs away with its rider out 452
of the lists, without stop or stay, while breath lasts.
That good man of the house whom our Saviour describes in the Gospel, knew well that
hot and violent servants are wont to outrun their master's intention, for his servants
presenting themselves unto him to go and weed his field in order to root out the cockle: No,
said he, lest perhaps gathering up the cockle you root up the wheat also together with it.470 It
is true, Theotimus, that anger is a servant who, being strong, courageous and of great under-
takings, does also at first a great deal of work, but withal he is so ardent, so hotheaded, in-
considerate and impetuous, that he ordinarily does no good things without at the same time
doing many evil. It is not good husbandry, say our country-folk, to keep peacocks in the
house; for though they hunt spiders and rid the house of them, yet they so spoil the furniture
and the buildings themselves that their usefulness is not comparable to the harm they do.
Anger was given by Nature as a help to reason, and is employed by grace in the service of
zeal, to put in execution its designs; yet it is a dangerous help, and not greatly to be desired,
for if it gets strength it becomes master, overturning the authority of reason; and while it
does no more than zeal would perform all alone, it keeps one in a well-founded fear that
waxing strong it may take possession of the heart and of zeal, making them slaves to its
tyranny, like a carefully disposed fire, which in an instant embraces a building, and which
470 Matt. xiii. 29.
429

45.3 Page 443

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Advice for the Direction of Holy Zeal.
no one can extinguish. It were an act of despair to put foreign auxiliaries into a fortress, who
may make themselves the strongest.
Self-love often deceives us and leads us away, gratifying its own passions under the name
of zeal. Zeal has once made use of anger, and now anger in its turn uses the name of zeal,
in order to keep its shameful disorder covered under this. And mark that I say it makes use
of the name of zeal; for it can make no use of zeal itself, since it is the property of all virtues,
but especially of Charity, whereof zeal is a dependence, to be so good that none can abuse
them.
453
A notorious sinner, once went and threw himself at the feet of a good and worthy priest,
protesting with much submission, that he came to find a cure for his disease, that is, to receive
the holy absolution of his faults. A certain monk called Demophilus, considering that, in
his opinion, this poor penitent came too nigh the holy altar, fell into so violent a fit of anger,
that throwing himself upon him, he kicked and pushed him thence with his feet, railing at
the good priest in an outrageous sort, who according to his duty had mildly received this
poor penitent. And then running up to the altar he took off the holy things which were
there, and carried them away, lest, as he would have men think, the place should have been
profaned by the sinner's approach. Now having finished this fair exploit of zeal, he stayed
not yet there, but made a great rejoicing about the matter to the great S. Denis the Areopagite
in a letter which he wrote about it, to which he received an excellent answer, worthy of the
apostolical spirit wherewith that great disciple of S. Paul was animated. For he made him
clearly see that his zeal had been at once indiscreet, imprudent and impudent; because
though the zeal for the honour due unto holy things were good and laudable, yet was it
practised against all reason, without any consideration or judgment, since he had employed
kicks, outrages, railing and reproaches, in a place, under circumstances, and against persons,
whom and which he ought to have honoured, loved and respected; so that the zeal could
not be good, being practised with such great disorder. But in this same answer, that great
saint recounts another admirable example of a great zeal, proceeding from a very good soul,
which was however spoilt and vitiated by the excess of anger which it had stirred up.
A pagan had led astray and made return to idolatry a Christian of Candia, recently
converted to the faith. Carpus, a man eminent for purity and sanctity of life, who, as is very
probable, was the bishop of Candia, conceived such an anger at it as he had never before
entertained, and let himself be so far carried away with this passion, that having risen at
midnight to pray according to his custom, he concluded with himself that it was not reason-
able that the wicked men should any longer live, with great indignation beseeching the divine
justice to strike down at once with his thunderbolts these two sinners together, the pagan
454
seducer and the Christian seduced. But hear, Theotimus, how God corrected the bitterness
of the passion which carried the poor Carpus beyond himself. First he made him, as another
S. Stephen, see the heavens open, and our Saviour Jesus Christ seated upon a great throne,
430

45.4 Page 444

▲back to top


Chapter XV. Advice for the Direction of Holy Zeal.
surrounded with a multitude of angels, who attended him in human form; then he saw below,
the earth gaping as a horrid and vast gulf; and the two erring ones, to whom he had wished
so much evil, he saw upon the very brink of this precipice, trembling and well-nigh paralysed
with fear, as being about to fall down it; on the one side they were drawn by a multitude of
serpents, which rising out of the gulf, wrapped themselves about their legs, and with their
tails gradually moved and provoked them to their fall; on the other side, certain men pushed
and beat them to make them tumble in, so that they seemed on the point of being swallowed
up in this abyss. Now consider, my Theotimus, the violence of the passion of Carpus: for
as he himself afterwards recounted to S. Denis, he never thought of contemplating our Saviour
and the angels, who showed themselves in the heavens, such pleasure did he take in seeing
below them the frightful distress of those two miserable wretches. His only trouble was that
they were so long perishing, and thereupon he endeavoured himself to precipitate them
down; and seeing he could not do it quite at once he was angry, and began to curse them,
until at length, lifting up his eyes to heaven, he saw the sweet and most pitiful Saviour, who,
moved by an extreme pity and compassion at what was happening, arising from his throne
and descending to the place where the two miserable beings were, stretched out to them his
helping hand, while the angels also, some on one side some on another, caught hold of them
to hinder them from falling into that dreadful gulf; and, at last the amiable and mild Jesus,
turning himself to the wrathful Carpus:—Nay, Carpus, said he, henceforth wreak your anger
on me: for I am ready to suffer once more to save men and it would be a joy to me to do so,
if it could be without sin on man's part: at any rate, think which would be the better for thee,
to be in that gulf with the serpents, or to live with angels who are such great friends of men.
Theotimus, the holy man Carpus had just reason to enter into zeal concerning these two
455
men, and his zeal had but rightly raised his anger against them, but anger being once moved
left reason and zeal behind, transgressing all the terms and limits of holy love and con-
sesequently of zeal, which is its fervour: anger had changed the hatred of sin into the hatred
of the sinner, and most sweet charity into an outrageous cruelty.
Thus there are persons who think one cannot be very zealous unless one is very angry,
thinking that unless they spoil all they can manage nothing, whereas on the contrary true
zeal most rarely makes use of anger; for as we never apply the lancet to the sick save when
it cannot possibly be helped, so holy zeal does not employ anger save in extreme necessities.
431

45.5 Page 445

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That the Example of Certain Saints Who Seem to Have Exercised…
CHAPTER XVI.
THAT THE EXAMPLE OF CERTAIN SAINTS WHO SEEM TO HAVE EXERCISED
THEIR ZEAL WITH ANGER, MAKES NOTHING AGAINST THE DOCTRINE OF THE
PRECEDING CHAPTER.
It is true, indeed, my friend Theotimus, that Moses, Phinees, Elias, Mathathias and many
great servants of God made use of anger in the exercise of their zeal, on many remarkable
occasions, yet note also, I pray you, that those were great souls, who could well handle their
passions and regulate their anger; like that brave captain of the Gospel who said to his sol-
diers: go, and they went, come, and they came:471 but we, who are, all of us, but common
little people, have no such power over our movements; our horse is not so well broken in,
that we can make him gallop or stop at our pleasure. Wise and well trained hounds run
afield or come back according to the huntsman's call, but untrained young hounds break
away and are disobedient. Great saints who have made their passions tractable, mortifying
them by the exercise of virtue, can also turn about their anger as they like, send it out and
draw it back as seems good to them; but we, who have unbridled passions, quite young, or 456
at least mistaught, cannot let our anger go save at peril of great disorder, for being once
loose we can no longer restrain or regulate it.
S. Denis speaking to this Demophilus who would have given the name of zeal to his
rage and fury: "He that would correct others," said he, "must first have a care that anger do
not turn reason out of the empire and dominion which God has given it in the soul, and
that it do not stir up a revolt, sedition and confusion within ourselves; hence we in no sort
approve your impetuosities (to which an indiscreet zeal urged you), though you should a
thousand times recall Phinees and Elias; for similar words did not please Jesus Christ, when
said to him by his disciples, who were not yet made partakers of that sweet and benign
Spirit." Phinees, Theotimus, seeing a certain unhappy Israelite offend God with a Madianitess,
slew them both: Elias foretold the death of Ochozias, who, indignant at this prediction, sent
two captains one after another, each with fifty men, to take him: and the man of God made
fire descend from heaven which devoured them.472 Now one day that our Lord was jour-
neying in Samaria, he sent into a town to take his lodging, but the inhabitants knowing that
our Lord was a Jew by nation, and that he was going to Jerusalem, would not lodge him;
which S. John and S. James seeing, they said unto our Saviour: Wilt thou that we command
fire to come down from heaven and consume them? And our Lord turning rebuked them,
saying: you know not of what spirit you are. The Son of man came not to destroy souls but to
save them.473 This it is then, Theotimus, that S. Denis would say to Demophilus, who alleged
471 Matt. viii. 9.
472 4 Kings i. 12.
473 Luke ix.54.
432

45.6 Page 446

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That the Example of Certain Saints Who Seem to Have Exercised…
the example of Phinees and Elias: for S. John and S. James, who would have imitated Phinees
and Elias in making fire descend from heaven upon men, were reprehended by our Lord,
who gave them to know that his spirit and his zeal were sweet, mild and gracious, making
use of indignation or wrath but very rarely, when there was no longer hope of doing good
any other way. S. Thomas Aquinas, that great star of theology, being sick of the disease of
which he died, at the Monastery of Fossanuova, of the order of Citeaux, the religious besought
457
him to make them a short exposition of the Canticle of Canticles in imitation of S. Bernard,
and he answered them: My dear fathers, give me S. Bernard's spirit and I will interpret this
divine Canticle like S. Bernard. So verily, if it were said to one of us petty, miserable, imperfect
and wretched Christians:—use anger and indignation in your zeal, as did Phinees, Elias,
Mathathias, S. Peter and S. Paul: we ought to reply: give us the spirit of perfection and pure
zeal, with the interior light which those great saints had, and we will arm ourselves with
anger as they did. It is not the fortune of every one to know how to be angry when and as
he ought.
Those great saints were immediately inspired by God, and therefore might boldly employ
their anger without peril; for the same Spirit which animated them to these great acts also
held the reins of their just wrath lest they might transgress the prescribed bounds. Anger
which is inspired or excited by the Holy Ghost is no longer the anger of man, and it is man's
wrath that we are to beware of, because, as S. James says: The anger of man worketh not the
justice of God.474 And indeed, when those great servants of God made use of anger, it was
on occurrences so solemn and for crimes so excessive, that there was no danger that the
punishment would exceed the fault.
Are we, do you think, to take the liberty of abusing sinners, of blaming nations, of taking
to task and censuring our directors and prelates, because S. Paul once calls the Galatians
senseless, represents to the Candiots their bad inclinations, and withstands to the face the
glorious S. Peter his superior? Verily every one is not a S. Paul, to know how to do these
things suitably: but bitter, harsh, presumptuous and reviling spirits, following their own
inclinations, humours, aversions and arrogance, would throw the mantle of zeal over their
iniquity; and under the name of this sacred fire every man permits himself to be burnt up
with his own passions. It is zeal for the salvation of souls which makes the prelateship desired,
if you will believe the ambitious man; which makes the monk, who is destined for the choir,
run hither and thither, as the restless soul himself will tell you; which causes all those censures
458
and murmurings against the prelates of the Church and temporal princes, if you will give
ear to that arrogant man. You will hear from him of nothing but zeal, and you will see no
zeal, but only opprobrious and railing speeches, anger, hatred and rancour, disquiet of
spirit and of tongue.
474 James i. 20.
433

45.7 Page 447

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That the Example of Certain Saints Who Seem to Have Exercised…
Zeal may be practised in three ways. First in performing great actions of justice to repel
evil; and this belongs only to those who have the public offices of correcting, censuring, and
reprehending in quality of superiors, such as princes, prelates, magistrates, preachers: but
since this office is honourable, every one undertakes it, every one will have to do with it.
Secondly, one may use zeal by doing actions of great virtue in order to give good example,
by suggesting remedies for evils, and exhorting men to apply them, by effecting the good
that is opposite to the evil which we desire to banish. This belongs to every one, and yet few
will to do it. Finally, the most excellent use of zeal lies in suffering and enduring much to
hinder or divert evil, and scarce any will have this sort of zeal. A specious zeal is all our
ambition; upon that, each one willingly spends his talent, never attending to the fact that it
is not zeal indeed which is thereby sought but glory, the satisfaction of our pride, anger,
annoyance and other passions.
Certainly our Saviour's zeal principally appeared in his death upon the cross to destroy
death and sin in men: in which he was sovereignly imitated by that admirable vessel of
election and dilection, as the great S. Gregory Nazianzen, in golden words, represents him;
for speaking of this holy Apostle he says: "He fights for all, he prays for all, he is passionately
jealous about all, he is inflamed for all, yea he has dared yet more for his brethren according
to the flesh, so that if I may dare also to say it, he desires through charity that they may have
his own place near Our Saviour. O excellence of courage and incredible fervour of spirit!
He imitates Jesus Christ, who for us was made a curse,475 who took on himself our infirmities
and carried our diseases.476 Or, that I may speak a little more soberly, he was the first after
our Saviour who refused not to suffer and to be reputed wicked for their sake." Even so then,
459
Theotimus, as our Saviour was whipped, condemned, crucified, as a man devoted, destined
and set apart to bear and support all the reproaches, ignominies and punishments due to
all the sinners in the world, and to be a general sacrifice for sin,—as he was made an ana-
thema, was cast off and abandoned by his eternal Father, so, according to the true doctrine
of this great Nazianzen, the glorious Apostle S. Paul desired to be filled with ignominy, to
be crucified, cast off, abandoned and sacrificed for the sin of the Jews, that the curse and
punishment which they deserved might fall upon him; and as our Saviour took upon him
the sins of the world, and was made a curse, sacrificed for sin and forsaken by his Father in
such sense that he ceased not ever to be the well-beloved Son in whom his Father was well
pleased,—so the holy Apostle desired indeed to be a curse, and to be separated from his
master, to be left to the mercy of the reproaches and punishments due unto the Jews, yet he
never desired to be deprived of charity and the grace of his Lord, from which, moreover,
nothing could ever separate him; that is to say, he desired to be treated as a man cast off by
475 Gal. iii. 13.
476 Matt. viii. 17.
434

45.8 Page 448

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. That the Example of Certain Saints Who Seem to Have Exercised…
God, but he did not desire actually to be cast off and deprived of his grace, for this cannot
be holily desired. So the heavenly spouse declares, that though love is strong as death, which
makes a separation between the body and soul, zeal, which is an ardent love, is yet stronger,
for it resembles hell, which separates the soul from the sight of Our Lord; but it is never
said, nor can be said, that love or zeal was like to sin, which alone separates from the grace
of God. And indeed how could the ardour of love possibly make one desire to be separated
from grace, since love is grace itself, or at least cannot be without grace. And the zeal of the
great S. Paul was in some sort practised by the little S. Paul, I mean S. Paulinus, who to de-
liver a slave out of bondage became himself a slave, sacrificing his own liberty to bestow it
upon his neighbour.
"O how happy is he," says S. Ambrose, who knows how to discipline zeal!" "The devil
will easily," says S. Bernard, "delude thy zeal, if thou neglect knowledge; therefore let thy
460
zeal be inflamed with charity, adorned with knowledge, established in constancy." True zeal
is the child of charity as being its ardour; wherefore, like to charity, it is patient, is kind, en-
vieth not, dealeth not perversely, seeketh not her own, is not provoked to anger, rejoiceth in
the truth.477 The ardour of true zeal resembles that of the huntsman, being diligent, careful,
active, industrious, eager in pursuit, but without passion, anger or disquiet, for if the
huntsman's work were done in anger, bad temper and vexation, it would not be so much
loved and desired. Zeal in like manner has ardours which are extreme, but constant, solid,
sweet, industrious, equally agreeable and untiring; whereas on the contrary, false zeal is
turbulent, troubled, insolent, arrogant, choleric, transient, equally impetuous and inconstant.
477 1 Cor. xiii.
435

45.9 Page 449

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. How Our Lord Practised All the Most Excellent Acts of Lov…
CHAPTER XVII.
HOW OUR LORD PRACTISED ALL THE MOST EXCELLENT ACTS OF LOVE.
Having spoken at large of the sacred acts of divine love, I present you, that you may more
easily and holily preserve the memory of them, with a collection or abridgment of them.
The charity of Jesus Christ presseth us,478 says the great apostle. Yea truly, Theotimus, it
forces and carries us away by its in finite sweetness, exercised in the whole work of our Re-
demption, in which appeared the benignity and love of God towards men: for what did not
this divine lover do in matter of love? 1. He loved us with a love of Complacency, for his
delights were to be with the children of men479 and to draw man to himself, making himself
man. 2. He loved us with a love of Benevolence, bestowing his own divinity upon man, so
that man was God. 3. He united himself unto us by an incomprehensible Union, whereby
he adhered to our nature, and joined himself so closely, indissolubly and supereminently
to it, that never was anything so strictly joined and bound to humanity as is now the most 461
holy divinity in the person of the Son of God. 4. He flowed out into us, and as it were melted
his greatness, to bring it to the form and figure of our littleness, whence he is styled a source
of living water, dew and rain of heaven. 5. He loved us to Ecstasy, not only because, as S.
Denis says, by the excess of his loving goodness he goes in a certain manner out of himself,
extending his Providence to all things and being in all things, but also because he has in a
sort forsaken and emptied himself, dried up his greatness and glory, resigned the throne of
his incomprehensible majesty, and, if it be lawful so to say, annihilated himself to stoop
down to our humanity, to fill us with his divinity, to replenish us with his goodness, to raise
us to his dignity, and bestow upon us the divine being of children of God. And he of whom
it is so frequently written: I live, saith the Lord; could afterwards have said according to his
apostle's language: I live, now not I, but man liveth in me. To me to live is man, and to die
for man is gain. My life is hidden with man in God.480 He who dwelt in himself dwells now
in us, and he who was living from all eternity in the bosom of his Eternal Father becomes
mortal in the bosom of his temporal Mother; he who lived eternally by his own divine life,
lived with a human life, and he who from eternity had been only God, shall be for all
eternity man too: so has the love of man ravished God, and drawn him into an ecstasy! 6.
Love often led him to admiration, as of the Centurion and Chanaanitess. 7. He contemplated
the young man who had till that hour kept the commandments, and desired to be taught
perfection. 8. He took a loving quiet in us, yea even with some suspension of his senses, in
his mother's womb and in his infancy. 9. He had wondrous movements of Tenderness to-
478 2 Cor. v. 14.
479 Prov. viii. 31.
480 Gal. ii. 20.
436

45.10 Page 450

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. How Our Lord Practised All the Most Excellent Acts of Lov…
wards little children, whom he would take in his arms and lovingly fondle; towards Martha
and Magdalen, towards Lazarus, over whom he wept, as he wept also over the city of Jerus-
alem. 10. He was animated with an incomparable Zeal, which, as S. Denis says, changed
into Jealousy, turning away, as much as possible, all evil from his beloved human nature,
with hazard, yea with the price, of his own life; driving away the devil the prince of this
world, who seemed to be his rival and companion. 11. He had a thousand thousand Languors
of love; for whence could those divine words proceed: I have a baptism, wherewith I am to
be baptized: and how am I straightened until it be accomplished?481 The hour in which he
was baptized in his blood was not yet come, and he languished after it; the love which he
bore unto us urging him thereunto, that he might by his death see us delivered from an
eternal death. So he was sad, and sweated the blood of distress in the Garden of Olives, not
only by reason of the exceeding sorrow which his soul felt in the inferior part of his reason,
but also by reason of the singular love which he bore unto us in the superior portion thereof,
sorrow causing in him a horror of death, and love giving him an extreme desire of the same;
so that a most fierce combat and a cruel agony took place, between the desire and the dread
of death, unto a mighty shedding of blood, which streamed down upon the earth as from a
living spring.
12. Finally, Theotimus, this divine lover died amongst the flames and ardours of love,
by reason of the infinite charity which he had towards us, and by the force and virtue of
love: that is he died in love, by love, for love, and of love, for though his cruel torments were
sufficient to have killed any one, yet could death never make entry into his life who keeps
the keys of life and death, unless divine love, which handles those keys, had opened the gates
to death, to let it ravage that divine body and despoil it of life. Love was not content to have
only made him subject to death for us unless it made him dead. It was by choice, not by
force of torment, that he died. No man taketh my life away from me: but I lay it down of
myself, and I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it up again.482 He was
offered, says Isaias, because it was his own will.483 And therefore it is not said that his spirit
went away, forsook him, or separated itself from him, but, contrariwise, that he gave up his
spirit, breathed it out, yielded and commended it into the hands of his eternal Father; so
that S. Athanasius remarks that he bowed his head to die, that he might consent to and bend
to death's approach, which otherwise durst not have come near him; and crying out with a
loud voice he gives up his spirit into his Father's hands, to show that as he had strength and
breath enough not to die, so had he love so great that he could no longer live, but would by
his death revive those who without it could never escape death, nor have the chance of true
462
463
481 Luke xii. 50.
482 John x. 18.
483 Is. liii. 7.
437

46 Pages 451-460

▲back to top


46.1 Page 451

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. How Our Lord Practised All the Most Excellent Acts of Lov…
life. Wherefore our Saviour's death was a true sacrifice, and a sacrifice of holocaust, which
himself offered to his Father for our redemption: for though the pains and dolours of his
passion were so great and violent that any but he had died of them, yet had he never died
of them unless he himself had pleased, and unless the fire of his infinite charity had consumed
his life. He was then the sacrificer himself, who offered himself unto his Father and immolated
himself, dying in love, to love, by love, for love, and of love.
Yet beware of saying, Theotimus, that this amorous death of the Saviour took place by
manner of rapture, for the object which his charity moved him to die for was not love-worthy
enough to ravish to itself this divine soul, which departed then from his body by way of ec-
stasy, driven and forced on by the abundance and might of love; even as we see the myrrh
tree send forth its first juice by its mere abundance, without squeezing or drawing in any
way; according to that which he himself said, as we have declared: No man taketh my life
away from me but I lay it down of myself. O God! Theotimus, what burning coals are cast
upon all our hearts to inflame us to the exercise of holy love towards our all-good Saviour,
seeing he has so lovingly practised them towards us who are so evil! This charity then of Jesus
Christ presseth us!
438

46.2 Page 452

▲back to top


Book XI. Sovereign Authority Which Sacred Love Holds over All the Virtues,…
BOOK XI.
OF THE
464
SOVEREIGN AUTHORITY WHICH SACRED LOVE HOLDS
OVER ALL THE VIRTUES, ACTIONS AND PERFECTIONS OF
THE SOUL.
439

46.3 Page 453

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Agreeable All Virtues Are to God.
CHAPTER I.
HOW AGREEABLE ALL VIRTUES ARE TO GOD.
Virtue is of its own nature so amiable, that God favours it wheresoever he finds it. The pagans,
though they were enemies of his divine Majesty, now and then practised certain human and
moral virtues, which were not by their nature placed above the forces of the reasonable
spirit. Now you may guess, Theotimus, how small a matter that was: for though these virtues
made a great show, yet in effect they were of little worth, by reason of the lowness of the
intention of those who practised them. They laboured for scarcely anything but honour, as
S. Augustine says, or for some other object of light consideration, such as the upholding the
social good, or from some weak inclination they had to good; which inclination, meeting
with no contradiction, carried them on to trifling acts of virtue—as for example, to mutual
courtesy, to aid their friends, to live with moderation, not to steal, to serve masters faithfully,
to pay hirelings' wages. And nevertheless though this was so slender, and accompanied with
many imperfections, God took it in good part from those poor people, and recompensed it
largely.
The midwives whom Pharaoh commanded to kill all the male children of the Israelites
were without doubt Egyptians and pagans; for in the excuse they made for not having ex-
465
ecuted the king's pleasure, they said: The Hebrew women are not like the Egyptian: this would
not have been to the purpose if they had been Hebrews: and it is not credible that Pharaoh
would have granted so cruel a commission against the Hebrews to Hebrew women, being
of the same nation and religion: besides Josephus testifies that they were in fact Egyptians.
Now, Egyptians and pagans as they were, yet they feared to offend God by so barbarous and
unnatural a cruelty as the massacre of so many little children would have been. The divine
sweetness was so pleased with this that it built their houses, that is to say, made them fruitful
in children and in temporal riches.
Nabuchodonosor, King of Babylon, had waged a just war against the city of Tyre, which
the divine justice willed to chastise, and God signified to Ezechiel that in recompense
thereof he would deliver up Egypt as a prey into the hands of Nabuchodonosor and his
army, Because, said God, he hath laboured for me.484 Hence, adds S. Jerome in the comment-
ary, we learn that in case the very pagans do some good thing they are not left unrewarded
by God's judgment. So did Daniel exhort Nabuchodonosor, an infidel, to redeem his sins by
alms,485 that is, to ransom himself out of the temporal pains due to his sins, which hung
over his head. Do you see then, Theotimus, how true it is that God makes account of virtues,
though practised by persons otherwise wicked? If he had not approved the mercy of the
midwives and the justice of the war of the Babylonians, would he have taken care, I pray
484 Ezech. xxix. 20.
485 Dan. iv. 24.
440

46.4 Page 454

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Agreeable All Virtues Are to God.
you, to reward them? And if Daniel had not known that the infidelity of Nabuchodonosor
would not prevent God from being pleased with his alms, why would he have counselled
him to do them? Indeed the Apostle assures us that pagans who have not the law do by nature
those things that are of the law.486 And when they do so, who can doubt that they do well,
and that God makes account of it? Pagans understood that marriage was good and necessary,
they saw that it was becoming to have their children brought up in liberal knowledge, in
the love of their country, in the arts of civil life, and they did so. Now I leave it to your con-
sideration whether this was not grateful unto God, since to this end he had given the light
466
of reason and natural instinct.
Natural reason is a good tree which God has planted in us; the fruits which spring from
it cannot but be good. They are fruits which in comparison with those which spring from
grace are indeed of very small value, yet still, not of no value, since God has valued them,
and for them has given temporal rewards. Thus, according to the great S. Augustine, he re-
warded the moral virtues of the Romans with the grand extent and magnificent renown of
their empire.
Sin unquestionably makes the soul sick, and then she cannot do great and laborious
deeds; yet little ones she can do, for all the actions of the sick are not sickly: they still speak,
they still see, they still hear, they still drink. The soul in sin can do good works, which, being
natural, are rewarded with natural rewards; being civil, are paid in civil and human money,
that is, with temporal advantages. The sinner is not in the state of the devils, whose wills are
so steeped in and incorporated with evil that they can will no good at all. No, Theotimus;
the sinner in this world is not in that state. Here, he is in the way between Jerusalem and
Jericho, wounded to death but not yet dead; for, says the Gospel, he is left half-dead; and as
he is half-alive so he can do half-living actions. ’Tis true he can neither walk, nor rise, nor
cry for aid, no, not so much as speak, save only languishingly, by reason of the faintness of
his heart; yet can he open his eyes, stir his fingers, sigh, make some word of complaint:—weak
actions, and actions in spite of which he would miserably die of his wounds, had not the
merciful Samaritan poured in the oil and wine, and carried him to the inn, where he gave
charge that at his cost the man should be dressed and looked to.487
Natural reason is deeply wounded, and, as it were, half slain by sin; whence, being in
such sad condition, it cannot observe all the commandments, which, however, it clearly sees
to be good: it knows its duty but cannot acquit itself thereof; its eyes have more light to
discover the way than its legs have strength to undertake it.
The sinner may indeed occasionally observe some of the commandments, yea all of
467
them for some short time, so long as no great occasion for practising virtues commanded,
486 Rom. ii. 14.
487 Luke x.
441

46.5 Page 455

▲back to top


Chapter I. How Agreeable All Virtues Are to God.
or violent temptation to commit sin forbidden, present itself. But that a sinner should live
long in his sin without adding to it new ones, is not a thing that can be done but by God's
special protection, for man's enemies are ardent, active, and perpetually striving to cast him
down, and when they see that no occasion of practising virtues commanded occurs, they
excite a thousand temptations to make him fall into things forbidden; at which time nature
without grace cannot save itself from the precipice: for if we overcome, God gives us the
victory through Jesus Christ,488 as S. Paul says. Watch and pray, that you enter not into
temptation.489 If Our Lord had said only watch, we might expect that our own power would
be sufficient, but when he adds pray, he shows that if he keep not our souls in time of
temptation, in vain shall they watch who keep them.
488 1 Cor. xv. 57.
489 Matt. xxvi. 41.
442

46.6 Page 456

▲back to top


Chapter II. That Divine Love Makes the Virtues Immeasurably More Agreeable…
CHAPTER II.
THAT DIVINE LOVE MAKES THE VIRTUES IMMEASURABLY MORE AGREEABLE
TO GOD THAN THEY ARE OF THEIR OWN NATURE.
The masters of husbandry admire the gracious innocence and purity of little strawberries,
because, though they lie upon the ground and are continually crept over by serpents, lizards,
and other venomous beasts, they yet receive no impression of poison, nor are infected with
any malign quality; a sign that they have no affinity with poison. Such then are human virtues,
Theotimus; which, though they may be in a heart that is low, earthly, and largely occupied
by sin, yet are not infected with its malice, being of a nature so noble and innocent that it
cannot be corrupted by the society of iniquity, according to what even Aristotle has
said:—that virtue is a habit which no one can make ill use of. And though the virtues which
are so good in themselves are not rewarded with an eternal recompense when they are 468
practised by infidels or by such as are not in the state of grace, this is not surprising, because
the sinful heart from whence they proceed is not capable of an eternal good (being, as it is,
turned away from God), and because no one can receive the celestial inheritance belonging
to the Son of God, but such as are in him, and are adoptive brothers of his; to say nothing
of this reason, that the covenant by which God promises heaven refers to such only as are
in his grace, while the virtues of sinners have no worth nor value save that of their nature,
which, consequently, cannot raise them to the merit of supernatural rewards. Indeed these
are for this very cause called supernatural, that nature and all that belongs thereto can neither
give nor merit them.
But the virtues which are found in the friends of God, though they be only moral and
natural in themselves, are yet ennobled, and raised to the dignity of being holy works, by
reason of the excellence of the heart which produces them. It is one of the properties of
friendship to make the friend and all that is good and honest in him dear to us: friendship
pours out its grace upon all the actions of him who is loved, however little ground of favour
there may be; the bitternesses of friends are sweets, and the sweets of enemies are bitter. All
the virtuous actions of a heart at friends with God are dedicated to God, for the heart that
has given itself, how has it not given all that depends on itself? He that gives the tree without
reserve, gives he not also the leaves, flowers and fruit? The just shall flourish like the palm-
tree: he shall grow up like the cedar of Libanus. They that are planted in the house of the Lord
shall flourish in the courts of the house of our God.490 Since the just man is planted in the
house of God, his leaves, his flowers and his fruit grow therein, and are dedicated to the
490 Ps. xci. 13, 14.
443

46.7 Page 457

▲back to top


Chapter II. That Divine Love Makes the Virtues Immeasurably More Agreeable…
service of His Majesty. He shall be like a tree which is planted near the running waters, which
shall bring forth its fruit in due season. And his leaf shall not fall of: and all whatsoever he
shall do shall prosper.491 Not only the fruits of charity, and the flowers of the works which
it ordains, but even its very leaves, that is, the moral and natural virtues, draw a special
469
power and efficacy from the love of the heart which produces them. If you are grafting a
rose tree, and put a grain of musk in the cleft of the stock, all the roses that spring from it
will smell of musk: cleave then your heart by holy penitence, and put the love of God in the
cleft; then engraft on it what virtue you please, and the works which spring from it will be
all perfumed with sanctity, without need of any further attention.
When the Spartans had heard an excellent sentence from the mouth of some wicked
man, they never thought it right to receive it till it was first pronounced by the mouth of
some good man: so that to make it worthy of acceptance they did no more than get it uttered
again by a virtuous man. If you desire to make the human and moral virtue of Epictetus,
Socrates or Demades become holy, cause them to be practised by a truly Christian soul, that
is, by one which has the love of God. So God first had respect to the good Abel, and then to
his offerings, these taking their favour and worth in the sight of God from the goodness and
piety of him who offered them. Oh the sovereign goodness of this great God, which so favours
its lovers that it cherishes their least little actions, so long as they have the slightest degree
of goodness, and excellently ennobles them, giving them the title and quality of holy! Ah!
this is in consideration of his beloved Son, whose adopted children he would honour,
sanctifying all there is of good in them, their bones, the hairs of their head, their garments,
their graves, yea, down to the very shadow492 of their bodies; their faith, hope, love, religion,
yea even their social life, their courtesy, the affability of their hearts.
Therefore my beloved brethren, saith the Apostle, be ye steadfast and immovable, always
abounding in the work of the Lord, knowing that your labour is not in vain in the Lord.493
And mark, Theotimus, that every virtuous work is to be esteemed the "work of the Lord,"
yea though it were even practised by an infidel; for his divine Majesty said unto Ezechiel
that Nabuchodonosor and his army had laboured for him,494 because he had waged a lawful
and just war against the Tyrians: sufficiently showing thereby that the justice of the unjust
470
is God's, and tends and belongs to him, though the unjust who work that justice are neither
his, nor tend nor belong to him: for as the great prince and prophet Job, though of pagan
extraction and an inhabitant of the land of Hus, did for all that belong to God, so moral
virtues, though they proceed from a sinful heart, do none the less belong to God. But when
491 Ps. i. 3.
492 Acts v. 15.
493 1 Cor. iv. 58.
494 Ezech. xxix. 20.
444

46.8 Page 458

▲back to top


Chapter II. That Divine Love Makes the Virtues Immeasurably More Agreeable…
these same virtues are found in a truly Christian heart, that is in a heart endowed with holy
love, then they not only belong to God, but they are not "in vain in the Lord," being rendered
fruitful and precious in the eyes of his goodness. "Add charity to a man," says S. Augustine,
"and everything profits; take charity from him, and what remains profits him no longer."
And: To them that love God all things work together unto good,495 says the Apostle.
495 Rom. viii. 28.
445

46.9 Page 459

▲back to top


Chapter III. That There Are Some Virtues Which Divine Love Raises to a Higher…
CHAPTER III.
THAT THERE ARE SOME VIRTUES WHICH DIVINE LOVE RAISES TO A HIGHER
DEGREE OF EXCELLENCE THAN OTHERS.
But there are some virtues which by reason of their natural alliance and correspondence
with charity are also much more capable of receiving the precious influence of sacred love,
and consequently the communication of the dignity and worth of it. Such are faith and hope,
which, together with charity, have an immediate reference to God; and religion, and penit-
ence, and devotion, which are employed to the honour of his Divine Majesty. For these
virtues, of their own nature, have so close a relation to God, and are so susceptible of the
impressions of heavenly love, that to make them participate in its sanctity they need only
to be with it, that is, in a heart which loves God. So, to make grapes taste of olives it is but
necessary to plant the vine amongst the olives; for by their neighbourhood alone, without
touching one another at all, these plants will mutually interchange their savours and prop- 471
erties, so great an inclination and so strict an affinity is there of one to the other.
Truly all flowers, except those of the tree called Sad (triste), and a few others that are
monsters in Nature, all, I say, rejoice, expand and put on beauty at the sight of the sun, and
the vital heat which they receive from his rays; but all yellow flowers, and especially that
which the Greeks term Heliotropium, and we sunflower, not only receive gladness and
pleasure from his presence, but by an affectionate turning movement follow the attractions
of his rays, keeping him in sight, and turning themselves towards him, from his rising to
his setting. So all virtues receive a new lustre and an excellent dignity from the presence of
holy love, but faith, hope, the fear of God, piety, penance, and all the other virtues which of
their own nature particularly tend to God and to his honour, not only receive the impression
of divine love whereby they are raised to a great value, but they wholly incline towards it,
associating themselves with it, following and serving it on all occasions. For in fine, my dear
Theotimus, the holy Word attributes a certain saving, sanctifying and glorifying property
and force to faith, to hope, to piety, to the fear of God, to penance: which clearly shows that
those virtues are of great price, and that being practised by a heart which is in charity they
become more excellent, fruitful and holy than the others, which of their own nature have
not so great an affinity with sacred love. And he who cries out: If I should have all faith, so
that I could remove mountains, and have not charity, it profiteth me nothing,496 clearly shows
that with charity this faith would greatly profit him. Charity then is a virtue beyond compar-
ison, which not only adorns the heart in which it is, but by its mere presence also blesses
496 1 Cor. xiii. 2.
446

46.10 Page 460

▲back to top


Chapter III. That There Are Some Virtues Which Divine Love Raises to a Higher…
and sanctifies all the virtues which it meets there, perfuming and scenting them with its ce-
lestial odour, by means of which they are made of great value in the sight of God; which,
however, it does far more excellently in faith, in hope and in other virtues, which of them-
selves naturally tend to piety.
472
Wherefore, Theotimus, of all virtuous actions we ought most carefully to practise those
of religion and reverence towards divine things, those of faith, of hope and of the most holy
fear of God, taking occasion often to speak of heavenly things, thinking of and sighing after
eternity, frequenting churches and sacred services, reading spiritual books, observing the
ceremonies of the Christian religion: for sacred love is fed according to its heart's desire in
these exercises, and in greater abundance spreads its graces and properties over them than
it does over the actions of those virtues which are purely human; as the lovely rainbow makes
all the plants upon which it lights odoriferous, but the aspalathus incomparably more so
than all the rest.
447

47 Pages 461-470

▲back to top


47.1 Page 461

▲back to top


IV. That Divine Love More Excellently Sanctifies the Virtues When They Are…
CHAPTER IV.
THAT DIVINE LOVE MORE EXCELLENTLY SANCTIFIES THE VIRTUES WHEN
THEY ARE PRACTISED BY ITS ORDER AND COMMANDMENT.
The fair Rachel had children by Jacob in two ways. She counted as hers the children of her
handmaid Bala, and afterwards she had children of her own—namely, Joseph and the beloved
Benjamin.
Now I say to you, my dear Theotimus, that charity and sacred love, a hundred times
more fair than Rachel, ceaselessly desires to produce holy operations. She calls the operations
of the other virtues her offspring because they are produced by her order, love being the
master of the heart, and consequently of all the works of the other virtues done by its consent.
But, further, this divine love has two acts which are her own proper issue and of her extrac-
tion. Of these the one is effective love, which, as another Joseph, using the plenitude of
royal authority, subjects and reduces all the people—her faculties, powers, passions and af-
fections—to God's will, that it may be loved, obeyed and served above all things, by this
means putting the great celestial commandment in execution: Thou shalt love the Lord thy
God with all thy heart, with all thy soul, with all thy mind, and with all thy strength. The
473
other is affective or affectionate love, which, as a little Benjamin, is exceedingly delicate,
tender, pleasing and amiable, but in this more happy than Benjamin, that charity its mother
dies not in its bringing forth, but, so to say, gains a new life, by the sweetness she feels in it.
Thus then, Theotimus, the virtuous actions of the children of God all belong to charity;
some of them because she produces them of her own nature; others because she sanctifies
them by her quickening presence; and finally others, by the authority and command which
she exercises over the other virtues, whence she makes them spring. And these last, as indeed
they are not so eminent in dignity as the actions which properly and immediately issue from
charity, yet incomparably surpass those which take their whole sanctity from the mere
presence and society of charity.
A great general of an army having won some important battle, will without doubt have
all the honour of the victory, and not unreasonably; for he himself will have fought in the
very front of the army, doing many great feats of arms, and for the rest he will have arrayed
his troops, and ordained and commanded all that was done: so that he is considered to have
done all, either by himself, fighting with his own hand, or by his direction, commanding
others. And even if some friendly troops come unexpectedly and fall in with the army, yet
the general is not deprived of the honour of their work, for though they have not received
his commands, yet they have served him and followed his intentions. Nevertheless, although
we attribute the glory as a whole to him, we do not fail to give each part of his army due
credit for its own share; we say that the vanguard did this, the main body that, the rearguard
the other; the French behaved thus, the Italians thus, the Germans and the Spaniards thus:
448

47.2 Page 462

▲back to top


IV. That Divine Love More Excellently Sanctifies the Virtues When They Are…
yea we praise the private individuals who have distinguished themselves in the battle. So,
my dear Theotimus, amongst all the virtues, the glory of our salvation and victory over hell
is ascribed to divine love, which, as prince and general of the whole army of virtues, does
all the exploits by which we gain the triumph. For sacred love has his proper actions which
474
issue and proceed from himself, by which he does wonders of arms against our enemy, and
withal he ranges, commands and orders the actions of other virtues, which are therefore,
termed acts commanded or ordained by love. And if, at last, some virtues perform their
operations without his order, yet if they assist his intention, which is God's honour, he will
still acknowledge them to be his own. Nevertheless, though we say in general, after the divine
Apostle, that Charity beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things, endureth all
things,497 in a word, that it does all, yet we distribute in particular the praise of the salvation
of the Blessed to other virtues, according as they excelled in each one; for we say some were
saved by faith, others by alms-deeds, others by temperance, prayer, humility, hope, chastity,
because the acts of these virtues have appeared with lustre in these saints. Yet again after
we have extolled these particular virtues we must reciprocally refer all their honour to divine
love, which to every one gives all the sanctity which they have. For what else does the glorious
Apostle mean when he teaches that charity is kind, is patient, that it believes all, hopes all,
bears all, save that charity ordains and commands patience to be patient, hope to hope, faith
to believe. And truly, Theotimus, at the same time the Apostle intimates that love is the soul
and life of all the virtues, as though he would say: patience is not patient enough, nor faith
faithful enough, nor hope confident enough, nor mildness sweet enough, unless love animate
and quicken them. The same thing this same vessel of election gives us to understand when
he says, that nothing profits him and he is nothing without charity; for it is as though he
had said, that without love a man is not patient, nor mild, nor constant, nor faithful, nor
hopeful, in the way a servant of God should be, which is the true and desirable being of man.
497 1 Cor. xiii. 7.
449

47.3 Page 463

▲back to top


Chapter V. How Love Spreads Its Excellence Over the Other Virtues, Perfecting…
CHAPTER V.
HOW LOVE SPREADS ITS EXCELLENCE OVER THE OTHER VIRTUES, PERFECT-
ING THEIR PARTICULAR EXCELLENCE.
I Have seen, says Pliny, a tree at Tivoli grafted in all the fashions that one can graft, and
475
bearing all sorts of fruit; for upon one branch there were cherries, on another nuts, on others
grapes, figs, pomegranates, apples, and, in a word, all kinds of fruit. This was wonderful,
Theotimus, yet more so is it to see, in Christian man, heavenly love, with all virtues grafted
thereon; in such sort that, as one might have said of this tree that it was a cherry tree, an
apple, a nut, a pomegranate, so may one say of charity that it is patient, mild, valiant, just,
or rather that it is patience, mildness and justice itself.
But the poor tree of Tivoli did not live long, as the same Pliny records, for this variety
of productions dried up its essential sap, so that it withered away and died; whereas, on the
contrary, charity is fortified and invigorated, so as to produce abundance of fruit in the ex-
ercise of all the virtues; yea, as our holy Fathers have observed, it is insatiable in its desires
of bringing forth fruit, and never ceases to urge the heart wherein it dwells, as Rachel did
her husband, saying: Give me children, otherwise I shall die.498
Now the fruits of grafted trees always follow the graft, for if the graft be apple it will bear
apples, if cherry it will bear cherries; yet so that these fruits always taste of the stock. In like
manner, Theotimus, our acts take their name and species from the particular virtues whence
they spring, but they draw the taste of their sanctity from holy charity, which is the root and
source of all sanctity in man. And as the stock communicates its taste to all the fruits which
the grafts produce, yet so that each fruit preserves the natural property of the graft whence
it sprung, even so charity pours out in such sort her excellence and dignity upon the acts of
other virtues, that she does not deprive them of the particular worth and goodness which
they have by their own natural condition.
All flowers lose their lustre and grace amidst the darkness of night, but, in the morning,
the sun, which makes them again visible and agreeable, does not however make their beauties
476
and their graces equal, and its brightness, though equally spread over them all, yet makes
them unequally bright and glorious, according as they are more or less susceptible of the
effects of its splendour. And the light of the sun, equal as it is on the violet and the rose, yet
will never make that so fair as this, or make a daisy as lovely as a lily. However, if the sun
should shine very clearly upon the violet, and very mistily and faintly upon the rose, then
without doubt it would make the violet more fair to see than the rose. So, my Theotimus,
if one with an equal charity should suffer death by martyrdom, and another hunger by
fasting, who does not see that the value of this fasting will not therefore be equal to that of
martyrdom? No, Theotimus, for who would dare to affirm that martyrdom is not more ex-
498 Gen. xxx. 1.
450

47.4 Page 464

▲back to top


Chapter V. How Love Spreads Its Excellence Over the Other Virtues, Perfecting…
cellent in itself than fasting? And as it is more excellent, and as superadded charity does not
take away but perfects its excellence, charity will consequently leave to it the advantage
which it naturally had over fasting. Surely no man of good sense will equal nuptial chastity
to virginity, nor the good use of riches to the entire abnegation of the same. Who again
would dare to say, that charity accompanying these virtues deprives them of their properties
and privileges, since it is not a virtue which destroys and impoverishes, but betters, quickens
and enriches all the good it finds in the souls which it rules. Yea, so far is charity from be-
reaving the other virtues of their natural pre-eminences and dignities, that, on the contrary,
having this quality of perfecting the perfections which it meets with, it more greatly perfects
where it finds greater perfection. It acts like sugar, which so preserves and so seasons fruits
with its sweetness that, sweetening them all, it leaves them dissimilar in taste and sweetness,
according as their natural taste and sweetness are dissimilar, nor does it ever make peaches
and nut-fruits as sweet or agreeable as apricots and mirabels.
Still it is true that if love be ardent, powerful and excellent in a heart, it will also more
enrich and perfect all the virtuous works which may proceed from it. One may suffer death
and fire for God without charity, as S. Paul supposes,499 and as I explain elsewhere: by better
reason may one suffer them with little charity. Now I say, Theotimus, that it may come to
pass that a very small virtue may be of greater value in a soul where sacred love fervently
reigns, than martyrdom itself in a soul where love is languishing, feeble and dull. Thus the
477
little virtues of our Blessed Lady, of S. John, of other great saints, were of better worth before
God than the most exalted of many inferior saints; as many of the slight movements of love
in the seraphim are more inflamed than the greatest in angels of the last order; or as the first
essays of the nightingale are incomparably more melodious than the song of the best-trained
finch.
Pireicus towards the end of his days painted only miniatures and trivial subjects, such
as barbers' or cobblers' shops, asses laden with herbs, and similar petty matters; which he
did, as Pliny conjectures, to lessen his great renown, whence in the end he came to be called
a painter of rubbish; and yet the greatness of his art did so appear in his small works that
they were sold at a higher rate than the great pieces of others. Even so, Theotimus, the little
simplicities, abjections and humiliations in which the great saints so delighted, in order to
hide themselves and put their hearts under shelter against vainglory, having been practised
with a great excellence of the art and of the ardour of heavenly love, were found more
grateful in the sight of God than the large and illustrious works of many others which were
performed with little charity and devotion.
The sacred spouse wounds her beloved with a single one of her hairs,500 of which he
makes such great account that he compares them to the flocks of the goats of Galaad; and
499 1 Cor. xiii. 3.
500 Cant. iv. 9.
451

47.5 Page 465

▲back to top


Chapter V. How Love Spreads Its Excellence Over the Other Virtues, Perfecting…
he has no sooner commended the eyes of his devout loving one, which are the most noble
parts of the face, than presently he praises her hair, which is the most frail, worthless and
mean; to teach us that in a soul captivated by divine love, exercises that seem very trifling
are yet highly agreeable to his Divine Majesty.
452

47.6 Page 466

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Excellent Value Which Sacred Love Gives to the Actions…
CHAPTER VI.
OF THE EXCELLENT VALUE WHICH SACRED LOVE GIVES TO THE ACTIONS
WHICH ISSUE FROM ITSELF AND TO THOSE WHICH PROCEED FROM THE OTHER
VIRTUES.
But you will say to me, what is this value, I pray you, which holy love gives to our actions?
Oh! Theotimus, verily I should not have the assurance to say it, if the Holy Ghost himself
had not declared it in most express terms by the great Apostle S. Paul, who speaks thus:
What is at present momentary and light of our tribulation, worketh for us above measure
exceedingly an eternal weight of glory.501 For God's sake, let us ponder these words. Our
tribulations, which are so light that they pass in a moment, work for us the solid and stable
weight of glory. I beseech you, behold these wonders! Tribulation produces glory, lightness
gives weight, and moments work eternity. But what is it that can give such power to these
fleeting moments and light tribulations? Red purple, or fine crimson violet is a most precious
and royal cloth, yet not by reason of the wool but of the colour. The works of good Christians
are of such worth that heaven is given us for them; but, Theotimus, it is not because they
proceed from us and are the wool of our hearts, but because they are dyed with the blood
of the Son of God,—I mean because our Saviour sanctifies our works by the merits of his
blood. The vine-sprig, united and joined to the stock, brings forth fruit not by its own power
but in virtue of the stock. Now we are united by charity unto our Redeemer as members to
their head, and hence it is that our fruits and good works, drawing their worth from him,
merit life everlasting. Aaron's rod was dry, and incapable by itself of bringing forth fruit;
but as soon as the name of that great high priest was written upon it, in one night it brought
out its leaves, its flowers and its fruits.502 We of ourselves are withered branches, unprofitable,
fruitless, not sufficient to think anything of ourselves, as of ourselves, but our sufficiency is
from God, who also hath made us fit ministers,503 and able to do his will, and therefore as
soon as by holy love the name of our Saviour, the great bishop of our souls, is engraven in
our hearts, we begin to bear delicious fruits unto life everlasting. And as seeds which of
themselves would only bring forth insipid melons, would bring forth sugared and musked
ones, if they were steeped in sugared or mucked water; so our souls, which of themselves
are not able to produce one single good thought towards God's service, being steeped in
sacred love by the Holy Ghost who dwells within us, produce sacred actions, which tend
towards and carry us to immortal glory. Our works as proceeding from ourselves are but
frail reeds; but these reeds become golden by charity, and with the same we measure the
heavenly Jerusalem, which is given us by that measure:504 for as well to men as to angels,
478
479
501 2 Cor. iv. 17.
502 Numb. xvii. 8.
503 2 Cor. iii. 5.
504 Apoc. xxi. 15.
453

47.7 Page 467

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Excellent Value Which Sacred Love Gives to the Actions…
glory is distributed according to charity and its actions. So that the measure used by men
and that used by angels is the same,505 and God has rendered and will render to every man
according to his works,506 as all the divine Scripture teaches us, assuring us of the felicity
and eternal joys of heaven in reward of the labours and good works which we have performed
on earth.
A magnificent reward, and one that savours of the Master's greatness whom we serve.
He indeed, Theotimus, if so he had pleased, might most justly have exacted our obedience
and service without proposing unto us any salary or hire at all, because we are his by a
thousand most legitimate titles, and because we can do nothing of worth save what is in
him, by him, for him, and from him. Yet his goodness has not disposed thus, but, in consid-
eration of his Son, our Saviour, has willed to treat with us at a set price, receiving us for hire,
and engaging himself by promise to pay us, according to our works, eternal wages. Nor is
it that our service can either be necessary or profitable unto him, for when we shall have
accomplished all his commands, we are yet to avow with most humble truth or most true
humility that indeed we are most unprofitable servants, and utterly useless to our Master,
who by reason of his essential superabundance of riches can have no profit by us; but, con-
verting all our works to our own advantage and good, he ordains that we shall serve him
with as little profit to him as there is much to us, who by such small labours gain such great
rewards.
480
He was not bound to pay us for our service if he had not given his promise to do so. But
do not think, Theotimus, that he would so manifest his goodness in this promise as to forget
to glorify his wisdom; yea, on the contrary, he most exactly observed the rules of equity,
mingling seemliness (bienseance), with liberality in an admirable manner; for though our
works are indeed very small and in no wise comparable with glory by their matter, yet in
regard to their quality they are very proportionate thereunto, by reason of the Holy Ghost,
who, by charity dwelling in our hearts, works in us with so exquisite an art, that the same
works which are wholly ours are still more wholly his, since he produces them in us as we
again produce them in him, he does them for us as we do them for him, he operates them
with us as we co-operate with him.
Now the Holy Ghost dwells in us if we be living members of Jesus Christ, who therefore
said unto his disciples: He that abideth in me, and I in him, the same beareth much fruit;507
and this, Theotimus, is because he that abides in him is made partaker of his divine Spirit,
which is in the midst of man's heart as a fountain of living water springing up unto life
everlasting.508 So the holy oil which was poured upon our Saviour as upon the head of the
505 Apoc. xxi. 17.
506 Apoc. xxii. 12.
507 John xv. 5.
508 John iv. 14.
454

47.8 Page 468

▲back to top


Chapter VI. Of the Excellent Value Which Sacred Love Gives to the Actions…
Church militant and triumphant, spreads itself over the society of the Blessed, who as the
sacred beard of this heavenly Master are continually attached to his glorious face, and runs
down upon the company of the faithful, who as garments are joined and united by love to
his Divine Majesty; and both companies, as being composed of brethren of the same family,
have reason to cry out: Behold how good and how pleasant it is for brethren to dwell together
in unity: like the precious ointment on the head, that ran down upon the beard, the beard of
Aaron, which ran down to the skirt of his garments.509
Our works, therefore, as a little grain of mustard-seed, are in no sort comparable in
greatness to the tree of glory which they produce, yet they have the vigour and virtue to
produce it, because they proceed from the Holy Spirit, who by an admirable infusion of his
grace into our hearts makes our works his, and yet withal leaves them our own, since we
481
are members of a head of which he is the Spirit, and ingrafted in a tree whereof he is the
divine sap. And as he thus acts in our works, and we after a certain manner operate or co-
operate in his action, he leaves us for our part all the merit and profit of our services and
good works, and we again leave him all the honour and praise thereof, acknowledging that
the commencement, the progress, and the end of all the good we do depends on his mercy,
by which he has come unto us and prevented us, has come into us and assisted us, has come
with us and conducted us, finishing what he had begun. But, O God! Theotimus, how
merciful is his goodness to us in thus distributing his bounty! We give him the glory of our
praise, forsooth! and he gives us the glory of possessing him. In fine, by these light and
passing labours we obtain goods which endure for all eternity. Amen.
509 Ps. cxxxii. 1, 2.
455

47.9 Page 469

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That Perfect Virtues Are Never One without the Other.
CHAPTER VII.
THAT PERFECT VIRTUES ARE NEVER ONE WITHOUT THE OTHER.
It is said that the heart is the first part of a man which receives life by the infusion of the
soul, and the eye the last, as, contrariwise, in a natural death the eye begins first to die, and
the heart is the last. Now when the heart begins to live, before the other parts are animated,
life is certainly very feeble, frail and imperfect, but ever as it establishes itself more thoroughly
in the rest of the body, it is also more vigorous in each part and particularly in the heart,
and we see that when life is injured in any one of the members it is weakened in all the rest.
If a man's foot or arm be hurt all the body is troubled, excited, disturbed and affected; if the
stomach is disordered, the eyes, the voice and the whole countenance show the effects of it,
so great is the sympathy amongst the organs of man's natural life.
All the virtues are not acquired together, in an instant, but one after another, in propor-
tion as reason, which is like the soul of our heart, takes possession, first of one passion then
482
of another, to moderate and govern them: and ordinarily this life of our soul begins in the
heart of our passions, which is love, and spreading itself over all the rest it quickens at last
the very understanding by contemplation; as, on the contrary, moral or spiritual death makes
its entry into the soul by the want of reflection510death enters by the windows,511 says the
sacred text—and its last effect is to destroy good love, which once perishing, all our moral
life is dead in us. So then, although we may perhaps possess some virtues without others,
yet are they but languishing, imperfect and weak virtues, since reason, which is the life of
our soul, is never satisfied nor at ease in a soul unless it occupy and possess all the faculties
and passions; and when it is aggrieved and wounded in some one of our passions or affec-
tions, all the rest lose their force and vigour, and grow exceedingly weak.
You see, Theotimus, all the virtues are virtues by the proportion or conformity they
have with reason, and an action cannot be called virtuous if it proceed not from the affection
which the heart bears to the excellence and beauty of reason. Now if the love of reason
possess and animate a soul, it will be obedient to reason in all occurrences, and consequently
will practise all the virtues. If Jacob loved Rachel in consideration of her being Laban's
daughter, why did he despise Lia who was not only the daughter, but the eldest daughter,
of the same Laban? But because he loved Rachel by reason of her beauty, he could never
equally love poor Lia, though a fruitful and wise maid, because to his mind she was not so
fair. He who loves one virtue for the love of the reason and comeliness which shine in it,
will love all the virtues, since he will find the same motive in them all, and he will love each
of them more or less, as reason shall appear in them more or less resplendent. He who loves
liberality and not chastity, shows sufficiently that he loves not liberality for reason's sake,
510 L’inconsideration—i.e., failure of the spiritual eye (Tr.)
511 Jer. ix. 21.
456

47.10 Page 470

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That Perfect Virtues Are Never One without the Other.
because reason is still more radiant in chastity, and where the cause is more strong the effects
ought also to be more strong. It is, therefore, an evident sign that such a heart is not moved
to liberality by the motive and consideration of reason; whence it follows that this liberality
which seemed to be virtue is but an appearance of it, since it proceeds not from reason,
483
which is the true motive of virtues, but from some other and foreign motive. It is sufficient
for a child to be born in marriage to bear in the world the name, the arms, and the titles of
his mother's husband, but to have his blood and nature he must not only be born in the
marriage but of the marriage. Actions have the name, arms and badges of the virtues, because
being born of a heart endowed with reason we presume them to be reasonable, yet they have
neither the substance nor vigour of virtue when they proceed from a foreign and illegitimate
motive, and not from reason. It may happen then, that a man may have some virtues and
lack others; but they will either be virtues newly springing and as yet tender, like flowers in
blossom; or else perishing and dying virtues, like fading flowers: for, in conclusion, virtues
cannot have their true integrity and sufficiency unless they be all together, as all philosophy
and divinity assure us. What prudence, I pray you, Theotimus, can an intemperate, unjust
and cowardly man have, since he makes choice of vice and forsakes virtue? And how can
one be just without being prudent, strong, and temperate, since justice is no other thing
than a perpetual, strong and constant will to render to every one his own, and since the
science by which right is done is called jurisprudence, and since, to give each one his own,
we must live wisely and moderately, and hinder the disorders of intemperance in ourselves
so as to give ourselves what belongs to us? And the word virtue, does it not signify a force
and vigour belonging to the soul as a quality, even as we say that herbs and precious stones
have such and such a virtue or property?
But is not prudence itself imprudent in an intemperate man? Fortitude, without
prudence, justice and temperance, is not fortitude, but folly; and justice is unjust in the weak
man who dares not do it, in the intemperate man who permits himself to be carried away
with passion, and in the imprudent man who is not able to discern between the right and
the wrong. Justice is not justice unless it be strong, prudent and temperate; nor is prudence
prudence unless it be temperate, just and strong; nor fortitude fortitude unless it be just,
484
prudent and temperate; nor temperance temperance unless it be prudent, strong and just.
In fine, a virtue is not perfect virtue, unless it be accompanied by all the rest.
It is true, Theotimus, that one cannot exercise all the virtues at once, because the occa-
sions are not all presented at once; yea, there are virtues which some of God's greatest saints
had never occasion to practise: for S. Paul, the first hermit, for example, what occasion could
he have to exercise the pardoning of injuries, affability, magnificence, and mildness? Never-
theless, such souls stand so affected to the rectitude of reason, that though they have not all
the virtues in effect, yet they have them all in affection, being ready and prepared to follow
and obey reason in all occurences, without exception or reservation.
457

48 Pages 471-480

▲back to top


48.1 Page 471

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That Perfect Virtues Are Never One without the Other.
There are certain inclinations which are esteemed virtues and are not so, but favours
and advantages of nature. How many are there who are naturally sober, mild, silent, chaste
and modest? Now all these seem to be virtues, and yet have no more the merit thereof than
bad inclinations are blameworthy before we have given free and voluntary consent to such
natural dispositions. It is no virtue to be by nature a man of little meat, yet to abstain by
choice is a virtue. It is no virtue to be silent by nature, though it is a virtue to bridle one's
tongue by reason. Many consider they have the virtues as long as they do not practise the
contrary vices. One that has never been assaulted may truly boast that he was never a run-
away, yet he has no ground to boast of his valour. He that has never been afflicted may boast
of not being impatient, but not of being patient. In like manner, some think they have virtues
who have only good inclinations, and as those inclinations are some without others, they
suppose that virtues may be so too.
In truth the great S. Augustine shows, in an epistle which he wrote to S. Jerome, that
we may have some sort of virtue without having the rest, but that we cannot have perfect
ones without having them all; whilst, as for vices, we may have some without having others,
yea, it is even impossible to have them all together: so that it does not follow that he who
has lost all the virtues has by consequence all the vices, since almost every virtue has two
opposite vices, which are not only contrary to the virtue but also to one another. He who
485
has forfeited valour by rashness cannot at the same time be taxed with cowardice; nor can
he who has lost liberality by prodigality, be at the same time reproached with niggardliness.
Catiline, says S. Augustine, was sober, vigilant, patient in suffering cold, heat and hunger;
so that both himself and his accomplices deemed him marvellously constant; but this con-
stancy wanted prudence, since it made choice of bad instead of good; it was not temperate,
for it gave the bridle to repulsive uncleanness; it was not just, since he conspired against his
country: it was not then constancy but obstinacy, which to deceive fools bore the name of
constancy.
458

48.2 Page 472

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Charity Comprehends All the Virtues.
CHAPTER VIII.
HOW CHARITY COMPREHENDS ALL THE VIRTUES.
There flowed a river out of the place of delights to water Paradise, and thence it was divided
into four heads.512 Now, in man there is a place of delights, whence God makes the river of
reason and natural light stream out to water all the paradise of our heart, and this river
branches out into four heads; that is, it makes four streams according to the four regions of
the soul. For 1°. Over what is called the practical understanding, that is to say the part of
the intelligence which discerns the actions we should do or avoid, natural light spreads
prudence, which inclines our mind wisely to judge of the evil that we are to avoid and drive
away, and of the good we are to do and pursue. 2°. Over our will it makes justice stream
out, which is a continual and firm will to render to every one his own. 3°. Over the concu-
piscible appetite it makes temperance flow, moderating the passions which are therein. 4°.
Over the irascible appetite or anger it sends out fortitude, which stays and controls all the
motions of anger. Now these four rivers, thus separated, afterwards divide themselves into
several others, in order that all human actions may be duly fashioned to natural honesty
and felicity. But besides all this, God, to enrich Christians with a special favour, makes spring 486
up on the very top of the superior part of their spirit a supernatural fountain which is called
grace, and which comprehends indeed faith and hope, yet consists in charity. It purifies the
soul from all sins, and then adorns and embellishes it with a most delightful beauty; and fi-
nally spreads its waters over all the faculties and operations thereof, to give the understanding
a celestial prudence, the will a holy justice, the concupiscible appetite a sacred temperance,
and the irascible appetite a devout fortitude, to the end that man's whole heart may tend to
the supernatural honesty and felicity which consist in union with God. And if these four
streams and rivers of charity meet with any one of the four natural virtues in the soul, they
bring it to their obedience, mingling themselves therewith to perfect it, as perfumed water
perfects natural water when they are mixed together. But if holy charity, spread out in this
manner, find not the natural virtues in the soul, then it alone does all their operations as
occasion requires.
Thus heavenly love finding certain virtues in S. Paul, S. Ambrose, S. Denis, S. Pachomius,
shed upon them an agreeable brightness, reducing them all to its service. But in Magdalen,
in S. Mary of Egypt, the Good Thief, and a hundred other such penitents who had been
great offenders, divine love, finding no virtue, did the office and work of all the virtues,
making itself patient, gentle, humble, and liberal in them. We sow great variety of seeds in
gardens, and cover them, as if burying them, till the sun's greater heat makes them rise, and,
as one would say, resuscitates them, when they produce their leaves and their flowers, with
new seeds each one in its kind; so that one sole heat from heaven causes all the diversity of
512 Gen. ii. 10.
459

48.3 Page 473

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Charity Comprehends All the Virtues.
these productions, by means of the seed which it finds hidden in the bosom of the earth.
Verily, my Theotimus, God has sown in our hearts the seeds of all virtues, which, however,
are so covered with our imperfections and weakness that they do not appear, or appear very
slightly, till the vital heat of holy love comes to quicken and resuscitate them, producing by
them the actions of all virtues. So that as the manna contained in itself the variety of the
tastes of all meats, and left a relish thereof in the mouths of the Israelites, even so, heavenly
487
love comprehends in itself the diversity of the perfections of all the virtues in so excellent
and sublime a manner, that it produces all their actions in time and place according to the
occasions. Josue indeed valiantly defeated God's enemies by his good handling of the armies
which were under his charge; but Samson defeated them yet more gloriously, references,
who by his own hand slew them by thousands with the jawbone of an ass. Josue by his
command and good order making use of the valour of his troops did wonders, but Samson
by his own force alone wrought miracles. Josue had the strength of many soldiers under
him, but Samson had it in him, and could alone perform as much as Josue with many soldiers.
Holy love is excellent in both these ways, for finding some virtue in a soul (and ordinarily
it finds at least faith, hope and penitence) it animates, commands, and happily employs
them in God's service, and for the rest of the virtues which it finds not, it does their work
itself, having more strength by itself than they have all together.
The great Apostle not only says that Charity gives us patience, kindness, constancy,
simplicity, but he says that charity is patient, is kind,513 is constant: and it is the property of
the supreme virtues amongst angels and men, not only to order the inferior virtues to work,
but also to be able themselves to do what they command others. The bishop distributes the
charges of all the ecclesiastical functions:—to open the Church, to read therein, to exorcise,
preach, baptize, sacrifice, give communion and absolve; and he himself can do, and does,
all this, having in himself an eminent virtue, which comprehends all the inferior virtues. So
S. Thomas, on the strength of S. Paul's assurance that charity is patient, kind, strong, says:
"Charity does and accomplishes the work of all the virtues." And S. Ambrose, writing to
Demetrias, calls patience and the rest of the virtues members of charity. And the great S.
Augustine says that the love of God comprehends all the virtues and does all their operations
in us. These are his words: "What is said about virtue being divided into four (he means the
four cardinal virtues) is said in my opinion by reason of the different affections which proceed
488
from love. So that I do not hesitate to define those four virtues thus: Temperance is a love
which gives itself entirely unto God; Fortitude is a love which willingly supports all things
for God's sake: Justice is a love514 which serves God only, and therefore disposes justly of
513 1 Cor. xiii. 4.
514 The French has force, but it is clearly and error; S. Augustine's word is amor, as his argument requires.
Se De Morib. Eccl. c. xv. [Tr.]
460

48.4 Page 474

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. How Charity Comprehends All the Virtues.
all that is subject to man: Prudence is a love that makes choice of things proper to unite itself
unto God, and rejects such things as are contrary to it." He therefore that has charity has
his soul invested with a fair wedding garment, which, as that of Joseph, is wrought with the
variety of all the virtues: or rather he has a perfection which contains the virtue of all perfec-
tions and the perfection of all virtues. And therefore charity is patient, is kind;515 she is not
envious but bounteous; she is guilty of no levities but is prudent; she is not puffed up with
pride, but is humble; she is not ambitious or disdainful, but amiable and affable; she is not
eager to exact that which belongs unto her, but free and condescending; she is not irritable
but peaceable; she thinketh no evil but is meek; she doth not rejoice in evil but in the truth,
and with the truth she beareth all things; she easily believeth all the good that is said to her
without any obstinacy, contention or distrust; she hopeth all good things for her neighbour
without ever losing the hope of procuring his salvation; she endureth all things, expecting
without disquiet that which is promised her; and in conclusion, charity is that pure fire-
tried gold, which our Saviour counselled the Bishop of Laodicea to buy,516 which contains
the virtue of all things, which can do all, and which does all.
515 1 Cor. xiii.
516 Apoc. iii. 18.
461

48.5 Page 475

▲back to top


Chapter IX. That the Virtues Have Their Perfection from Divine Love.
CHAPTER IX.
THAT THE VIRTUES HAVE THEIR PERFECTION FROM DIVINE LOVE.
Charity is then the bond of perfection,517 since in it all the perfections of the soul are contained
and assembled, and since without it, not only can one not have the whole array of virtues,
489
but one cannot even have the perfection of any virtue. Without the cement and mortar
which fasten the stones and walls, the whole edifice goes to rack; were it not for the nerves,
muscles and sinews, the whole body would be undone; and without charity the virtues can
never sustain one another. Our Saviour ever joins the fulfilling of the commandments to
charity. He that hath my commandments, says he, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me;
he that loveth me not keepeth not my words; If any one love me, he will keep my word:518
which the disciple whom our Saviour loved repeating, says: He that keepeth his word, in
him, in very deed, the charity of God is perfected;519 and this is the charity of God, that we
keep his commandments.520 Now he who should have all virtues, would keep all the com-
mandments: for he that had the virtue of religion would keep the first three commandments;
he that had piety would observe the fourth; he that had the virtue of mildness and gentleness
would observe the fifth; by the virtue of chastity one would observe the sixth; by liberality
one would avoid the breach of the seventh; by truth one would effect the eighth; by frugality
and purity one would observe the ninth and tenth. And if without charity we cannot keep
the commandments, much less can we without it have all the virtues.
True it is, one may have some virtue, and live some small time without offending God,
though wanting in divine love: but even as we sometimes see uprooted trees produce
something, but imperfectly, and only for a short time, so a heart separated from charity,
may indeed bring forth some acts of virtue but not for long.
All virtues separated from charity are very imperfect, since they are not able without it
to arrive at their end, which is to make us happy. Bees in their birth are little grubs and
worms, without feet, without wings, and without shape; but in course of time they change,
and become little flies; afterwards waxing strong, and being come to their growth, they are
490
said to be formed, finished and perfect bees, because they have all that is wanted for flying
and for making honey. The virtues have their beginning, their progress, and their perfection;
and I do not deny that without charity they may be born and even grow; but that they should
come to their perfection, and bear the name of formed, fashioned, and accomplished virtues,
that depends on charity, which gives them the strength to fly in God, and to collect from
517 Col. iii. 14.
518 John xiv. 23, 23, 24.
519 1 John ii. 5.
520 1 John v. 3.
462

48.6 Page 476

▲back to top


Chapter IX. That the Virtues Have Their Perfection from Divine Love.
his mercy the honey of true merit, and of the sanctification of the heart in which they are
found.
Charity is amongst the virtues, as the sun amongst the stars; she distributes to all their
lustre and beauty. Faith, hope, fear and penitence ordinarily go before her into the soul to
prepare her lodging; and, upon her arrival, they with all the train of virtues obey and wait
upon her, and she with her presence animates, adorns and quickens them all.
The other virtues can in turn aid and stimulate one another in their works and exercises:
for who knows not that chastity requires and excites sobriety, and that obedience moves us
to liberality, prayer, and humility? Now by this communication which they have amongst
themselves they participate in one another's perfections: for chastity kept by obedience has
a double dignity, its own and that of obedience; yea, it has even more of the dignity of
obedience than of its own: for, as Aristotle says that he who stole for the sake of sensuality
sinned rather against purity than against honesty, because all his affections tended to impur-
ity, and he only used theft as a passage to it; even so he who keeps chastity through obedience
is more obedient than chaste, since he makes chastity serve obedience. Nevertheless, from
the mixture of chastity and obedience a perfect and accomplished virtue cannot issue, since
they both want the last perfection, which is love; so that if it were possible that all the virtues
were put in one man, and that he wanted only charity, this union of virtues would indeed
be a most perfect and complete body in all its parts, such as Adam's was when God with his
omnipotent hand formed it of the slime of the earth: yet would it be a body wanting motion,
life and grace, till God should breathe into it the breath of life,521 that is, holy charity, without
which nothing profits us.
491
For the rest, the perfection of divine love is so sovereign that it perfects all the virtues,
and can receive no perfection from them, no not from obedience itself, which is the one
most able to give perfection to the rest: for although love be commanded, and although in
loving we exercise obedience, yet still love draws not its perfection from obedience, but from
the goodness of him whom it loves; love not being excellent because it is obedient, but because
it loves an excellent good. Truly in loving we obey, as also in obeying we love; but if this
obedience be so excellently loveable, it is because it tends to the excellence of love; nor does
its excellence consist in this, that loving we obey, but in this, that obeying we love. So that
even as God is as much the last end as the first beginning of all that is good, so love, which
is the source of every good affection, is likewise its last end and perfection.
521 Gen. ii. 7.
463

48.7 Page 477

▲back to top


Chapter X. A Digression upon the Imperfection of the Virtues of the Pag…
CHAPTER X.
A DIGRESSION UPON THE IMPERFECTION OF THE VIRTUES OF THE PAGANS.
Those ancient sages of the world long ago made glorious discourses in honour of the moral
virtues, yea, even in behalf of religion: but what Plutarch observes of the Stoics suits still
better the rest of the pagans. We see ships, says he, which bear the grandest titles: some are
called the Victory, others the Valour, others the Sun; yet, for all that, they remain dependent
on the winds and waves: so the Stoics boast of being exempt from passions, without fear,
without grief, without anger, unchanging and unchangeable, yet are they in fact subject to
trouble, disquiet, impetuosity, and other follies.
I earnestly ask you, Theotimus, what virtues could those people have, who voluntarily,
and of set purpose, overthrew all the laws of religion. Seneca wrote a book against supersti-
492
tions, wherein he very freely reprehends pagan impiety. "Now this freedom," says S. Au-
gustine, "was found in his writings, but not in his life; since he even advised that a man
should reject superstition in his heart but should practise it in his actions; for these are his
words: Which superstitions the sage shall observe, as being commanded by the law, not as
being grateful to the gods." How could they be virtuous, who, as S. Augustine relates, were
of opinion that the wise man ought to kill himself, when he could not or would not longer
endure the calamities of this life, and yet were not willing to acknowledge that calamities
were miseries or miseries calamities, but maintained that the wise man was ever fortunate
and his life happy? "O what a happy life," says S. Augustine, "to avoid which one has even
recourse to death? If it be happy, why do you not remain in it?" Wherefore, that Stoic and
commander who, for having killed himself in Utica to avoid a calamity which he considered
it unworthy to survive, has been so praised by the worldly-minded, did this action with so
little true virtue that, as S. Augustine says, he did not exhibit a high courage that wished to
avoid dishonour, but a weak soul which had not the strength of mind to await adversity.
For if he reputed it a dishonourable thing to live under victorious Cæsar, why did he tell
others to trust to the clemency of Cæsar? Why did he not advise his son to die with him, if
death were better and more honourable than life? He killed himself, then, either because he
envied Cæsar the glory he would have gained by sparing his life, or because he feared the
shame of living under a victor whom he hated: wherein he may have the praise of having a
stout, perhaps a great heart, but not of being a wise, virtuous and constant soul. The cruelty
which is exercised without emotion and in cold blood, is the most cruel of all. It is the same
with despair; for the most slow, deliberate, and determined is the least excusable and the
most desperate. And as for Lucretia (that we may not forget the valour of the less courageous
sex), either she was chaste under the violence of the son of Tarquin, or she was not. If Lucretia
464

48.8 Page 478

▲back to top


Chapter X. A Digression upon the Imperfection of the Virtues of the Pag…
were not chaste, why is her chastity so praised? If she were chaste and innocent on that oc-
casion, was not Lucretia wicked to murder the innocent Lucretia? If unchaste why so much
praised, if honest why was she slain? But she dreaded reproach and shame on the part of
such as might have thought that the treatment she had suffered through violence while she
493
was in life had been undergone voluntarily, if after it she had remained in life. She feared
to have been considered an accomplice in the sin, if what was done to her wickedly were
borne by her patiently. But are we then to oppress the innocent, and kill the just in order to
avoid the shame and reproach which depends upon the opinion of men? Must we maintain
honour at the cost of virtue, and reputation at the hazard of justice? Such were the virtues
of the most virtuous pagans towards God and towards themselves.
As to the virtues that refer to our neighbour, they trod under foot, and most shamefully,
by their very laws, the chief of them, which is piety.522 For Aristotle, the greatest intellect
amongst them, pronounced this horrible and most pitiless sentence. "As to the question of
exposing, that is, abandoning children, or of bringing them up, let this be the law: that
nothing is to be kept that is deprived of any member. And as to other children, if the laws
and customs of the city do not allow the abandoning of them, and the number of any one's
children so increase on him that he has more by half than he can keep, he is to be beforehand,
and procure abortion." Seneca, so praised as a wise man, says: "We kill monsters:—and if
our children are defective, weakly, imperfect, or monstrous, we cast them off, and abandon
them." So that it is not without cause that Tertullian reproaches the Romans with exposing
their children to the mercy of the waters, to cold, to famine, to dogs; and this not by the
force of poverty; for as he says, the very chief men and magistrates practised this cruelty.
Good God! Theotimus, what kind of virtuous men were these? And what was their wisdom,
who taught a wisdom so cruel and brutal? Alas! said the great Apostle, professing themselves
to be wise they became fools, and their foolish heart was darkened,523 and delivered up to a
reprobate sense. Ah! what horrible counsels that great philosopher Aristotle gives! and how
greatly is he reproached for them by Tertullian and the great S. Ambrose.
Indeed if the pagans practised some virtues, it was generally for the sake of worldly
glory, and consequently they had nothing of virtue but the action, and not the motive and
494
intention: now virtue is not true unless it has a right intention. "Human cupidity has produced
the fortitude of pagans," says the Council of Orange, "and divine charity that of Christians."
"The virtues of pagans," says S. Augustine, "were not true, but only resembled true ones,
because they were not done for a proper end, but for transitory ends. Fabricius shall be less
punished than Cataline, not because the former was good, but because the latter was worse;
not because Fabricius had any true virtues, but because he was not so far off true virtues.
522 That is, the mutual love of parents and children—pietas (Tr.)
523 Rom. i. 22, 21.
465

48.9 Page 479

▲back to top


Chapter X. A Digression upon the Imperfection of the Virtues of the Pag…
So that the virtue of the pagans will, at the day of judgment, be a kind of defence to them;
not such as that they can be saved thereby, but such as that they may be less condemned."
One vice was neutralized by another amongst the pagans, vices making room for one another,
without leaving space for any virtue: and for this one vice of vain glory they repressed avarice
and many other vices. Yea sometimes through vanity, they despised vanity; whereupon one
of the furthest removed from vanity, treading under his feet the rich bed of Plato,—What
are you doing, Diogenes, said Plato to him? I trample underfoot Plato's pride, said he; it is
true, replied Plato, but you trample it with another pride. Whether or no Seneca was vain
may be gathered from his last words; for the end crowns the work, and the last hour judges
all: what vanity, I pray you!—being at the point of death, he said to his friends that he had
not been able until then sufficiently to thank them, and that therefore he would leave them
a legacy of what he had most desirable and most beautiful; which, if they faithfully kept it,
would bring them great praises; adding that this magnificent legacy was nothing else but
the picture of his life. Do you see, Theotimus, how offensive was the vanity of the last breath
of this man? It was not love of honest virtue, but love of honour which pricked forward
those wise men of this world to the exercise of virtue; and similarly their virtues were as
different from true virtues, as the love of right and of merit is different from the love of re-
ward. Those who serve their prince for their own interest, ordinarily perform their duty
with more eagerness, ardour, and outward show; but those who serve for love, do it more
495
nobly, generously, and therefore more worthily.
Carbuncles and rubies are called by the Greeks two contrary names, for they name them
pyropos and apyropos: that is, fiery and fireless, or inflamed and flameless. They call them
fiery, burning, red coals, or carbuncles, because in light and splendour they resemble fire:
but they call them fireless, or, so to say, uninflammable, because not only is their shining
without any heat, but they are not even capable of heat, there being no fire that can heat
them. So did our ancient Fathers term the pagan virtues, virtues and non-virtues both to-
gether; virtues, because they had the lustre and appearance of them, non-virtues, because
they not only lacked the vital heat of the love of God, which alone could perfect them, but
they were not even capable of it, because they were in persons without faith. "There being
in those times," says S. Augustine, "two Romans great in virtue, Cæsar and Cato, Cato's
virtue came much nearer to true virtue than Cæsar's did." And having said somewhere that
the philosophers who were destitute of true piety had shone with the light of virtue, he unsays
it in his book of Retractations, considering this to be too great praise for virtues so imperfect
as those of the pagans were: which in truth are like to shining fire-worms, which only shine
during the night, and day being come lose their light. For, even so, those pagan virtues are
only virtues in comparison with vices, but in comparison with the virtues of true Christians,
are quite unworthy of the name of virtues.
466

48.10 Page 480

▲back to top


Chapter X. A Digression upon the Imperfection of the Virtues of the Pag…
Yet whereas they contain some good, they may be compared to worm-eaten apples; for
the colour of these, and such little substance as if left them, are as good as those of entire
virtues, but the worm of vanity is in the core, and spoils them; and therefore he who would
use them must separate the good from the bad. I grant, Theotimus, there was some firmness
of heart in Cato, and that this firmness was praiseworthy, but he who would rightfully appeal
to his example, must do so in a just and right matter, not inflicting death on himself, but
suffering it when true virtue requires; not for the vanity of glory, but for the glory of truth:
as was the case with our martyrs, who, with invincible hearts, performed so many miracles
496
of constancy and resolution, that those of Cato, an Horatius, a Seneca, a Lucretia, an Arria,
deserve no consideration in comparison with them. Witness a Laurence, a Vincent, a Vitalis,
an Erasmus, a Eugenius, a Sebastian, an Agatha, an Agnes, a Catharine, a Perpetua, a Felicitas,
a Symphorosa, a Natalia, and a thousand others, who make me ever wonder at the admirers
of pagan virtues; not so much because they unreasonably admire the imperfect virtues of
the pagans, as because they do not admire the most perfect virtues of Christians, virtues a
hundred times more worthy of admiration, and alone worthy of imitation.
467

49 Pages 481-490

▲back to top


49.1 Page 481

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Human Actions Are Without Worth When They Are Done without…
CHAPTER XI.
HOW HUMAN ACTIONS ARE WITHOUT WORTH WHEN THEY ARE DONE
WITHOUT DIVINE LOVE.
The great friend of God, Abraham, had by Sara his chief wife a most dear only son, Isaac,
who also was his sole heir: and though he had Ismael by Agar, and several other children
by Cetura, who were wives of a servile and inferior condition, yet he bestowed upon these
only certain presents and legacies whereby to put them off and disinherit them, because not
being acknowledged by his chief wife, they could not succeed him: now they were not ac-
knowledged, because, with regard to the children of Cetura, they were all born after Sara's
decease; and as for Ismael, though his mother Agar had at first acted by the authority of
Sara her mistress, yet afterwards she despised her mistress, and would not allow Sara's rights
over the child. Now, Theotimus, it is only the children, that is the acts, of most holy charity,
and the children or acts which the other virtues conceive and bring forth under her com-
mandment and direction, or at least under the wings and favour of her presence, which are
heirs of God, and joint heirs with Christ.524 But when the moral virtues, or even the super-
natural virtues, produce their actions in the absence of charity, as they do amongst schismat-
ics, according to S. Augustine, and sometimes amongst bad Catholics, they are of no value 497
towards Paradise, not even alms-giving, though it should lead us to distribute all our goods
to the poor, nor yet martyrdom, though we should deliver our body to the flames to be burnt.
No, Theotimus, without charity, says the Apostle, all this profiteth nothing; as we show more
amply elsewhere. Further, when in the production of moral virtue the will proves disobedient
to her mistress, which is charity (as when by pride, vanity, temporal interest, or some other
bad motive, virtues are turned from their own nature), then those actions are driven out
and banished from Abraham's house and Sara's society, that is, they are deprived of the fruit
and of the privileges of charity, and consequently are left without worth or merit. For those
actions, thus infected by a bad intention, are in fact more vicious than virtuous; they have
virtue only on their outside; their interior belongs to vice, which serves them for a motive;
witness the fastings, offerings, and other actions of the Pharisee.
But finally, besides all this, as the Israelites lived peaceably in Egypt during the life of
Joseph and of Levi, and directly after the death of Levi were tyrannically reduced to
slavery—whence arose that proverb of the Jews: One of the brothers being deceased, the
others are oppressed: [as is related in the great Chronology of the Hebrews, published by
the learned Archbishop of Aix, Gilbert Genebrard, whom I name for honour and with
consolation, having been his disciple, though an unworthy one, when he was Royal Reader
at Paris, and was explaining the Canticle of Canticles]—so the merits and fruits, as well of
moral as of Christian virtues, most sweetly and tranquilly subsist in the soul while sacred
524 Rom. viii. 17.
468

49.2 Page 482

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Human Actions Are Without Worth When They Are Done without…
love lives and reigns therein; but as soon as divine love dies, all the merits and fruits of other
virtues die at once. These are the works which divines call killed (mortifiées), because, having
been born alive under the protection of charity, and, like Ismael, in the family of Abraham,
they afterwards lose life and the right of inheritance by the disobedience and rebellion of
the human will, which is their mother.
Alas! Theotimus, what an evil! If the just man turn himself away from his justice, and
498
do iniquity according to all the abominations which the wicked man useth to work, shall he
live? All his justices which he hath done shall not be remembered: in the prevarication by
which he hath prevaricated, and in the sin which he hath committed, in them he shall die,
says Our Lord in Ezechiel.525 So that mortal sin ruins all the merit of virtues: because, as
for those which are performed while sin reigns in the soul, they are born so dead that they
are for ever useless towards eternal bliss; and as for those which were performed before the
sin was committed, that is, while sacred love lived in the soul, their value and merit perish
and die as soon as sin comes, not being able to preserve their life after the death of charity
which had given it to them. The lake which profane authors commonly call Asphaltites, and
sacred authors the Dead Sea, has so heavy a curse upon it, that nothing that is put into it
can live: when the fish of the Jordan come near it they die, unless they speedily return against
the stream; the trees upon its shore produce nothing that lives, and although their fruits are
in appearance and outward show like the fruits of other places, yet when gathered they are
found to be only skins and rinds full of ashes, which are blown away by the wind:—a sign
of the infamous sins, in punishment of which, this country, which contained four populous
cities, was of old converted into an abyss of corruption and infection: and nothing, methinks,
could better represent the evilness of sin than this abominable lake, which had its origin
from the most execrable crime human flesh can commit. Sin, therefore, as a dead and
mortal sea, kills all that comes near it; nothing has life of all that is born in the soul which
sin possesses, or of all which grows round about. Alas! Theotimus, nothing. For sin is not
only a lead work, but is moreover so infectious and pestilential, that the most excellent virtues
of the sinful soul produce no action of life: and although the acts of the sinner have oftentimes
a great resemblance to those of the just man, yet are they in reality but rinds filled with wind
and dust, regarded, indeed, by the divine goodness, and even rewarded with temporal
presents, which are bestowed upon them as upon the children of servants; but rinds which
neither are nor can be of so agreeable a relish to the divine justice as to be rewarded with
499
eternal reward. They perish on the trees, and cannot be preserved in the hand of God, because
they are void of true worth, as is said in the Apocalypse to the Bishop of Sardis, who was
considered to be a living tree by reason of divers virtues which he practised, and yet was
dead,526 because he was in sin; his virtues were not true living fruits, but dead rinds and
525 xviii. 24
526 Apoc. iii. 1.
469

49.3 Page 483

▲back to top


Chapter XI. How Human Actions Are Without Worth When They Are Done without…
pleasing only to the eye, not savoury apples good for food. So that we may all utter this true
saying, in imitation of the holy apostle: Without charity I am nothing, nothing profiteth me;
and that of St. Augustine: "Put charity in a heart and everything profits, take charity away
and nothing profits." I mean that nothing profits for eternal life, for as we say elsewhere,
the virtuous works of sinners are not useless for temporal life. But, my dear Theotimus,
what doth it profit a man, if he gain the whole world temporally and suffer the loss of his
soul527 eternally.
527 Matth. xvi. 26.
470

49.4 Page 484

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How Holy Love Returning into the Soul, Brings Back to Life…
CHAPTER XII.
HOW HOLY LOVE RETURNING INTO THE SOUL, BRINGS BACK TO LIFE ALL
THE WORKS WHICH SIN HAD DESTROYED.
The works then of a sinner, while he is deprived of holy love, are not profitable to eternal
life, and therefore they are called dead works: on the contrary the good works of the just
man are said to be living, inasmuch as divine love animates and quickens them with its life.
But if afterwards they lose their life and worth by sin, they are said to be works in death
(amorties), extinguished, or killed, but not dead works, especially with regard to the elect.
For as our Saviour speaking of the little Talitha, the daughter of Jairus, said she was not dead,
but slept only,528 because, being about to be raised to life, her death would be of such short
duration that it would resemble sleep rather than a true death; so the works of the just man
(and especially of the elect) which the commission of sin makes to die, are not called dead 500
works but only deadlike, killed, stupefied or put into a trance, because upon the approaching
return of holy love, they will, or at least can, soon revive and return to life again. The return
of sin deprives the heart and all its works of life: the return of grace restores life to the heart
and all its works. A sharp winter makes all the plants of the earth die down, so that if it always
lasted, they also would always continue in this state of death: sin, that most sad and dreadful
winter of the soul, kills all the holy works which it finds therein, and if it always continued,
never would anything recover either life or vigour. But as at the return of the fair spring,
not only do the new seeds which are sown under the favour of this beautiful and fertile
season germinate and agreeably bring forth their plants, each one in its kind, but also the
old plants, which the rigour of the past winter had bitten, withered, and made die down,
grow green and vigorous, and take up again their strength and their life:—so sin being
blotted out, and the grace of divine love returning into the soul,—not only do the new affec-
tions which the return of this sacred spring brings into the soul blossom and bring forth
ample merits and blessings; but the works also that were dried up and withered by the rigour
of the winter of past sins, delivered from their mortal enemy, resume their strength, grow
vigorous, and, as if risen from the dead, flourish anew, and bring forth fruit of merits for
eternal life. Such is the omnipotence of heavenly love, or the love of heavenly omnipotence.
When the wicked turneth himself away from his wickedness, which he hath wrought, and doth
judgment and justice, he shall save his soul alive. Be converted and do penance for all your
iniquities; and iniquity shall not be your ruin,529 says the Lord Almighty. And what
means—iniquity shall not be your ruin, but that the ruin which it made shall be repaired?
528 Marc. v. 41.
529 Ezech. viii. 27, 30.
471

49.5 Page 485

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How Holy Love Returning into the Soul, Brings Back to Life…
So, besides a thousand endearments which the prodigal son received from his father, he was
re-established, even with advantage, in all his privileges, and in all the graces, favours and
dignities which he had lost. And Job, that innocent image of a penitent sinner, in the end
received twice as much as he had before.530 In truth the most holy Council of Trent desires
that we should encourage penitents who have returned to the sacred love of the eternal God,
in these words of the Apostle: Abound in every good work, knowing that your labour is not
in vain in the Lord.531 For God is not unjust, that he should forget your work and the love
which you have shewn in his name.532 God then does not forget the works of those who
having lost love by sin recover it by penance. Now God forgets works when they lose their
merit and sanctity by sin committed, and he remembers them when they return to life and
vigour by the presence of holy love. So much so, that for the faithful to be rewarded for their
good works, as well by the increase of grace and future glory, as by the actual enjoyment of
eternal life, it is not necessary that they should never relapse into sin, but it is enough, ac-
cording to the Sacred Council, that they depart this life in the grace of God and charity.
God has promised an eternal reward to the works of a just man. But if the just man turn
himself away from his justice by sin, God will no more remember his justices and good works
which he hath done.533 But yet if this poor fallen man afterwards rises and returns into God's
grace by penance, God will no longer remember his sin: and if he do not remember his sin,
he will then remember the former good works, and the reward which he had promised them;
because sin, which alone had blotted them out of the divine memory, is totally effaced,
destroyed and annihilated. So that then the justice of God obliges his mercy, or rather the
mercy of God obliges his justice, to regard anew the former good works, even as though he
had never forgotten them; otherwise the holy penitent would never have dared to say to his
master: Restore unto me the joy of thy salvation, and strengthen me with a perfect spirit.534
For, as you see, he not only demands a newness of heart and spirit, but he expects to have
the joy given back to him which sin had bereft him of. Now this joy is nothing but the wine
of heavenly love, which cheers the heart of man.535
It is not with sin in this matter as with the works of charity. For the works of the just
man are not effaced, destroyed or annihilated by the commission of sin, they are only for-
gotten; but the sin of the wicked is not only forgotten, but also blotted out, cleansed away,
abolished and annihilated by holy penance. Wherefore the sin that is committed by the just
501
502
530 Job. xlii. 10.
531 1 Cor. xv. 58.
532 Hebr. vi. 10.
533 Ezech. xviii. 24.
534 Ps. l. 14.
535 Ps. ciii. 15.
472

49.6 Page 486

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How Holy Love Returning into the Soul, Brings Back to Life…
man, does not cause the sin that was once pardoned to live again, because it was entirely
annihilated: but when love returns into the penitent soul, it makes her former good works
return to life again, because they were not abolished but only forgotten. And this oblivion
of the good works of the just who have forsaken their justice and charity consists in this,
that they are made unprofitable to us so long as sin makes us incapable of eternal life, which
is their fruit; and therefore as soon as by the return of charity we are put back in the ranks
of God's children, and consequently made capable of immortal glory, God recalls to mind
our good works of old, and they again become fruitful. It were not reasonable that sin should
have as much power against charity as charity has against sin; for sin proceeds from our
infirmity, charity proceeds from God's power. If sin abound in malice to ruin us, grace su-
perabounds to restore us; and God's mercy, by which he blots out sin, is continually exalted
and becomes gloriously triumphant over the rigour of the judgment,536 by which God had
forgotten the good works which went before sin. So in the corporal cures which our Saviour
wrought by miracles he not only restored health, but moreover added new blessings, making
the cure far excel the disease, so bountiful is he to man.
I never saw, read, or heard, that wasps, gadflies, flies, and such little noxious insects
when once dead could come to life and rise again, but that the dear bees, those virtuous in-
sects, can live again, every one says, and I have often read it. It is said (these are Pliny's
words) that if one keep the dead bodies of drowned honey-bees all winter indoors, and expose
them to the sunbeams the following spring, covered over with ashes of the fig tree, they will
live again and be as good as ever. That iniquities and sinful works can return to life, after
503
they have once been drowned and abolished by penance, truly, my Theotimus, never did
the Scripture, nor, as far as I know, any theologian, aver it: yea the contrary is authorized
by holy Writ, and by the common consent of all Doctors. But that good works, which, like
sweet bees, compound the honey of merit, being drowned in sin, can afterwards regain life,
when, covered with the ashes of penance, they are exposed to the sun of grace and charity,
is held and clearly taught by all theologians: nor are we to doubt but that they become
profitable and fruitful as before. When Nabuzardan destroyed Jerusalem, and Israel was led
into captivity, the holy fire of the altar was hidden in a well, where it was turned into mud,
but this mud being drawn out of the well and exposed to the sun after the return from cap-
tivity,—the dead fire kindled again, and the mud was turned into flames.537 When the just
man becomes a slave to sin, all the good works which he had done are miserably forgotten
and turned into mud, but being delivered out of captivity, when by penance he returns into
the grace of heavenly charity, his former good works are drawn out of the well of oblivion,
and touched with the rays of heavenly mercy they return to life, and are converted into as
536 Rom. v. 20; James ii. 13.
537 2 Mac. i. 19.
473

49.7 Page 487

▲back to top


Chapter XII. How Holy Love Returning into the Soul, Brings Back to Life…
clear flames as ever, to be replaced on the sacred altar of the divine approbation, and to have
their original dignity, their first price, and their first value.
474

49.8 Page 488

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How We Are to Reduce All the Exercise of Virtues, and All…
CHAPTER XIII.
HOW WE ARE TO REDUCE ALL THE EXERCISE OF THE VIRTUES, AND ALL
OUR ACTIONS TO HOLY LOVE.
Brute beasts, being unable to know the end of their actions, tend indeed towards their end,
but do not aim at it: for to aim at a thing, is to tend towards it by intention, before tending
towards it in action. They cast, as it were, their actions towards their end, but they have no
forecast, simply following their instinct, without election or intention. But man is in such
sort master over his human and reasonable actions, that he does them all for some end, and
can direct them to one particular end, or several ends as he pleases: for he can change the
natural end of an action;—as when he swears in order to deceive another, whereas the end
of an oath is, on the contrary, to hinder deceit. He can also add another end to the natural
end of an action;—as when, besides the intention of succouring the poor to which almsgiving
tends, he adds the intention of inducing the poor man to do the like.
Now sometimes we add a less perfect end than is that of our action, sometimes we add
an end of equal or like perfection, sometimes again an end that is more high and eminent.
For besides helping a needy man, to which almsgiving specially tends, one may propose.
1°. to gain his friendship; 2°. to edify one's neighbour; and 3°. to please God. There are
three differing ends, whereof the first is lower, the second not much better, and the third
much more excellent than the ordinary end of almsgiving. So that, as you see, we have power
to give different perfections to our actions, according to the variety of motives, ends and
intentions which we have in doing them.
Be good exchangers,538 says our Saviour. Let us be very careful then, Theotimus, not
to change the motives and ends of our actions except to profit and advantage; and to do
nothing in this matter save with good order and reason. Now, look at that man who enters
on some office for the public service or to acquire honour: if his design be rather to honour
himself than to serve the commonwealth, or if he be equally desirous of both, he is wrong,
and does not escape being an ambitious man; for he overthrows the order of reason, in
either preferring or equalizing his own interests to the public good. But if, proposing as his
principal end the public service, he is very glad also at the same time to advance the honour
of his family, truly one cannot blame him, because his designs are not only honest, but also
well ordered. Another communicates at Easter, in order to escape the ill-word of his
neighbours, and to obey God: no one doubts that he does well. But if he communicate to
avoid blame as much as, or more than, to obey God, who again can doubt that he acts un-
reasonably; equalizing or preferring human respect to the obedience which he owes to God.
I may fast in Lent, either from charity in order to please God; or from obedience, because
504
505
538 These words are often quoted by the early Fathers as words of our Saviour; they are not found in the Bible
(Tr.).
475

49.9 Page 489

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. How We Are to Reduce All the Exercise of Virtues, and All…
it is a precept of the Church; or from sobriety; or from diligence, in order to study better;
or from prudence, to make some saving which is required; or from chastity, in order to tame
the flesh; or from religion, the better to pray. Now, if I please, I may make a collection of all
these intentions, and fast for them all together: but in that case there must be good manage-
ment to place these motives in proper order. For if I fasted chiefly out of a sparing humour,
rather than from obedience to the Church; if to study well rather than to please God;—who
does not see that I pervert right and order, preferring my own interest before obedience to
the Church and the pleasure of my God? To fast in order to save is good, to fast in order to
obey the Church is better, to fast in order to please God is best: but though it may seem that
with three goods one cannot make a bad; yet he who should place them out of order, prefer-
ring the less to the better, would without doubt commit an irregularity deserving of blame.
He who invites but one of his friends, gives no offence to the rest; but if he invite them
all, and give the chief seats to those of lower rank, giving the more honourable the bottom
places,—does he not offend both those and these?—these, because he lowers them against
reason: those, because he makes fools of them. So, when we do an action for a single reason-
able motive, however slight it may be, reason is not offended thereby; but he who will have
many motives, must rank them according to their quality, otherwise he sins: for disorder is
a sin, as sin is a disorder. He who desires to please God and our Blessed Lady does excellently
well, but he who would please our Blessed Lady as much as God, or more than God, would
commit an intolerable irregularity, and one might say to him, as was said to Cain: If thou
hast offered well but wrongly divided,—stop, thou hast sinned.539 To each end we must give
its proper rank, and consequently the sovereign rank to that of pleasing God.
Now the sovereign motive of our actions, which is that of heavenly love, has this sover-
eign property, that being more pure, it makes the actions which proceed from it more pure;
506
so that the angels and saints of heaven love absolutely nothing for any other end whatever
than that of the love of the divine goodness, and from the motive of desiring to please him.
They all indeed love one another most ardently, they also love us, they love the virtues, but
all this only to please God. They follow and practise virtues, not inasmuch as they are fair
and delightful, but inasmuch as they are agreeable to God: they love their own felicity, not
because it is theirs, but because it pleases God: yea, they love the very love with which they
love God, not because it is in them, but because it tends to God; not because it is sweet to
themselves, but because it pleases God; not because they have and possess it, but because
God gives it them, and takes his good-pleasure in it.
539 Gen. iv. 7. From the Septuagint (Tr.)
476

49.10 Page 490

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. The Practice of What Has Been Said in the Preceding Chapte…
CHAPTER XIV.
THE PRACTICE OF WHAT HAS BEEN SAID IN THE PRECEDING CHAPTER.
Let us purify, then, Theotimus, as far as we can, all our intentions, and since we are able to
spread over all the acts of the virtues the sacred motive of divine love, why shall we not do
it, rejecting, as occasion requires, all kinds of vicious motives, such as vain-glory, and self-
interest, and considering all the good motives which we may have for undertaking the action
which presents itself, in order to choose that of holy love, which is the most excellent of all,
to pour it over all the rest, or steep them in it. For example, if I desire valorously to expose
myself to the hazards of war, I can do it, considering various motives: For the natural motive
of this action is that of strength and valour, which moves us reasonably to undertake perilous
exploits: yet besides this I may have divers other motives; as that of obeying the prince whom
I serve, that of love for the common weal, that of magnanimity, which makes me rejoice in
the greatness of this action. Now, coming to the action, I enter on the foreseen peril for all 507
these motives together. But to raise them all to the rank of divine love, and perfectly to
purify them, I will say in my soul with all my heart: O eternal God, who art the most dear
love of my affections, if valour, obedience to my prince, love of my country, and magnanimity,
were not agreeable unto thee, I would never follow the movements I now feel, but because
these virtues please thee, I embrace this occasion of putting them in practice, and I will only
follow their instinct and leading, because thou lovest and willest them.
You see plainly, Theotimus, that by this reflection of the spirit, we perfume all those
other motives with the holy sweetness of love, since we do not follow them as motives simply
virtuous, but as motives, willed, accepted, loved and cherished by God. He who steals in
order to get drunk, is more a drunkard than a thief, according to Aristotle; and he who
practises valour, obedience, love of country, and magnanimity to please God, is rather a
divine lover, than valiant, obedient, patriotic, and magnanimous, because his whole will in
this action comes to terminate and be absorbed in the love of God, only using all the other
motives to arrive at this end. We are not wont to say we are going to Lyons but to Paris,
when we only go to Lyons in order to get to Paris: nor that we are going to sing but that we
are going to serve God, when we only go to sing in order to serve God.
And if it chance that sometimes we are touched by some particular motive, as, for ex-
ample, if we should love chastity on account of its lovely and delightful purity, at once we
must pour out, over this motive, that of holy love—in this manner: O most honourable and
most pleasing spotlessness of chastity, how worthy of love art thou, since thou art so beloved
of the divine goodness! Then, turning towards the Creator: Ah! Lord, I demand only one
thing of thee, this is what I aim at in chastity, to see and effect in it thy good pleasure, and
477

50 Pages 491-500

▲back to top


50.1 Page 491

▲back to top


Chapter XIV. The Practice of What Has Been Said in the Preceding Chapte…
to take the delight thou takest therein. And when we begin the practice of any virtue, we
should often say with all our heart: Yes, eternal Father, I will do it, for so hath it seemed good
in thy sight.540 Thus are we to animate all our actions with this heavenly good-pleasure,
loving the honourableness and beauty of virtue principally because they are agreeable to
508
God: for, my dear Theotimus, there are some men who excessively love the beauty of certain
virtues, not only without loving charity, but even with contempt of charity. Origen and
Tertullian so loved the purity of chastity, that for it they violated the great laws of charity;
the one choosing to commit idolatry to preserve it,541 the other separating himself from the
most chaste Catholic Church, his mother, to establish the chastity of his wife more according
to his own fancy. Who knows not that there were certain "Poor men of Lyons," who from
praising mendicity excessively, became heretics, and of beggars became lying vagabonds?
Who is ignorant of the folly of the Enthusiasts, Messalians, Euchites, who forsook charity,
to exalt prayer? And were there not heretics, who to exalt charity towards the poor, put
down charity towards God, ascribing man's whole salvation to alms-deeds, as S. Augustine
witnesses; although the holy Apostle cries out, if I should distribute all my goods to feed the
poor, and have not charity, it profiteth me nothing?542
God has set over me the standard of love,543 says the sacred Sulamitess. Love, Theotimus,
is the standard in the army of virtues: they ought all to range themselves by it; it is the only
flag under which our Saviour, who is the true General of the army, makes them fight. Let
us therefore reduce all the virtues to the obedience of charity: let us love particular virtues,
but principally because they are agreeable to God; let us excellently love the more excellent
virtues, not because they are excellent, but because God loves them more excellently. Thus
will holy love give life to all the virtues, making all of them full of love, lovable, and lovable
above all things.
540 Matt. xi. 26.
541 The only authority for this accusation against Origen is a statement of S. Epiphanius (de Hær. lxiv. c. 2),
which Baronius (ann. 253) rejects as an interpolation, and Tillemont (III. note xxii. on Origen) proves to be er-
roneous Tr.).
542 1 Cor. xiii. 3.
543 Cant. ii. 4. From the Septuagint (Tr.).
478

50.2 Page 492

▲back to top


Chapter XV. How Charity Contains in It the Gifts of the Holy Ghost.
CHAPTER XV.
HOW CHARITY CONTAINS IN IT THE GIFTS OF THE HOLY GHOST.
That man's heart may easily follow the motions and instincts of reason, in order to attain
the natural felicity which it can aim at, by living according to the laws of rectitude, it requires
509
to have:—1°. Temperance, to repress the rebellious movements of sensuality; 2°. Justice, to
render to God, our neighbour and ourselves what is due; 3°. Fortitude, to vanquish the
difficulties which occur in doing good and avoiding evil; 4°. Counsel, to discern what means
are most proper to attain unto good and virtue; 5°. Knowledge, to know the true good, to
which we are to aspire, and the true evil which we are to fly; 6°. Understanding, thoroughly
to penetrate the first and main grounds or principles of the beauty and excellence of rectitude;
7°. And finally, wisdom, to contemplate the divinity, the prime source of all good. These
are the qualities whereby the spirit is rendered gentle, obedient, and pliable, with regard to
the laws of the natural reason which is in us.
In like manner, the Holy Ghost, who dwelleth in us, wishing to make our soul supple,
pliable, and obedient, with regard to his heavenly movements and divine inspirations, which
are the laws of his love, in the observance of which consists the supernatural felicity of this
present life, bestows upon us seven properties and perfections, nearly corresponding to
those seven which we have just spoken of, and called, in the Holy Scripture and in the books
of theologians, gifts of the Holy Ghost.
Now they are not only inseparable from charity, but, all things well considered, and
speaking precisely, they are the principal virtues, properties and qualities of charity. For 1°.
Wisdom is in fact no other thing than the love which relishes, tastes and experiences, how
sweet and delicious God is; 2°. Understanding is nothing else than love attentive to consider
and penetrate the beauty of the truths of faith, to know thereby God in himself, and then
descending from this to consider him in creatures; 3°. Science, on the other hand, is but
the same love, keeping us attentive to the knowledge of ourselves and creatures, to make us
reascend to a more perfect knowledge of the service which we owe to God; 4°. Counsel is
also love, insomuch as it makes us careful, attentive, and wise in choosing the means proper
to serve God holily; 5°. Fortitude is love encouraging and animating the heart, to put in
510
execution that which counsel has determined should be done; 6°. Piety is the love which
sweetens labour, and makes us, with good heart, with pleasure, and with a filial affection,
employ ourselves in works which please God, our Father; and 7°. to conclude, Fear is
nothing but love insomuch as it makes us fly and avoid what is displeasing to the divine
Majesty.
So, Theotimus, charity will be another Jacob's ladder to us, consisting of the seven gifts
of the Holy Ghost, as of so many sacred steps, by which angelic men will ascend from earth
to heaven, to be united to the heart of God Almighty, and by which they will descend from
heaven to earth, to take their neighbour by the hand and lead him to heaven. For, as we
479

50.3 Page 493

▲back to top


Chapter XV. How Charity Contains in It the Gifts of the Holy Ghost.
mount the first step, Fear makes us forsake evil; on the second, Piety excites us to will to do
good; upon the third, Knowledge makes us discern the good we are to do, and the evil we
are to fly; upon the fourth, by Fortitude we take courage against all the difficulties which
occur in our enterprise; upon the fifth, by Counsel we make choice of suitable means; upon
the sixth, we unite our understanding to God to behold and penetrate the features of his
infinite beauty; and upon the seventh, we join our wills to God, to taste and experience the
sweetness of his incomprehensible goodness; for upon the top of this ladder, God bending
towards us, gives us the kiss of love, and makes us taste the sacred breasts of his sweetness,
better than wine.
But, if after we have deliciously enjoyed these favours of love, we desire to return to the
earth, to gain our neighbour to the same happiness;—from the first and highest step, where
we have filled our will with a most ardent zeal, and have perfumed our souls with the per-
fumes of God's sovereign charity, we must descend to the second step, where our under-
standing receives an incomparable light, and makes provision of the most excellent consid-
erations and maxims, to glorify the divine beauty and goodness; thence we pass to the third,
where, by the gift of Counsel, we consider by what means we may instil the relish and esteem
of the divine sweetness into our neighbour's heart; upon the fourth, we take heart, receiving
a holy Fortitude, to surmount the difficulties which might cross this design; upon the fifth,
511
by the gift of Knowledge, we begin to preach, exhorting souls to follow virtue and fly vice;
upon the sixth, we strive to emplant Piety in them, that acknowledging God for their loving
Father, they may obey him with a filial fear; upon the last step, we urge them to fear the
judgments of God, so that mingling this fear of being damned with filial reverence, they
may more earnestly forsake the earth to ascend to heaven with us.
Charity, therefore, comprehends the seven Gifts, and is like to a fair lily, which has six
flowers whiter than snow, and in the midst the beautiful little golden hammers of wisdom,
which beat into our hearts the taste and loving relish of the goodness of the Father our
Creator, of the mercy of the Son our Redeemer, and of the sweetness of the Holy Ghost our
Sanctifier. And I place thus this double fear upon the two lowest steps, to reconcile all the
translations with the holy and sacred Vulgate edition: for if in the Hebrew, the word fear is
twice said, this is not without mystery, but to show that there is a gift of filial fear, which is
nothing else but the gift of piety, and a gift of servile fear, which is the beginning of all the
progress we make towards the sovereign wisdom.
480

50.4 Page 494

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. Of the Loving Fear of Spouses; a Continuation of the Same …
CHAPTER XVI.
OF THE LOVING FEAR OF SPOUSES; A CONTINUATION OF THE SAME SUBJECT.
Ah! my brother Jonathan, said David, thou wast amiable to me above the love of women:544
as though he had said, thou wast worthy of a greater love than that of wives for their hus-
bands. All excellent things are rare. Imagine to yourself, Theotimus, a spouse of dove-like
heart and having the perfection of nuptial love. Her love is incomparable, not only in excel-
lence, but also in the great variety of beautiful affections and qualities which accompany it;
it is not only chaste, but modest; it is strong, but gracious withal; it is violent and yet tender;
it is ardent yet respectful, noble yet fearful, bold yet obedient, and all its fear is mingled with
a delicious confidence. Such truly is the fear of a soul endowed with the excellence of love;
for she has such assurance of the goodness of her spouse that she fears not the losing of him,
but she greatly fears that she will not enjoy enough of his divine presence, and that some
occasion may make him absent himself, though only for a moment. She is quite confident
that she will never displease him, but she fears she may not love him as much as love requires:
her love is too noble to entertain even the least suspicion of ever falling into disgrace with
him, but still it is so sensitive that it fears it may not be closely enough united to him; yea,
the soul sometimes arrives at such perfection that she no longer fears she may not be closely
enough united to him, her love assuring her that she will be so for ever, but she fears that
this union may not be so pure, simple and attentive as her love would desire. Such is that
admirable lover, who would not love spiritual sweetnesses, pleasures, virtues, consolations,
lest she might be diverted, be it ever so little, from her only love, which is the love she bears
to her beloved; protesting that it is himself, not his gifts, which she seeks, and crying out to
this effect:—Ah! show me, O thou whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou liest
in the midday, lest I begin to wander after545 the pleasures which are outside thee.
With this sacred fear of divine spouses were touched the great souls of S. Paul, S. Francis,
S. Catharine of Genoa, and others, who would not admit any mixture in their loves, but
endeavoured to make them so pure, so simple, and so perfect, that neither consolations, nor
the virtues themselves, should find any place between their heart and God, so that they
might say: I live, not I, but Jesus Christ lives in me: my God is all things to me: what is not
my God is nothing to me; Jesus Christ is my life: my love is crucified; and other such words
of an ecstatic heart.
Now the love of beginners or learners proceeds from true love, but from a love which
is as yet young, feeble and only beginning; filial fear proceeds from a constant and solid
love, already tending to perfection; but the fear of spouses springs from the excellence and
perfection of love already quite possessed: and as to servile and mercenary fears, they do
512
513
544 2 Kings i. 26.
545 Cant. i. 6.
481

50.5 Page 495

▲back to top


Chapter XVI. Of the Loving Fear of Spouses; a Continuation of the Same …
not truly proceed from love, but ordinarily precede love, and are its harbingers, as we have
already said, and they are oftentimes very profitable servants. You will see, Theotimus, an
honourable lady who, not willing to eat her bread idle, any more than she did whom Solomon
so much extolled,546 will lay silk in goodly variety of colours on fine white satin, which af-
terwards she will richly embellish with gold and silver in suitable patterns: the work is
wrought with the needle, which she inserts wherever she would lay her silk, silver, or gold;
yet the needle is not put into the satin to be left there, but only to draw in after it and make
way for, the silk, silver, and gold: so that when these are once laid upon their grounds, the
needle is drawn out and taken away. Even so the divine goodness, wishing to place a great
variety of virtues in man's soul, and afterwards to embellish them with his sacred love, makes
use of the needle of servile and mercenary fear, with which our hearts are ordinarily first
pricked. But still this is not left there, but ever as the virtues are drawn into and laid in the
soul, mercenary and servile fear departs, according to the word of the beloved disciple:
Perfect charity casteth out fear.547 Yea, verily, Theotimus, for the fear of being damned and
of losing heaven is dreadful and full of anguish: and how can it then stand with sacred love,
which is all agreeable, all sweet?
546 Prov. xxxi. 27.
547 1 John iv. 18.
482

50.6 Page 496

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. How Servile Fear Remains Together with Holy Love.
CHAPTER XVII.
HOW SERVILE FEAR REMAINS TOGETHER WITH HOLY LOVE.
Although, however, the lady we spoke of will not leave her needle in her work after it is
finished, yet as long as there remains anything to be done in it, if any other occurrence make
514
her stop, she will leave the needle sticking in the pink, the rose, or the pansy which she is
embroidering, so as to have it more ready when she returns to her work. In like manner,
Theotimus, while the Divine Providence is about the embroidery of virtues and the work
of divine love in our souls, there is always a mercenary or servile fear left in them, till charity,
being come to perfection, takes out this pricking needle and puts it back, as it were, in its
cushion. In this life, therefore, wherein our charity will never come to such perfection that
it shall be exempt from peril, fear is always necessary, and even while we thrill with joy by
love, we must tremble with apprehension by fear. Serve ye the Lord with fear, and rejoice
unto him with trembling.548
Our great father Abraham sent his servant Eliezer to choose a wife for his only son Isaac:
Eliezer went, and by Divine inspiration made choice of the fair and chaste Rebecca, whom
he took back with him. But this wise maiden quitted Eliezer as soon as she met Isaac; and
being introduced into the tent of Sara, she remained his spouse for ever. God often sends
servile fear as another Eliezer (and Eliezer is interpreted, help of God) to arrange the marriage
between the soul and sacred love. But though the soul comes under the conduct of fear, she
does not mean to espouse it; for, in fact, as soon as the soul meets with love, she unites herself
unto it, and quits fear.
Yet as Eliezer after his return remained in the house, in the service of Isaac and Rebecca,
so fear, having led us to holy love, remains still with us, to serve both love and the loving
soul as occasion requires. For though the soul be just, yet is she oft set upon by extreme
temptations, and love, all courageous as it is, has enough to do to sustain the assault, by
reason of the disadvantage of the place wherein it is, which is the heart of man, changeable
and subject to the mutiny of the passions. In that case, therefore, Theotimus, love employs
fear in the fight, making use of it to repulse the enemy. The brave prince Jonathan, when
515
going to attack the Philistines amidst the obscurity of the night, would have his armour-
bearer with him, and those that he killed not, his armour-bearer killed549 So love wishing
to carry out some bold enterprise, uses not only its own motives, but also the motives of
servile and mercenary fear; and the temptations which love does not strike down are over-
thrown by the fear of being damned. If a temptation to pride, avarice, or some voluptuous
pleasure attack me:—Ah! I will say, shall it be possible, that for things so vain, my soul would
quit the grace of her well-beloved? But if this will not serve, love will call fear to its aid:—Ah!
548 Ps. i. 11.
549 1 Kings xiv. 1.
483

50.7 Page 497

▲back to top


Chapter XVII. How Servile Fear Remains Together with Holy Love.
dost thou not see, miserable heart, that if thou give way to this temptation the horrible flames
of hell await thee, and that thou losest the eternal inheritance of heaven? A man makes use
of anything in extreme necessities, as the same Jonathan did, when passing the sharp rocks,
which were between him and the Philistines, he not only used his feet, but went scrambling
and creeping on hands and feet as best he could.
Even therefore as mariners who sail out with a fair wind and in fair weather, do yet
never forget the cables, anchors, and the other things required in time of hazard and tempest,
in like manner the servant of God, though he enjoy the sweet repose of holy love, must
never be unprovided with the fear of God's judgments, to help himself therewith amidst the
storms and assaults of temptation. Or, again, as the skin of an apple, which in itself is of
small esteem, is yet very useful for preserving the apple which it covers; so servile fear, which
of its own nature is of little worth in comparison with love, is yet very serviceable for pre-
serving it during the dangers of this mortal life. And as he who gives a pomegranate gives
it indeed for the seeds and juice which are contained in its but yet gives also the skin as a
necessary accompaniment of it; so, although the Holy Ghost amongst his sacred gifts bestows
a loving fear upon the souls which are his, that they may fear God in piety as their father
and their spouse, yet does he not fail to add mercenary and servile fear, as an accessary to
516
the other which is more excellent. So Joseph sending to his father many loads of all the riches
of Egypt, gave him not only the treasures, but withal the asses that bore them.
Now although mercenary and servile fear is very necessary for this mortal life, yet is it
unworthy to have any part in the immortal, where there will be an assurance void of fear, a
peace without apprehension, a repose free from anxiety. Yet the services which this servile
and mercenary fear shall have done to love will be there rewarded; so that though these
fears, as another Moses and another Aaron, enter not into the land of promise, yet shall
their posterity and works enter: and as to the fear of children and the fear of spouses, they
will hold their rank and place, not to cause any distrust or trouble in the soul, but to make
her admire and reverence with submission the incomprehensible Majesty of this omnipotent
Father, and this Spouse of Glory. The law of the Lord is unspotted, converting souls. . . . The
fear of the Lord is holy, enduring for ever and ever.550
550 Ps. xviii. 8, 10.
484

50.8 Page 498

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. How Love Makes Use of Natural, Servile and Mercenary Fea…
CHAPTER XVIII.
HOW LOVE MAKES USE OF NATURAL, SERVILE AND MERCENARY FEAR.
Lightning, thunder, thunderbolts, tempests, inundations, earthquakes, and other such un-
foreseen accidents, excite even the most indevout persons to fear God, and nature, which
goes before reasoning in those occurrences, drives the heart, the eyes, yea the very hands
heavenwards to invoke the assistance of the most holy Divinity, according to the common
sentiment of mankind, which is, says Titus Livius, that such as serve the Almighty prosper,
and such as contemn him are afflicted. In the storm which imperilled Jonas, the mariners
feared with a great fear, and immediately each of them turned to his god. They were ignorant,
says S. Jerome, of the truth, yet they knew there was a Providence, and believed it was by 517
the judgment of heaven that they were in this danger; as those of Malta, when they saw S.
Paul, after the shipwreck, attacked by the viper, believed that it was from the divine ven-
geance.551 And indeed thunder and lightning, tempests, thunderbolts, are called by the
Psalmist, Voices of the Lord; and he says further, that they fulfil his word,552 because they
proclaim his fear, and are as ministers of his justice. And again, desiring that the divine
Majesty should make his enemies tremble, he says: Send forth lightning and thou shalt scatter
them: shoot out thy arrows, and thou shalt trouble them:553 where he terms thunderbolts
the arrows and darts of God. And before the Psalmist, Samuel's good mother had already
sung, that even God's enemies would fear him, if he would thunder over them from heav-
en.554 Indeed Plato, in his Gorgias and elsewhere, testifies that there was some sense of fear
among the pagans, not only concerning the chastisements which the sovereign justice of
God inflicts in this world, but also concerning the punishments which he inflicts in the
other life upon the souls of those who have incurable sins. So deeply is the instinct of fearing
the Divinity graven in man's nature.
This fear, however, when felt after the manner of a first movement, or natural feeling,
is neither to be praised nor blamed in us, since it proceeds not from our free-will. Yet it is
an effect from a very good cause, and a cause of a very good effect; for it comes from the
natural knowledge which God has given us of his Providence, and gives us to understand
how closely we depend on the sovereign omnipotence, moving us to implore his aid; and
when this feeling is found in a faithful soul, it much advances her in goodness. Christians
551 Acts xxviii. 4.
552 Ps. cxlviii. 8.
553 Ps. cxliii.
554 1 Kings ii. 10.
485

50.9 Page 499

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. How Love Makes Use of Natural, Servile and Mercenary Fea…
(amidst the dread which thunder, tempests, and other natural dangers cause in them) invoke
the sacred names of Jesus and of Mary, make the sign of the Cross, prostrate themselves
before God, and make many good acts of faith, hope and religion. The glorious saint Thomas
Aquinas, being naturally subject to terror when it thundered, was accustomed to say, as an
518
ejaculatory prayer, the divine words which the church so much esteems: The Word was
made flesh. Upon this fear, then, divine love frequently makes acts of complacency and be-
nevolence: I will praise thee, for thou art fearfully magnfied.555 Let every one fear thee, O
Lord! O ye kings understand: receive instruction, you that judge the earth. Serve ye the Lord
with fear: and rejoice unto him with trembling.556
But there is another fear, taking its origin from faith, which teaches us that after this
mortal life there are punishments fear fully eternal, or eternally to be feared, prepared for
such as in this world have offended the Divine Majesty and die without being reconciled to
him; that at the hour of death the soul shall be judged by a particular judgment; and that at
the end of the world all shall rise and appear together to be judged again in the universal
judgment. For these Christian truths, Theotimus, strike with an extreme dread the heart
that deeply ponders them. And indeed how could one represent unto himself those eternal
horrors without shuddering and trembling with apprehension? Now when these sentiments
of fear take such root in our souls that they drive and banish thence the affection and will
to sin, as the sacred Council of Trent speaks, they are certainly very wholesome. We have
conceived of thy fear, O Lord, and have brought forth the spirit of salvation, is said in Isaias.557
That is, thy wrathful face terrified us, and made us conceive and bring forth the spirit of
penance, which is the spirit of salvation; so did the Psalmist say: There is no peace for my
bones, because of my sins, yea, they tremble, because of thy wrath.558
Our Saviour, who came to establish the law of love amongst us, ceases not to inculcate
this fear: Fear him, he says, that can destroy both soul and body into hell.559 The Ninivites
did penance upon the threat of their destruction and damnation, and their repentance was
agreeable to God; and, in a word, this fear is comprised amongst the gifts of the Holy Ghost,
as many ancient Fathers have noted.
519
But if fear does not exclude the will of sinning and affection for sin, it is certainly evil,
and like to that of the devils, who often cease to do harm for fear of being tormented by
exorcisms, without ceasing to desire and will evil, which is their meditation for ever; or it
is like to that of the miserable galley-slave, who would like to tear out his overseer's heart,
555 Ps. cxxxviii. 14.
556 Ps. ii. 10, 11.
557 xxvi. 18, according to the Hebrew [Tr.]
558 Ps. xxxvii. 4
559 Matt. x. 28.
486

50.10 Page 500

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. How Love Makes Use of Natural, Servile and Mercenary Fea…
though he dares not stir from the oar for fear of being lashed; or like to the fear of that great
heresiarch of the last century,560 who confessed that he hated a God who punished the
wicked. Truly he who loves sin, and would willingly commit it, in spite of the will of God,
though he will not commit it simply because he fears to be damned, has a horrible and de-
testable fear: for though he has not the will to execute the sin, yet he has the execution of it
in his will, since he would do it if fear held him not back, and since it is as it were by force
that he does not put his will into effect.
To this fear we may add another, less malicious indeed yet equally useless: such as that
of the judge Felix, who, hearing God's judgments spoken of, was terrified;561 yet he did not
for all that give up his avarice; and that of Baltassar, who, seeing that miraculous hand which
wrote his condemnation upon the wall, was so struck with dread that his countenance
changed, and his thoughts troubled him: and the joints of his loins were loosed, and his knees
struck one against the other:562 and yet he did not do penance. Now to what purpose do we
fear evil, if our fear does not make us resolve to avoid it?
The fear, then, of those who as slaves observe the law of God to avoid hell, is very good;
but much more noble and desirable is the fear of mercenary Christians, who, as hirelings,
faithfully labour, yet not principally for any love they bear their masters but to be paid the
wages promised them. O! if the eye could see, if the ear could hear, or if it could enter into
the heart of man what God hath prepared for those that serve him—Ah! what a dread would
one have of violating God's commandments, for fear of losing those immortal rewards! what
520
tears would be shed, what groans would be uttered, when they were lost by sin! Yet this fear
would be blameworthy if it contained in it the exclusion of holy love; for he who should say:
I will not serve God for any love I intend to have for him, but only to obtain the rewards he
promises,—would commit blasphemy, preferring the reward to the master, the benefit to
the benefactor, the inheritance to the father, and his own profit to God Almighty, as we
have more amply shown in the second Book.
But, finally, when we are afraid of offending God not to avoid the pains of hell or the
loss of heaven, but only because God being our good Father we owe him honour, respect,
obedience, then our fear is filial, because a good child does not obey his father on account
of the power he has to punish his disobedience, or because he might disinherit him, but
purely because he is his father; in such sort that though his father might be old, powerless,
and poor, he would not serve him with less diligence, but rather, like the bird of filial piety,
would assist him with the more care and affection. So Joseph seeing that good man Jacob
his father, old, in want, and brought under his son's government, ceased not to honour,
560 Luther [Tr.]
561 Acts xxiv. 25.
562 Dan. v. 6.
487

51 Pages 501-510

▲back to top


51.1 Page 501

▲back to top


Chapter XVIII. How Love Makes Use of Natural, Servile and Mercenary Fea…
serve and reverence him with a tenderness more than filial, and which was so great that his
brothers having observed it, considered that it would even operate after the father's death,
and therefore worked on it to obtain pardon from him, saying: Your father commanded us
before he died, that we should say thus much to thee from him: I beseech thee to forget the
wickedness of thy brethren, and the sin and malice they practised against thee: we also pray
thee, to forgive the servants of the God of thy father this wickedness. And when Joseph heard
this, he wept,563 so readily did his filial heart melt when his deceased father's wishes and will
were represented to him. Those, therefore, fear God with a filial affection who fear to displease
him purely and simply because he is their most sweet, most benign and most amiable
Father.
At the same time, when it happens that this filial fear is joined, mingled and tempered
521
with the servile fear of eternal damnation, or with the mercenary fear of losing heaven, it
ceases not to be agreeable to God, and is called a beginning fear, that is a fear of such as are
beginners and learners in the exercises of divine love. For as young boys when they first
begin to ride, feeling their horse curvet a little, not only cleave close to him with their knees,
but also catch hard hold of the saddle with their hands, but after they have had a little more
practice simply press their saddles close;—even so, novices and apprentices in God's service,
finding themselves in desperate straits amid the assaults which the enemy delivers at the
beginning, not only make use of filial but also of mercenary and servile fear, and hold
themselves on as they can, that they may not fall from their design.
563 Gen. l. 17.
488

51.2 Page 502

▲back to top


Chapter XIX. How Sacred Love Contains the Twelve Fruits of the Holy Ghost,…
CHAPTER XIX.
HOW SACRED LOVE CONTAINS THE TWELVE FRUITS OF THE HOLY GHOST,
TOGETHER WITH THE EIGHT BEATITUDES OF THE GOSPEL.
The glorious S. Paul speaks thus: Now the fruit of the Spirit is charity, joy, peace, patience,
benignity, goodness, longanimity, mildness, faith, modesty, continency, chastity.564 But mark,
Theotimus, how this holy Apostle, counting these twelve fruits of the Holy Ghost, reckons
them as only one fruit; for he does not say the fruits of the spirit are charity, joy, but the fruit
of the spirit is charity, joy. Now the mystery of this manner of speech is this. The charity of
God is poured forth in our hearts, by the Holy Ghost who is given to us.565 charity is truly the
only fruit of the Holy Ghost, but because this one fruit has an infinity of excellent properties,
the Apostle, who wishes to mention some of them by way of example, speaks of this one
fruit as of many, because of the multitude of properties which it contains in its unity, and
conversely speaks of all these fruits as of one only, by reason of the unity in which is com- 522
prised this variety. So he who should say that the fruit of the vine is grapes, must, wine,
brandy, the drink that rejoices the heart of man, the beverage that comforts the stom-
ach:—would not mean that they were fruits of different species, but only that, although it
was only one fruit, yet it had many different properties, according as it was differently used.
The Apostle, then, simply means to say that the fruit of the Holy Ghost is charity; which
is joyous, peaceable, patient, benign, good, long-suffering, mild, faithful, modest, continent,
chaste; that is to say, that divine love gives us an inward joy and consolation together with
great peace of heart, which in adversity is preserved by patience, and which makes us benign
and gracious in succouring our neighbour by a cordial goodness towards him; a goodness
which is not variable, but constant and persevering, and which gives us a noble, long-suffering
heart, by means of which we become mild, affable and condescending to all, we support
their humours and imperfections, we keep perfectly faithful towards them, testifying a
simplicity accompanied with confidence as well in our words as in our actions, we live
modestly and humbly, cutting off all superfluities and irregularities in meat, drink, apparel,
bed, games, pastimes and other such desires and pleasures, by a holy continency, repressing,
especially, the inclinations and rebellions of the flesh by a vigilant chastity; so that our whole
man may come to be engaged in holy loving, as well interiorly by joy, peace, patience,
longanimity, goodness and fidelity, as exteriorly by benignity, mildness, modesty, continency
and chastity.
Now charity is called a fruit inasmuch as it delights us, and inasmuch as we enjoy its
delicious sweetness, the sweetness of a true apple of paradise, gathered from the tree of life,
564 Gal. v. 22.
565 Rom. v. 5.
489

51.3 Page 503

▲back to top


Chapter XIX. How Sacred Love Contains the Twelve Fruits of the Holy Ghost,…
which is the Holy Spirit, grafted on our human spirits and dwelling in us by his infinite
mercy. But when we not only rejoice in this heavenly love and enjoy its delicious sweetness,
but also place all our glory therein as in the crown of our honour, then it is not only a fruit,
delightful to our palate, but it is also a most desirable beatitude and felicity, not only because
523
it assures to us the felicity of the next life, but also because even in this life it enriches us
with a contentment of inestimable value, a contentment which is so strong that all the waters
of tribulation and the floods of persecution cannot extinguish it. Yea, it is not only not ex-
tinguished, but it waxes rich amidst poverty, it is glorified by abjections and humiliations,
it rejoices in tears, it gains strength by being forsaken of justice and deprived of the help
thereof when it implores and no one will grant; compassion and commiseration recreate it,
when it is surrounded by the miserable and suffering; it delights in renouncing all sorts of
sensual and earthly delights to obtain purity and cleanness of heart; it places its valour in
stilling wars, jarrings and dissensions, and in spurning temporal grandeurs and reputations;
it grows strong by enduring all sorts of sufferings, and holds that its true life consists in dying
for the well-beloved.
So that in a word, Theotimus, most holy charity is a virtue, a gift, a fruit and a beatitude.
As being a virtue, it makes us obedient to the exterior inspirations which God gives us by
his commandments and counsels, in the execution of which we practise all virtues; whence
love is the virtue of all virtues. As being a gift, charity makes us docile and tractable to interior
inspirations, which are, as it were, God's secret commandments and counsels, in the execution
of which the seven gifts of the Holy Ghost are employed, so that charity is the gift of gifts.
As being a fruit, it gives us an extreme relish and pleasure in the practice of the devout life,
which is felt in the twelve fruits of the Holy Ghost, and therefore it is the fruit of fruits. As
being a beatitude, it makes us repute the affronts, calumnies, revilings and insults which the
world heaps upon us as the greatest of favours and a singular honour; and withal makes us
forsake, renounce and reject all other glory save that which comes from the well-beloved
Crucified, for which glory we glory in the abjection, abnegation and annihilation of ourselves,
desiring no other marks of majesty than the thorn-crown of the Crucified, the sceptre of
His reed, the robe of scorn which was put upon Him, and the throne of His cross, upon
which sacred lovers have more content, joy, glory and felicity than ever Solomon had on
524
his throne of ivory.
Thus love is oftentimes represented by the pomegranate, which, as it takes its properties
from the pomegranate-tree, may be said to be the virtue of this tree; so again it seems to be
its gift, which it offers to man by love; and it is its fruit, since it is eaten to please man's taste;
and finally it is, so to speak, its glory and beatitude, since it bears the crown and diadem.
490

51.4 Page 504

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How Divine Love Makes Use of All the Passions and Affections…
CHAPTER XX.
HOW DIVINE LOVE MAKES USE OF ALL THE PASSIONS AND AFFECTIONS OF
THE SOUL, AND REDUCES THEM TO ITS OBEDIENCE.
Love is the life of our heart, and as the weights give movement to all the movable parts of a
clock, so love gives to the soul all the movements it has. All our affections follow our love,
and according to it we desire, we rejoice, we hope, we despair, we fear, we take heart, we
hate, we avoid things, we grieve, we get angry, we triumph. Do not we see that men who
have given up their heart as a prey to the base and abject love of women have no desires but
according to this love, take no pleasure but in it, neither hope nor despair but on this account,
neither dread nor undertake anything but for it, are neither disgusted nor fly from anything
save what diverts them from it, are only troubled at what deprives them of it, are never angry
but from jealousy, never glory but in this infamy. The like may be said of those who love
riches or are ambitious of honours; for they become slaves to that which they love, and have
neither heart in their breasts, nor soul in their hearts, nor affections in their souls, save only
for that.
When therefore divine love reigns in our hearts, it royally brings to its empire all the
other loves of the will, and consequently all its affections, because they naturally follow love;
525
this done, it tames sensual love, and bringing it to obedience, brings also after it all the sen-
sual passions. For, in a word, this sacred love is the sovereign water, of which our Saviour
said: He that shall drink of the water that I will give him, shall not thirst for ever.566 No truly,
Theotimus, he that has love in any abundance, he shall neither have desire, fear, hope,
courage, nor joy but for God, and all his movements shall be at rest in this one celestial love.
Divine love and self-love are in our hearts as Jacob and Esau in the womb of Rebecca:
they have a very great antipathy and opposition to one another, and continually struggle in
the heart; whence the poor soul cries out: Alas! wretched that I am, who will deliver me from
the body of this death, that the sole love of my God may peaceably reign in me? However,
we must take courage, putting our trust in our Saviour's word, who, commanding us to
fight, by his command promises victory to his love; and he seems to say to the soul that
which he caused to be said to Rebecca: Two nations are in thy womb, and two people shall
be divided out of thy womb, and one people shall overcome the other, and the elder shall serve
the younger.567 For as Rebecca had only two children in her womb, but because two peoples
were to descend from these was said to have two nations in her womb, so the soul having
two loves in her heart, has consequently two great troops of motions, affections and passions;
and as the two children of Rebecca by the contrariety of their movements made her suffer
great convulsions and pains, so the two loves of our soul cause great travails to our heart.
566 John iv. 13.
567 Gen. xxv. 23.
491

51.5 Page 505

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How Divine Love Makes Use of All the Passions and Affections…
And as it was said of her two children that the elder should serve the younger, so has it been
ordained that of these two loves of our heart the sensual shall serve the spiritual, that is, self-
love shall serve the love of God.
But when was it that the elder of those peoples which were in Rebecca's womb served
the younger? Surely it was only when David overcame the Idumeans in war, and Solomon
ruled over them in peace. Oh! when therefore shall it be that sensual love shall serve Divine
love? It shall then be, Theotimus, when armed love, having become zeal, shall by mortification
subject our passions; and far better then, when in heaven above, beatified love shall possess
526
our whole soul in peace.
Now the method by which Divine love is to subject the sensual appetite is like to that
which Jacob used when, for a good presage and beginning of what was afterwards to come
to pass, he at the birth of Esau held him by the foot, as it were to seize Esau's right, supplant
him and keep him down, or, as it were, to keep him tied up after the manner of a bird of
prey, such as Esau was, being a hunter and a terrible man. For so holy love perceiving some
passion or natural affection rising in us, must presently take it by the foot and bring it to its
service. But what is meant by taking by the foot? To bind and reduce it to the service of God.
Do you not see how Moses transformed the serpent into a rod, simply taking it by the tail?
Even so, when we give a good end to our passions they turn into virtues.
But what method are we then to observe in order to bring our affections and passions
into the service of Divine love. The Methodic physicians have always this aphorism in their
mouths,—that contraries are cured by their contraries; the Spagyrists have another famous
sentence opposed to this—that likes are cured by their likes. Howsoever it be, we know that
two things make the light of the stars disappear,—the obscurity of the mists of night, and
the light of the sun which is stronger than theirs; and in like manner we fight against passions,
either by opposing to them contrary passions, or by opposing stronger affections of their
own kind. If some vain hope present itself unto me, my way of resistance may be to oppose
to it this just discouragement: O foolish man! upon what foundation do you build this hope?
Do you not see that this great man in whom you trust is as near to his grave as thyself? Do
you not know the instability, weakness and imbecillity of the spirit of man? Today this heart
from which you expect something is thine, tomorrow another will carry it away for himself:
on what then is this hope grounded? I can also resist this hope by opposing to it a more
solid one. Hope in God, O my soul! for it is he who delivers thy feet out of the snare; no
man ever hoped in him, and was confounded: fix thy designs upon eternal and imperishable
527
things. In like manner one may combat the desire of riches and temporal delights, either by
the contempt they merit or by the desire of immortal ones; and by this means sensual and
earthly love will be destroyed by heavenly love, either as fire is extinguished by water on
account of the contrary qualities of water, or as it is extinguished by fire from heaven, on
account of the stronger and overpowering qualities of this.
492

51.6 Page 506

▲back to top


Chapter XX. How Divine Love Makes Use of All the Passions and Affections…
Our Saviour makes use of both these methods in his spiritual cures. He cures his disciples
of worldly fear by imprinting in their hearts a higher fear: Fear ye not them that kill the body,
and are not able to kill the soul: but rather fear him that can destroy both soul and body into
hell.568 When he would another time cure them of a lower joy, he assigned them a nobler
one: Rejoice not, said he, in this, that spirits are subject unto you: but rejoice in this, that your
names are written in heaven:569 and he himself casts out joy by grief: Woe to you that now
laugh: for you shall mourn and weep.570 Thus does Divine love supplant and bring into
subjection the affections and passions, turning them from the end to which self-love would
sway them, and applying them to its spiritual intentions. And as the rainbow touching the
herb aspalathus deprives it of its own smell and gives it another far more excellent, so sacred
love touching our passions takes from them their earthly end, and bestows a heavenly one
in its place. The appetite for food is made very spiritual if before gratifying it we give it the
motive of love:—Ah! no, Lord! it is not to content this wretched stomach, nor to allay this
appetite that I go to table, but according to thy Providence to sustain this body which thou
hast given me subject to this misery: yes, Lord! because it hath so pleased thee. If I hope for
a friend's assistance can I not say: O Lord, thou hast so appointed our life, that we should
have to take help, comfort and consolation from one another; and because so it pleases thee,
I will use this or that man whose friendship thou hast given me to this end. Is there some
just occasion for fear? It is thy will, O Lord, that I should fear, in order that I may use fit
means to avoid this trouble; I will do so, O Lord, since such is thy good pleasure. If the fear
528
be excessive: Ah! O God, my eternal Father! what is it that thy children, or the chickens
which live under thy wings can fear? so then, I will take the means necessary to avoid the
evil which I fear, but that done,—Lord, I am thine, save thou me, if it be thy pleasure, and
what may befall me I will accept, because such will be thy good pleasure. O holy and sacred
alchemy! O heavenly projection-powder! by which all the metals of our passions, affections
and actions are converted into the most pure gold of heavenly love.
568 Matt. x. 28.
569 Luke x. 20.
570 Luke vi. 25.
493

51.7 Page 507

▲back to top


XXI. That Sadness Is Almost Always Useless, Yea Contrary to the Service…
CHAPTER XXI.
THAT SADNESS IS ALMOST ALWAYS USELESS, YEA CONTRARY TO THE SER-
VICE OF HOLY LOVE.
One cannot graft an oak upon a pear tree, of so contrary a humour are those two trees: nor
can anger or despair be grafted on charity, at least it would be very difficult. As for anger,
we have seen this in the discourse upon zeal; as for despair, unless it be reduced to the legit-
imate distrust of ourselves, or to a sense of the vanity, weakness and inconstancy of worldly
favours, helps and promises, I see not what service Divine love can draw from it.
And as for sadness, how can it be profitable to holy charity, seeing that joy is ranked
amongst the fruits of the Holy Ghost, coming next to charity? Still, the great apostle says:
The sorrow that is according to God worketh penance unto salvation which is lasting: but the
sorrow of the world worketh death.571 There is then a sorrow or sadness according to God,
which is employed either by sinners in penance, or by the good in compassion for the tem-
poral miseries of their neighbours, or by the perfect in deploring, bemoaning and condoling
the spiritual calamities of souls. For David, S. Peter, Magdalen, wept for their sins; Agar
wept when she saw her son almost dead of thirst; Jeremias over the ruin of Jerusalem; Our
529
Saviour over the Jews; and his great Apostle sighing says these words: Many walk of whom
I have told you often (and now tell you weeping) that they are enemies of the cross of Christ.572
There is then also a sadness of this world, which likewise proceeds from three causes.
For—1°. It comes sometimes from the infernal enemy, who by a thousand sad, melancholy
and disturbing suggestions obscures the understanding, weakens the will, and troubles the
whole soul: and as a thick mist fills the head and breast with rheum, and by this means
makes respiration difficult, and greatly incommodes the traveller; so the evil spirit, filling
man's mind with sad thoughts, deprives it of facility in aspiring to God, and possesses it
with an extreme tedium and discouragement, in order to bring it to despair and perdition.
They say there is a fish called the sea-toad, surnamed the sea-devil, which stirring and
spreading the mud troubles the water round about it so as to hide itself therein as in an
ambush, from whence, as soon as it perceives poor little fishes, it darts upon them, kills and
devours them: whence perhaps has come the common expression—fishing in troubled waters.
Now it is the same with the devil of hell as with the devil of the sea; for he makes his ambush
in sadness, and then, having troubled the soul with a multitude of sad thoughts cast hither
and thither in the understanding, he makes a charge upon the affections, bearing them down
with distrust, jealousies, aversions, envies, superfluous apprehensions of past sins, adding
withal a number of vain, sour and melancholy subtleties of the imagination, that all reasons
and consolations may be rejected.
571 2 Cor. vii. 10.
572 Phil. iii. 18.
494

51.8 Page 508

▲back to top


XXI. That Sadness Is Almost Always Useless, Yea Contrary to the Service…
2°. Sadness sometimes also proceeds from one's natural disposition, when the melancholy
humour predominates in us: and this is not vicious in itself, yet our enemy makes great use
of it to weave and prepare a thousand temptations in our souls. For as spiders scarcely ever
spin their webs save when the weather is dull and the sky cloudy; so this malign spirit never
finds as much facility in spreading the nets of his suggestions in sweet, kindly and bright
souls, as he has with the gloomy, sad and melancholy; for these he easily disturbs with vex-
530
ations, suspicions, hatreds, murmurings, censures, envies, sloth and spiritual numbness.
3°. Lastly, there is a sadness which the various accidents of life bring upon us. What
manner of joy shall be to me, said Tobias, who sit in darkness, and see not the light of heaven573
Thus was Jacob sad on the news of the death of his Joseph, and David for that of his Absalom.
Now this sadness is common to the good and the bad; but to the good it is moderated by
acquiescence in and resignation to the will of God: as we see in Tobias, who gave thanks to
the Divine Majesty for all the adversities which came upon him, and in Job, who blessed
the name of the Lord for them, and in Daniel, who turned his griefs into songs of joy. As to
worldlings, on the contrary, this sadness is an ordinary thing with them, and spreads out
into regrets, despair, and deadness of soul: for they are like apes and monkeys, which are
always sullen, sad and peevish at the waning of the moon, as, on the contrary, at the new
moon, they leap, dance and play their apish tricks. The worldling is out of temper, uncivil,
bitter and gloomy when temporal prosperity fails him; and in abundance he is almost always
boastful, foolishly elated and insolent.
Indeed the sadness of true penitence is not so much to be named sadness as displeasure,
or the sense and detestation of evil; a sadness which is never troubled nor vexed; a sadness
which does not dull the spirit, but makes it active, ready and diligent; a sadness which does
not weigh the heart down, but raises it by prayer and hope, and causes in it the movements
of the fervour of devotion; a sadness which in the heaviest of its bitternesses ever produces
the sweetness of an incomparable consolation, according to the precept of the great S. Au-
gustine: "Let the penitent sorrow always, yet always rejoice for his sorrow." "The sadness,"
says Cassian, "which works solid penitence, and that desirable repentance of which one
never repents, is obedient, affable, humble, mild, sweet, patient,—as being a child and scion
of charity: so that spreading over every pain of body and contrition of spirit, and being in
531
a certain way joyous, courageous, and strengthened by the hope of doing better, it retains
all the sweetness of gentleness and longanimity, having in itself the Fruits of the Holy Spirit,
which the holy Apostle recounts: Now the Fruits of the Spirit are charity, joy, peace, longan-
imity, goodness, benignity, faith, mildness, continency." Such is true penitence, and such is
right sadness, which in good sooth is not really sad or melancholy, but only attentive and
earnest to detest, reject and hinder the evil of sin for past and for future. And indeed we
573 Tob. v. 12.
495

51.9 Page 509

▲back to top


XXI. That Sadness Is Almost Always Useless, Yea Contrary to the Service…
often see repentances which are very eager, troubled, impatient, wet-eyed, bitter, given to
groans, very crabbed and melancholy, which at last turn out fruitless and lack all true
amendment, because they do not proceed from the true motives of the virtue of penitence,
but from selfish and natural love.
The sorrow of the world worketh death,574 says the Apostle; we must, therefore, Theo-
timus, carefully avoid and banish it as much as we can. If it be from nature, we must repulse
it by contradicting its movements, turning it aside by the practices suitable to that purpose,
and using the remedies and way of life which physicians themselves may judge best. If it
come from temptation, we must clearly open our mind to our spiritual father, who, will
prescribe for us the method of overcoming it, according as we have said in Part IV. of the
Introduction to the Devout Life. If it arise from circumstances, we will have recourse to the
teaching of Book VIII., in order to see how grateful tribulations are to the children of God,
and how the greatness of our hopes for eternal life ought to make all the passing events of
the temporal almost unworthy of thinking about.
At last, in all the sadness which may come upon us, we must employ the authority of
the superior will to do all that should be done in favour of divine love. There are indeed
actions which so depend upon the corporal disposition and constitution that we have not
the power to do them just as we please: for the melancholy-disposed cannot keep their eyes,
or their words, or their faces, in the same good grace and sweetness as they would do if they
were relieved from this bad humour; but they are quite able, though without this good grace,
532
to say gracious, kind, and civil words, and, in spite of inclination, to do what reason requires
as to words and works of charity, gentleness and condescension. We may be excused for
not being always bright, for one is not master of cheerfulness to have it when one will; but
we are not excusable for not being always gracious, yielding and considerate; for this is always
in the power of our will, and we have only to determine to keep down the contrary humour
and inclination.
574 2 Cor. vii. 10.
496

51.10 Page 510

▲back to top


Book XII. Containing Certain Counsels for the Progress of the Soul in Holy…
BOOK XII.
CONTAINING CERTAIN COUNSELS FOR THE PROGRESS OF
THE SOUL IN HOLY LOVE.
533
497

52 Pages 511-520

▲back to top


52.1 Page 511

▲back to top


Chapter I. That Our Progress in Holy Love Does Not Depend on Our Natural…
CHAPTER I.
THAT OUR PROGRESS IN HOLY LOVE DOES NOT DEPEND ON OUR NATURAL
TEMPERAMENT.
A great religious of our age has written that our natural temperament much conduces to
contemplative love, and that such as are of an affectionate and loving nature are best adapted
for it. Now I suppose he means not that sacred love is distributed to men or angels according
to, or much less in virtue of, natural conditions; nor would he say that the distribution of
divine love is made to men according to their natural qualities and abilities: for this were to
belie the Scripture, and to violate the ecclesiastical canon, by which the Pelagians were de-
clared heretics.
For my part, I speak in this treatise of the supernatural love which God out of his
goodness pours into our hearts, and whose residence is in the supreme point of the spirit;
a point which is above all the rest of the soul, and independent of all natural disposition.
And withal, though souls inclined to love have on the one hand a certain propensity which
makes them more ready to desire to love God, they are, on the other hand, so subject to set
their affections upon lovable creatures, that their propensity puts them in as great danger
of being diverted from the purity of sacred love by a mixture of other loves, as they have
facility in wishing to love God; for the danger of loving amiss is attached to the facility of
loving.
It is true that souls of this kind, being once well purified from the love of creatures, work
534
wonders in holy loving, as love finds a great facility in diffusing itself throughout all the
faculties of the heart: and thence proceeds a most delightful sweetness, which appears not
in those whose souls are peevish, harsh, melancholy and churlish.
Nevertheless, if two persons, the one of whom is loving and sweet by nature, the other
harsh and sour, have an equal charity, they will love God equally, but not alike. The heart
naturally sweet will love more easily, more amiably, more sweetly, though not more solidly
nor more perfectly; yea, the love which shall spring amongst the thorns and repugnances
of a harsh and dry nature shall be the more noble and glorious, as the other shall be more
delightsome and lovely.
It imports not much then, whether one have a natural inclination to love, when it is a
question of a love which is supernatural and exercised supernaturally. Only this, Theotimus,
I would gladly cry out to all men: O mortals, if you have hearts disposed for love, why do
you not devote yourselves to celestial and divine love? But if you be hard and sour-
tempered—since you are wanting in natural love, why do you not aspire to supernatural
love, which shall be lovingly bestowed upon you by him who calls you to his so holy love?
498

52.2 Page 512

▲back to top


Chapter II. That We Are to Have a Continual Desire to Love.
CHAPTER II.
THAT WE ARE TO HAVE A CONTINUAL DESIRE TO LOVE.
Lay up treasures in heaven.575 One treasure is not enough for the pleasure of this divine,
lover, but he desires that we should have so much treasure that our treasure may be composed
of many treasures; that is to say, Theotimus, that we are to have an insatiable desire of loving
God, adding continually love upon love. What is it that so strongly urges the bees to increase
their honey but the love they bear to it? O heart of my soul, created to love the infinite good,
what love canst thou desire but this love, which is the most to be desired of all loves! Ah! O
soul of my heart, what desire canst thou love but the most lovely of all desires! O love of
sacred desires! O desires of sacred love! Oh! how have I coveted to long for thy perfections.576
The disgusted sick man has no appetite for eating, yet has he an appetite to have an ap-
petite; he desires no meat, but he desires to desire it. Theotimus, to know whether we love
God above all things is not in our power, unless God himself reveal it unto us: yet we may
easily know whether we desire to love him; and perceiving the desire of holy love in us, we
know that we begin to love. It is our sensual and animal part which covets to eat, but it is
our reasonable part which desires this appetite; and because the sensual part does not always
obey the reasonable part, it frequently happens that we desire appetite and cannot have it.
But the desire of loving and love depend upon the same will: wherefore as soon as we have
framed the true desire of loving, we begin to have some love; and ever as this desire grows,
love also increases. He who desires love ardently shall shortly love with ardour. Ah! who
will give us the grace, Theotimus, that we may burn with this desire, which is the desire of
the poor, and the preparation of their heart, which God willingly hears.577 He who has no
assurance of loving God is a poor man, and if he desire to love him he is a beggar, but a
beggar with the blessed beggary of which Our Saviour has said: Blessed are the beggars of
spirit; for theirs is the kingdom of heaven.578
Such a one was S. Augustine, when he cried out: "O to love! O to run! O to die to self!
O to get to God!" Such S. Francis, saying: "Let me die of thy love, O thou friend of my heart,
who hast deigned to die for my love." Such S. Catharine of Genoa, and the Blessed Mother
(S.) Teresa when, panting as the hart pants, and dying with the thirst of divine love, they
sighed out this word: Ah Lord! give me this water.579
Temporal covetousness, by which we greedily desire earthly treasures, is the root of all
evil; but spiritual avarice, whereby one sighs incessantly after the pure gold of Divine love,
535
536
575 Matt. vi. 20.
576 Ps. cxviii. 20.
577 Ps. ix. 38.
578 Matt. v. 3. From the Greek [Tr.]
579 John iv. 15.
499

52.3 Page 513

▲back to top


Chapter II. That We Are to Have a Continual Desire to Love.
is the root of all good. He who truly desires love seeks it truly; and he who truly seeks it,
truly finds it; and he who has truly found it has found the fountain of life, whence he shall
draw salvation from the Lord.580 Let us cry, night and day, Theotimus: Come, O Holy
Spirit! fill the hearts of thy faithful, and kindle in them the fire of thy love. O heavenly love,
when wilt thou fill my soul?
580 Prov. viii. 35.
500

52.4 Page 514

▲back to top


Chapter III. That to Have the Desire of Sacred Love We Are to Cut Off All…
CHAPTER III.
THAT TO HAVE THE DESIRE OF SACRED LOVE WE ARE TO CUT OFF ALL
OTHER DESIRES.
Why do hounds, think you, Theotimus, more ordinarily lose the scent or strain of their
quarry in the spring-time than at other times? It is, as hunters and philosophers say, because
the grass and flowers are then in their vigour, so that the variety of smells which they send
out so fills the hounds' sense of smelling that they can neither take nor follow the scent of
their game, among so many scents which the earth exhales. In sooth those souls that ever
abound in desires, designs and projects, never desire holy celestial love as they ought, nor
can perceive the delightful strain and scent of the divine beloved, who is compared to the
roe, and to the little fawn of the doe.581
Lilies have no season, but flower soon or late, as they are deeper or less deep set in the
ground: for if they be thrust three fingers only into the earth they will presently blossom,
but if they be put six or nine, they come up proportionately later. If the heart that aims after
Divine love be deeply engaged in terrene and temporal affairs, it will bud late and with dif-
ficulty; but if it have only so much to do with the world as its condition requires, you shall
see it bloom timely in love, and send out a delicious odour.
537
For this cause the Saints betook themselves to deserts, that being freed from worldly
cares they might more ardently apply to heavenly love. For this the spouse shut one of her
eyes,582 to the end that she might keep the sight of the other alone more fixedly, and thereby
take better aim at the very midst of her beloved's heart, which she desires to wound with
love. And for this same reason she keeps her hair so plaited and gathered up in a tress that
she seems to have one only hair which she makes use of as a chain, to bind and bear away
her spouse's heart, whom she makes a slave to her love.
They who desire for good and all to love God, shut up their understanding from dis-
coursing of worldly things, to employ it more earnestly in the meditation of divine things,
and gather up all their pretensions under the sole intention which they have of loving only
God. Whosoever desires something which he desires not for God that much less desires
God.
A religious man demanded of the Blessed Giles what he could do most grateful to God;
and he answered him by singing: "One to one, one to one;" that is, one only soul to one only
God. So many desires and loves in a heart are like many children at one breast, who, as they
cannot all suck at once, struggle each one for his turn, so that at last the fount dries up. He
who aspires to heavenly love, must sedulously reserve for it his leisure, his spirit and his af-
fections.
581 Cant. ii. 9.
582 Cant. iv. 9.
501

52.5 Page 515

▲back to top


Chapter III. That to Have the Desire of Sacred Love We Are to Cut Off All…
502

52.6 Page 516

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Our Lawful Occupations Do Not Hinder Us from Practicising…
CHAPTER IV.
THAT OUR LAWFUL OCCUPATIONS DO NOT HINDER US FROM PRACTICISING
DIVINE LOVE.
Curiosity, ambition, disquiet, the not adverting to, or not considering, the end for which
538
we are in this world, are the causes why we have a thousand times more hindrance than
business, more worries than work, more occupation than profit: and these are the embar-
rassments, Theotimus, that is, the silly, vain and superfluous undertakings with which we
charge ourselves, that turn us from the love of God, and not the true and lawful exercises
of our vocations. David, and, after him, S. Louis, in the press of the perils, toils and travails
which they endured, as well in peace as in war, did not cease to sing in truth: What have I
in heaven, and besides thee what do I desire upon earth?583 S. Bernard lost none of the progress
which he desired to make in this holy love, though he were in the courts and armies of great
princes, where he laboured to bring matters of state to the service of God's glory; he changed
his habitation, but he changed not his heart, nor did his heart change its love, nor his love
its object; and, to speak his own language, these changes were made in him but not of him,
since although his employments were very different, yet he was indifferent to all employment,
and different from them all, not receiving the colour of his affairs and conversations, as the
chameleon does that of the places where it is, but remaining ever wholly united to God, ever
white in purity, ever red with charity, and ever full of humility. I am not ignorant, Theotimus,
what the wise man's counsel is:
He ever flies the court and legal strife
Who seeks to sow the seeds of holy life
Rarely do camps effect the soul's increase,
Virtue and faith are daughters unto peace.
And the Israelites had good reason to excuse themselves to the Babylonians, who urged
them to sing the sacred canticles of Sion: How shall we sing the song of the Lord in a strange
land?584 But do you not also mark that those poor people were not only among the Babylo-
nians but were also their captives. Whoever is a slave to courtly favours, the prizes of the
539
law, the honours of war,—Alas! all is over with him, he cannot sing the hymn of heavenly
love. But he who is only at court, in war, at the tribunals, by duty—God helps him, and
heavenly sweetness is as an epithem on his heart, to preserve him from the plague which
reigns in those places.
While the plague afflicted the Milanese, S. Charles never made any difficulty in frequent-
ing the houses and touching the persons that were infected. Yet, Theotimus, he only frequen-
ted and touched them, so far forth as the necessity of God's work required, nor would he
583 Ps. lxxii. 25.
584 Ps. cxxxvi. 4.
503

52.7 Page 517

▲back to top


Chapter IV. That Our Lawful Occupations Do Not Hinder Us from Practicising…
for the world have thrust himself into danger without true necessity, lest he should commit
the sin of tempting God. So that he was never touched with any infection, God's Providence
preserving him who had so pure a confidence in it, that it had no mixture either of fear or
rashness. In like manner God takes care of those who go not to the court, to the bar, to war,
except by the necessity of their duty; and in that case a man is neither to be so scrupulous
as to abandon good and lawful affairs by not going, nor so overweening and presumptuous
as to go thither or stay there without the express necessity of duty and affairs.
504

52.8 Page 518

▲back to top


Chapter V. A Very Sweet Example on This Subject.
CHAPTER V.
A VERY SWEET EXAMPLE ON THIS SUBJECT.
God is innocent to the innocent,585 good to the good, cordial to the cordial, tender towards
the tender, and his love often makes him do acts of a sacred and holy fondness (mignardise)
towards souls who, out of an amorous purity and simplicity, make themselves as little children
with him.
Upon a day S. Frances was reciting Our Lady's Office, and, as it commonly happens
that if there is but one affair in the whole day, it presses most at time of prayer, this holy 540
lady was called away by her husband for some household matter, and four sundry times
thinking to take up again the thread of her Office, she was called from it again, and con-
strained to interrupt the same verse, till this blessed affair, for which they had so impor-
tunately interrupted her prayer, being finished at last, when she returned to her Office she
found the verse, so often left by obedience and so often recommenced by devotion, all
written in fair golden letters, which her devout companion, Madam Vannocia swore she
saw the dear Angel-Guardian of the Saint writing, as S. Paul afterwards revealed to the Saint
herself.
What sweetness, Theotimus, of this heavenly spouse towards this sweet and faithful
lover! But meantime you see that necessary employments, according to each one's vocation,
do not diminish Divine love, but increase it, and gild, as it were, the work of devotion. The
nightingale loves her melody no less when she makes her pauses than when she sings; the
devout heart loves love no less when she turns to exterior necessities than when she prays:
her silence and her speech, her action and her contemplation, her employment and her rest,
equally sing in her the hymn of her love.
585 Ps. xvii. 26.
505

52.9 Page 519

▲back to top


Chapter VI. That We Are to Employ in the Practice of Divine Love All the…
CHAPTER VI.
THAT WE ARE TO EMPLOY IN THE PRACTICE OF DIVINE LOVE ALL THE
OCCASIONS THAT PRESENT THEMSELVES.
There are souls that make great projects to do excellent services for Our Saviour, by eminent
actions and extraordinary sufferings, but actions and sufferings of which there is no oppor-
tunity, and perhaps never will be, and who upon this apprehend they have done a great
matter in love, in which they are very often deceived:—as appears in this, that embracing
in desire, as seems to them, great future crosses, they anxiously avoid the burden of such as
are present, which are less. Is it not an extreme temptation to be so valiant in imagination, 541
and so cowardly in execution?
Ah! God preserve us from those imaginary fervours, which very often breed a vain and
secret self-esteem in the bottom of our hearts. Great works lie not always in our way, but
every moment we may do little ones with excellence, that is, with a great love. Behold that
Saint, I beg you, who bestows a cup of cold water on the thirsty traveller; he does but a small
matter in outward show, but the intention, the sweetness, the love, with which he animates
his work is so excellent, that it turns this simple water into water of life, and of eternal life.
The bees gather honey from the lily, the flag, the rose; yet they get as ample a booty from
the little minute rosemary flowers and thyme; yea they draw not only more honey, but even
better honey from these, for in these little vessels the honey, being more closely locked up,
is kept better. Truly, in the low and little works of devotion, charity is not only practised
more frequently, but ordinarily more humbly too, and consequently more usefully and more
holily.
Those condescensions to the humours of others, that bearing with the clownish and
troublesome actions and ways of our neighbour, those victories over our own humours and
passions, those renouncings of our lesser inclinations, that effort against our aversions and
repugnances, that heartfelt and sweet acknowledgment of our own imperfections, the con-
tinual pains we take to keep our souls in equality, that love of our abjection, that gentle and
gracious welcome we give to the contempt and censure of our condition, of our life, of our
conversation, of our actions:—Theotimus, all these things are more profitable to our souls
than we can conceive, if heavenly love have the management of them. But we have already
said this to Philothea.586
586 Devout Life, iii. 35.
506

52.10 Page 520

▲back to top


Chapter VII. That We Must Take Pains to Do Our Actions Very Perfectly.
CHAPTER VII.
THAT WE MUST TAKE PAINS TO DO OUR ACTIONS VERY PERFECTLY.
Our Saviour, as the ancients report, was wont to say to his disciples: Be good exchangers. If
the crown be not good gold, if it want weight, if it be not struck with the lawful stamp, it is
542
rejected as not current: if a work be not of a good species, if it be not adorned with charity,
if the intention be not pious, it will not be admitted amongst the good works. If I fast, but
out of sparingness, my fast is not of a good metal; if it be out of temperance, but I have some
mortal sin in my soul, the work wants weight, for it is charity that gives weight to all that
we do; if it be only through complaisance, and to accommodate myself to my company, the
work is not marked with the stamp of a right intention: but if I fast out of temperance, and
be in the grace of God, and have an intention to please his Divine majesty by this temperance,
the work shall be current money, fit to augment in me the treasure of charity.
To do little actions with a great purity of intention and with a strong will to please God,
is to do them excellently, and then they greatly sanctify us. Some eat much, and yet are ever
lean, attenuated and languid, because their digestive power is not good; there are others
who eat little, and yet are always in good plight, and vigorous, because their stomach is good.
Even so there are some souls that do many good works, and yet increase but little in charity,
because they do them either coldly and negligently, or by natural instinct and inclination
rather than by Divine inspiration or heavenly fervour; and, on the contrary, others there
are who get through little work, but do it with so holy a will and inclination, that they make
a wonderful advancement in charity; they have little talent, but they husband it so faithfully
that the Lord largely rewards them for it.
507

53 Pages 521-530

▲back to top


53.1 Page 521

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A General Means for Applying Our Works to God's Service.
CHAPTER VIII.
A GENERAL MEANS FOR APPLYING OUR WORKS TO GOD'S SERVICE.
All whatsoever you do in word and in work, do all in the name of Jesus Christ.587 Whether
you eat or drink or whatever you do, do all to the glory of God.588 These are the words of the
543
Divine Apostle; which, as the great S. Thomas says in explaining them, are sufficiently put
in practice when we have the habit of holy charity, whereby, though we have not an express
and set purpose of doing every work for God, that intention is implicitly contained in the
union and communion we have with God, which dedicates all the good we can do, with
ourselves, to his Divine goodness. It is not necessary that a child, while living in the house
and under the authority of his father, should declare that all he gets is got for his father; for
since his person belongs to his father, all that depends on it also belongs to him. So it suffices
that we be God's children by love, to make all that we do entirely directed to his glory.
It is true then, Theotimus, that, as we have said elsewhere, even as the olive-tree set near
unto the vine imparts unto it its savour, so charity being near the other virtues communicates
unto them its perfection. Yet true it is also that if one engraft a vine upon an olive, it not
only more perfectly communicates its taste but also makes it share in its sap; so do you not
content yourself with having charity, and together with it the practice of virtues, but endeav-
our that it may be by and for it that you practise them, that they may be rightly ascribed
unto it.
When a painter holds and guides a pupil's hand, the stroke that is made is principally
attributed to the painter, because, though the pupil indeed contributed the motion of his
hand and application of the brush, yet the master also for his part did so mingle his movement
with the pupil's, giving the touch through him, that to the master is specially attributed the
honour of whatever is good in the stroke, though yet the apprentice is also praised, because
of the pliableness with which he accommodated his movement to the direction of his master.
Oh! how excellent are the actions of the virtues when Divine love impresses its sacred
movement on them, that is, when they are done out of the motive of love! But this happens
544
in different ways.
The motive of Divine love pours forth a particular influence of perfection upon the
virtuous actions of those who have in a special manner dedicated themselves to God to serve
him for ever. Such are bishops and priests, who by a sacramental consecration, and by a
spiritual character that cannot be effaced, vow themselves, as branded and marked serfs, to
the perpetual service of God; such are religious, who by their vows, either solemn or simple,
are immolated to God in quality of living and reasonable sacrifices; such are those who betake
themselves to pious congregations, dedicating themselves for ever to God's glory; further,
587 1 Cor. x. 31.
588 Col. iii. 17.
508

53.2 Page 522

▲back to top


Chapter VIII. A General Means for Applying Our Works to God's Service.
such are all those who of set purpose produce deep and strong resolutions of following the
will of God, making for this end retreats of some days, that they may stir up their souls by
divers spiritual exercises to the entire reformation of their life—a holy method, and ordinary
among the ancient Christians, but since almost entirely left off till that great servant of God,
Ignatius of Loyola, brought it into use again in the time of our fathers.
I know that some are of opinion, that such a general oblation of ourselves does not extend
its virtue and carry its influence into the actions which we practise afterwards except so far
forth as in the exercise of them we apply the motive of love in particular, by dedicating them
in a special manner to the glory of God; yet all confess with S. Bonaventure, quoted by every
one in this matter, that if I have resolved in my heart to give a hundred crowns for God's
sake, though afterwards I make the distribution of this sum at leisure, having my mind dis-
tracted and without attention, yet is all the distribution made through love, because it pro-
ceeds from the first intention which Divine love made me make of giving it all.
But, prithee, Theotimus, what difference is there between him who offers a hundred
crowns to God, and him who offers all his actions? Truly none, save that the one offers a
sum of money, and the other a sum of actions. And why, I pray, shall they not equally be
considered to make the distribution of the parts of their sum in virtue of their first purposes
and fundamental resolutions? And if the one, distributing his crowns without attention,
fails not to have the advantage of that first purpose, why shall not the other, in the distribution
545
of his actions, enjoy the fruit of the first intention? He who has deliberately made himself
a loving servant of his divine goodness has, by that act, dedicated to him all his actions.
Grounding himself upon this truth, every one should once in his life make a good retreat,
therein to cleanse his soul from all sin, and should then make a determined and solid resol-
ution to live wholly to God, as we have taught in the first part of the Introduction to a Devout
Life; and afterwards, at least once every year, he must make the review of his conscience and
the renewal of the first resolution, which we have put down in the fifth part of that work,
to which on this point I refer you.
Indeed S. Bonaventure acknowledges that a man who has got so great an inclination
and custom of well-doing as frequently to do it without any special intention, fails not to
merit much by such actions; which are ennobled by love, because they spring from love as
from the root and original source of this blessed habit, facility and promptitude.
509

53.3 Page 523

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of Certain Other Means by Which We May Apply Our Works More…
CHAPTER IX.
OF CERTAIN OTHER MEANS BY WHICH WE MAY APPLY OUR WORKS MORE
PARTICULARLY TO THE LOVE OF GOD.
When pea-hens hatch in very white places their young ones are also white: and when our
intentions are in the love of God whilst we project some good work, or undertake some
vocation, all the actions that issue thence take their worth and derive their nobility from the
love whence they have their origin; for who does not see that the actions which are proper
to my vocation and requisite to my design depend on this first election and resolution which
I have made?
Yet, Theotimus, one must not stay there; but to make excellent progress in devotion,
we must not only in the beginning of our conversion, and afterwards every year, address all
our life and all our actions to God, but we must also offer them to him every day following
the Morning Exercise which we have taught Philothea; for in this daily renewing of our
oblation, we spread the vigour and virtue of love upon our actions by a fresh uniting of our
heart with the Divine glory, by means whereof it is ever more and more sanctified.
Besides this, let us a hundred and a hundred times a day unite our life to Divine love
by the practice of ejaculatory prayers, elevations of heart and spiritual retirements; for these
holy exercises, casting and lifting our spirits continually into God, bear also up to him all
our actions. And how could it be, I pray you, that a soul who at every moment darts up
unto the Divine goodness, and who incessantly breathes words of love, in order to keep her
heart always lodged in the bosom of her heavenly Father, should not be considered to do
all her works in God and for God?
She who says: "Ah! Lord, I am thine—My beloved is wholly mine, and I, I am all his—My
God, thou art my all—O Jesus thou art my life—Ah! who will do me the favour that I may
die to myself, that I may live only to thee—O to love! to advance! to die to self! O to live to
God! O to be in God! O God, whatsoever is not thy very self is nothing to me!"—she, I say,
does she not continually dedicate her actions to her heavenly spouse? O how blessed is the
soul who has once for all made the offstripping and the perfect resignation of herself in and
into the hands of God, whereof we have spoken above!—for afterwards she will only need
to make one little sigh and one look at God, to renew and confirm her offstripping, resigna-
tion, and oblation, together with the protestation that she wishes nothing but God and for
God, and neither loves herself nor anything in the world save in God and for the love of
God.
The exercise then of continual aspirations is very useful for vivifying all our works with
love; but especially does it most abundantly suffice for the small and ordinary actions of our
life; for as to heroic works and matters of consequence, it is expedient, if we intend to make
any great profit, to use the ensuing method, as I have already in brief declared elsewhere.589
546
547
589 Book viii. 14.
510

53.4 Page 524

▲back to top


Chapter IX. Of Certain Other Means by Which We May Apply Our Works More…
Let us in these occurrences elevate our heart and spirit to God; let us with deep consid-
eration and extended thought ponder on eternity, so holy and so glorious; let us behold how
throughout eternity the Divine goodness tenderly cherished us, preparing all suitable means
for our salvation and progress in his love, and in particular the chance of doing the good
which now presents itself to us, or suffering the evil which has come upon us: this done,
spreading out, if I may so speak, and lifting up, the arms of our consent, let us embrace
dearly, fervently and most amorously, the good that presents itself to be done, or the evil
that must be suffered, in consideration of this that it has been eternally willed by God, to
please him and to obey his Providence.
Behold the great S. Charles, when the plague attacked his diocese. He lifted up his heart
to God, and reflected attentively that in the eternity of Divine Providence, this scourge was
prepared and determined for his flock, and that the same Providence had ordained that in
this their scourge he should take a most tender care to serve, solace and cordially assist the
afflicted, since in this occurrence he found himself the ghostly father, pastor and bishop of
that province. Whereupon, representing to himself the greatness of the pains, toils and
hazards which it would be incumbent on him to undergo in that behalf, he immolated
himself in spirit to God's good-pleasure, and tenderly kissing this his cross, he cried from
the bottom of his heart, in imitation of S. Andrew: "I salute thee, O precious cross, I salute
thee, O blessed tribulation! O holy affliction, how delightful thou art, since thou didst issue
from the loving breast of this Father of eternal mercy, who willed thee from all eternity, and
ordained thee for my dear people and me! O cross, my heart wills thee, since the heart of
my God has willed thee; O cross, my soul cherishes and embraces thee, with its whole affec-
tion!"
In this sort we are to undertake the gravest affairs, and to meet the sharpest tribulations
that can befal us. But if they prove to be of long continuance, we must from time to time,
548
and very frequently, repeat this exercise, that we may more profitably continue our union
with God's good will and pleasure, pronouncing this short yet wholly divine protestation
of his Son; Yea, eternal Father, for so it hath seemed good in thy sight.590 O God, Theotimus,
what treasures are in this practice!
590 Matt. xi. 26.
511

53.5 Page 525

▲back to top


Chapter X. An Exhortation to the Sacrifice Which We Are to Make to God of…
CHAPTER X.
AN EXHORTATION TO THE SACRIFICE WHICH WE ARE TO MAKE TO GOD
OF OUR FREE-WILL.
I Add to the sacrifice of S. Charles that of the great patriarch Abraham, as a lively image of
the most strong and loyal love that could be imagined in any creature.
Certainly he sacrificed all the strongest natural inclinations he could have had, when,
hearing the voice of God saying to him: Go forth out of thy country, and from thy kindred,
and out of thy father's house, and come into the land which I shall show thee,591 he went forth
at once, and with speed put himself upon the way, not knowing whither he went.592 The
dear love of country, the sweetness of the society of his kindred, the pleasures of his father's
house, did not shake his constancy; he departs boldly and with fervour, and goes whither it
shall please God to conduct him. What abnegation, Theotimus, what renunciation! One
cannot perfectly love God unless one forsake affections for perishable things.
But this is nothing in comparison with what he did afterwards, when God, calling him
twice, and seeing his promptitude in answering, said to him: Take thy only-begotten son
Isaac, whom thou lovest, and go into the land of vision: and there thou shalt offer him for a
holocaust upon one of the mountains which I will show thee.593 For behold this great man,
setting out immediately with his so loved and amiable son, goes three days' journey, comes
to the foot of the mountain, leaves there his servant and ass, loads his son Isaac with the
wood necessary for the holocaust, himself carrying the sword and the fire; and as he ascends,
549
this dear child says to him: My father; and he answers: What wilt thou, son. Behold, saith
he, fire and wood, but where is the victim for the holocaust? And Abraham said: God will
provide himself a victim for the holocaust, my son. And meanwhile they arrive at the top of
the appointed mountain, where Abraham now constructs an altar, lays the wood in order
upon it, binds his Isaac, and places him upon the pile; he extends his right hand, lays hold
of and prepares his sword, lifts his arm, and as he is ready to despatch the blow in order to
immolate the child, the angel calls to him from above: Abraham, Abraham. And he answered:
Here I am. And the angel said to him: Lay not thy hand upon the boy. It is enough: Now I
know that thou fearest God, and least not spared thy only-begotten son for my sake. Upon
this Isaac is untied, Abraham takes a ram which he finds hanging by the horns in the
brambles, and sacrifices it.
Theotimus, he who looketh on his neighbour's wife, to lust after her, hath already com-
mitted adultery with her in his heart,594 and he who bindeth his son in order to immolate
591 Gen. xii. 1.
592 Heb. xi. 8.
593 Gen. xxii. 1.
594 Matt. v. 28.
512

53.6 Page 526

▲back to top


Chapter X. An Exhortation to the Sacrifice Which We Are to Make to God of…
him has already sacrificed him in his heart. Behold then, for God's love, what a holocaust
this holy man offered in his heart! Incomparable sacrifice, which one cannot fully estimate,
nor yet praise to the full! My God! who is able to discern, which of the two loves was great-
er—Abraham's, who to please God sacrifices so amiable a child, or this child's, who to please
God is quite willing to be sacrificed, and to that end permits himself to be bound, and exten-
ded upon the wood, and as a tender little lamb, peaceably awaits death's blow from the dear
hand of his good father?
For my part, I prefer the father in longanimity, yet dare I withal boldly give the prize of
magnanimity to the son: for on the one side it is indeed a marvel, but not so great a one,
that Abraham, already old and accomplished in the science of loving God, and fortified with
the late vision and word of God, should make this last effort of loyalty and love towards a
master whose sweetness and providence he had so often tasted and relished; but to see Isaac,
in the spring-time of his age, as yet a mere novice and apprentice in the art of loving his
550
God, offer himself, upon the simple word of his father, to the sword and the flame to become
a holocaust of obedience to the Divine will, is a thing that passes all admiration.
Yet, on the other side, do you not see, Theotimus, that Abraham tosses and turns in his
soul, more than three days, the bitter thought and resolution of this sharp sacrifice? Do you
not feel compassion for his fatherly heart, when, ascending alone with his son, this child,
simpler than a dove, said unto him: Father, where is the victim? and he answered him: God
will provide for that, my son. Do you not think that the sweetness of this child, carrying the
wood upon his shoulders, and piling it afterwards upon the altar, made his father's bowels
melt with tenderness? O heart which the angels admire and God magnifies! O Saviour Jesus,
when shall it then be, that having sacrificed to thee all that we have, we shall also offer up
to thee all that we are? When shall we offer unto thee our free-will, the only child of our
spirit? When shall we extend and tie it upon the funeral pile of thy cross, of thy thorns, of
thy lance, that as a little lamb, it may be a grateful victim of thy good pleasure, to die and to
burn with the flame, and by the sword, of thy holy love?
O free-will of my heart, how good a thing were it for thee to be bound and extended
upon the cross of thy divine Saviour! How desirable a thing it is to die to thyself, to burn
for ever a holocaust to the Lord! Theotimus, our free-will is never so free as when it is a
slave to the will of God, nor ever so much a slave as when it serves our own will. It never
has so much life as when it dies to itself, nor ever so much death, as when it lives to itself.
We have freedom to do good or evil; yet to make choice of evil, is not to use, but to abuse
our freedom. Let us renounce this miserable liberty, and let us for ever subject our free-will
to the rule of heavenly love: let us become slaves of love, whose serfs are more happy than
kings. And if ever our soul should offer to employ her liberty against our resolutions of
serving God eternally and without reserve,—Oh! in that case, for God's sake, let us sacrifice
our free-will, and make it die to itself that it may live to God! He that would for self-love
551
513

53.7 Page 527

▲back to top


Chapter X. An Exhortation to the Sacrifice Which We Are to Make to God of…
keep it in this world shall lose it in the other, and he that shall lose it in this world for the
love of God, shall keep it, for the same love, in the other. He that gives it liberty in this world
shall find it a serf and slave in the other, and he that shall make it serve the cross in this
world shall have it free in the other, where being in the fruition of the Divine goodness,
liberty will be converted into love, and love into liberty—a liberty of infinite sweet-
ness:—without effort, pain, or any repugnance we shall unchangeably, for ever, love the
Creator and Saviour of our souls.
514

53.8 Page 528

▲back to top


Chapter XI. The Motives We Have of Holy Love.
CHAPTER XI.
THE MOTIVES WE HAVE OF HOLY LOVE.
S. Bonaventure, Father Louis of Granada, Father Louis de Ponte, Father Diego di Stella,
have sufficiently discoursed upon this subject. I will only sum up those points on which I
have touched in this treatise.
The divine goodness considered in itself is not only the first motive of all, but also the
greatest, the most noble and most mighty. For it is that which ravishes the Blessed, and
crowns their felicity. How can one have a heart, and yet not love so infinite a goodness? This
subject is treated to some extent in chapters i. and ii. of Book II., and from chapter viii. to
the and of Book III., and in chapter ix. of Book X.
The second motive is that of God's natural Providence towards us, of creation and pre-
servation, as we say in chapter iii. of Book II.
The third motive is that of God's supernatural Providence over us, and of the Redemption
he has prepared for us, as is explained in chapters iv., v., vi., vii., of Book II.
The fourth motive is to consider how God brings to effect this Providence and Redemp-
tion, giving every one all the graces and assistances required for salvation; which we handle
552
in Book II., from chapter viii., and in Book III., from the beginning to chapter vi.
The fifth motive is the eternal glory which the Divine goodness has provided for us,
which is the crown of God's benefits towards us: of which we have said something from
chapter ix. to the end of Book III.
515

53.9 Page 529

▲back to top


Chapter XII. A Most Useful Method of Employing These Motives.
CHAPTER XII.
A MOST USEFUL METHOD OF EMPLOYING THESE MOTIVES.
Now to receive from these motives a profound and strong heat of love, it is necessary, 1°,
that after having considered one of them in a general way, we apply it in particular to
ourselves. For example: O how amiable this great God is, who out of his infinite goodness
gave his son for the whole world's redemption! Yes, indeed for all in general, but in particular
for me, who am the first of sinners.595 Ah! he hath loved me, yea, I say, he hath loved even
me, even me myself, such as I am, and delivered himself to his Passion for me.596
2°. We must consider the Divine benefits in their first and eternal source. O God!
Theotimus, what love can we have sufficiently worthy of the infinite goodness of our Creator,
who from all eternity determined to create, preserve, govern, redeem, save and glorify all
in general and each in particular? Ah! what was I then when I was not? What was I? who
now being something am yet but a simple and poor worm of the earth? And still God from
the abyss of his eternity thought thoughts of benediction in my behalf? He considered and
designed, yea determined, the hour of my birth, of my baptism, of all the inspirations that
he would bestow upon me; in a word, all the benefits he would do and offer me. Ah! is there
a sweetness like unto this sweetness?
553
3°. We must consider the Divine benefits in their second and meritorious source; for
do you not know, Theotimus, that the High Priest of the Law wore upon his back, and upon
his bosom, the names of the children of Israel, that is, the precious stones upon which the
names of the chiefs of Israel were engraven? Ah! behold Jesus our chief bishop, and see how,
from the instant of his conception, he bore us upon his shoulders, undertaking the charge
of redeeming us by his death, even the death of the cross. O Theotimus, Theotimus, this soul
of Our Saviour knew us all by name and by surname; but above all in the day of his Passion,
when he offered his tears, his prayers, his blood and his life for all, he breathed in particular
for thee these thoughts of love: Ah! my eternal Father, I take to myself and charge myself
with all poor Theotimus's sins, to undergo torments and death that he may be freed from
them, and that he may not perish but live. Let me die, so he may live; let me be crucified so
he may be glorified. O sovereign love of the Heart of Jesus, what heart can ever bless thee
as devotedly as it ought!
Thus within his maternal breast his divine heart foresaw, disposed, merited and obtained
all the benefits we have, not only in general for all, but also in particular for each one, and
his breasts of sweetness provided for us the milk of his influences, his attractions, his inspir-
ations, and the sweetnesses by which he draws, conducts and nourishes our hearts to
eternal life. Benefits do not inflame us unless we behold the eternal will which destines them
595 1 Tim. i. 15.
596 Gal. ii. 20.
516

53.10 Page 530

▲back to top


Chapter XII. A Most Useful Method of Employing These Motives.
for us, and the Heart of Our Saviour who has merited them for us by so many pains, especially
in his death and passion.
517

54 Pages 531-540

▲back to top


54.1 Page 531

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. That Mount Calvary Is the Academy of Love.
CHAPTER XIII.
THAT MOUNT CALVARY IS THE ACADEMY OF LOVE.
And at last, as our conclusion,—the death and passion of Our Lord is the sweetest and most
constraining motive that can animate our hearts in this mortal life: and it is the very truth,
554
that mystical bees make their most excellent honey within the wounds of this Lion of the
tribe of Judah, slain, rent and torn upon the Mount of Calvary. And the children of the cross
glory in their admirable problem, which the world understands not: Out of death, the eater
of all, has come forth the meat of our consolation; and out of death, strong above all, has
come forth the sweetness of the honey of our love.597 O Jesus, my Saviour, how love-worthy
is thy death, since it is the sovereign effect of thy love!
So, in the glory of heaven above, next to the Divine goodness known and considered in
itself, Our Saviour's death shall most powerfully ravish the blessed spirits in the loving of
God. As a sign whereof, in the Transfiguration, where we have a glimpse of heaven, Moses
and Elias talked with Our Saviour of the Excess598 which he was to accomplish in Jerusalem.
But of what excess, if not of that excess of love by which life was forced from the lover, to
be bestowed on the well-beloved? So that in the eternal canticle I imagine to myself that this
joyous exclamation will be repeated every moment:
Live, Jesus live, whose death doth prove,
The might supreme of heavenly love.
Theotimus, Mount Calvary is the mount of lovers. All love that takes not its beginning
from Our Saviour's Passion is frivolous and dangerous. Unhappy is death without the love
of the Saviour, unhappy is love without the death of the Saviour! Love and death are so
mingled in the Passion of Our Saviour that we cannot have the one in our heart without the
other. Upon Calvary one cannot have life without love, nor love without the death of Our
Redeemer. But, except there, all is either eternal death or eternal love: and all Christian
wisdom consists in choosing rightly; and to assist you in that, I have made this treatise, my
555
Theotimus.
During this mortal life we must choose eternal love or eternal death, there is no middle
choice.
O eternal love, my soul desires and makes choice of thee eternally! Ah! come, Holy
Spirit and inflame our hearts with thy love! To love or to die! To die and to love! To die to
all other love in order to live to Jesus's love, that we may not die eternally, but that, living
in thy eternal love, O Saviour of our souls we may eternally sing: Vive Jésus! I love Jesus.
Live Jesus whom I love! I love Jesus, who lives and reigns for ever and ever. Amen.
597 Judges xiv. 14.
598 Excessum, Luke ix. 31.
518

54.2 Page 532

▲back to top


Chapter XIII. That Mount Calvary Is the Academy of Love.
May these things, Theotimus, which by the grace and help of charity have been written
to your charity, so take root in your heart that this charity may find in you the fruit of good
works, not the leaves of praises. Amen. Blessed be God! And thus I close this whole treatise
in the words with which S. Augustine ended an admirable sermon on charity, which he
made before an illustrious assembly.
THE END.
556
519

54.3 Page 533

▲back to top


Other Books
If you have enjoyed this book, consider making your next selection from among the follow-
ing . . .
The Catholic Controversy. St. Francis de
SSaerlems.o.n.s. .o.n. P. .r.ay. e. r. .. S. t...F. r.a.n. c.i.s.d. e. .S.a.le. s.
..S..er.. m. .o.n. s. .o. n. . O. .u.r. .L.a.d.y... .S.t.. .F.r.a.n.c.is. .d.e.
.SS.aer.lem.s.o..n.. .s. ..f..o..r.. ..A..d.. .v. .en. .t.&. . .C.h. r.i.s.tm. .a.s.. .S.t..
FSerarmncoisnds efoSraLleesn.t.. .S.t.. F. .ra. n. .ci.s. d. e. .S.a.le. s. .. ..
..In. t.r.o... .T.o./.D. e. v. o. .u.t. L. .if.e... S. t... .F.r.a.n.c.is de
SInatlreos.. UTnoa/bDreidvgoeudt. .L.if.e... S. t... .F.r.a.n.c.is. .d.e.
.SO.an.lest.hAebrPidregaecdh..e.r. .a.n.d. .P. r.e.a.c.h.i.n.g... .S.t..
.FV.reann.cFisradnecSisacloesM. .a.r.t.o.o.f.F. a. t.im. . a...C. i.r.r.in. -.
.cVioenne. ,Jcaocminpta. M. . a. r.t.o. .o.f. F. .a.ti.m. .a.. .C. i.r.r.in. -
cSito. nPeh. i.l.o.m. e. n. .a.—. T. .h.e. .W. .o.n.d. e.r.-.W. .o.r.k.e.r..
.OT.h'S.e.u.Fll.iav.ca.tsn. .A...b...o..u..t...L..u...t.h..e..r.....M.. .sg. r... P. .a.tr.i.ck
OLi'tHtlaerCe.a.te. c. h. .is.m. . o. f. .th. .e.C. .u.r.é.o. f. A. .r.s.. .S.t..
.JTo.hh.en. C.V.u.iran.on.f.eAy. ..r.s. —.. .. P.. ..a..tr..o..n. .S.a.in. t. o. .f .P.a.ri.s.h.
.PS.ar.iine.st.t.sT..eFrre.sBa .oOf 'ABrviielan.. W. . i.l.li.a.m. .T. h. o. .m.a. s.
.WIs.a.ab.les.hl.l.a....o..f.. S. p. .a.in. :. .T.h. e. . L. a. s. t. .C. r. u. s.a.d. er.
WChiallriaacmteTrshoomf tahseWInaqlsuhi.s.it.io. .n.. .W. .i.ll.ia. m. .
.TB.lho.oo.m.d.a-.Ds.Wr.e.na.cl.shhe.d. . A. .l.ta.r.s.—. .C. a. t.h... .C. o. m. . -.
.mT.he.en. tF. oonurHLisats.tMTehxiicnog.sKeDlleeya.th. ., .J.u.d.g. -.
.mC.oe.nn. ft.e,.sH.si.eo.lnl.,.Ho. f.e.aa.vReno.mFarn. vConatChoolcihc.emPa. u. l.
.WT.h.he.it.Cc.oa.mt.h.bo..l.i.c.. ..C..h.. u.. .r. c..h.. ..H. .a.s. t.h.e. .A. n. s. w. .e.r..
PTahuel WSihnintceor'ms bG. .u.i.d.e.. . .V.e.n... . L. o. u. .is. . o. f.
.GT.rr.ua.en.aDdaev. o. .ti.o.n. .t.o. .M. .a.ry. .. .S.t.. .L.o.u. i.s. .D.e.
.ML.ifo.en. .tf.oo.fr.t..S..t..... ..A.. ..n..t.h. ..o..n..y.. .. ..M.. ..a..r.y. . C. .la. r.e.t.
FAauntochbóiongRraopyhery. .o.f. .S.t.. . A. .n.t.h.o.n.y. . M. . a.r.y.
.C.l.ar. et. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.........................
15.00
4.00
10.00
7.00
12.00
10.00
12.00
9.00
1.50
2.00
7.00
16.50
6.00
5.50
21.50
20.00
15.00
20.00
7.00
1.50
1.50
12.00
7.00
15.00
13.00
520

54.4 Page 534

▲back to top


I Wait for You. Sr. Josefa Menendez. . . .
.W. .o.r.d.s. .o.f. .L.o. v. e... .M. .e.n.e.n.d.e.z.,. .B.e.t.ro. n. .e,.
..M.LOP...ir'taK...at..ry.laey..e.nr..oLe—.fiM.vtTh.euh.esr.eTro.arK.f.iyne..tyih..t.y.et...oG... S...ra...el...av...ta...tS..i.oa...ni...n....t...Fs....r....J...oM...h...in-...
.cPh.aa.s.seiloMnüolfleJre.s.u.s. a. n. d. .I.t.s.H. .id. d. .en. . M. .e.a.n. -.
.iTnhge. VFri.ctGorroieesnoinfgths,eSM.J.a.rt.y.r.s.. .S.t..A. l.p.h.o.n. -.
.sCu.as.n.Lo.ing. us. .oa.rni..d. D. .e.c.r.e.es. .o.f. t.h.e. .C.o. u. n. .ci.l. o. f.
.TSerremnto. nTsraonfslS.tS. cAhrlpoehdoenrs.u. s. .L.i.g.u.o.r.i. f.o.r.
.EA.v.eC.ra.yt.Se.cu.hn.id.smay.o. f. .M. .o.d.e.r.n.i.sm. ... .F.r.. .J.. .B. ..
.LA.el.emx. ia.un.sd. r.i.n.a.—. .T. h. e. .A.g.o. n. y. .a.n.d. t.h.e. G. .lo. .ry. .
JLoihfenostfoBnl.e.s.se. d. .M. .a.r.g.a.r.et. .o.f.C. a. s.t.e.ll.o...F.r.
WThielliWamayBs oonf nMiwenetlla.l.P.r.a.y.e.r.. .D.o.m. . V. .it.a.l.is.
.LC.ea.ht.eo.cdh.yi.s.m. .o.f. M. . e.n. t.a.l.P. r.a.y.e.r...S.im. .l.e.r.. . . .
.F.r.. .P.a.u.l.o.f. M. . o. l.l.. .v.a.n. S. p. e. y. b. r.o.u. c.k... .. .. .. .. ..
.....S...AM.TnR.........taheb..........niDeoFg........,rrSn.........Dtat........ioonoo.......frcn.m.....yiC......:sio......Yhno......ferif......ctishsaP......ot.......eart.......oChN.......leha.......o...u.....K?S.......riDic.......nmh.......gr.........i........JJaDoo.......nhha.......dnnv....... i.......sSLeo.......es.n.......g.G,.......r.eH.......r.ta........iad.........n........y. -,.........
..H..e..l..l ..Q. u. .iz.z.e.s.. .R.a.d. i.o. R. .e.p.li.e.s.P.r.e.s.s.. .. .. .. .. ..
.....I....P....VR.T.Mn...............uahide.............rdredg.............ugiiH...i..........olantg.............taoReo.............tnliae...r..........yoypcn.............neEl............dQi............PeuQs..u..........rcSu............aihPtzi..y..........aarzz..e..........terzeur............siesss..e..........os.t..............n.R.R............WS.Ma............at.d.............oda.i..A..........rior...o..........syl...ph..........RRI...h..........iemep.............opp.............nmll.i............Qisee...a..........ussu...c..........sPPui.............zrr..l..........zaee............etss............esss................
..PL..iat..dt..lre..eB..P..oi..oo...k...o.....f...t.h...e.....W......o....r..k....o...f...I...n...f...i..n...i.t...e...L... o.. .v. .e..
dTeexlatuTaol ucChoen.c.o.r.d.a.n.c.e. . o. .f . .T.h. e. . .H. o. l.y.
.SD.cor. ui.pa.ty.u-.rR.e.hs..e.iWm. .si.llB.ia.ibmles..L.e.a.t.h.e.rb. .o.u.n.d. .. .. ..
..T..h..e.. ..W.. ..a..y.. .o. ..f ..D.. ..iv.i.n.e. .L.o.v.e...(.p.o.c.k.e.t., .u.n. -.
.aMb. y.r.s.)t..icMaleCneitnydoezf .G.o. d. —. . A. .b.r.id. .g.e.d.. .V. e. n. ..
.M. a. .ry. .o.f.A. g. r.eda . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.........
Other Books
.75
6.00
18.00
7.50
15.00
10.00
15.00
16.50
5.00
5.00
7.50
14.00
2.00
11.00
8.00
2.00
16.50
1.25
1.00
1.00
1.00
1.00
10.00
1.25
2.00
35.00
557
35.00
8.50
18.50
521

54.5 Page 535

▲back to top


Moments Divine—Before the Blessed
SMaicrraacmuleonuts. IRmeuagteers.o.f.O. .u.r. L. .ad. .y.. .C.r.u.z. ..
..M.. i..r..a..c..u..lo.. ..u..s..I.m. .a.g.e.s.o.f.O. .u.r. L. .o.rd. .. .C.r.u.z. ..
..R..a..is..e..d. .fr. o. m. . .th. .e.D. .e.a.d.. .F.r.. .H. e. b. e. r.t. .. .. .. .. ..
..L..if..e.. .an. .d. W. . .o.r.k. o. f. .M. .o.th. .e.r.L. o. u. .is.e. M. . a. r. -.
.gA.aur.te.ot.bFiorg. rOa'pChoynonfelSl.t..M. .a.r.g.a.r.e.t.M. .a.r.y.. .. ..
..T..h..o..u.. g.. h.. .t.s.. ..a.n.d. .S.a.y.in. .g.s. o. f. .S.t.. .M. .a.r.g.a.re. t.
.MT.ha.er. yV. .o. i.c.e.o. f. t.h.e. S. a. i.n. t.s.. .C.o.m. .p.. .b.y.F. r.a.n. -.
.cTi.hs.eJ.o1.h.2n.Ssttoenps. t.o. .H. o. l.in. .e.ss. .a.n.d. S. .al.v.a.t.io. n. ..
.ST.th..eA. R.lp.oh.so.anrysuasn.d. .th. e. .C. r. i.s.is. .o.f.F.a.i.th. .. C. .ir. -.
.rSi.inn.c.i.oa.nn.ed&ItNs elCsoonns. e. q. u. .en. .c.e.s.. .C. .a.rd. .in. a. l.
.M. a. .n.n.in. .g.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.F.o.u.r.fo. .ld. .S.overeignty of God. Cardinal
MDiaanlongiuneg . o. f. . S. t... .C. a. t.h.e.r.in. .e. .o.f. .S.ie. n. .a..
.TC.ra.at.hn.os.ll.i.cA.AlgnasrwTehrotoroJledh.o.v.a.h.'s.W. .i.tn. e. s.s.e.s..
.DT.w.Ae.nl.vg.ee.l.oP.r..o..m....i.se. s. .o.f. t.h. e. .S.a.c.r.e.d. .H.e.a.r.t..
.(L1.if0.e0. .c.oa.frdsS)t... . A. .lo. y. s. i.u.s. . .G.o. n. z. a. g. a. .. . .F.r..
.MT.he.es.cL.h.ol.evr.e..o. .f .M. .a.ry. .. D. ...R.o. b. e.r.t.o.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..B..e..g..o..n..e.. ..S..a.t.a..n. .. F. r. .. V. .o.g.l.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..T..h.e. .P.r.o.p.h.e.t.s.a.n.d. .O. u. .r.T. i.m. .e.s.. .F.r.. .R...G. ..
.CStu. llTethoenre. s.e.,. .T.h. e. . L. .it.tl.e. .F. l.o.w. .er. .. .J.o.h.n.
.BS.te..eJ.vo.esr.es.p. h. .o.f. C. .o.p.e.r.ti.n.o...F. r...A. n. .ge. l.o. P. .a.s-.
.tMr.oa.vr.iy.c,c. hT. i.h..e. .S.e.co. .n.d. .E.v.e...C. a. r. d. i.n.a.l. N. .e.w. -.
.mD.ea.vn.o..t.i.o..n. . t.o. . I.n. f.a.n.t. .J.e.su. .s. .o.f . P. .ra. g. u. .e..
.BR.oe.iog.kn.le. t.o..f.C. .h.r.is.t. .th. e. .K. .in. g. . i.n. .P. u. b. .li.c. &. .
.PT.rh.iev.a.tW.e. Lo. i.nf.ed.eDr aovfiesG. u. a. d. a. l.u.p.e... .F.r.a.n.c.is.
.JAo.ph.on. l.sot.og.ne.t.i.c..s.....M.. .sg. r. .. P. .a.u.l.G. l.e.n.n..... .. .. .. .. .. ..
..B..a..lt..i..m.. o.. r.. e.. ..C.a.t.e.c.h.is. m. . .N.o. .. 1. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..B..a..lt..i..m.. o.. r. e. .C.a.t.e.c.h.is. m. . .N.o. .. 2. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
......B.. ........a.......lt.......i.......m....... o....... r....... e.......
.....C.....a.....t.....e.....c.....h.....is.....m..... .....
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
N..... .....o...........3......
.. .. .. .. ..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
......
..
.. .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.
Other Books
8.50
20.00
13.50
16.50
12.50
5.00
5.00
6.00
7.50
2.00
6.00
5.00
10.00
10.00
5.00
12.00
8.00
3.00
12.50
6.00
6.00
2.50
.75
1.25
7.50
10.00
3.50
4.50
8.00
522

54.6 Page 536

▲back to top


An Explanation of the Baltimore Catech-
iBsemth. lFerh.eKmin. kFera. dF.a.b.e.r.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..B..ib.. l..e.. H.. ..i..s..to.. r..y.....S..c..h..u.. s.t.e.r.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.....B..C.T........lhae........tes........hsD........oe........dlei........vcE........iC........lu.........caF........htr........ea....c.....rDh........is........iets........l.ma........Fp.........ro.........Fr........Mrt.......e. ........uF........ea........lel........er........br.........e.........r..........
........
..
........
..
........
..
...
....
..
...
...
..
...
...
..
..D..o.. g.. m.. ..a..t..ic.. ..T.. ..h..e..o..lo.. g.. y.. .. f..o..r.. .t.h.e. .L.a.it.y... .F.r..
..P.ECF...irvrf...eiitsdm...ete..e.imann... n...c.P..e.i..r..o..o...f.m...S....ai...s.t...ae...sn......oi...n.f....tM....h....ea....rM....y.....o....(d....1..e..0..r..0n.... ...C.W....a....or....dr....lsd....).....
..L..if..e.. ..o..f.. ..A..n.. n. .e. C. .a.t.h.e.ri.n. e. .E. m. . m. .e.r.ic. h. .. .2.
.vLoifles. oSfchtmheoebgleers.s.e.d. .V.i.r.g.in. . M. .a.r.y... E. .m. -.
.mM. ea.rn.i.cuh.a..l.. ..o..f.. ..P..r..a..ct..i.c.a.l . D. .e.v.o.t.io. n. . .to. . .S.t..
.JPo.rs.ae.yp.ehr. ..tP.oaSttr.igMnaicnhia. e. l...(.1.0.0. l.e.a.f.le.t.s.).. .. .. ..
..P..r..a..y..er.. b.. o.. ..o..k.. ..o..f.. .. F.. a.. v.. o. r. i.t.e. .L.i.ta. n. i.e.s... .Fr.
HPreebpearrta. t.i.o.n. .fo. .r.D. .e.a.th. .. .(A. .b.r.i.d.g.e.d.).. .S.t..
.AP.ul.pr.hg.oa.tno.s.ruys.E. x. p. l.a.i.n.e.d...(.p.o.c.k.e.t., .u.n. a. b. r. ..)..
.SF.cuh.no.d.ua.pm.p.ee..n..t..a.ls. o. f. C. .a.t.h.o.li.c. D. .o.g.m. .a...L.u.d. -.
.wS.pi.gir.Oi.tu.tt.a.l...C...o.n.fe. r.e.n. c.e.s...T.a.u. l.e.r.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..T..r..u..s..tf..u..l..S..u.r.re. n. .d.e.r.to. .D. i.v.in. .e.P.r.o.v.i.d.e.n.c.e..
...B.W.T.....lh......iefC.....e..A..l,a....Mgu....o....don....ety.....h.....eo....rf....aJ....en....sd....u....sM..... ....Py....sa....tdi....cr.....e....BP....e....iso....s..i...e.....r.....e.....s......
....
..
....
.
....
.
.S.er. m. .o.n. s. .o.f.t.h.e. .C.u.r.é. o. .f .A. r.s...V. .ia. n. n. .ey. .. ..
...S...t....A... ...n...to... ...n...y...o... f... t...h..e.. .D. ..e..s..e..r..t...S..t.....A..t..h..a..n..a.. s..i..u..s...
.Is. .It. a. .S.a.in. .t'.s.N. .am. . e. ?. .F.r.. W. . .il.li.a.m. .D. .u.n.n.e.
..S.t.. .P.iu. .s. V. .—. .H. .is. .L.i.fe. ,. .ti.m. .e.s., .M. .i.ra. c.l.e.s..
.AWnhdoerissoTn.h.e.re. s. e. .N. e. u. .m. a. n. .n.?. F. r. .. C. .h.a.r.le. s.
.CM.aa.rr.tty.y..r..s..o..f.. t.h. e. .C.o. l.is. e.u. m. ...F. r...O. .'R. e. i.ll.y. .. ..
..W.. ..a..y..o..f.. t.h.e. .C.r.o.s.s.. .S.t.. A. .lp. h. .o.n.su. .s.L.i.g.u.o.ri
.W. .a.y.o.f. t.h.e. .C.r.o.s.s.. F. .ra. .n.c.is.c.a.n. v. e. r.s.io. n. .. .. ..
.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Other Books
16.50
18.00
10.00
9.00
7.00
6.00
20.00
10.00
5.00
37.50
16.50
15.00
5.00
10.00
8.00
9.00
21.00
13.00
5.00
8.00
558
1.50
12.50
5.00
1.50
5.00
2.00
18.50
1.00
1.00
523

54.7 Page 537

▲back to top


How Christ Said the First Mass. Fr.
MToeoagBhuesry. .fo. r. .G.o. d. ?. .T.h.i.n.k. A. .g.a.in. .! .D. .A.n. -.
.gSe.t.l.oB...e.r..n..a..d...e.t.t.e.S.o.u. b. i.r.o.u.s...T. r.o. c.h.u. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..P..a..s..si..o.n. . .a.n.d. . D. .e.a.t.h. .o. f. . J.e.s.u.s. .C. .hrist.
LCiognufoersis.i.o.n. Q. .u.i.z.z.e.s.. R. .a.d.io. .R.e.p.l.ie.s.P. r.e.s.s..
..S..t...P.. h.. ..il..ip.. .N. .e.ri...F.r...V. .. J...M. .a.t.th. e. w. .s.. .. .. .. .. ..
..T.h.e. O. .ld. .W. .o.r.l.d.a.n.d. .A. m. .e.r.ic. a...R. e. v...P. hilip
FPurorlpohnegc.y. .fo. r. .T.o. d. a. y. .. .E.d.w. a. r.d. .C. o. n. n. .o.r.. ..
..T..h..e.. B.. ..o..o..k.. .o.f .I.n.fi.n.i.te. .L.o.v.e...M. .o.t.h.e.r.d.e. l.a.
.TTohuechCeh. .u.rc. h. . .T. e.a.c.h. e. s... .C. h. u. .rc.h. . .D.o. c.u. -.
.mC.oe.nn. tv.se..r..s..a.ti.o.n. . .w. i.t.h. . C. .h.r.is. t... .P. e.t.e.r. .T. ..
.RP.uo.hr.gr.ab.tao.c.rhy. a. n. .d. H. .e.a.v.e.n...J...P...A. .re.n. d. .ze. n. .. ..
..L..ib.. e.. r..a..l..is..m.. .. I.s. a. .S.i.n.. .S.a.r.d.a. y. .S.a.lv. a. n. .y.. .. .. ..
.S.p.ir.i.tu. .al. L. .e.g.a.cy. .o.f.S.r...M. .a.r.y.o.f.t.h.e. T. .r.in-
iTtyh.evCanredateonrBarnodekth. .e.C. r.e.a.t.u.r.e.. .F.r.. F. .re.d. -.
.eRr.ai.cd.ki.oF. aR. b.ee.pr.l.i.e..s.....3.. ..v..o..l.s.. .F.rs. .. R. .u.m. .b.le. .a.n.d.
.CC.ao.rn.tvy. e.. r..t..'s.. ..C..a..t.e.c.h.is. m. . .o.f. C. .a.th. .o.li.c. .D.o. c. -.
.tIrn.ic.na.er..n.Fa.rt.ioGne,ierBmiratnhn, . I.n. f.a.n.c.y. . o. .f . .Je. s.u.s.
.CL.ihg.rh.it.st.a..nS.dt..P.A.el.ap.che.o..nF.s.ru..sR.. ... P. .. .Q.u. a. d. .ru. .p.a.n.i.. ..
..D..o.. g.. m.. ..a..t..ic.. ..C.. a.. n.. ..o..n..s.. &.. .. ..D.e.c.r.e.e.s.o. f. .T.r.e.n.t.,
VThate. IE. vDoolucutimonentHs.o.a.x. .E. x. p. o. s. e.d. .. .A. .. .N. ..
.FT.ihe.el.dP...r.i..m...i.t..i.v. .e. ..C..h.. .u. ..r.c. h. .. F. r. ..D. ...I.. L. a. .n.sl.o.t.s..
..T..h..e.. ..P..r.ie.s.t., .t.h.e. M. . a.n. .o.f. .G.o. d. .. .S.t.. J.o.s.e.p.h.
.CBlaefsassesdo.S.a.c.r.a.m. e.n. t...F. r...F. r.e.d.e.r.ic.k. .F.a.b.e.r..
..C..h..r..i..st.. .D. ..e..n.i.e.d...F.r...P.a.u. l. W. . i.c.k.e.n.s.. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..N.e.w. . .R.e.g.u.l.a.ti.o.n.s. .o.n. . I.n. d. .u.lg. e. n. c. e. s. Fr.
WA TinofurirdoHf tehrebsStu. m. .m. .a...M. .sg. r...P.a.u. l. G. .le.n. n. ..
..S..p..ir..i..tu.. .a. l.. .. ..C..o.. n.. f..e..r.e.n.c.e.s.. . .F.r.. . .F.r.e.d.e.r.ic.k.
.FLaatbienr.G. r.a.m. .m. .a.r.. S. c. a. n. l.o.n. .a.n.d. .S.ca. .n.lo. n. .. ..
.. .. .. .. .. .. .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Other Books
18.50
5.00
18.50
10.00
1.00
5.50
18.00
5.50
5.00
16.50
10.00
5.00
7.50
10.00
16.50
36.00
3.00
10.00
7.00
9.50
6.00
10.00
12.50
18.50
2.50
2.50
18.00
15.00
16.50
524

54.8 Page 538

▲back to top


A Brief Life of Christ. Fr. Rumble. . . . . .
.M. a. r. r.i.a.g.e.Q. .u.iz. z. e. s...R. a. d. .io. .R.e.p.l.ie.s. P. r. ess. .
.T.r.u.e. .C. h. .u.r.c.h. .Q. .u.iz. z. e.s... .R.a.d. i.o. .R. e. p. l.i.es.
PTrheessS. e. c. r.e.t. o. .f .t.h.e. .R.o.s.a.r.y.. .S.t.. .L.o. u. i.s. .D.e.
.MM. oa. rn. y.t,f.oMrt.o.th. .e.r. o. f. .t.h.e. .C.h.u. r.c.h... .C.h.u. r.c.h.
.DT.ho.ec.uS.ma. c.er.ne.td.s.H. e. a. r.t.a.n.d. .th. e. .P.r.ie. s.t.h.o.o.d...d.e.
.lRa.e.Tv.eo.lua.ct.ih.oe.n..s...o..f.S.t.. .B.r.id. g. e. t...S.t.. .B.r.id. g. e.t. o. f.
.SM.wa.eg.dn.e.inf.i.c..e..n...t. . P. r. a.y.e.r.s.. . .S.t.. . .B.r.id. g. e.t. . o. f.
.ST.wh.ee.dH.e.na..p..p..in. .es. s. .o.f.H. e. a. v. e. n. .. F. .r.. J...B. o. u. d. r. -.
.eSa.t.u.C.. .a. t..h..e..r..i.n.e.L.a.b. o. u. .ré. .o.f.th. .e.M. .ir. a. c.u. l.o.u.s.
.MT.he.ed. .aGl.loDriirevsino.f.M. .a.r.y...(.p.o.c.k.e.t., .u.n. a. b. r. ..)..
.SF.tr.e. Ae.m.lp.ah.so.on.n.sru.y.s: M.L.iagnukoirni.d.'s.H. .id. d. e. n. .E.n.e.m. .y..
.BN.ro.ov..e.Cn..a.M.o.fa.Hd.d.oe.lny. ..C.. o.. m.. ..m. .u.n. i.o.n. s...L.o.v.a.s.ik. ..
..B..r..ie..f.. C.. ..a..te.. c..h.. i..s..m.. ..f..o.r.A. .d.u.lt.s...C. o. g. a. n. .. .. .. .. ..
..T.h.e. . .C. a.t.h... . R. .e.li.g.o.n.—. .I.ll.u.s.../E. x. .p.l.. . for
CEuhcilhda,rAisdtiuclMt, Ciroanclveesr.tJ.oaBnurCbaarcrho.ll. C. .ru. .z..
..T..h..e.. I..n.. c.. o.. r.. r..u.. p.. t..i..b..le.. s.....J..o..a..n.. ..C..a.r.r.o.ll. C. .ru. .z.. ..
..P.o.p.e. S. .t..P. i.u.s. .X...F...A. .. .F.o.r.b.e.s.. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.S.t.. .A.l.p.h.o.n.s.u.s. .L.i.g.u.o.r.i.. .F.r.s.. .M. i.l.le.r. .a.n.d.
..A.SeTn...ehul...cefb...e-iSA....no...F.b...nr.a....g.n..d.od..e.fo...CS.n.oa.m.n.u.e.gs.ns.s.a—.t.d..et.Ao.,. .SM. .D..J.y..i..sv..t.i.in..c..e.a..l..
P.. ..ro.. .v. .i.d.. -..
.E.x.p.o.s.i-.
.tPi.ro.on.p..hF.er.c..yA. .froi.nr.t.Te.roo.d., a.Oy....PE....d.w. a. r.d. .C. o. n. n. .o.r.. ..
..S..a..in.. t.. M.. .. i..c..h..a..e..l..a..n..d.. ..th.. e.. .A. n. .g.el.s...A.p. p. r.o.v.e.d.
SDooulrocreosu. s. .P.a.s.si.o.n. .o.f.O. .u.r.L.o. r.d...A. .n.n.e.C. ..
.EM.mo. m.d.ee.rrn.ic. h.S.a.in. .ts.—. .T. h. e. i.r. .L.i.v.es. . &. . .F.a.c.e.s.,
.BM.oo.o.dk.e.Ir.n. A. .Sn.an.inBtas—ll. T. .h.e.ir. .L.i.v.e.s. &. . .F.a.c.e.s.,
.BO.ou.or.k.L.IaI.d..Ay. .no.nf. FB. .aat.lil.m...a.'.s.P. e. a. c.e. .P.l.a.n. .fr.o.m. .
.HD.ie.va.ivn.ee.n.F..aB.v.oo.or.ks.lGe.tr..a..n.t.e.d.t.o.S.t...Jo. .se.p. h. .. P. .èr.e.
.BS.ti.n. .eJot..s..e..p..h....C...a..f.a. .s.s..o. —. . P. r. i.e.s.t .o.f. .th. e. .G. .a.l-.
.lo.w. .s.. S. .t. John Bosco. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
...................
Other Books
2.00
1.00
1.00
3.00
4.00
9.00
3.00
2.00
8.00
13.50
10.00
5.00
2.00
9.00
559
9.00
15.00
13.50
8.00
16.50
18.00
20.00
5.50
7.00
16.50
18.00
20.00
.75
5.00
4.50
525

54.9 Page 539

▲back to top


Catechism of the Council of Trent.
MThceHFuogoht/CofaltlhaenC. .r.o.s.s.. F. .r.. F. .a.b.e.r.. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..T..h..e.. R.. ..o..s..a..r..y..i..n.. A.. ..c..ti.o.n. .. J.o.h.n. .Jo. h. .n.s.on. . . .
.P.a.d.r.e. P. .io. —. . T. .h.e. S. t.i.g.m. .a.ti.s.t.. F. .r.. .C.h.a.r.les
CWahrtyy.S.q.u.a.n.d. e.r. .I.ll.n.e.s.s?. .F.r.s.. .R.u. m. .b.l.e. &. .
.CT.ha.re.tSy. a.. c.. r.e.d. .H.e.a.r.t.a.n.d. .th. e. .P.r.ie.s.t.h.o.o.d...d.e.
.lFa.a.tTi.mo.u.ac.—heT. h. .e.G. .re. a. t. .S.ig. n. .. F. .ra. n. .ci.s. J.o.h.n. -.
.sHt.oe.nl.i.o..t.r..o..p..i..u..m. .—. .C. o. n. .fo. r.m. .i.ty. .o.f. H. .u.m. .a.n.
.WC.h.ial.lr.tio.tyDfoivritnhee. SDurffeexreilniugsS. o. u. .ls...F.r...J.o.h.n.
.ND.ae.vg.eo.lte.iio.s.ne.nt..o.. ..t.h. ..e..S.. a..c..r..e..d.. .H. e. a. r.t. .o.f.J.e.s.u.s..
.VW.e.hr.ho.ei.ys.leP.z.aod.o.rne.P. i.o.?. R. .a.d.io. .R.e.p.l.ie.s. P. r. e.s.s.. ..
..C..h..i..ld.. '..s..B.. i..b..l..e.. H.. ..i.st.o.r.y...K. n. .ec. h. t..... .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.T.h.e. .S.ti.g.m. .a.ta. .a.n.d. .M. .o.d.e.r.n. .S.c.ie. n. .ce. .. .F.r..
...C.TES....tmhh.....aemA....rL...lnee...irtfs...heic...Cooh...anf....ry....Ct—..y..h.....rT.....i....sht....e.....4....W....V....oo....nl....sd.....e....Hr.........WB.........oA....rn....k....ne....re....Co.... f.....
.PT.ah.de.uP.a.r..eSc.ti.oo.du.dsaBrldo.o.d. ..F. r...F.a.b. e.r...... .. .. .. .. .. ..
..T..h..e.. ..H.. o.. ..ly.. ..S..h..r..o..u..d.. ..&. . .F.o.u.r. .V.i.s.io. n. s. .. .F.r..
...O.CLT....ohl'C....evea....aon...snP.i..nkrL...o.eo...lp....vl..h...e..e...i..c..n..i..e....Cs....o....ou....f..r..t..S..s..t..h.....i.p...M..... ..a..F..l..ra.....c....Lh....ay....w..... .r...Pe....en....tce....er....
.BS.ta..nM.d.ae.rr.t.i..n.. d. e. .P.o.r.r.e.s.. G. .iu. .li.a.n.a. .C.a.v.a.l.li.n.i..
..T..h..e.. ..S..e..c..re. t. .o.f. t.h.e. .R.o. s.a.r.y...S.t...L. o. u. i.s. .D.e.
.MThoentHfoirstt.o.r.y. o. .f .t.h.e. .A.n. t.i.ch. .ri.s.t.. .R.e.v... P. ..
.HS.tu.. Cc.h.ae.tdh. e.e.r..i.n. e. .o.f.S.i.e.n.a.. .A.l.ic.e. C. .u.r.ta. .yn. .e.. ..
..W.. ..h..e..r..e.. ..W.. ..e. .G. o. t. .t.h.e. .B. i.b.l.e.. .F. r... .H. e.n. r.y.
GHridahdaenm.T.r.e.a.s.u.r.e.—. .H. o. .ly. .M. .a.s.s.. .S.t.. .L. e. -.
.oIm.n.ai.tra.dt..i.o. .n. .. o. f. .th. .e. S. a. c. r.e.d. .H. .ea. r. t. .o.f.J.e.s.u.s..
.FT.rh..e.AL.r.inf.eou&dGt.l.o.r.ie.s.o. f. S. t...Jo. .se. p. h. .. E. .d.w.a.r.d.
.TP.èh.roe.m.L.pa.sm.o.ny.....B..i..v.er. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
..H..u.. m.. ..i..li..ty.. ..o..f..H. .e.a.rt...F.r...C.a.j.e.ta. n. .d.a. B. .e.rg.a. -.
.m. o. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. .. ..
.. .. .. .. .. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Other Books
24.00
16.50
9.00
15.00
2.00
9.00
8.00
13.00
16.50
15.00
1.50
4.00
1.25
60.00
5.00
13.50
2.00
2.50
7.00
12.50
3.00
4.00
13.50
6.00
5.00
15.00
15.00
10.00
8.50
526

54.10 Page 540

▲back to top


The Curé D’Ars. Abbé Francis Trochu. .
.L.o.v.e., .P.e.a.c.e.a.n.d. .Jo. .y.. (.S. t...G. e. r.t.r.u.d.e.).. .P.r.é-.
vTohte. .T. h. .re. e. .W. .a.y.s. .o.f. t.h.e. .S.p.i.ri.t.u.a.l.L. i.f.e..
P.Gr.ai.cre.rs.igsouub-jLecatgtroanchgae,nOge..P.. . . . . . . . . . . . .
....................
At your Bookdealer or direct from the Publisher.
Call Toll-Free 1-800-437-5876.
Other Books
21.50
7.00
6.00
527

55 Pages 541-550

▲back to top


55.1 Page 541

▲back to top


Indexes
Indexes
528

55.2 Page 542

▲back to top


Index of Scripture References
Index of Scripture References
Genesis
1:11 1:14 1:31 2:7 2:10 3:16 4:7 4:7 12:1 15:6 16:6 17:1 17:1 17:17 21:16
21:16 22:1 24:12-14 24:63 25:23 27:27 27:27 28:16 29:11 30 30:1 30:1 32:30
37 37:35 39:8 41:40 45:8 45:28 46:30 48:16 49:11 50:17 50:20
Exodus
19:19 34:14
Leviticus
11:3 11:44
Numbers
17:8
Deuteronomy
5:9 6:4-5 8:6
Joshua
1:8
Judges
13:18 14 14:14
1 Kingdoms
2:10 14:1 18:1
2 Kingdoms
1:26 1:26 23
1 Kings
1:15 18:1
2 Kings
15 18:5 23:25
Job
1:21 1:21 1:21 2:10 2:10 14:2 14:2 17:11 21:14 42:10
Psalms
1:3 1:11 2:10-11 4:5 4:6 5:8 7 9:38 9:38 15 15:2 15:11 17:26 18:6 18:8 18:10
21:15 22 24:15 26:4 26:6 26:8 29:6 32:6 33:1-2 33:4 35:10 37:4 38:13 39:9 41:1
41:1-2 41:3 41:3 41:4 44:6 44:10 44:10 47:14 50:4 50:13 54:7 54:23 56:8-9 58:7
61 62:9 64:1 70:9 72 72:23-24 72:24 72:24 72:25 72:25 72:25 72:25-26 72:25-26
73:23 77:9 77:39 77:39 80:11 83:1 83:5 83:6 91:13-14 99 100:1 100:8 102:1
103:15 103:24 104:4 109:3 111:10 118 118 118:1 118:4 118:13 118:20 118:53
118:54 118:68 118:71 118:82 118:97 118:97 118:103 118:103 118:103 118:112
118:127 118:137 118:137 118:139 118:163 118:165 125:1 132 132 132:1-2 136:4
137:2 138:6 138:14 138:14 138:21 141 141:8 142:10 143 144:9 148:5 150:6 158:8
529

55.3 Page 543

▲back to top


Index of Scripture References
Proverbs
1:20-22 1:23 4:18 8:22 8:31 8:35 13:12 15:14 27:9 31:27 31:29
Ecclesiastes
1:7 19:26
Song of Solomon
1 1:1 1:1 1:1 1:1 1:1 1:1 1:1-2 1:2 1:3 1:3 1:3 1:3 1:3 1:3 1:4 1:6 1:6 1:12
1:12 1:12 1:12 1:14 2 2:2 2:2 2:4 2:7 2:7 2:9 2:12 2:14 2:14 2:16 2:16 2:16
3:3 3:4 3:4 3:4 3:4 3:6 4 4:9 4:9 4:9 4:9 4:9 5 5:1 5:1 5:2 5:2 5:3 5:6 5:6
5:6 5:8 5:8 5:8 5:10 5:10 5:16 5:16 7:1 7:9 7:10 7:10 7:11 7:11 8:6 8:6 8:6
8:6 8:6
Isaiah
1:5-6 14:12 14:13 20:2 26:18 28:19 38:14 38:15 41:13 48:8 53:7 59:11 62:14
66:10-12
Jeremiah
2:12 2:13 2:20 9:21 31:3
Lamentations
1:1 2:15 2:18
Ezekiel
1:12 8:3 8:27 8:30 18:4 18:24 18:24 18:30 28:2 29:20 29:20 33:10 33:12 36:26
Daniel
3:35 4:24 5:6
Hosea
2:14 9:10 11:4 13:9 13:9
Zephaniah
1:5
Malachi
2:7
Matthew
4:17 5:3 5:23-24 5:28 5:48 6:20 6:20 6:24 8:9 8:17 10:22 10:28 10:28 11:21
11:26 11:26 13:12 13:29 16:26 17:4 19:11 19:21 21:3 21:43 22:37 22:37-38 24:12
24:30 26:41
Mark
5:41 9:23
Luke
1:47 2:32 2:35 6:25 6:38 7:47 9:31 9:54 9:60 10 10:20 10:41-42 11:27 12:49
12:49 12:50 15:7 15:32 17:5 24 24:32
John
530

55.4 Page 544

▲back to top


Index of Scripture References
1:9 4:10 4:13 4:14 4:15 4:34 5:14 6:44 6:44 10:18 14:23 14:23 14:24 15:5 15:13
17:4 17:21 19:37 20:13 20:13 21:19
Acts
2:2 4:32 4:32 5:15 9:15 12:11 13:46 13:46 20:26 20:27 20:31 20:35 24:25 28:4
Romans
1:20 1:21 1:21 1:22 2:14 5:5 5:5 5:5 5:20 5:20 6:6 6:11 6:12 7:15 7:18 7:23
7:24 7:24 8:17 8:28 8:38-39 9:2 9:20 11 11:33-34 12:2 12:21 16:16
1 Corinthians
1:27 4:7 4:11 4:58 7:5 7:7 7:32 9:24 9:24 9:24 10:12 10:31 13 13 13 13:2
13:2 13:3 13:3 13:3 13:4 13:7 13:7 13:12 15:10 15:31 15:41 15:45 15:46 15:57
15:58 16:13 16:20
2 Corinthians
3:5 3:5 4:17 5:14 5:14 5:14 6:1 6:1 6:4-10 7:10 7:10 9:8 11:2 11:29 12:9
Galatians
2:19 2:20 2:20 2:20 2:20 2:20 3:13 4:5 5:22 5:24 6:10 6:14 6:14
Ephesians
4:3 4:15
Philippians
1:9 1:23 1:23 2:12 2:13 3:8 3:18
Colossians
1:15 1:16 3:3 3:3 3:14 3:14 3:17
1 Timothy
1:9 1:9 1:15 1:15 2:4 2:4 3:15
Titus
3:5
Hebrews
6:10 11:8 12:3
James
1:15 1:20 2:13 2:13
1 Peter
1:12 5:7
2 Peter
1:10 3:9
1 John
1:3 2:5 2:16 3:14 3:20 4:18 5:3
Revelation
2:4 2:10 2:17 2:17 2:17 3:1 3:11 3:18 3:20 4 12:1 19 19:12 21:15 21:17 22:11
22:11 22:12
531

55.5 Page 545

▲back to top


Tobit
5:12
Wisdom of Solomon
4:7 7:11 8:1 11:21 14:3
2 Maccabees
1:19
Sirach
3:22 15:11 18:22 24:29 43:29
Index of Scripture References
532

55.6 Page 546

▲back to top


Latin Words and Phrases
Index of Latin Words and Phrases
In nobis sine nobis: 149
amor,: 460
caritas.: 79
carus: 79
facti semis: 380
pietas: 465
â fortiori: 16
533

55.7 Page 547

▲back to top


French Words and Phrases
Index of French Words and Phrases
Apres ses chevaux toute sa chevance.: 182
Instruction pastorale sur les états d’oraison.: 17
Je desire: 65
La juste reigle de le bien affectionner, c’est de ne point l’affecter.: 265
Levantins: 262
L’inconsideration: 456
Monseigneur: 280
Nous ne voyons pas, ains seluement nous entrevoyons.: 122
affectionner: 367
amorties: 471
attente: 387
bienseance: 454
cause: 115
charité,: 79
cher : 79
cher, cherement, encherir,: 79
contrecœur: 75
convoitise: 79
dol: 243
esperer et aspirer: 127
force,: 460
inconsidération,: 20
je desirerois: 65
maintien: 271
mignardise: 505
mortifiées: 469
ne leve pas mais releve: 213
oraison: 239
par excellence: 9
par imagination de chose impossible.: 18
priere: 239
remise: 17
se pavonnent: 184
souhaits: 65
souspir: 171
suite: 288
534

55.8 Page 548

▲back to top


tremoussements: 370
trespas: 382
triste: 446
French Words and Phrases
535

55.9 Page 549

▲back to top


Index of Pages of the Print Edition
Index of Pages of the Print Edition
i ii iii iv v vi vii viii ix x xi xii xiii xiv xv xvi xvii xviii xix xx xxi xxii xxiii xxiv xxv xxvi xxvii
xxviii xxix xxx xxxi xxxii xxxiii xxxiv xxxv xxxvi xxxvii xxxviii xxxix xl xli xlii xliii xliv xlv xlvi xlvii
xlviii 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32
33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58 56 60 61 62 63
64 65 66 67 68 69 70 71 72 73 74 75 76 77 78 79 80 81 82 83 84 85 86 87 88 89 90 91 92 93 94
95 96 97 98 99 100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118
119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130 131 132 133 134 135 136 137 138 139 140 141
142 143 144 145 146 147 148 149 150 151 152 153 154 155 156 157 158 159 160 161 162 163 164
165 166 167 168 169 170 171 172 173 174 175 176 177 178 179 180 181 182 183 184 185 186 187
188 189 190 191 192 193 194 195 196 197 198 199 200 201 202 203 204 205 206 207 208 209 210
211 212 213 214 215 216 217 218 219 220 221 222 223 224 225 226 227 228 229 230 231 232 233
234 235 236 237 238 239 240 241 242 243 244 245 246 247 248 249 250 251 252 253 254 255 256
257 258 259 260 261 262 263 264 265 266 267 268 269 270 271 272 273 274 275 276 277 278 279
280 281 282 283 284 285 286 287 288 289 290 291 292 293 294 295 296 297 298 299 300 301 302
303 304 305 306 307 308 309 310 311 312 313 314 315 316 317 318 319 320 321 322 323 324 325
326 327 328 329 330 331 332 333 334 335 336 337 338 339 340 341 342 343 344 345 346 347 348
349 350 351 352 353 354 355 356 357 358 359 360 361 362 363 364 365 366 367 368 369 370 371
372 373 374 375 376 377 378 379 380 381 382 383 384 385 386 387 388 389 390 391 392 393 394
395 396 397 398 399 400 401 402 403 404 405 406 407 408 409 410 411 412 413 414 415 416 417
418 419 420 421 422 423 424 425 426 427 428 429 430 431 432 433 434 435 436 437 438 439 440
441 442 443 444 445 446 447 448 449 450 451 452 453 454 455 456 457 458 459 460 461 462 463
464 465 466 467 468 469 470 471 472 473 474 475 476 477 478 479 480 481 482 483 484 485 486
487 488 489 490 491 492 493 494 495 496 497 498 499 500 501 502 503 504 505 506 507 508 509
510 511 512 513 514 515 516 517 518 519 520 521 522 523 524 525 526 527 528 529 530 531 532
533 534 535 536 537 538 539 540 541 542 543 544 545 546 547 548 549 550 551 552 553 554 555
556 557 558 559
536